Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n church_n particular_a pillar_n 1,653 5 10.8048 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A67101 Protestancy without principles, or, Sectaries unhappy fall from infallibility to fancy laid forth in four discourses by E.W. E. W. (Edward Worsley), 1605-1676. 1668 (1668) Wing W3616; ESTC R34759 388,649 615

There are 86 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

describe_v the_o number_n also_o and_o give_v good_a scripture_n for_o both_o which_o can_v be_v do_v 2._o that_o faith_n only_o justify_v 3._o that_o after_o he_o have_v better_a ponder_v the_o text_n of_o st._n peter_n 2._o 3._o 16._o he_o prove_v by_o scripture_n the_o plainess_n of_o it_o in_o all_o necessary_a point_n to_o salvation_n a_o four_o proof_n concern_v the_o canon_n and_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n will_v choke_v mr._n poole_n but_o i_o will_v not_o give_v he_o so_o undigestible_a a_o pill_n may_v he_o plea_n to_o satisfy_v the_o three_o former_a demand_n by_o scripture_n only_o without_o gloss_n and_o ungrounded_a inference_n draw_v from_o what_o he_o think_v to_o be_v god_n word_n but_o be_v not_o 6._o some_o perhaps_o may_v ask_v why_o all_o this_o time_n whilst_o we_o have_v discourse_v of_o scripture_n of_o its_o certainty_n of_o its_o sense_n and_o regulate_a faith_n etc._n etc._n none_o of_o mr._n pool_n argument_n against_o we_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o have_v he_o none_o or_o do_v i_o dissemble_v they_o i_o answer_v the_o man_n have_v nothing_o like_o a_o objection_n to_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o rely_v on_o the_o confession_n and_o testimony_n of_o catholic_n this_o argument_n mr._n poole_n have_v nothing_o like_a argument_n we_o have_v refute_v above_o to_o prove_v it_o uncorrupt_a in_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n he_o tell_v we_o we_o that_o by_o look_v into_o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o those_o various_a lection_n which_o be_v plead_v as_o evidence_n of_o corruption_n we_o shall_v quick_o find_v they_o to_o be_v in_o matter_n of_o les_fw-fr moment_n it_o seem_v they_o be_v little_a because_o mr._n poole_n without_o proof_n will_v have_v they_o so_o i_o can_v show_v he_o great_a one_o in_o the_o protestant_a bible_n but_o let_v they_o pass_v and_o be_v please_v to_o note_v how_o poor_o he_o shift_v of_o the_o difficulty_n that_o press_v the_o difficulty_n be_v concern_v the_o best_a original_n which_o protestant_n have_v hitherto_o meet_v with_o none_o of_o they_o i_o believe_v ever_o yet_o see_v the_o autograph_n or_o handwriting_n of_o either_o a_o evangelist_n or_o apostle_n these_o original_n i_o say_v can_v be_v prove_v uncorrupt_a if_o that_o church_n which_o have_v they_o in_o custody_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n bring_v in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n into_o the_o christian_a world_n final_o to_o prove_v that_o a_o protestant_n have_v a_o sufficient_a assurance_n of_o understanding_n the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n he_o allege_v god_n promise_n john_n 7._o if_o any_o man_n will_v do_v his_o will_n he_o shall_v know_v of_o the_o doctrine_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o god_n but_o protestant_n do_v god_n will_v thus_o much_o must_v be_v add_v or_o the_o proof_n stand_v on_o one_o leg_n and_o papist_n do_v not_o god_n will_v ergo_fw-la those_o have_v assurance_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o these_o have_v not_o here_o be_v the_o doughty_a argument_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v as_o weightles_a protestant_n say_v he_o have_v the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n papist_n have_v no_o more_o and_o if_o that_o will_v not_o do_v they_o have_v the_o assurance_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o god_n promise_v luk_n 11._o here_o be_v work_n enough_o for_o another_o chapter_n yet_o in_o pass_v i_o can_v but_o reflect_v on_o a_o mistake_a quotation_n senensis_n mr._n poole_n misquote_v sixtus_n senensis_n in_o mr._n poole_n page_n 230._o where_o he_o cite_v sixtus_n senensis_n and_o both_o err_v in_o the_o annotation_n and_o doctrine_n of_o sixtus_n concern_v the_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n sixtus_n therefore_o libre_fw-la 6._o annotat._n 152._o not_o 151._o as_o mr._n poole_n quote_v §_o quod_fw-la autem_fw-la answer_v a_o objection_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n plain_o afferts_n that_o when_o scripture_n be_v say_v to_o be_v clear_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o whole_a bible_n but_o to_o a_o part_n of_o it_o only_o wherefore_o say_v he_o st._n chrysostom_n divide_v scripture_n into_o two_o class_n the_o one_o contain_v the_o hide_a and_o abstruse_a mystery_n of_o god_n deep_a wisdom_n and_o this_o part_n be_v not_o clear_a at_o all_o thus_o much_o mr._n poole_n conceil_n altera_fw-la sectio_fw-la the_o other_o section_n or_o part_n of_o it_o comprise_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a principle_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v and_o chief_a precept_n of_o live_v and_o so_o much_o be_v clear_a observe_v well_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a principle_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v infer_v no_o clarity_n in_o every_o particular_a reveal_v mystery_n for_o he_o that_o believe_v this_o one_o principle_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a and_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n have_v a_o first_o great_a principle_n and_o may_v learn_v by_o it_o all_o truth_n if_o you_o please_v to_o see_v how_o mr._n poole_n abuse_v sixtus_n read_v he_o in_o the_o page_n now_o cite_v it_o be_v most_o easy_a to_o take_v he_o trip_v in_o other_o citation_n but_o that_o be_v not_o my_o task_n at_o present_a this_o only_o come_v in_o by_o chance_n chap._n v._n the_o reason_n of_o private_a man_n and_o their_o private_a spirit_n can_v interpret_v scripture_n 1._o mr._n poole_n tell_v we_o above_o that_o protestant_n have_v the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n happy_a they_o if_o they_o be_v the_o only_a reasonable_a man_n in_o the_o world_n but_o why_o be_v not_o papist_n as_o reasonable_a why_o shall_v the_o pelagian_o the_o arian_n or_o honest_a quaker_n be_v leave_v out_o of_o the_o list_n of_o rational_a man_n or_o if_o these_o will_v monopolise_v the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n to_o themselves_o for_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n why_o be_v they_o not_o to_o be_v credit_v upon_o their_o parole_n as_o well_o as_o protestant_n for_o their_o proof_n be_v to_o say_v they_o have_v it_o crede_fw-la quod_fw-la habes_fw-la &_o habes_fw-la and_o so_o will_v a_o arian_n or_o quaker_n say_v too_o admit_v right_a be_v reason_n allow_v of_o to_o sentence_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n we_o must_v know_v who_o reason_n hitt'_v right_a therefore_o which_o be_v fall_v that_o reason_n be_v allow_v of_o as_o judge_n or_o a_o justrument_n to_o sentence_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n where_o it_o speak_v obscure_o we_o be_v nothing_o advance_v nor_o one_o whit_n the_o wise_a unless_o we_o know_v who_o reason_n it_o be_v that_o hitt'_v right_a on_o the_o sense_n now_o all_o of_o they_o most_o evident_o do_v not_o so_o unless_o we_o impious_o say_v that_o god_n have_v reveal_v contradiction_n in_o scripture_n because_o these_o man_n reason_n draw_v contradictory_n sense_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o in_o true_o all_o do_v not_o interpret_v scripture_n true_o high_a point_n of_o faith_n also_o say_v then_o good_a mr._n poole_n who_o reason_n must_v yield_v and_o to_o who_o must_v a_o arian_n submit_v to_o you_o or_o you_o to_o a_o arian_n sense_n who_o reason_n must_v yield_v and_o to_o who_o whilst_o we_o vary_v about_o the_o sense_n must_v my_o bend_n to_o you_o or_o you_o to_o i_o or_o may_v we_o all_o hold_v on_o to_o the_o day_n of_o doom_n as_o divide_v in_o faith_n as_o we_o be_v in_o judgement_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n allow_v once_o of_o these_o endless_a and_o eternal_a jar_n in_o religion_n here_o on_o earth_n which_o this_o one_o principle_n of_o follow_v private_a reason_n establish_v and_o you_o may_v seek_v for_o another_o heaven_n than_o christ_n have_v promise_v to_o the_o child_n of_o peace_n hereafter_o that_o be_v for_o none_o at_o all_o god_n forgive_v these_o late_a tumultuous_a spirit_n the_o true_a cause_n of_o our_o woeful_a dissension_n but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o and_o 2._o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o when_o protestant_n say_v they_o have_v the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o controvert_v point_n of_o faith_n e._n g._n the_o trinity_n what_o signify_v this_o word_n reason_n with_o they_o do_v it_o import_v a_o formal_a discourse_n much_o of_o that_o nature_n as_o schoolman_n use_v when_o they_o establish_v their_o tenant_n in_o divinity_n signify_v sectary_n be_v to_o say_v what_o this_o word_n reason_n signify_v if_o so_o the_o principle_n of_o this_o discourse_n must_v be_v admit_v of_o and_o own_a by_o the_o two_o advers._fw-la party_n when_o by_o reason_n only_o they_o plead_v for_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o discourse_n must_v principle_n if_o a_o formal_a discourse_n two_o advers._fw-la party_n must_v agree_v on_o a_o principle_n be_v draw_v from_o premise_n found_v on_o this_o receive_a principle_n thus_o much_o suppose_v i_o may_v here_o ask_v first_o upon_o what_o know_v and_o admit_v principle_n do_v our_o protestant_n ground_v
can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n again_o no_o man_n call_v into_o doubt_n the_o objective_a verity_n contain_v in_o scripture_n know_v as_o such_o but_o here_o be_v the_o difficulty_n whether_o the_o new_a invent_v interpretation_n make_v on_o scripture_n by_o sectary_n be_v true_a or_o false_a and_o if_o false_a they_o have_v no_o infallible_a oracle_n to_o amend_v the_o error_n as_o the_o catholic_n teacher_n have_v 5._o i_o answer_v second_o s._n paul_n methinks_v lay_v foundation_n enough_o to_o solve_v the_o objection_n rom._n 10._o 15._o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v unless_o they_o he_o send_v why_o therefore_o may_v we_o not_o assert_v that_o every_o catechist_n every_o preacher_n that_o have_v a_o lawful_a mission_n and_o be_v send_v by_o the_o infallible_a church_n to_o preach_v christ_n sacred_a doctrine_n if_o he_o preach_v that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n approve_v of_o be_v then_o under_o that_o notion_n of_o a_o member_n conjoin_v with_o a_o infallible_a church_n infallible_a in_o his_o teach_v though_o all_o vulgar_a teach_v doctrine_n be_v not_o such_o now_o minister_n who_o be_v unsent_a man_n and_o therefore_o divorce_v from_o this_o infallible_a moral_a body_n can_v but_o talk_v as_o they_o do_v fallible_o 6._o i_o will_v not_o have_v any_o to_o mistake_v my_o meaning_n know_v therefore_o first_o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o this_o or_o that_o pastor_n pure_o consider_v as_o a_o pastor_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o he_o teach_v nor_o second_o that_o either_o council_n assemble_v or_o particular_a bishop_n be_v by_o any_o intrinsic_a inherent_a quality_n elevate_v to_o a_o state_n of_o infallibility_n but_o three_o i_o affirm_v that_o god_n who_o according_a to_o christ_n promise_n will_v ever_o guide_v his_o church_n in_o truth_n can_v permit_v all_o the_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o it_o to_o swerve_v from_o carholick_a doctrine_n for_o if_o so_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n may_v err_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o infallible_o pastor_n lawful_o send_v teach_v infallible_a doctrine_n infallible_o christ_n promise_n hence_o i_o say_v fourthly_a every_o bishop_n or_o pastor_n though_o not_o personal_o infallible_a yet_o when_o he_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v christ_n doctrine_n and_o comply_v with_o his_o duty_n that_o be_v when_o he_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o he_o have_v commission_n to_o teach_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n such_o a_o man_n i_o say_v consider_v as_o a_o nember_v conjoin_v with_o a_o infallible_a church_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o christ_n verity_n may_v be_v say_v to_o teach_v infallible_o for_o upon_o this_o supposition_n he_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v truth_n as_o it_o be_v by_o chance_n a_o haeretick_n may_v do_v so_o but_o more_o as_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n he_o teach_v as_o the_o church_n teach_v that_o be_v infallible_o the_o reason_n be_v manifest_a in_fw-la catholic_n principle_n because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ever_o assist_v some_o pastor_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o teach_v true_a christian_a doctrine_n and_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o those_o he_o assist_v teach_v it_o infallible_o therefore_o a_o pastor_n prelate_n or_o bishop_n that_o deliver_v christ_n doctrine_n as_o be_v now_o declare_v teach_v infallible_o you_o will_v say_v this_o pastor_n or_o that_o bishop_n may_v trough_n malice_n ignorance_n objection_n answer_v or_o both_o swerve_v from_o truth_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o then_o he_o teach_v not_o as_o one_o of_o god_n minister_n not_o comply_v with_o his_o mission_n you_o will_v say_v again_o thus_o much_o at_o least_o follow_v out_o of_o this_o principle_n that_o a_o bishop_n when_o he_o teach_v as_o lawful_o send_v be_v at_o that_o instant_n as_o infallible_a as_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o define_v in_o council_n or_o to_o speak_v in_o mr._n pool_n homely_a language_n have_v a_o pope_n in_o his_o belly_n i_o answer_v every_o faithful_a bishop_n may_v have_v as_o infallible_a faith_n as_o the_o pope_n what_o wonder_n be_v it_o therefore_o if_o when_o he_o teach_v as_o both_o pope_n and_o the_o church_n teach_v he_o be_v then_o say_v to_o teach_v infallible_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o great_a disparity_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o particular_a pastor_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n for_o no_o particular_a bishop_n can_v make_v any_o new_a declaration_n of_o faith_n oblige_v all_o christian_n to_o believe_v the_o pope_n with_o a_o council_n can_v do_v so_o no_o particular_a bishop_n precise_o consider_v as_o such_o be_v infallible_a for_o he_o may_v teach_v to_o day_n as_o one_o lawful_o send_v and_o to_o morrow_n err_v by_o ignorance_n yea_o and_o malice_n also_o but_o the_o pope_n consider_v as_o pope_n and_o christ_n vicar_n on_o earth_n can_v never_o define_v in_o council_n but_o infallible_o and_o therefore_o his_o assistance_n be_v in_o a_o high_a measure_n certain_a and_o supereminent_o infallible_a 7._o the_o last_o ground_n of_o this_o doctrine_n which_o great_a divine_v infallible_a the_o whole_a church_n consist_v of_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n be_v infallible_a assert_v be_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o consist_v of_o pastor_n and_o hearer_n of_o teacher_n and_o learner_n antecedent_o to_o pope_n and_o council_n conciliary_o assemble_v together_o be_v infallible_a for_o the_o promise_v of_o christ_n ever_o assist_v the_o church_n primary_o belong_v to_o this_o whole_a moral_a body_n which_o can_v err_v against_o this_o church_n hell_n gate_n shall_v never_o prevail_v with_o it_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v re_fw-mi main_a forth_o ever_o etc._n etc._n now_o this_o infallibility_n can_v but_o remain_v and_o stand_v fast_o in_o the_o member_n of_o this_o mystical_a body_n not_o in_o pastor_n only_o for_o it_o avail_v little_a that_o these_o teach_v infallible_o if_o none_o learn_v their_o infallible_a doctrine_n nor_o in_o hearer_n only_o because_o they_o learn_v not_o infallible_a doctrine_n without_o a_o teacher_n infallibility_n then_o accompany_v both_o pastor_n and_o hearer_n infallible_a how_o pastor_n and_o hearer_n be_v infallible_a as_o therefore_o these_o believe_a hearer_n conjoin_v in_o faith_n with_o this_o infallible_a church_n be_v under_o that_o notion_n infallible_a no_o catholic_n can_v deny_v it_o so_o likewise_o these_o believe_a pastor_n as_o conjoynd_a in_o doctrine_n with_o this_o unerring_a church_n and_o teach_v what_o the_o church_n teach_v under_o that_o notion_n be_v infallible_a in_o their_o doctrine_n yet_o as_o i_o now_o intimate_v there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o representative_a church_n of_o a_o pope_n and_o council_n lawful_o and_o conciliary_o assemble_v and_o particular_a pastor_n particular_a christian_n and_o particular_a church_n for_o the_o representative_a err_v particular_a pastor_n may_v err_v church_n because_o of_o the_o powerful_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v swerve_v from_o truth_n in_o its_o definition_n but_o this_o pastor_n that_o teacher_n that_o particular_a church_n may_v swerve_v altogether_o can_v though_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o pastor_n send_v to_o teach_v the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n he_o teach_v infallible_o separate_a he_o from_o this_o moral_a body_n he_o lose_v assistance_n and_o can_v but_o teach_v fallible_o though_o he_o speak_v truth_n by_o chance_n consequent_o he_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n teacher_n for_o christ_n never_o empower_v any_o to_o teach_v fallible_a doctrine_n that_o may_v be_v false_a you_o will_v say_v separate_z a_o minister_n from_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o he_o be_v also_o no_o teacher_n alas_o he_o separat'_v himself_o for_o he_o have_v no_o mission_n to_o preach_v as_o he_o do_v and_o moreover_o profess_v that_o he_o can_v teach_v nothing_o infallible_o but_o of_o this_o more_o afferward_o in_o the_o interim_n 8._o to_o cut_v of_o all_o reply_n to_o the_o argument_n i_o propose_v it_o thus_o no_o man_n that_o be_v by_o nature_n liable_a to_o error_n or_o want_v god_n special_a divine_a assistance_n in_o his_o teach_n and_o positive_o renounce_v all_o infallible_a society_n of_o christian_a teacher_n can_v teach_v with_o certainty_n christ_n infallible_a doctrine_n but_o all_o man_n now_o at_o least_o in_o be_v be_v by_o nature_n liable_a to_o error_n want_v this_o special_a assistance_n in_o their_o teach_v and_o must_v as_o mr._n poole_n will_v have_v it_o positive_o renounce_v all_o infallible_a society_n of_o christian_a teacher_n therefore_o no_o man_n can_v teach_v with_o certainty_n or_o deliver_v the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n the_o major_n be_v evident_a for_o he_o who_o by_o nature_n be_v liable_a to_o error_n and_o have_v not_o infallible_a infallible_o man_n want_v infallible_a assistance_n to_o teach_v can_v deliver_v christ_n doctrine_n infallible_o assistance_n to_o teach_v infallible_o or_o want_v the_o guidance_n of_o a_o infallible_a society_n to_o direct_v he_o may_v as_o easy_o err_v and_o
well_o to_o distinguish_v between_o express_a scripture_n and_o the_o superaddition_n of_o man_n gloss_n fallible_a explication_n interpretation_n etc._n etc._n now_o if_o doctrine_n when_o sectary_n interpret_v scripture_n true_o they_o borrow_v light_n from_o church_n doctrine_n in_o this_o particular_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n mr._n poole_n interpret_n scripture_n true_o it_o be_v not_o god_n know_v his_o skill_n that_o do_v it_o no._n the_o reason_n be_v because_o be_v borrow_v the_o truth_n from_o the_o church_n interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o fight_v against_o a_o arian_n with_o another_o weapon_n where_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v a_o strange_a proceed_n of_o protestant_n who_o when_o they_o dispute_v protestant_n a_o strange_a proceed_n of_o protestant_n out_o of_o scripture_n against_o a_o arian_n they_o will_v have_v the_o church_n interpretation_n good_a against_o he_o and_o his_o naught_o against_o they_o and_o when_o they_o dispute_v by_o scripture_n against_o catholic_n they_o will_v have_v the_o church_n interpretation_n forceles_a against_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o wretched_a gloss_n powerful_o strong_a against_o the_o church_n be_v there_o ever_o such_o do_n in_o the_o world_n before_o these_o day_n 10._o but_o we_o have_v not_o yet_o say_v all_o concern_v scripture_n interpretation_n of_o scripture_n inference_n out_o of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o because_o we_o be_v go_v so_o far_o pardon_v a_o further_a trouble_n of_o give_v you_o a_o few_o more_o note_n on_o this_o subject_a they_o will_v show_v you_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o upon_o what_o rotter_a principle_n the_o grand_a cheat_n of_o protestant_a religion_n stand_v for_o want_v of_o infallible_a teacher_n chap._n ii_o the_o fallacy_n of_o protestant_n concern_v scripture_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v discover_v 1._o we_o have_v almost_o see_v enough_o how_o sectary_n either_o through_o malice_n ignorance_n or_o both_o make_v holy_a scripture_n a_o book_n that_o prove_v all_o religion_n like_o wittingtons_n bell_n it_o ring_n be_v out_o what_o fancy_n will_v for_o in_o scripture_n be_v arianism_n if_o we_o believe_v the_o arian_n here_o be_v protestanism_n if_o we_o believe_v protestant_n here_o be_v quakerism_n if_o we_o believe_v quaker_n here_o be_v what_o you_o will_v and_o it_o all_o heretic_n lay_v alike_o claim_v to_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o what_o you_o will_v not_o and_o it_o must_v be_v so_o whilst_o these_o man_n have_v a_o bible_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o construe_v all_o as_o they_o plea_n gloss_n as_o they_o plea_n interpret_v as_o they_o plea_n without_o limit_v or_o restraint_n it_o have_v be_v much_o better_o methinks_v if_o such_o sole-scripturists_a have_v never_o read_v scripture_n in_o these_o debate_v point_n of_o religion_n then_o after_o their_o read_n to_o see_v it_o make_v a_o book_n that_o only_o beget_v dissension_n so_o gross_o wrong_v and_o abuse_v it_o be_v yet_o no_o body_n be_v in_o fault_n pure_a scripture_n cry_v the_o arian_n pure_a scripture_n say_v the_o protestant_n nothing_o but_o scripture_n say_v the_o puritan_n and_o there_o be_v no_o redress_n for_o these_o evil_n all_o run_v on_o in_o their_o wilful_a misunderstanding_n scripture_n not_o one_o of_o they_o will_v yield_v to_o another_o nor_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o and_o plain_a perverseness_n seek_v after_o a_o mean_n which_o be_v yet_o offer_v they_o to_o come_v to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o it_o 2._o true_o i_o have_v often_o wonder_v at_o our_o protestant_n man_n as_o they_o say_v of_o a_o more_o sober_a temper_n then_o your_o quaker_n and_o puritan_n be_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a scripture_n protestant_n plea_n for_o sole_a scripture_n after_o they_o know_v right_a well_o with_o innumerable_a holy_a father_n this_o plea_n or_o plead_v sole_a scripture_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o old_a trick_n of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n that_o they_o can_v lessen_v themselves_o so_o much_o have_v they_o no_o other_o motive_n to_o retard_v they_o as_o to_o tread_v the_o footstep_n of_o such_o unworthy_a sectary_n and_o patronize_v a_o doctrine_n which_o can_v but_o breed_v dissension_n to_o the_o world_n end_n this_o it_o be_v sole_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n sole_a scripture_n speak_v plain_o in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o doctrine_n their_o false_a doctrine_n salvation_n on_o these_o two_o hinge_n chief_a protestant_a religion_n turn_v about_o and_o will_v do_v so_o until_o god_n at_o his_o good_a pleasure_n judge_v it_o time_n to_o turn_v it_o out_o of_o the_o world_n two_o cheat_n they_o be_v and_o great_a one_o as_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v 3._o mr._n poole_n to_o mend_v the_o matter_n have_v suppose_v position_n mr._n pool_n three_o position_n that_o sole_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n withal_o that_o there_o be_v enough_o say_v in_o scripture_n to_o end_v all_o controversy_n be_v man_n humble_a and_o studious_a etc._n etc._n seem_v in_o the_o 7._o chap._n of_o his_o nullity_n page_n 226._o to_o ground_n protestant_n religion_n on_o these_o three_o position_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v and_o may_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o that_o in_o the_o substantial_o of_o faith_n those_o book_n be_v uncorrupted_a 3._o that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v sufficient_o understand_v in_o necessary_a point_n there_o be_v no_o arian_n but_o will_v most_o easy_o admit_v of_o these_o three_o proposition_n how_o then_o be_v they_o all_o true_a can_v they_o more_o establish_v protestant_a religion_n than_o arianism_n for_o a_o principle_n common_a to_o two_o advers._fw-la party_n can_v consider_v mere_o as_o a_o principle_n agree_v on_o by_o both_o more_o advantage_n the_o cause_n of_o one_o than_o the_o other_o if_o therefore_o a_o arian_n assent_n to_o these_o proposition_n they_o ground_n no_o more_o protestant_a religion_n than_o they_o do_v arianism_n proposition_n mr._n poole_n want_v a_o four_o proposition_n the_o truth_n be_v mr._n poole_n be_v high_o want_v in_o a_o four_o proposition_n which_o if_o prove_v will_v have_v do_v he_o more_o service_n than_o the_o other_o three_o and_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v to_o this_o sense_n see_v scripture_n speak_v plain_o all_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n certain_o it_o ought_v to_o teach_v protestancy_n plain_o i_o mean_v the_o particular_a tenant_n of_o protestant_n as_o these_o stand_n in_o opposition_n to_o catholic_n doctrine_n for_o if_o these_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n scripture_n have_v deliver_v they_o plain_o or_o if_o it_o have_v not_o do_v so_o we_o must_v conclude_v they_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o much_o premise_v we_o will_v show_v you_o in_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n how_o slippery_a and_o fallacious_a protestant_a doctrine_n be_v as_o it_o relate_v to_o scripture_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n 4._o the_o first_o proposition_n no_o infallible_a church_n no_o scripture_n no_o infallible_a church_n no_o certainty_n of_o true_a scripture_n assurance_n of_o true_a and_o uncorrupt_a scripture_n to_o make_v my_o assertion_n good_a against_o protestant_n i_o will_v only_o propose_v this_o plain_a question_n from_o what_o man_n of_o credit_n and_o integrity_n have_v the_o first_o protestant_n their_o bible_n it_o bible_n from_o who_o have_v protestant_n there_o bible_n be_v not_o drop_v down_o from_o heaven_n into_o their_o pulpit_n with_o assurance_n of_o its_o purity_n or_o certainty_n that_o no_o change_n be_v make_v in_o it_o contrary_a to_o truth_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v they_o jew_n infidel_n turk_n arian_n or_o grecian_a haeretik_n that_o give_v they_o scripture_n too_o perfidious_a to_o be_v trust_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o consequence_n too_o unfaithsul_n either_o to_o preserve_v true_a scripture_n by_o they_o till_o luther_n quit_v his_o cell_n or_o then_o to_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n a_o bible_n uncorrupt_a in_o every_o point_n be_v they_o catholic_n let_v our_o adversary_n shame_v the_o devil_n and_o speak_v truth_n it_o be_v from_o they_o they_o have_v their_o bible_n together_o with_o the_o original_n but_o these_o papist_n these_o very_a catholic_n if_o we_o may_v credit_v scripture_n catholic_n in_o protestant_n principles_n can_v be_v rely_v on_o for_o scripture_n protestant_n have_v not_o only_o corrupt_v the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o also_o through_o malice_n or_o ignorance_n have_v gross_o err_v a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o change_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o have_v secret_o wrought_v into_o man_n heart_n a_o false_a belief_n of_o the_o chutches_n infallibility_n of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n of_o transubstantiation_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o such_o like_a error_n admit_v of_o this_o supposition_n who_o be_v there_o among_o protestant_n that_o shall_v dare_v to_o look_v on_o his_o bible_n with_o good_a assurance_n of_o its_o scripture_n if_o
truth_n for_o all_o their_o minister_n be_v fallible_a what_o kind_n of_o elect_n be_v these_o who_o have_v certainty_n of_o grace_n but_o no_o certainty_n of_o truth_n with_o it_o now_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o hold_v it_o impossible_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v desert_n god_n truth_n they_o grant_v what_o we_o ask_v and_o must_v say_v it_o have_v the_o infallible_a assistance_n we_o plead_v for_o the_o reason_n hereof_o i_o have_v ample_o deliver_v in_o the_o former_a discourse_n chap._n 3._o because_o all_o the_o human_a science_n wit_n or_o learn_v in_o nature_n alone_o can_v no_o more_o secure_a a_o church_n grace_n god_n preserve_v his_o church_n a●_n sound_v in_o truth_n as_o sanctify_v by_o grace_n from_o error_n then_o give_v it_o grace_n god_n therefore_o do_v and_o will_v ever_o gracious_o prevent_v it_o with_o both_o these_o blessing_n and_o as_o infallible_o keep_v it_o sound_v in_o truth_n as_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a chap._n vii_o more_o of_o this_o subject_a 1._o by_o what_o be_v say_v in_o this_o short_a digression_n you_o see_v how_o pitiful_o our_o new_a man_n mangle_v the_o text_n now_o cite_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n hear_v their_o gloss_n yes_o say_v they._n this_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n but_o in_o a_o different_a degree_n for_o it_o be_v of_o continual_a and_o infallible_a assistance_n to_o the_o apostle_n but_o to_o their_o successor_n of_o continual_a and_o fit_a assistance_n but_o not_o infallible_a the_o like_a be_v repeat_v afterward_o assistance_n protestant_n trivial_a distinction_n of_o fit_v and_o infallible_a assistance_n when_o they_o ask_v what_o we_o say_v to_o this_o marry_o sir_n i_o say_v it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o you_o neither_o declare_v what_o this_o fit_a continual_a assistance_n grant_v these_o successor_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o other_o allow_v the_o apostle_n be_v nor_o can_v you_o declare_v these_o different_a degree_n and_o though_o you_o do_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o general_n they_o still_o run_v on_o in_o general_n church_n sense_n you_o only_o vent_v your_o own_o feeble_a and_o fallible_a sentiment_n without_o proof_n which_o i_o neither_o aught_o nor_o can_v in_o prudence_n believe_v to_o be_v plain_a therefore_o be_v please_v to_o answer_v have_v god_n reveal_v to_o you_o what_o this_o fit_a and_o continual_a assistance_n grant_v the_o apostle_n successor_n be_v no._n do_v any_o ancient_a council_n or_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n mince_v these_o word_n and_o dogmatise_v here_o as_o you_o do_v or_o only_o mention_v a_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n and_o grace_n exclude_v infallible_a assistance_n no._n all_o be_v contrary_a as_o i_o can_v demonstrate_v be_v it_o here_o my_o task_n to_o prove_v truth_n against_o you_o but_o this_o be_v do_v by_o other_o as_o it_o be_v to_o force_v you_o to_o prove_v what_o your_o fancy_n only_o vent_v against_o it_o and_o mark_v how_o fancy_n go_v to_o work_v christ_n say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v say_v your_o fancy_n he_o be_v present_a by_o his_o spirit_n by_o a_o fit_a assistance_n but_o not_o by_o a_o assistance_n infallible_a this_o gloss_n not_o by_o infallible_a assistance_n be_v your_o own_o for_o neither_o god_n word_n nor_o universal_a church_n nor_o general_n council_n nor_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n nor_o antiquity_n ever_o utter_v any_o thing_n like_o it_o grant_v therefore_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a as_o you_o say_v to_o put_v your_o party_n to_o prove_v a_o negative_a viz._n that_o any_o of_o the_o father_n deny_v this_o place_n to_o extend_v to_o infallibility_n i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o force_v you_o to_o a_o proof_n of_o your_o own_o affirmative_a for_o you_o doctrinal_o teach_v that_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n allow_v no_o certain_a infallibility_n to_o his_o church_n this_o because_o positive_o assert_v be_v positive_o to_o be_v make_v good_a by_o a_o more_o strenuous_a proof_n than_o fancy_n only_o you_o say_v again_o those_o of_o your_o party_n only_o deliver_v what_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o mean_v of_o this_o and_o other_o place_n of_o father_n which_o do_v no_o more_o then_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n what_o they_o conceive_v weak_a fallible_a man_n pray_v proof_n sectary_n conceit_n instead_o of_o proof_n what_o be_o i_o the_o better_a for_o their_o conceit_n must_v i_o change_v my_o ancient_a faith_n for_o the_o roll_v and_o never_o agree_v fancy_n of_o a_o few_o minister_n why_o may_v not_o a_o arian_n or_o pelagian_a if_o sole_a conceive_n can_v do_v it_o as_o well_o gain_v i_o to_o his_o party_n as_o a_o protestant_n to_o his_o who_o think_v that_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a to_o that_o of_o the_o father_n i_o answer_v their_o indubitable_a own_v a_o church_n perpetual_a evident_o can_v we_o say_v no_o more_o suppose_v a_o church_n constant_o true_a and_o holy_a and_o the_o constant_a truth_n of_o it_o imply_v infallible_a assistance_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v 2._o protestant_n may_v yet_o reply_v they_o deliver_v what_o objection_n a_o objection_n they_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o christ_n word_n i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o etc._n etc._n catholic_n can_v do_v no_o more_o and_o mark_v well_o as_o the_o word_n do_v not_o explicit_o exclude_v infallible_a assistance_n from_o the_o church_n always_o so_o neither_o do_v they_o explicit_o include_v it_o for_o christ_n say_v not_o explicit_o i_o will_v be_v always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o my_o infallible_a assistance_n this_o then_o the_o case_n stand_v they_o restrain_v christ_n promise_n and_o we_o see_v to_o extend_v it_o too_o far_o they_o we_o say_v come_v to_o short_a of_o the_o sense_n by_o cut_v of_o infallible_a assistance_n we_o catholic_n they_o say_v go_v beyond_o the_o bound_n and_o add_v more_o to_o the_o text_n than_o christ_n speak_v both_o of_o we_o therefore_o be_v glosser_n and_o why_o be_v not_o their_o gloss_n as_o orthodox_n as_o we_o here_o be_v a_o better_a objection_n than_o any_o hitherto_o propose_v controversy_n the_o solution_n of_o it_o end_v all_o controversy_n and_o the_o solution_n may_v easy_o end_v all_o controversy_n will_v sectary_n plea_n to_o wave_v a_o few_o self-conceipt_n and_o prudent_o acquiesce_v to_o reason_n whilst_o truth_n plead_v again_v their_o error_n 3._o first_o then_o though_o i_o press_v not_o much_o this_o point_n interpretation_n sectary_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o prefer_v their_o interpretation_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o we_o catholic_n be_v the_o elder_a brother_n as_o numerous_a at_o least_o as_o they_o and_o to_o speak_v modest_o as_o learned_a why_o therefore_o when_o both_o they_o and_o we_o interpret_v scripture_n and_o stand_v as_o it_o be_v equal_o balance_v because_o it_o be_v yet_o suppose_v uncertain_a who_o guess_v better_o why_o be_v not_o i_o say_v our_o interpretation_n can_v we_o prove_v no_o more_o as_o good_a as_o they_o contrary_a to_o we_o if_o they_o prefer_v their_o gloss_n before_o we_o something_o of_o weight_n beside_o mere_a fancy_n must_v turn_v the_o scale_n and_o balance_n more_o for_o they_o then_o we_o we_o always_o ask_v for_o this_o great_a poise_n in_o controvert_v catholic_n to_o these_o of_o catholic_n matter_n and_o can_v get_v no_o answer_n 4._o second_o i_o must_v necessary_o here_o note_v a_o unworthy_a sectary_n a_o unworthy_a proceed_n of_o sectary_n proceed_n of_o sectary_n with_o we_o when_o we_o produce_v scripture_n father_n or_o council_n for_o catholic_n doctrine_n their_o humour_n and_o it_o be_v a_o a_o strange_a one_o run_v on_o thus_o first_o they_o begin_v with_o their_o gloss_n and_o labour_n to_o pervert_v that_o sense_n which_o the_o catholic_n own_v and_o if_o after_o much_o trifle_a they_o can_v disguise_n this_o sense_n or_o twine_v it_o of_o ●●om_n the_o catholic_n mean_v they_o hold_v the_o work_n do_v and_o cry_v victory_n mark_v in_o our_o present_a matter_n their_o frigid_a way_n of_o argue_v and_o it_o be_v alike_o in_o all_o other_o controversy_n that_o text_n say_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n may_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o that_o other_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n may_v have_v the_o sense_n they_o allow_v of_o and_o no_o more_o this_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o always_o etc._n etc._n may_v exclude_v infallibility_n and_o when_o they_o bring_v the_o close_a of_o a_o point_n debate_v to_o their_o own_o self-seeming_a it_o may_v be_v they_o think_v all_o safe_a whereas_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o nothing_o be_v yet_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o conclude_v for_o as_o they_o say_v the_o sense_n
recur_n to_o a_o invisible_a society_n of_o such_o man_n now_o as_o well_o explode_v by_o late_a protestant_n as_o catholic_n 7._o a_o five_o objection_n flow'_v from_o the_o pen_n of_o a_o late_a stillingfleet_n mr._n stillingfleet_n writer_n after_o this_o manner_n can_v you_o conceive_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o number_n of_o man_n profess_v christianity_n without_o infallibility_n if_o not_o say_v he_o i_o will_v help_v your_o understanding_n a_o little_a suppose_v and_o it_o be_v only_o a_o supposition_n that_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v be_v destroy_v in_o one_o age_n do_v not_o you_o think_v that_o there_o will_v be_v still_o a_o number_n remain_v who_o profess_v christianity_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o protestant_a church_n sound_v at_o least_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o without_o infallibility_n i_o have_v answer_v already_o no._n and_o give_v my_o reason_n because_o a_o church_n stable_n a_o church_n separate_v from_o divine_a assistance_n can_v persist_v stable_n divorce_v from_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v pull_v from_o the_o centre_n of_o truth_n which_o support_v it_o and_o consequent_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o must_v needs_o reel_v and_o totter_v now_o as_o be_v suppose_v to_o rely_v on_o no_o firm_a a_o hold_n then_o on_o man_n unsteedy_a fallible_a reason_n or_o on_o a_o testimony_n mere_o humane_a and_o therefore_o uncertain_a neither_o have_v we_o without_o this_o assistance_n more_o security_n fundamental_o without_o infallible_a assistance_n no_o security_n of_o fundamental_o of_o true_a belief_n in_o matter_n call_v fundamental_a than_o other_o as_o be_v clear_a in_o condemn_a arian_n who_o no_o soon_o leave_v the_o church_n direct_v by_o this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n but_o error_n follow_v they_o in_o point_n most_o fundamental_a and_o yet_o like_o black_a ghost_n do_v and_o will_v haunt_v they_o without_o repentance_n to_o the_o world_n end_n 8._o before_o we_o end_v this_o matter_n i_o have_v one_o question_v to_o propose_v it_o be_v whether_o if_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n sectary_n a_o question_n propose_v to_o sectary_n that_o ever_o live_v have_v plain_o interpret_v scripture_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n now_o interpret_n they_o contrary_v to_o protestant_n they_o will_v then_o disavow_v their_o own_o gloss_n and_o submit_v to_o the_o undeniable_a authority_n of_o so_o many_o worthy_a father_n may_v reason_n or_o religion_n set_v one_o unlucky_a adversary_n aside_o call_v prejudice_n make_v the_o answer_n sectary_n will_v say_v yes_o and_o do_v so_o be_v the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n against_o they_o grant_v thus_o much_o and_o say_v bold_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a antecedent_n father_n the_o authority_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n more_o weighty_a than_o that_o of_o father_n and_o this_o present_a roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v in_o true_a prudence_n of_o great_a force_n to_o withdraw_v sectary_n from_o their_o new_a invent_a gloss_n contrary_a to_o it_o then_o if_o all_o the_o father_n together_o have_v plain_o interpret_v scripture_n as_o the_o church_n interpret_n why_o nothing_o on_o earth_n can_v parallel_v this_o church_n authority_n much_o les_fw-fr make_v it_o inferior_a to_o church_n the_o father_n only_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o universal_a consent_n of_o father_n the_o reason_n be_v these_o father_n be_v only_o a_o part_n of_o it_o particular_a man_n and_o single_o consider_v fallible_a but_o a_o whole_a church_n embrace_v a_o great_a number_n and_o can_v be_v mislead_v into_o error_n nay_o i_o say_v though_o we_o impious_o suppose_v father_n be_v the_o church_n suppose_v fallible_a the_o authority_n of_o it_o be_v as_o great_a as_o the_o father_n that_o this_o whole_a church_n may_v swerve_v from_o truth_n yet_o the_o testimony_n of_o it_o be_v as_o great_a as_o that_o of_o the_o father_n who_o as_o protestant_n say_v may_v all_o err_v and_o swerve_v more_o easy_o this_o reason_n be_v reinforce_v if_o we_o reflect_v on_o one_o undeniable_a truth_n which_o be_v in_o all_o controversy_n now_o between_o we_o sectary_n can_v pretend_v no_o more_o but_o thus_o much_o only_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o some_o few_o father_n only_o they_o never_o pretend_v all_o whilst_o they_o interpret_v scripture_n be_v though_o often_o obscure_a more_o against_o the_o church_n interpretation_n then_o for_o it_o here_o be_v the_o most_o they_o can_v say_v with_o any_o conscience_n though_o we_o grant_v not_o so_o much_o when_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o a_o father_n be_v well_o examine_v however_o gratis_o admit_v of_o the_o supposition_n at_o present_a and_o see_v what_o follow_v fallible_a a_o clear_a testimony_n though_o fallible_a have_v more_o weight_n than_o another_o that_o be_v obscure_a and_o fallible_a thus_o much_o only_o the_o sense_n of_o such_o and_o such_o father_n be_v doubtful_a and_o sectary_n say_v fallible_a the_o church_n sense_n be_v clear_a that_o be_v you_o know_v what_o it_o teach_v and_o though_o false_o suppose_v fallible_a be_v yet_o far_o more_o firm_a than_o the_o other_o testimony_n that_o be_v confess_o both_o obscure_a and_o fallible_a 9_o this_o discourse_n convince_v that_o sectary_n can_v prove_v if_o sectary_n say_v the_o more_o clear_a church_n doctrine_n be_v the_o more_o manifest_a be_v its_o error_n they_o speak_v without_o principle_n and_o suppose_v what_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v impugn_v the_o church_n sense_n give_v of_o scripture_n by_o any_o thing_n that_o have_v the_o look_n of_o a_o probable_a principle_n for_o the_o church_n defend'_v itself_o upon_o two_o undeniable_a ground_n the_o first_o positive_a and_o it_o be_v the_o church_n own_o authority_n nothing_o can_v be_v great_a the_o other_o negative_a viz._n never_o any_o of_o know_a credit_n neither_o father_n general_o nor_o ecumenical_a council_n much_o less_o scripture_n probably_n clear_o contradict_v that_o sense_n which_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n give_v of_o scripture_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n you_o may_v see_v to_o what_o a_o exigency_n our_o new_a scripture_n none_o of_o undoubted_a credit_n ever_o clear_o contradict_v the_o church_n sense_n of_o scripture_n man_n be_v drive_v for_o want_n of_o principle_n they_o say_v the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v fallible_a the_o father_n be_v fallible_a all_o condemn_a heretic_n be_v fallible_a they_o themselves_o be_v fallible_a thus_o much_o suppose_v tell_v i_o i_o beseech_v you_o by_o what_o probable_a principle_n can_v they_o so_o much_o as_o seem_o show_v that_o either_o they_o interpret_v scripture_n better_o than_o we_o or_o that_o any_o of_o we_o all_o ever_o yet_o arrive_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o in_o controvert_v best_a if_o all_o be_v fallible_a by_o what_o principle_n can_v sectary_n prove_v their_o interpretation_n to_o be_v the_o best_a matter_n which_o yet_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o we_o can_v have_v no_o true_a faith_n without_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n you_o know_v if_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a there_o be_v no_o safe_a conduct_n and_o if_o the_o fallible_a man_n guide_v the_o fallible_a both_o may_v mistake_v their_o way_n and_o err_v gross_o you_o will_v have_v no_o answer_n return_v to_o this_o difficulty_n but_o sectary_n fancy_n and_o fancy_n only_o scripture_n or_o show_v that_o any_o have_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n 10._o some_o may_v reply_v protestant_n have_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n as_o clear_a as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v please_v to_o write_v they_o in_o fundamental_o as_o also_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n at_o least_o for_o those_o fundamental_o they_o wave_v other_o by-passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o care_v not_o much_o sectary_n a_o reply_n of_o sectary_n whether_o their_o interpretation_n be_v right_a or_o wrong_n i_o answer_v first_o to_o say_v nothing_o of_o many_o other_o they_o difficulty_n they_o can_v wave_v all_o difficulty_n can_v wave_v one_o difficulty_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacred_a eucharist_n which_o be_v either_o a_o fundamental_a doctrine_n or_o none_o be_v both_o scripture_n and_o father_n be_v in_o this_o particular_a most_o express_o against_o they_o as_o be_v prove_v hereafter_o 11._o but_o let_v this_o pass_v i_o answer_v 2._o we_o have_v as_o good_a scripture_n as_o sectary_n can_v lay_v claim_n to_o in_o every_o point_n which_o they_o call_v fundamental_a and_o with_o it_o the_o superior_a in_o fundamental_o we_o be_v at_o least_o equal_a and_o in_o controvert_v matter_n far_o superior_a consent_n of_o father_n also_o in_o other_o controvert_v matter_n we_o own_o the_o same_o scripture_n they_o own_o and_o moreover_o have_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o declare_v by_o this_o long_a stand_a church_n wherein_o we_o infinite_o surpass_v they_o speak_v therefore_o of_o matter_n out_o of_o controversy_n or_o wherein_o all_o agree_v we_o be_v at_o least_o equal_a with_o they_o and_o for_o other_o in_o controversy_n
peace_n among_o you_o without_o reference_n to_o your_o faith_n your_o church_n be_v essential_o hypocritical_a which_o may_v believe_v hypocritical_a the_o english_a church_n be_v essential_o hypocritical_a one_o thing_n and_o must_v profess_v a_o other_o i_o now_o say_v no_o more_o have_v tell_v you_o enough_o to_o this_o sense_n in_o another_o place_n though_o all_o the_o protestant_n in_o england_n do_v not_o only_a dissent_n in_o judgement_n from_o the_o own_n of_o these_o faith_n protestant_n may_v curse_v these_o negative_a article_n and_o yet_o besound_v in_o faith_n negative_n though_o they_o be_v plain_a papist_n in_o hart_n yea_o and_o interior_o curse_v and_o anathematise_v all_o your_o new_a article_n if_o the_o exterior_a demeanour_n be_v fair_o good_a all_o be_v fine_a they_o may_v be_v still_o look_v on_o as_o bless_a child_n of_o your_o new_a negative_a church_n the_o sequel_n be_v undeniable_a for_o they_o may_v believe_v all_o that_o scripture_n say_v and_o this_o be_v faith_n enough_o to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o anathematise_v your_o negative_n not_o at_o all_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o whole_o unnecessary_a to_o salvation_n 11._o yet_o far_o you_o protestant_n endless_o talk_v sectary_n a_o hard_a question_n propose_v to_o sectary_n of_o reform_v we_o papist_n by_o scripture_n speak_v once_o plain_o and_o tell_v we_o how_o can_v you_o go_v about_o such_o a_o work_n as_o to_o reclaim_v we_o by_o scripture_n to_o a_o belief_n of_o your_o negative_n when_o you_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n of_o god_n word_n for_o they_o for_o if_o you_o have_v scripture_n they_o be_v superior_a truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n and_o consequent_o article_n of_o faith_n if_o you_o have_v no_o scripture_n why_o preach_v you_o fall_v doctrine_n why_o teach_v you_o that_o you_o can_v draw_v we_o from_o our_o old_a faith_n to_o your_o new_a negative_a religion_n by_o plain_a scripture_n no_o protestant_a shall_v answer_v to_o answer_v it_o can_v be_v answer_v this_o short_a demand_n 4._o you_o cheat_v the_o world_n when_o you_o offer_v to_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n which_o be_v no_o more_o resolvable_a into_o divine_a revelation_n than_o arianism_n cheat._n protestant_n resolve_v faith_n a_o mere_a cheat._n be_v because_o you_o must_v now_o confess_v that_o god_n never_o speak_v word_n of_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n in_o the_o whole_a bible_n let_v therefore_o the_o world_n judge_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o pure_a cheat_n to_o give_v a_o title_n of_o the_o protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n and_o then_o leave_v that_o which_o the_o title_n promise_v to_o talk_v of_o resolve_v a_o faith_n in_o communi_fw-la which_o stand_v in_o no_o need_n of_o your_o resolution_n 12._o to_o see_v this_o more_o evidence_v and_o to_o end_v with_o these_o mere_a nothing_o of_o sectary_n our_o now_o author_n tell_v we_o we_o that_o the_o english_a church_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n yes_o and_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o rome_n etc._n protestant_n church_n no_o more_o a_o church_n then_o a_o arian_n etc._n etc._n itself_o if_o this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v no_o more_o a_o english_a than_o a_o church_n of_o arian_n of_o pelagian_o and_o of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n for_o this_o man_n will_v say_v that_o a_o faith_n common_a to_o all_o call_v christian_n without_o believe_v more_o be_v the_o english_a faith_n and_o sufficient_a to_o acquire_v heaven_n mark_v the_o proposition_n and_o ask_v first_o what_o be_v now_o become_v of_o the_o christian_n the_o arian_n and_o english_a faith_n agree_v in_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n next_o and_o most_o just_o call_v it_o a_o mere_a fancy_n a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n for_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o council_n nor_o father_n nor_o any_o particular_a orthodox_n or_o haeretical_a church_n much_o less_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n own_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o abstract_a doctrine_n wherein_o all_o heretic_n agree_v to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n all._n a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n contrary_a to_o all._n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n never_o yet_o say_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n abstract_v from_o his_o godhead_n and_o two_o nature_n be_v sufficient_a catholic_n hold_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n as_o arian_n monothelit_n only_o no_o heretic_n much_o less_o catholic_n ever_o yet_o defend_v what_o our_o sectary_n here_o vent_v upon_o fancy_n only_o and_o other_o as_o firm_o adhere_v to_o their_o particular_a heresy_n as_o to_o the_o abstract_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n otherwise_o they_o have_v be_v worse_a than_o mad_a to_o have_v abandon_v a_o ancient_a church_n for_o a_o few_o suppose_a inferior_a truth_n which_o neither_o can_v vncatholick_n any_o if_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n be_v enough_o nor_o make_v they_o in_o reaelity_n worse_a or_o better_a christian_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n you_o see_v the_o hideous_a sin_n of_o sectary_n who_o mere_o for_o a_o company_n of_o inferior_a truth_n if_o yet_o they_o be_v truth_n have_v shameful_o deserted_n the_o true_a mother_n church_n that_o make_v their_o progenitour_n truth_n the_o sin_n of_o sectary_n who_o have_v trouble_v ●_o the_o world_n for_o a_o company_n of_o suppose_a inferior_a truth_n to_o be_v christian_n i_o say_v if_o they_o be_v truth_n for_o i_o utter_o deny_v the_o fall_v supposition_n and_o therefore_o press_v our_o adversary_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o come_v to_o proof_n and_o principle_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o these_o negative_a doctrine_n no_o sacrifice_n no_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n merit_v so_o much_o as_o the_o very_a name_n of_o inferior_a truth_n these_o negative_n can_v be_v prove_v even_o by_o their_o wont_a weak_a way_n of_o argue_v negative_o we_o read_v not_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o read_v antiquity_n but_o he_o find'_v these_o doctrine_n positive_o assert_v 13._o from_o what_o be_v now_o say_v these_o sequels_fw-fr undeniable_o follow_v first_o that_o protestant_n can_v resolve_v reason_n protestant_n faith_n but_o fancy_n the_o reason_n their_o faith_n but_o into_o fancy_n only_o for_o if_o they_o make_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n only_o to_o be_v their_o sufficient_a faith_n for_o salvation_n and_o resolve_v that_o into_o its_o principle_n both_o fancy_n and_o haeresy_n lie_v at_o the_o very_a bottom_n of_o the_o resolution_n and_o if_o they_o go_v about_o to_o resolve_v their_o negative_a article_n the_o whole_a analysis_n the_o regress_n the_o reduction_n of_o they_o will_v come_v at_o last_o to_o no_o other_o principle_n but_o to_o the_o sole_a fancy_n of_o sectary_n who_o call_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o inferior_a truth_n it_o follow_v 2._o if_o the_o english_a church_n make_v world_n the_o english_a church_n contradict_v the_o whole_a christian_n world_n no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n exclude_v other_o it_o do_v not_o only_o contradict_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n who_o particular_a community_n own_v the_o belief_n of_o more_o doctrine_n necessary_a but_o have_v neither_o all_o and_o therefore_o have_v no_o faith_n at_o all_o faith_n of_o those_o abstract_a article_n now_o believe_v nor_o any_o faith_n at_o all_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n as_o be_v large_o prove_v in_o the_o 2._o chap._n if_o final_o to_o assoil_v these_o difficulty_n sectary_n will_v restrain_v that_o ample_a term_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o their_o imagine_a catholic_n church_n in_o the_o air_n they_o be_v to_o specify_v the_o particular_a society_n of_o this_o vast_a church_n and_o when_o that_o be_v don_n they_o will_v find_v no_o abstract_a doctrine_n common_a to_o salvation_n there_o never_o have_v be_v haeresy_n in_o the_o world_n may_v faith_n common_a to_o all_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n all_o christian_n admit_v of_o by_o any_o sufficient_a to_o gain_v heaven_n for_o be_v this_o true_a there_o have_v never_o be_v heretic_n or_o schismatic_n in_o the_o world_n whilst_o christ_n only_o though_o his_o divinity_n be_v deny_v be_v own_v in_o a_o general_a way_n whereof_o more_o in_o the_o 3._o chap._n 14._o here_o i_o will_v only_o propose_v one_o question_n to_o our_o adversary_n when_o they_o positive_o teach_v that_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n give_v his_o apostle_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o priest_n now_o consecrate_v daily_o be_v and_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o sign_n a_o figure_n only_o of_o christ_n body_n my_o question_n
so_o much_o as_o probably_n show_v that_o they_o have_v mend_v the_o matter_n or_o set_v christian_a faith_n right_a again_o on_o its_o old_a foundation_n as_o it_o once_o stand_v pure_a it_o be_v therefore_o a_o most_o discomfortable_a reformation_n which_o only_o tell_v we_o we_o of_o our_o be_v out_o of_o the_o high_a road_n of_o truth_n unless_o the_o reformer_n lead_v we_o and_o this_o with_o assurance_n into_o the_o unerring_a way_n from_o whence_o we_o stray_v if_o this_o be_v not_o don_n it_o follow_v upon_o the_o supposition_n that_o both_o they_o and_o uncomfortable_a their_o pretend_a reformation_n most_o uncomfortable_a we_o be_v yet_o pitiful_o out_o and_o therefore_o both_o of_o we_o must_v look_v after_o some_o three_o guide_n to_o reduce_v we_o 16._o now_o that_o protestant_n be_v utter_o unable_a to_o persuade_v any_o rational_a man_n that_o they_o have_v exact_o bring_v christian_n faith_n to_o its_o ancient_a purity_n be_v more_o than_o evident_a right_o sectary_n have_v nothing_o like_o a_o principle_n whereby_o their_o reformation_n be_v prove_v probable_a it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v we_o have_v err_v and_o a_o other_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v right_o for_o beside_o their_o own_o bare_a word_n which_o be_v worth_a little_a they_o have_v nothing_o like_o a_o principle_n neither_o scripture_n council_n nor_o father_n to_o ground_n a_o probable_a discourse_n pertinent_a to_o that_o purpose_n for_o none_o of_o these_o ever_o know_v what_o a_o protestant_a be_v it_o be_v true_a they_o pretend_v though_o god_n know_v to_o little_a purpose_n that_o scripture_n council_n and_o father_n be_v against_o our_o error_n but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n slight_o to_o tell_v we_o we_o have_v err_v and_o a_o other_o solid_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v right_o and_o have_v broughr_fw-mi christian_a faith_n hitherto_o much_o taint_v to_o its_o ancient_a purity_n this_o last_o be_v the_o only_a difficulty_n and_o i_o conjure_v they_o as_o they_o will_v give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o religion_n to_o almighty_a god_n without_o tergiversation_n or_o farfetched_a discourse_n direct_o and_o clear_o to_o solve_n it_o the_o proposition_n to_o be_v prove_v and_o positive_o prove_v what_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v be_v thus._n protestant_n because_o they_o will_v be_v reformer_n be_v every_o way_n right_o in_o their_o faith_n from_o which_o faith_n catholic_n have_v swerve_v observe_v it_o you_o shall_v never_o have_v difficulty_n they_o can_v give_v no_o direct_a answer_n to_o the_o difficulty_n a_o direct_a answer_n to_o chis_fw-la difficulty_n they_o may_v tell_v you_o catholic_n have_v err_v they_o follow_v scripture_n their_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v what_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o first_o primitive_a age_n and_o they_o know_v that_o better_a than_o papist_n do._n they_o hope_v all_o be_v well_o with_o they_o etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o they_o i_o put_v you_o of_o with_o empty_a word_n but_o to_o prove_v solid_o that_o proposition_n be_v impossible_a believe_v it_o those_o bonzy_n of_o japan_n have_v more_o plausible_a proof_n to_o defend_v their_o pagod_n and_o impugn_v christianity_n then_o our_o adversary_n have_v to_o evidence_n protestancy_n to_o be_v the_o primitive_a faith_n and_o impugn_v the_o now-standing_a catholic_n roman_a religion_n chap._n fourteen_o a_o word_n to_o a_o few_o suppose_a and_o vnproved_a assertion_n whereby_o some_o endeavour_n to_o clear_a protestant_n of_o schism_n 1._o their_o first_o proposition_n there_o be_v no_o society_n of_o stillingfleet_n mr._n stillingfleet_n christian_n of_o any_o one_o communion_n but_o may_v impose_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o practise_v which_o may_v be_v repugnant_a to_o christianity_n the_o assertion_n be_v falso_n in_o protestant_n principle_n unless_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o their_o ample_a catholic_n church_n can_v destroy_v christianity_n the_o general_a foundation_n of_o christian_a society_n i_o answer_v if_o the_o assertion_n fall_v on_o that_o imagine_a universal_a catholic_n church_n more_o ample_a than_o the_o roman_a which_o must_v be_v a_o society_n of_o christian_n of_o one_o communion_n it_o be_v fall_v in_o protestant_a principle_n unless_o they_o say_v that_o this_o great_a catholic_n church_n can_v impose_v thing_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o repugnant_a to_o the_o general_a foundation_n of_o christianity_n again_o if_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a unproved_a fancy_n of_o their_o own_o for_o this_o church_n as_o be_v large_o show_v defend_v its_o infallibility_n by_o proof_n as_o certain_a as_o the_o common_a ground_n of_o christianity_n be_v be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v you_o have_v here_o our_o adversary_n acknowledgement_n that_o their_o particular_a church_n of_o christianity_n protestant_n may_v impose_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o christianity_n protestancy_n because_o fallible_a may_v impose_v thing_n repugnant_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o christianity_n and_o this_o i_o easy_o believe_v without_o further_a proof_n 2._o the_o 2._o proposition_n there_o be_v a_o possibillity_n acknowledge_v that_o particular_a church_n may_v require_v unreasonable_a condition_n of_o communion_n the_o obligation_n to_o communion_n can_v be_v absolute_a and_o indispensable_a but_o only_o so_o far_o as_o nothing_o be_v require_v destructive_a to_o the_o end_n of_o christian_a society_n the_o teach_v the_o author_n of_o the_o proposition_n sure_a enough_o suppose_v himself_o fit_a to_o judge_v what_o be_v destructive_a no_o protestant_a can_v avouch_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o wherein_o the_o church_n have_v impose_v unreasonable_a condition_n protestant_n profess_v themselves_o fallible_a in_o all_o they_o teach_v assertion_n if_o i_o mistake_v not_o suppose_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n to_o be_v only_o a_o particular_a church_n deficient_a and_o liable_a to_o error_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o prove_v and_o therefore_o i_o say_v the_o obligation_n to_o communicate_v with_o it_o be_v absolute_a and_o indispensable_a but_o let_v we_o wave_v this_o at_o present_a and_o contrary_a to_o truth_n imagine_v that_o this_o church_n have_v impose_v unreasonable_a condition_n destructive_a of_o christian_a communion_n etc._n etc._n we_o ask_v again_o and_o very_o serious_o who_o be_v they_o that_o can_v mend_v the_o matter_n in_o case_n it_o have_v don_n so_o or_o who_o dare_v avouch_v by_o the_o force_n of_o any_o receive_a principle_n that_o such_o and_o such_o particular_a condition_n impose_v on_o christian_n be_v unreasonable_a where_o be_v the_o equitable_a and_o infallible_a judge_n appoint_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o decide_v in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n be_v they_o protestant_n no._n it_o be_v impossible_a hear_v my_o reason_n if_o the_o church_n have_v err_v by_o impose_v such_o unreasonable_a condition_n protestant_n who_o profess_v themselves_o fallible_a in_o all_o they_o say_v may_v err_v more_o yea_o and_o spoil_v all_o whilst_o they_o go_v about_o to_o set_v thing_n straight_o however_o if_o they_o dare_v venture_n on_o so_o difficile_a a_o work_n amiss_o and_o therefore_o may_v more_o likely_a spoil_n then_o mend_v what_o they_o conceive_v amiss_o they_o be_v first_o oblige_v to_o prove_v and_o this_o not_o by_o talk_n but_o by_o undeniable_a principle_n that_o just_o so_o far_o our_o church_n err_v so_o far_o it_o require_v unreasonable_a condition_n of_o communion_n and_o next_o that_o they_o the_o illuminate_v man_n of_o the_o world_n have_v do_v no_o more_o but_o exact_o cancel_v the_o error_n of_o our_o church_n leave_v all_o untouched_a that_o be_v not_o destructive_a to_o the_o end_n of_o christian_a society_n for_o we_o must_v believe_v they_o be_v the_o skilful_a master_n that_o always_o hit_v right_o though_o confess_o fallible_a you_o shall_v soon_o draw_v pure_a gold_n out_o of_o mere_a dross_n then_o get_v any_o thing_n like_o a_o tolerable_a proof_n from_o these_o man_n to_o countenance_v one_o of_o these_o desperate_a assertion_n alas_o they_o only_a word_n it_o without_o proof_n as_o arian_n and_o nestorian_n do._n and_o here_o be_v all_o you_o have_v from_o them_o 3._o the_o 3._o proposition_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a prove_v the_o proposition_n suppose_v what_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v then_o that_o the_o society_n impose_v such_o condition_n of_o communion_n shall_v be_v judge_n whether_o those_o condition_n be_v just_a and_o equitable_a or_o no._n i_o answer_v and_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a then_o to_o make_v a_o recede_a party_n from_o a_o cause_n rebel_n be_v be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n ancient_a church_n a_o few_o rebellious_a people_n against_o it_o judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n the_o arian_n judge_v thus_o for_o themselves_o and_o so_o do_v protestant_n all_o rebellion_n in_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n be_v patronize_v if_o those_o who_o revolt_n may_v clear_a themselves_o from_o gild_n upon_o their_o own_o vote_n and_o say_v such_o condition_n impose_v schism_n
unproved_a and_o fall_v fall_v doctrine_n i_o call_v it_o confuse_v because_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o there_o can_v be_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o in_o such_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n lie_v they_o shall_v declare_v express_o and_o particular_o wherein_o that_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n consist_v but_o to_o leave_v we_o in_o darkness_n concern_v no_o man_n know_v unity_n they_o speak_v confuse_o of_o unknown_a ligament_n and_o of_o as_o unknown_a unity_n what_o ligament_n and_o pretend_a unity_n of_o a_o strange_a imagine_a catholic_n church_n without_o say_v how_o far_o these_o ligament_n reach_v or_o wherein_o precise_o this_o exact_a unity_n lie_v be_v only_o to_o turn_v we_o of_o with_o talk_n and_o teach_v just_a nothing_o if_o they_o answer_v the_o unity_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v find_v in_o the_o fundamental_o of_o faith_n we_o be_v yet_o as_o fundamental_a no_o man_n can_v imagine_v what_o they_o will_v make_v fundamental_a far_o to_o seek_v as_o before_o for_o who_o know_v what_o these_o new_a protestant_n will_v make_v fundamental_a and_o vnfundamental_a doctrine_n they_o may_v say_v one_o thing_n to_o day_n be_v fundamental_a and_o change_v it_o to_o morrow_n however_o admit_v that_o they_o declare_v themselves_o and_o tell_v we_o punctual_o so_o much_o and_o no_o more_o be_v the_o fundamental_a fancy_n and_o if_o we_o can_v it_o will_v only_o be_v their_o own_o unproved_a fancy_n and_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o will_v be_v only_o their_o own_o suppose_a and_o vnproved_a assertion_n and_o occasion_n anew_o as_o hot_a a_o dispute_n as_o any_o other_o controversy_n between_o we_o unfortunate_a be_v these_o man_n in_o every_o thing_n they_o say_v and_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o for_o want_v ground_n to_o build_v on_o and_o a_o church_n to_o regulate_v their_o faith_n whatever_o they_o vent_v against_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v as_o much_o their_o own_o suppose_a and_o vnproved_a fancy_n as_o if_o a_o arian_n dispute_v against_o we_o 4._o observe_v yet_o how_o they_o still_o run_v on_o with_o these_o unproved_a supposition_n when_o man_n say_v they_o separate_z themselves_o from_o the_o error_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n they_o do_v not_o separate_a from_o the_o whole_a etc._n etc._n bless_a be_v such_o them_o protestant_n separate_v and_o poor_o suppose_v that_o they_o run_v away_o with_o truth_n only_o and_o leave_v all_o the_o error_n behind_o them_o man_n but_o who_o be_v they_o for_o god_n sake_n protestant_n yes_o and_o i_o must_v take_v their_o word_n for_o it_o we_o have_v no_o other_o proof_n pray_v you_o tell_v i_o when_o that_o first_o protestant_a giant_n martin_n luther_n stand_v up_o and_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o society_n of_o christian_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n from_o catholic_n from_o arian_n abyssins_n grecian_n &c._n &c._n who_o assure_v he_o ●nd_n here_o we_o urge_v for_o a_o satisfactory_a principle_n or_o who_o can_v yet_o assure_v our_o protestant_n that_o both_o he_o and_o separation_n who_o assur_n they_o so_o much_o or_o that_o they_o be_v not_o more_o deep_o in_o error_n by_o their_o own_o wilful_a separation_n they_o be_v not_o more_o plunge_v into_o gross_a error_n by_o this_o wilful_a divorce_n then_o if_o they_o have_v remain_v as_o once_o they_o be_v honest_a catholic_n can_v in_o reason_n suppose_v that_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o these_o society_n that_o quit_v rome_n be_v corrupt_v in_o doctrine_n and_o without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o seem_a probability_n hold_v luther_n and_o his_o follower_n the_o only_a pure_a and_o untainted_a christian_n of_o the_o world_n these_o be_v paradox_n and_o vast_a improbability_n for_o if_o all_o these_o err_v when_o they_o leave_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n as_o evident_o they_o do_v what_o god_n or_o angel_n be_v it_o that_o direct_v protestant_n to_o hit_n right_o every_o way_n and_o to_o avoid_v all_o error_n these_o heretic_n when_o they_o separate_v be_v fallible_a man_n and_o actual_o err_v our_o protestant_n be_v as_o fallible_a and_o may_v have_v do_v worse_a these_o error_n protestant_n separation_n parallel_v with_o that_o of_o other_o heretic_n protestant_n proof_n be_v their_o own_o word_n and_o nothing_o els._n whether_o protestant_n dare_v assert_v that_o their_o reform_a protestancy_n be_v so_o right_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v make_v better_a if_o they_o affirm_v we_o urge_v for_o principle_n to_o prove_v it_o all_o that_o former_o desert_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n err_v upon_o what_o proof_n be_v protestant_n exempt_v from_o the_o like_a error_n follow_v their_o own_o self_n judgement_n in_o make_v that_o divorce_n yet_o miss_v of_o truth_n protestant_n can_v only_o say_v so_o much_o and_o therefore_o very_o likely_a may_v have_v miss_v more_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o know_v and_o by_o a_o satisfactory_a proof_n that_o this_o rare_a reformation_n which_o oppose_v all_o religion_n be_v untainted_a and_o orthodox_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o protestant_n after_o a_o infamy_n cast_v on_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n say_v so_o and_o what_o they_o say_v though_o whole_a army_n of_o christian_n more_o learned_a and_o numerous_a stand_v against_o they_o must_v be_v think_v true_a be_v not_o this_o a_o jolly_a proof_n in_o a_o word_n here_o be_v my_o dilemma_n either_o they_o must_v assert_v that_o their_o whole_a protestant_a doctrine_n now_o establish_v be_v without_o blemish_n pure_a and_o orthodox_n or_o yet_o have_v its_o error_n if_o this_o last_o it_o need_v another_o reformation_n if_o they_o make_v it_o so_o pure_a that_o it_o can_v be_v make_v better_a they_o only_o say_v without_o proof_n what_o all_o the_o condemn_a heretic_n in_o christendom_n assert_v for_o themselves_o and_o moreover_o will_v have_v christian_n believe_v the_o great_a paradox_n ever_o hear_v of_o viz._n that_o they_o only_o have_v the_o good_a luck_n to_o hit_v right_o whilst_o all_o foregoing_a sectary_n who_o abandon_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v and_o yet_o be_v taint_v with_o gross_a corruption_n the_o reason_n why_o both_o they_o and_o all_o other_o heretic_n that_o leave_v the_o mother-church_n be_v in_o error_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o impossibility_n of_o do_v the_o work_n they_o have_v go_v about_o for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n power_n to_o change_v or_o reform_v religion_n no._n only_a one_o high_a priest_n god_n and_o man_n once_o make_v a_o change_n who_o be_v holy_a innocent_a undefiled_a separate_v from_o sinner_n and_o make_v high_a than_o the_o heaven_n man_n therefore_o wicked_a as_o luther_n be_v guilty_a religion_n one_o only_o high_a priest_n have_v power_n to_o reform_v religion_n of_o high_a crime_n bear_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o sin_n and_o now_o bury_v in_o contempt_n be_v unfit_a instrument_n for_o such_o a_o work_n they_o may_v mar_v religion_n but_o to_o mend_v it_o be_v impossible_a 5._o again_o that_o distinction_n make_v above_o between_o the_o common_a ligament_n of_o a_o church_n and_o particular_a error_n in_o all_o church_n which_o yet_o do_v not_o vnchurch_n they_o be_v frivolous_a vnproved_a and_o most_o fals._n for_o first_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o common_a tie_v or_o ground_n of_o union_n among_o all_o christian_n now_o in_o be_v which_o consider_v by_o a_o abstract_a notion_n sufficient_o conslitute_v the_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n my_o reason_n be_v no_o doctrine_n common_a salvation_n doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n to_o arian_n nestorian_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n or_o universal_o hold_v by_o all_o christian_n can_v be_v more_o prove_v to_o be_v save_v faith_n enough_o for_o christian_n then_o if_o we_o gratis_o assert_v that_o a_o belief_n in_o one_o god_n only_o common_a to_o turk_n jew_n and_o christian_n be_v full_a faith_n enough_o for_o we_o all_o scripture_n as_o i_o have_v large_o prove_v in_o a_o forego_n chapter_n require_v yet_o more_o explicit_fw-la faith_n of_o many_o particular_n 2._o it_o be_v utter_o fall_v that_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n the_o true_a catholic_n church_n be_v not_o find_v among_o christian_n that_o err_v in_o faith_n church_n may_v be_v find_v among_o all_o particular_a err_v church_n the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v a_o body_n apart_o and_o as_o distinct_a from_o the_o arian_n in_o those_o day_n as_o we_o be_v now_o from_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o no_o doctrine_n common_a to_o that_o church_n and_o arian_n be_v ever_o think_v sufficient_a catholic_n doctrine_n otherwise_o arius_n may_v have_v tell_v the_o nicene_n faith_n otherwise_o arius_n will_v not_o have_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n father_n yes_o and_o these_o shall_v have_v assent_v to_o he_o you_o unjust_o condemn_v i_o for_o admit_v that_o i_o have_v my_o particular_a error_n you_o
ground_n and_o i_o will_v see_v it_o answer_v 4._o some_o perhaps_o will_v say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o sectary_n rely_v on_o god_n word_n and_o that_o alone_o be_v a_o sure_a and_o infallible_a principle_n i_o answer_v if_o we_o speak_v of_o sectary_n particular_a doctrine_n as_o reform_v they_o have_v not_o one_o article_n clear_o no_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o ground_v on_o god_n express_a word_n for_o scripture_n say_v no_o where_o that_o faith_n only_o justify_v that_o all_o church_n be_v fallible_a that_o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n no_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la these_o doctrine_n want_v certain_a principle_n now_o if_o they_o reply_v though_o these_o particular_a doctrine_n be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o the_o general_a truth_n of_o christianity_n be_v and_o they_o rely_v on_o these_o not_o care_v for_o more_o i_o answer_v though_o these_o verity_n as_o reveal_v be_v infallible_a in_o themselves_o yea_o and_o infallible_a also_o to_o the_o catholic_n that_o admit_n of_o they_o as_o infallible_a for_o the_o certain_a testimony_n of_o his_o church_n yet_o no_o man_n no_o church_n no_o oracle_n of_o truth_n ever_o hitherto_o assure_v the_o protestant_n infallible_o that_o they_o be_v infallible_a for_o all_o these_o with_o he_o be_v fallible_a therefore_o they_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o be_v certain_a principle_n in_o order_n to_o his_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n also_o unless_o he_o say_v that_o the_o objective_a infallibility_n of_o scripture_n be_v evident_a ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la to_o the_o very_a eye_n that_o read_v the_o book_n which_o be_v prove_v improbable_a disc_n 1._o c._n 12._o n._n 4._o whereof_o more_o present_o i_o answer_v 2._o if_o the_o objective_a infallibility_n of_o these_o great_a verity_n be_v a_o certain_a principle_n to_o the_o protestant_n it_o either_o derive_v into_o his_o understanding_n that_o teach_v they_o a_o subjective_a infallbility_n in_o order_n to_o his_o doctrine_n or_o leave_v he_o as_o he_o be_v before_o liable_a to_o mistake_v and_o error_n if_o the_o first_o be_v grant_v he_o be_v subjective_o infallible_a when_o he_o teach_v and_o this_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v of_o grant_v the_o second_o viz._n that_o he_o be_v liable_a to_o mistake_v and_o error_n in_o his_o teach_n he_o may_v well_o miss_v of_o the_o objective_a truth_n because_o he_o only_o say_v fallible_o what_o god_n speak_v infallible_o and_o consequent_o his_o doctrine_n ultimate_o resolve_v say_v no_o more_o but_o timid_o thus_o much_o perhaps_o i_o declare_v what_o god_n speak_v and_o it_o may_v be_v not_o for_o my_o declaration_n be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v fall_v therefore_o you_o christian_n who_o hear_v i_o can_v believe_v nothing_o infallible_o because_o my_o very_a teach_v be_v doubtful_a and_o it_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o doubt_n to_o convey_v certainty_n into_o any_o understanding_n see_v disc_n 1._o c._n 4._o n._n 7._o 8._o now_o if_o you_o ask_v why_o it_o be_v doubtful_a though_o he_o speak_v truth_n as_o it_o be_v by_o chance_n i_o answer_v the_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o have_v no_o principle_n which_o determinate_v his_o teach_n to_o say_v that_o infallible_o which_o god_n speak_v infallible_o the_o external_n principle_n of_o scripture_n make_v he_o no_o more_o infallible_a than_o the_o worst_a of_o heretic_n who_o read_v it_o and_o all_o other_o principle_n he_o work_v by_o be_v liable_a to_o error_n and_o here_o brief_o you_o see_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o act_n and_o its_o certitude_n the_o first_o only_o say_v in_o contingent_a matter_n a_o conformity_n with_o the_o object_n the_o other_o a_o necessary_a determination_n to_o truth_n by_o principle_n not_o liable_a to_o error_n and_o sectary_n always_o want_v these_o principle_n whilst_o they_o teach_v a_o doctrine_n fallible_o if_o here_o they_o take_v recourse_n to_o moral_a certainty_n only_o and_o think_v that_o sufficient_a turn_v to_o the_o five_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o discourse_n and_o you_o will_v see_v they_o evident_o confute_v it_o be_v lose_v labour_n to_o repeat_v again_o what_o be_v say_v in_o that_o place_n 5._o these_o ground_n suppose_v you_o shall_v see_v how_o mr._n pool_n exception_n against_o they_o come_v to_o nothing_o let_v we_o say_v he_o p._n 9_o n._n 2._o examine_v a_o little_a the_o strength_n of_o this_o pretty_a proposition_n viz._n that_o if_o we_o be_v not_o infallible_o assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n jew_n turk_n and_o pagan_n be_v as_o well_o persuade_v of_o their_o way_n as_o we_o christian_n of_o we_o what_o a_o mad_a assertion_n say_v he_o be_v this_o that_o nothing_o be_v credible_a but_o what_o be_v infallible_o certain_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o probability_n and_o improbability_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o i_o answer_v in_o a_o word_n you_o shall_v have_v the_o reason_n hereafter_o nothing_o in_o true_a christianity_n be_v credible_a but_o what_o both_o may_v and_o must_v be_v believe_v by_o most_o certain_a faith_n in_o other_o moral_a matter_n thing_n be_v moral_o credible_a though_o we_o arrive_v not_o to_o certainty_n but_o faith_n have_v its_o exception_n mr._n poole_n go_v on_o i_o be_o not_o infallible_o certain_a that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o place_n as_o jamaica_n for_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o all_o geographer_n may_v mistake_v and_o traveller_n may_v lie_v therefore_o i_o be_o as_o uncertain_a that_o there_o be_v a_o sea_n passage_n to_o china_n by_o the_o north_n etc._n etc._n i_o be_o not_o certain_a if_o i_o find_v a_o calf_n in_o a_o field_n but_o that_o it_o may_v as_o some_o time_n it_o be_v drop_v from_o the_o cloud_n but_o will_v any_o sober_a man_n think_v that_o it_o come_v not_o from_o a_o cow_n he_o have_v other_o instance_n to_o this_o purpose_n and_o the_o man_n if_o i_o mistake_v not_o will_v here_o liken_v the_o cettainty_n of_o that_o truth_n we_o have_v of_o christianity_n to_o the_o certainty_n we_o have_v of_o jamaica_n and_o a_o calf_n come_v from_o a_o cow_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o judaisme_n he_o will_v have_v so_o improbable_a as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v the_o calf_n be_v drop_v from_o the_o cloud_n in_o a_o word_n if_o he_o dispute_v with_o a_o jew_n he_o will_v hear_v that_o his_o whole_a discourse_n be_v petitio_fw-la principij_fw-la and_o that_o his_o instance_n of_o jamaica_n and_o a_o calf_n be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n because_o he_o suppose_v what_o shall_v be_v prove_v viz._n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o jew_n be_v so_o improbable_a to_o that_o sect_n as_o this_o antagonist_n make_v it_o and_o that_o the_o teach_v doctrine_n of_o sectary_n be_v so_o high_o probable_a in_o order_n to_o they_o as_o be_v here_o suppose_a alas_o the_o jew_n will_v utter_o silence_v mr._n poole_n with_o this_o convince_a reason_n what_o ever_o become_v of_o my_o doctrine_n i_o tell_v you_o your_o protestant_a teach_v doctrine_n which_o may_v be_v fall_v be_v no_o better_a than_o i_o because_o it_o be_v not_o ultimate_o resolvable_a into_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n which_o can_v be_v false_o that_o it_o can_v be_v thus_o resolve_v be_v evident_a because_o a_o doctrine_n that_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v fall_v though_o true_a in_o itself_o as_o fallible_a and_o liable_a to_o falsity_n can_v be_v as_o it_o be_v cast_v or_o lay_v on_o god_n infallible_a veracity_n that_o essential_o disown_n and_o reject_v all_o doctrine_n that_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v fall_v therefore_o as_o fallible_a ultimate_o resolve_v it_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o its_o one_o home_n which_o be_v not_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n but_o to_o mere_a fancy_n or_o some_o other_o uncertainty_n for_o example_n put_v the_o case_n that_o a_o english_a synod_n true_o define_v christ_n jesus_n be_v god_n and_o man_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o definition_n by_o virtue_n of_o all_o the_o principle_n it_o have_v or_o its_o own_o intrinsic_a merit_n be_v fallible_o deliver_v one_o reflect_v on_o this_o definition_n and_o consider_n the_o truth_n of_o it_o which_o be_v a_o conformity_n with_o its_o object_n as_o also_o the_o weakness_n of_o it_o which_o be_v fallibility_n for_o want_n of_o principle_n that_o determine_v it_o to_o truth_n i_o ask_v now_o why_o do_v sectary_n believe_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o man_n by_o this_o fallible_a definition_n it_o be_v one_o of_o your_o act_n of_o faith_n be_v it_o not_o you_o must_v answer_v you_o believe_v so_o because_o god_n have_v say_v it_o in_o scripture_n very_o good_a but_o i_o ask_v again_o have_v he_o say_v this_o fallible_o by_o a_o revelation_n that_o be_v capable_a of_o falsity_n no_o must_n evident_o his_o revelation_n be_v infinite_o certain_a ergo_fw-la i_o say_v your_o definition_n or_o act_n of_o faith_n quâ_fw-la fallibilis_fw-la or_o as_o mere_o fallible_a can_v
the_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n the_o book_n be_v almost_o innumerable_a occasion_v by_o a_o unhappy_a heresy_n that_o in_o the_o last_o age_n infect_v germany_n and_o after_o like_o a_o leprosy_n overspread_v the_o great_a part_n of_o our_o northern_a country_n too_o many_o be_v write_v by_o those_o who_o stile_n themselves_o protestant_n or_o of_o the_o reform_a religion_n not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o subdivision_n as_o arminian_o brownist_n anabaptist_n or_o of_o their_o follower_n which_o crumble_v into_o as_o many_o sect_n as_o man_n of_o these_o we_o have_v writer_n who_o with_o no_o little_a animosity_n inveigh_v bitter_o one_o against_o a_o other_o yet_o because_o self-interest_n will_v have_v it_o so_o all_o of_o they_o close_o join_v in_o a_o foul_a dishonourable_a league_n against_o a_o ancient_a mother_n church_n that_o make_v they_o and_o their_o progenitor_n christian_n this_o have_v stir_v up_o the_o pen_n of_o many_o a_o learned_a man_n not_o so_o much_o to_o confute_v their_o weak_a discourse_n as_o positive_o to_o assert_v truth_n which_o can_v be_v shake_v and_o to_o vndeceive_v a_o poor_a sort_n of_o seduce_a people_n who_o easy_o gain_v by_o sleek_a word_n and_o the_o specious_a pretence_n of_o some_o who_o have_v tell_v untruth_n so_o long_o that_o at_o last_o they_o almost_o believe_v it_o themselves_o insensible_o fall_v into_o error_n to_o vnbeguile_v these_o delude_a soul_n more_o i_o have_v here_o cast_v my_o mite_n also_o into_o the_o treasury_n of_o these_o learned_a labour_n and_o write_v this_o treatise_n wherein_o i_o both_o lay_v forth_o the_o evidence_n of_o our_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n upon_o undoubted_a ground_n and_o make_v it_o likewise_o manifest_a that_o protestancy_n as_o reform_v which_o be_v only_o a_o fallible_a teach_v doctrine_n can_v be_v resolve_v into_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n and_o thersore_n be_v no_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n but_o a_o mere_a opinion_n only_o uphold_v by_o fancy_n i_o undertake_v the_o small_a work_n you_o here_o see_v upon_o this_o occasion_n about_o a_o year_n since_o so_o much_o it_o be_v when_o i_o write_v this_o preface_n a_o friend_n send_v i_o a_o book_n with_o a_o surly_a imperious_a title_n the_o nullity_n of_o the_o romish_a faith_n or_o a_o blow_n at_o the_o root_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n by_o mr._n matthew_n poole_n print_v anno_o 1666._o and_o only_o desire_v i_o to_o make_v a_o few_o observation_n upon_o a_o appendix_n by_o the_o same_o author_n against_o a_o convert_v gentleman_n curiosity_n lead_v i_o on_o to_o read_v the_o whole_a book_n where_o find_v little_a worth_n the_o answer_v i_o lay_v it_o aside_o for_o two_o or_o three_o month_n till_o i_o be_v urge_v again_o to_o return_v some_o short_a answer_n to_o the_o appendix_n but_o while_o this_o business_n give_v i_o a_o little_a entertainment_n we_o here_o though_o at_o distance_n hear_v a_o noise_n of_o a_o rational_a account_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o protestant_a religion_n etc._n etc._n by_o mr._n edward_n stillingfleet_n the_o book_n i_o see_v but_o late_o yet_o some_o parcel_n of_o his_o doctrine_n find_v the_o way_n to_o i_o by_o several_a report_n and_o letter_n also_o werupon_o i_o lay_v mr._n pool_n appendix_n aside_o and_o be_v long_o in_o this_o treatise_n than_o i_o intend_v or_o be_v indeed_o necessary_a to_o answer_v the_o appendix_n which_o yet_o may_v have_v a_o answer_v timely_a enough_o by_o the_o way_n as_o far_o as_o sure_a principle_n can_v guide_v one_o and_o a_o few_o glance_n at_o mr._n pool_n doctrine_n will_v reach_v to_o i_o refute_v some_o weak_a ground_n be_v of_o his_o nullity_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o it_o deserve_v that_o of_o mr._n stillingfleet_n merit_n be_v more_o i_o mean_v a_o large_a refutation_n though_o to_o speak_v truth_n it_o be_v too_o tedious_o long_a and_o both_o say_v very_o much_o and_o very_o little_a much_o in_o generality_n and_o cavil_v at_o our_o catholic_n faith_n but_o little_a in_o give_v any_o account_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v now_o reform_v which_o yet_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n i_o seek_v for_o but_o find_v not_o in_o his_o writing_n as_o i_o have_v often_o note_v in_o this_o treatise_n have_v i_o have_v his_o book_n soon_o or_o more_o time_n i_o will_v have_v refute_v some_o more_o chief_a point_n in_o it_o but_o i_o hope_v those_o have_v it_o in_o hand_n that_o will_v bring_v the_o author_n to_o a_o better_a account_n for_o he_o who_o first_o tell_v s_o amiss_o must_v count_v twice_o before_o he_o make_v a_o right_a reckon_n i_o wave_v all_o along_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v a_o unnecessary_a repetition_n of_o know_a authority_n draw_v from_o scripture_n and_o father_n for_o that_o be_v actum_fw-la agere_fw-la and_o endeavour_v to_o ground_v my_o discourse_n upon_o undoubted_a principle_n and_o my_o chief_a aim_n be_v as_o i_o now_o insinuate_v to_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o protestancy_n build_v upon_o fancy_n stand_v totter_v without_o the_o support_n os_fw-la any_o acknowledged_a principle_n and_o consequent_o fall_v of_o itself_o to_o speak_v more_o plain_o when_o sectary_n go_v about_o either_o to_o impugn_v the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n or_o to_o establish_v their_o own_o they_o give_v you_o nothing_o that_o look_n like_o a_o sure_a own_a principle_n but_o quite_o contrary_a tire_v you_o out_o with_o long_a loose_a discourse_n which_o drive_v on_o to_o the_o very_a last_o at_o most_o come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o guess_n only_o weak_a conjecture_n and_o the_o unproved_a thought_n of_o those_o who_o make_v they_o in_o a_o word_n they_o never_o fall_v on_o principle_n nor_o can_v make_v their_o own_o doctrine_n good_a upon_o any_o better_a argument_n then_o by_o only_a say_n it_o be_v true_a or_o cavil_v at_o we_o as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o way_n for_o a_o man_n to_o prove_v himself_o honest_a by_o say_v his_o neighbour_n be_v not_o so_o or_o enough_o to_o establish_v their_o house_n build_v upon_o sand_n to_o assert_v that_o we_o once_o certain_o settle_v on_o a_o rock_n be_v not_o the_o ancient_a building_n it_o be_v but_o have_v be_v repair_v and_o otherwise_o adorn_v if_o all_o this_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v most_o false_o what_o be_v their_o house_n the_o better_a that_o be_v still_o upon_o sand_n or_o their_o religion_n sound_a that_o stand_v vnprincipled_a without_o scripture_n church_n or_o reason_n i_o only_o say_v thus_o much_o in_o a_o preface_n and_o prove_v it_o afterward_o in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n which_o i_o be_v advise_v to_o write_v in_o latin_a have_v now_o more_o use_n of_o that_o i_o may_v thank_v my_o long_a absence_n from_o england_n for_o it_o then_o be_v allow_v i_o of_o our_o mother_n tongue_n but_o sapientibus_fw-la &_o insipientibus_fw-la debtor_n sum_fw-la i_o desire_v to_o satisfy_v all_o and_o owe_v as_o much_o to_o the_o illiterate_a of_o my_o dear_a country_n as_o to_o the_o learned_a and_o therefore_o shall_v expose_v this_o treatise_n in_o plain_a english_a for_o i_o can_v speak_v no_o better_a and_o hope_v upon_o that_o account_n to_o find_v the_o reader_n easy_a pardon_n if_o i_o often_o speak_v improper_o or_o now_o and_o then_o break_v priscian_n head_n in_o english_a sometime_o as_o the_o matter_n require_v i_o be_o force_v to_o make_v use_n of_o word_n that_o may_v seem_v harsh_a as_o toy_n fancy_n trifle_n not_o worth_a the_o answer_a etc._n etc._n but_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o i_o to_o use_v other_o language_n if_o i_o will_v call_v thing_n by_o their_o right_a name_n and_o give_v the_o world_n to_o understand_v what_o they_o be_v smooth_a term_n will_v look_v like_o mockery_n whilst_o sectary_n use_v harsh_a rather_o than_o civility_n believe_v what_o you_o will_n i_o profess_v serious_o all_o i_o say_v be_v without_o passion_n or_o design_n to_o reflect_v personal_o upon_o our_o adversary_n who_o i_o pity_v and_o pray_v for_o have_v no_o intention_n to_o reproach_v they_o but_o to_o reprove_v heresy_n to_o rail_v at_o any_o but_o to_o convince_v by_o reason_n but_o i_o keep_v you_o too_o long_o at_o the_o door_n open_a and_o read_v without_o prejudice_n and_o if_o you_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o what_o i_o write_v of_o charity_n give_v i_o timely_a notice_n for_o my_o day_n be_v almost_o don._n in_o the_o other_o world_n i_o can_v make_v no_o answer_n but_o to_o almighty_a god_n for_o the_o sincerity_n of_o my_o undertake_n whereby_o if_o any_o one_o soul_n reap_v benefit_n i_o have_v enough_o if_o none_o do_v so_o my_o comfort_n be_v that_o he_o who_o know_v my_o good_a intention_n will_v be_v my_o ample_a recompense_n though_o infinite_o above_o my_o desert_n farewell_o a_o necessary_a advertisement_n for_o the_o reader_n 1._o may_v it_o plea_n any_o one_o to_o read_v this_o treatise_n and_o either_o seek_v to_o profit_v by_o it_o
nothing_o probable_a for_o a_o objection_n as_o soon_o solve_v as_o see_v be_v far_o off_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sound_a principle_n we_o say_v therefore_o if_o to_o pray_v for_o one_o a_o other_o here_o on_o earth_n lessen_v not_o christ_n honour_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o lessen_v it_o by_o our_o recours_fw-fr have_v to_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n now_o in_o a_o most_o glorious_a and_o happy_a condition_n and_o thus_o no_o less_o a_o doctor_n then_o s._n hierom_n adversus_fw-la vigilantium_fw-la paris_n print_n 1609._o pag._n 590._o solve_v the_o difficulty_n at_o those_o word_n dicis_fw-la in_o libello_fw-la tuo_fw-la etc._n etc._n thou_o vigilantius_n say_v in_o thy_o book_n that_o whilst_o we_o live_v we_o may_v pray_v for_o one_o another_o but_o after_o death_n no_o prayer_n be_v hear_v for_o any_o here_o be_v the_o objection_n mark_v s._n hieroms_n answer_n si_fw-mi apostoli_fw-la &_o martyr_n adhuc_fw-la in_o corpore_fw-la constituti_fw-la possunt_fw-la orare_fw-la pro_fw-la caeteris_fw-la quando_fw-la pro_fw-la se_fw-la debent_fw-la esse_fw-la soliciti_fw-la quanto_fw-la magis_fw-la post_fw-la corona_n victorias_fw-la &_o triumphos_fw-la if_o the_o apostle_n and_o martyr_n yet_o live_v in_o a_o mortal_a body_n can_v pray_v for_o other_o when_o they_o be_v solicitous_a for_o themselves_o much_o more_o can_v they_o do_v that_o charity_n after_o their_o crown_n victory_n and_o triumph_n he_o go_v on_o vnus_fw-la homo_fw-la moses_n etc._n etc._n that_o one_o moses_n obtain_v pardon_n for_o thousand_o exod._n 32._o and_o the_o first_o martyr_n s._n stephen_n live_v pray_v for_o his_o persecutor_n act._n 7._o et_fw-la postquam_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la esse_fw-la coeperint_fw-la minus_fw-la valebunt_fw-la and_o what_o shall_v they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v less_o now_o when_o they_o be_v glorious_a with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n meliorque_fw-la erit_fw-la vigilantius_fw-la cams_fw-la vivens_fw-la quam_fw-la ille_fw-la lo_o mortuus_fw-la and_o can_v thou_o vigilantius_n a_o live_a dog_n be_v better_o than_o that_o dead_a lion_n he_o allude_v to_o s._n paul_n that_o pray_v for_o other_o whilst_o he_o live_v tu_fw-la vigilans_fw-la dormis_fw-la &_o dormiens_fw-la scribis_fw-la i_o tell_v thou_o vigilantius_n wake_v thou_o sleep_v and_o sleep_v writ_n these_o thing_n against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n thus_o s._n hierom._n and_o not_o only_a s._n austin_n lib._n 22._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la c._n 8._o to_o omit_v innumerable_a other_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n but_o that_o worthy_a bishop_n also_o s._n greg_n nyssen_n in_o his_o oration_n of_o s._n theodore_n martyr_n paris_n print_n 1615._o page_n 1011._o and_o 1017._o confirm_v the_o practice_n of_o it_o pray_v for_o we_o say_v s._n gregory_n address_v himself_o by_o a_o earnest_a petition_n to_o s._n theodore_n when_o the_o scythian_n threaten_v a_o war_n to_o the_o country_n make_v intercession_n to_o he_o who_o be_v our_o common_a king_n and_o lord_n as_o you_o be_v a_o soldier_n fight_v for_o we_o and_o defend_v we_o and_o as_o a_o martyr_n speak_v free_o for_o your_o fellow_n servant_n here_o a_o few_o line_n after_o and_o if_o more_o prayer_n be_v needful_a assemble_v together_o the_o whole_a choir_n of_o your_o brethren_n martyr_n and_o joint_o intercede_v for_o we_o put_v s._n peter_n in_o mind_n move_v s._n paul_n and_o the_o belove_a disciple_n of_o our_o lord_n s._n john_n that_o they_o be_v solicitous_a for_o the_o church_n where_o once_o they_o wear_v chain_n pass_v danger_n and_o final_o dye_v say_v now_o what_o lessen_v be_v here_o of_o christ_n honour_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o this_o ancient_a saint_n and_o most_o learned_a prelate_n or_o what_o answer_n can_v be_v return_v to_o these_o three_o authority_n the_o other_o difficulty_n be_v as_o forceles_a for_o if_o scctary_n can_v explicate_v how_o the_o bless_a soul_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o heaven_n hear_v our_o prayer_n which_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o deny_v i_o speak_v of_o his_o sanctify_a create_a soul_n all_o difficulty_n cease_v in_o the_o present_a controversy_n how_o they_o hear_v be_v opinion_n se_fw-la bell._n cap._n 20._o n._n argumentum_fw-la tertium_fw-la but_o that_o they_o hear_v be_v certain_a doctrine_n 7._o now_o if_o sectary_n tell_v we_o they_o can_v so_o explicate_v these_o father_n as_o to_o make_v their_o word_n insignificant_a to_o our_o purpose_n i_o will_v first_o learn_v what_o can_v be_v say_v to_o s._n hierom_n s._n austin_n and_o s._n gregory_n now_o cite_v but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o for_o i_o be_o to_o assure_v they_o further_o that_o their_o explication_n when_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n as_o also_o to_o the_o obvious_a sense_n of_o either_o scripture_n or_o father_n quote_v by_o we_o be_v so_o far_o off_o from_o be_v principle_n that_o they_o merit_v not_o the_o name_n of_o mean_a probability_n which_o truth_n be_v more_o ample_o declare_v discourse_n 4._o c._n 4._o n._n 8._o 9_o where_o i_o prove_v that_o no_o interpretation_n of_o sectary_n can_v be_v allow_v of_o unless_o it_o rely_v on_o a_o extrinsic_a ground_n much_o sure_a than_o his_o gloss_n be_v that_o interpret_n which_o therefore_o must_v be_v plain_a scripture_n the_o undoubted_a consent_n of_o father_n universal_a tradition_n or_o such_o like_a convince_a principle_n hence_o i_o say_v when_o the_o catholic_n interpret_v a_o dubious_a or_o difficil_n passage_n he_o never_o make_v his_o gloss_n to_o be_v the_o ultimate_a proof_n of_o his_o doctrine_n but_o suppose_v that_o prove_v by_o strong_a principle_n distinct_a from_o his_o interpretation_n all_o be_v contrary_a with_o the_o sectary_n who_o make_v his_o gloss_n to_o do_v all_o to_o be_v the_o last_o and_o sure_a ground_n of_o his_o opinion_n without_o the_o support_n of_o any_o better_a proof_n than_o his_o own_o word_n be_v and_o thus_o much_o be_v evident_a in_o other_o controversy_n now_o debate_v between_o we_o as_o you_o will_v see_v hereafter_o 8._o from_o this_o want_n of_o clear_a principle_n all_o the_o too_o manifest_a and_o most_o discernible_a faint_a proceed_n of_o our_o adversary_n in_o matter_n now_o controvert_v show_v itself_o so_o open_o that_o one_o with_o half_a a_o eye_n may_v discover_v it_o it_o be_v from_o want_n of_o principle_n that_o they_o now_o begin_v to_o be_v weary_a of_o protestancy_n and_o hold_v that_o a_o faith_n common_a to_o all_o sectary_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n if_o this_o may_v pass_v they_o need_v not_o hereafter_o to_o stand_v more_o for_o protestancy_n than_o arianism_n or_o for_o any_o other_o condemn_a heresy_n for_o the_o same_o principle_n be_v there_o any_o will_v make_v both_o sect_n equal_o credible_a hence_o it_o also_o be_v that_o you_o have_v they_o ever_o cavil_v at_o our_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v the_o easy_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o find_v fault_n yea_o and_o to_o cavil_v at_o the_o verity_n of_o holy_a scripture_n itself_o you_o see_v arian_n do_v so_o but_o still_o you_o find_v they_o want_v in_o that_o which_o concern_v they_o most_o which_o be_v to_o bring_v their_o novelty_n to_o the_o ground_n of_o either_o scripture_n or_o any_o ancient_a church_n doctrine_n herein_o they_o be_v as_o mute_a as_o fish_n and_o say_v not_o a_o word_n it_o be_v from_o want_n of_o principle_n that_o when_o they_o explicate_v a_o council_n or_o father_n allege_v against_o they_o they_o be_v tedious_o long_a about_o little_a that_o be_v in_o relate_v the_o circumstance_n to_o be_v as_o they_o will_v have_v they_o but_o whether_o they_o hit_v right_o be_v ever_o a_o matter_n of_o dispute_n and_o nothing_o like_o a_o receive_a principle_n from_o hence_o it_o also_o be_v that_o when_o they_o make_v such_o and_o such_o doctrine_n to_o be_v in●o●ations_n pray_v to_o saint_n purgatory_n or_o what_o else_o you_o will_v the_o very_a last_o ground_n they_o standon_v come_v to_o nothing_o but_o negative_a argument_n weak_a conjecture_n blind_a guess_n fancy_n and_o mere_a uncertainty_n it_o be_v from_o the_o want_n of_o principle_n that_o when_o we_o produce_v undeniable_a history_n for_o innumerable_a miracle_n wrought_v in_o our_o church_n a_o odd_a answer_n be_v at_o hand_n they_o can_v believe_v they_o as_o if_o forsooth_o their_o parole_n or_o mere_a unbelief_n have_v force_n enough_o to_o make_v null_a all_o that_o be_v write_v of_o this_o subject_n by_o most_o approve_a author_n from_o want_n of_o principle_n it_o be_v that_o they_o ever_o place_v against_o our_o clear_a authority_n no_o more_o but_o mere_a uncertain_a testimony_n and_o pick_v out_o of_o our_o writer_n all_o they_o can_v pilfer_v for_o their_o advantage_n whereas_o if_o they_o have_v a_o good_a cause_n in_o hand_n and_o sound_a principle_n to_o rely_v on_o they_o shall_v beat_v down_o the_o doctrine_n of_o long_a stand_a church_n 〈◊〉_d by_o undeniable_a proof_n take_v from_o scripture_n council_n and_o consent_n of_o father_n whereof_o more_o present_o from_o hence_o it_o also_o
be_v that_o when_o a_o doctrine_n please_v they_o tradition_n be_v approve_v of_o but_o if_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o their_o fancy_n than_o tradition_n be_v of_o no_o account_n or_o value_n for_o example_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v as_o well_o a_o universal_a tradition_n of_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n as_o to_o hold_v that_o canon_n of_o the_o sectary_n bible_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o the_o one_o be_v admit_v of_o and_o the_o other_o set_v light_n by_o and_o upon_o what_o principle_n distinct_a from_o unproved_a conjecture_n do_v they_o take_v and_o leave_v as_o they_o listen_v final_o it_o be_v for_o want_v of_o principle_n that_o in_o lieu_n of_o solid_a argument_n in_o every_o controversy_n now_o handle_v you_o have_v word_n in_o stead_n of_o substance_n margin_n paint_v with_o greek_a and_o latin_a now_o a_o story_n tell_v of_o a_o pope_n or_o prelate_n now_o a_o jeer_n now_o a_o jest_n in_o handsome_a language_n etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o they_o hold_v on_o in_o their_o merriment_n thoughtless_a as_o it_o seem_v of_o a_o account_v day_n to_o come_v before_o a_o sever_n judge_n and_o a_o long_a eternity_n that_o follow_v and_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v these_o light_a skirmish_n and_o petty_a doing_n in_o a_o serious_a matter_n whereon_o salvation_n depend_v whilst_o god_n be_v dishonour_v soul_n be_v beguile_v christ_n sacred_a truth_n also_o infinite_o suffer_v by_o they_o who_o will_v yet_o be_v name_v christian_n 9_o i_o call_v they_o here_o petty_a do_n for_o when_o on_o the_o one_o side_n i_o set_v before_o my_o eye_n our_o roman_a catholic_n church_n once_o found_v by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o must_v hold_v it_o most_o ancient_a and_o confess_o true_a when_o again_o i_o find_v it_o of_o a_o vast_a extent_n diffuse_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o and_o as_o much_o renown_a as_o large_o extend_v when_o i_o see_v it_o glorious_a evidence_v by_o miracle_n powerful_a in_o the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n eminent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o most_o profound_a learning_n when_o i_o consider_v how_o it_o have_v stand_v invincible_a in_o the_o heat_n of_o all_o persecution_n and_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o heresy_n vainquish_v by_o it_o age_n after_o age_n to_o say_v no_o more_o now_o of_o other_o signal_n mark_v wherewith_o it_o be_v make_v illustrious_a and_o visible_a to_o all_o when_o i_o say_v i_o consider_v these_o truth_n methinks_v evident_a reason_n tell_v i_o that_o a_o few_o slight_a cavil_n can_v much_o annoy_v or_o hurt_v it_o no._n either_o clear_a demonstration_n or_o be_v it_o possible_a more_o than_o demonstration_n ought_v to_o enter_v here_o and_o shake_v this_o our_o strong_a fortress_n or_o if_o they_o do_v not_o common_a prudence_n oblige_v i_o to_o own_o this_o for_o christ_n true_a spouse_n or_o to_o grant_v which_o be_v hideous_o against_o the_o ground_n of_o christianity_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o orthodox_n church_n in_o the_o world_n 10._o now_o on_o the_o other_o side_n when_o i_o cast_v my_o thought_n on_o a_o few_o late_o rise_v company_n of_o divide_a sectary_n utter_o destitute_a of_o all_o prudent_a motive_n without_o antiquity_n miracle_n conversion_n or_o other_o evidence_n of_o credibility_n when_o again_o i_o serious_o ponder_v how_o slight_o they_o go_v to_o work_v against_o we_o how_o weak_o they_o attempt_v with_o mere_a trifle_n remote_a from_o proof_n and_o principle_n to_o vnroot_v as_o it_o be_v this_o strong_a building_n of_o our_o catholic_n society_n i_o stand_v astonish_v and_o must_v needs_o say_v they_o seem_v to_o be_v man_n not_o too_o thoughtful_a of_o eternity_n and_o never_o can_v wonder_v enough_o at_o their_o boldness_n whilst_o they_o dare_v as_o they_o do_v to_o take_v pen_n in_o hand_n and_o presume_v to_o write_v against_o a_o ancient_a church_n that_o make_v the_o world_n and_o their_o own_o progenitor_n christian_n but_o what_o be_v hitherto_o brief_o hint_v at_o will_v be_v more_o large_o lay_v forth_o in_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n 11._o now_o it_o be_v high_a time_n to_o end_v a_o advertisement_n and_o to_o tell_v our_o adversary_n my_o absolute_a resolution_n it_o be_v thus_o let_v who_o will_v pretend_v to_o answer_v this_o treatis_fw-la either_o in_o part_n or_o whole_a nothing_o shall_v draw_v i_o to_o reply_n unless_o he_o that_o answer_v come_v more_o close_o to_o principle_n than_o i_o ever_o yet_o see_v in_o protestant_a writer_n it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o trifle_v our_o precious_a time_n away_o in_o cavil_n i_o will_v hearty_o thank_v any_o that_o may_v plea_n to_o answer_n upon_o ground_a principle_n but_o if_o he_o fail_v herein_o his_o labour_n will_v be_v lose_v and_o my_o hereafter_o spare_v all_o i_o shall_v do_v if_o i_o do_v so_o much_o will_v be_v to_o tell_v he_o be_v he_o miss_v in_o the_o main_a point_n which_o be_v to_o come_v close_o to_o principle_n the_o introduction_n before_o we_o enter_v upon_o the_o follow_a discourse_n i_o must_v need_n be_v have_v a_o word_n with_o mr._n poole_n who_o nullity_n and_o appendix_n but_o chief_o the_o request_n of_o a_o friend_n induce_v i_o to_o write_v this_o treatise_n it_o be_v very_o true_a after_o one_o serious_a perusal_n of_o this_o nullity_n i_o have_v enough_o of_o it_o and_o therefore_o judge_v it_o unnecessary_a and_o indeed_o not_o worth_a the_o pain_n to_o answer_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o to_o follow_v the_o author_n through_o his_o maze_n and_o long_o wander_a parergon_n i_o return_v he_o undoubted_a ground_n of_o true_a religion_n they_o be_v undeniable_a which_o at_o least_o destroy_v his_o best_a principle_n and_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o this_o be_v full_o as_o much_o as_o a_o nullity_n deserve_v however_o if_o he_o desire_v more_o he_o may_v probable_o have_v it_o in_o another_o treatise_n now_o if_o you_o ask_v why_o i_o take_v this_o way_n of_o answer_v if_o yet_o you_o will_v call_v it_o a_o answer_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o my_o aim_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o meddle_v with_o this_o nullity_n as_o to_o speak_v for_o the_o catholic_a cause_n and_o prove_v something_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v answer_v again_o it_o be_v more_o than_o tedious_a ever_o to_o be_v encounter_v a_o few_o old_a worn-out_a argument_n set_v forth_o in_o new_a dress_n which_o have_v be_v confute_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o three_o no_o small_a part_n of_o this_o nullity_n seem_v to_o be_v too_o trivial_a while_o late_a catholic_n writer_n be_v introduce_v speak_v as_o mr._n poole_n think_v disadvantagious_o and_o against_o our_o faith_n now_o sixtus_n senensis_n say_v this_o now_o bellarmin_n that_o now_o stapleton_n a_o three_o thing_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v these_o think_v you_o doughty_a do_n for_o such_o a_o antagonist_n that_o offer_v to_o strike_v at_o the_o very_a root_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n alas_o what_o he_o cite_v thus_o be_v all_o he_o cite_v true_a be_v a_o nullity_n indeed_o and_o a_o mere_a nothing_o for_o church_n doctrine_n depend_v on_o no_o man_n private_a opinion_n but_o when_o we_o make_v a_o inspection_n into_o these_o author_n as_o i_o have_v do_v on_o several_a occasion_n and_o find_v they_o quote_v by_o half_n weigh_v out_o of_o their_o circumstance_n mangle_a and_o traduce_v to_o a_o sinister_a sense_n we_o must_v speak_v truth_n that_o cheat_n will_v go_v on_o their_o way_n and_o rather_o play_v at_o small_a game_n then_o sit_v out_o or_o seem_v to_o do_v nothing_o have_v protestant_n any_o thing_n like_o a_o good_a cause_n in_o hand_n or_o truth_n on_o their_o side_n they_o will_v certain_o plead_v more_o manful_o for_o it_o and_o never_o like_v poor_a people_n in_o harvest_n go_v thus_o a_o glean_v up_o and_o down_o our_o author_n know_v for_o profess_a catholik_o who_o little_a god_n know_v intend_v to_o favour_n sectary_n by_o such_o segment_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o pick_v up_o much_o less_o to_o furnish_v protestant_n with_o armour_n against_o catholic_a doctrine_n but_o what_o will_v you_o sectary_n can_v do_v no_o better_o yet_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o what_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v whilst_o they_o embrace_v a_o novelty_n and_o cast_v of_o the_o old_a religion_n they_o shall_v make_v the_o ancient_a canon_n to_o roar_v against_o our_o doctrine_n they_o shall_v confound_v and_o overwhelm_v we_o with_o undeniable_a proof_n draw_v from_o plain_a scripture_n ancient_a council_n universal_a tradition_n and_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n of_o these_o we_o hear_v no_o great_a noise_n next_o and_o this_o most_o concern_v they_o they_o shall_v also_o positive_o prove_v and_o establish_v every_o article_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o protestancy_n by_o such_o plain_a open_a and_o illustrious_a authority_n than_o a_o bellarmin_n a_o stapleton_n a_o maldonate_fw-it and_z other_o might_n well_o follow_v the_o rear_n but_o to_o
religion_n and_o but_o one_o only_a certain_a and_o infallible_a perhaps_o he_o will_v say_v that_o though_o his_o proposition_n be_v fallible_a yet_o it_o be_v high_o probable_a against_o the_o pretend_a infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n no_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n lay_v claim_n to_o infallibility_n mark_v by_o the_o way_n what_o this_o adversary_n drive_v at_o it_o be_v to_o tell_v the_o world_n a_o word_n of_o comfort_n viz._n that_o christ_n jesus_n have_v now_o no_o certain_a and_o infallible_a religion_n teach_v or_o learn_v in_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o to_o make_v this_o most_o fallible_a and_o false_a proposition_n good_a he_o back_n be_v it_o by_o another_o of_o his_o own_o as_o false_a and_o fallible_a viz._n it_o be_v at_o least_o high_o probable_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v fallible_a pray_v you_o on_o what_o leg_n do_v this_o high_a suppose_a probability_n stand_v i_o will_v tell_v you_o it_o stand_v only_o on_o mr._n pool_n weak_a thought_n and_o unwarrant_v word_n more_o you_o have_v not_o for_o never_o do_v any_o ancient_a council_n or_o universal_a tradition_n or_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n hold_v it_o a_o thing_n high_o probable_a that_o either_o christian_a religion_n or_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v fallible_a do_v the_o scripture_n favour_n any_o where_o this_o wild_a assertion_n no_o not_o one_o syllable_n be_v find_v to_o that_o purpose_n we_o have_v text_n enough_o to_o the_o contrary_a some_o i_o shall_v quote_v on_o a_o fit_a occasion_n you_o will_v ask_v what_o then_o be_v it_o that_o mr._n pool_n prove_v against_o we_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o his_o nullity_n i_o answer_v just_o nothing_o his_o whole_a strain_n be_v thus_o after_o much_o tamper_n with_o those_o convince_a place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n usual_o allege_v for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o spoil_v all_o with_o his_o fallible_a fancy_n he_o go_v negative_o to_o work_v and_o tell_v we_o we_o such_o and_o such_o text_n turn_v out_o of_o their_o genuine_a sense_n by_o his_o gloss_n come_v not_o home_o nor_o prove_v any_o church_n infallible_a and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n for_o as_o pervert_v by_o he_o they_o be_v none_o of_o god_n scripture_n but_o his_o own_o scribble_v whimsy_n take_v here_o one_o instance_n for_o many_o that_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n 1._o tim._n 3._o 15._o where_o the_o church_n be_v style_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n seem_v plain_a enough_o open_a and_o significant_a for_o the_o catholic_a sense_n now_o come_v mr._n poole_n with_o his_o gloss_n page_n 86._o and_o say_v perhaps_o here_o may_v be_v a_o ellipsis_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v be_v write_v for_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o if_o so_o timothy_n be_v the_o pillar_n not_o the_o church_n again_o the_o church_n here_o speak_v of_o may_v be_v that_o wherein_o timothy_n be_v place_v not_o the_o roman_a 3._o the_o term_n of_o pillar_n note_v the_o solidity_n not_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o it_o may_v note_v the_o church_n duty_n not_o her_o practice_n with_o a_o long_a etc._n etc._n observe_v well_o upon_o these_o wretched_a fallible_a supposition_n mr._n poole_n seem_v to_o conclude_v that_o those_o word_n be_v unconcluding_a for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o any_o christian_a society_n put_v i_o ask_v by_o what_o authority_n must_v i_o suppose_v his_o ellipsis_n or_o that_o the_o church_n speak_v of_o be_v timothy_n church_n not_o the_o universal_a that_o the_o term_n pillar_n note_v not_o the_o infallibility_n &_o c_o do_v god_n speak_v thus_o in_o scripture_n or_o rather_o do_v not_o mr._n poole_n vent_v these_o wild_a fancy_n without_o scripture_n or_o any_o unquestioned_a authority_n this_o late_a be_v most_o evident_a and_o can_v he_o think_v by_o such_o farfetcht_a gloss_n either_o to_o rob_v the_o apostle_n of_o his_o plain_a obvious_a sense_n or_o to_o make_v i_o believe_v that_o his_o guess_n hit_v right_a on_o god_n true_a meaning_n deliver_v in_o this_o text_n if_o he_o reply_v the_o meaning_n may_v be_v as_o he_o guess_v i_o answer_v and_o it_o may_v not_o be_v as_o he_o guess_v who_o be_v here_o to_o judge_v between_o we_o who_o can_v tell_v i_o that_o mr._n pool_n may_v be_v be_v a_o prop_n sure_a enough_o to_o build_v my_o faith_n upon_o he_o be_v therefore_o to_o show_v positive_o by_o a_o propositio_fw-la quiescens_fw-la that_o be_v by_o some_o cogent_a proof_n and_o undoubted_a authority_n that_o s._n paul_n word_n must_v be_v understand_v as_o he_o gloss_n and_o consequent_o be_v oblige_v to_o make_v good_a some_o one_o of_o these_o desperate_a proposition_n christ_n jesus_n have_v now_o no_o infallible_a religion_n teach_v or_o learn_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n all_o christian_a society_n be_v fallible_a that_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n mention_v in_o the_o creed_n be_v fallible_a etc._n etc._n but_o to_o wave_v such_o proof_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o a_o text_n in_o scripture_n and_o torture_v it_o as_o he_o please_v and_o after_o the_o misusage_n to_o tell_v we_o the_o text_n prove_v nothing_o be_v only_o to_o sport_v with_o god_n word_n and_o say_v that_o scripture_n make_v no_o scripture_n by_o whole_a heap_n of_o fallible_a gloss_n be_v proofle_n the_o foundation_n be_v good_a but_o the_o superstructure_n be_v naught_o give_v i_o the_o strong_a place_n in_o scripture_n for_o any_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n i_o can_v by_o piddle_v at_o the_o text_n with_o unevidence_v gloss_n both_o so_o pervert_v and_o poison_v the_o word_n that_o at_o last_o they_o speak_v haeresy_n yet_o on_o such_o unproved_a conjecture_n protestant_a religion_n stand_v and_o can_v never_o have_v better_a foot_n while_o god_n unwritten_a word_n be_v reject_v and_o no_o infallible_a teacher_n be_v allow_v of_o that_o learn_v we_o truth_n one_o word_n more_o and_o i_o end_v have_v those_o two_o gallant_n luther_n and_o calvin_n when_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o reform_v the_o darken_a world_n of_o popery_n thus_o alarm_v their_o hearer_n my_o master_n we_o preach_v indeed_o a_o new_a gospel_n upon_o the_o best_a conjecture_n we_o be_v able_a but_o you_o must_v know_v that_o all_o we_o say_v be_v fallible_a how_o sick_a will_v such_o a_o say_n have_v make_v the_o strong_a stomach_n among_o they_o for_o if_o fallible_a if_o uncertain_a doctrine_n it_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n jesus_n doctrine_n and_o therefore_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o more_o pure_a refine_n and_o how_o know_v our_o protestant_n but_o that_o yet_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o people_n may_v startup_n and_o make_v it_o their_o task_n to_o reform_v all_o the_o fallible_a reformer_n that_o have_v trouble_v the_o world_n since_o luther_n day_n have_v i_o no_o other_o just_a exception_n against_o our_o protestant_n but_o thus_o much_o only_o that_o they_o yet_o know_v not_o where_o about_o they_o be_v in_o their_o reformation_n and_o because_o fallible_a can_v never_o know_v whether_o for_o example_n the_o thing_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n be_v yet_o a_o mere_a embryo_n of_o religion_n or_o of_o a_o more_o perfect_a shape_n a_o new_a lay_v egg_n or_o a_o hatch_a chicken_n whether_o they_o themselves_o be_v yet_o only_a novice_n proficient_n or_o master_n in_o the_o trade_n of_o reformation_n i_o say_v be_v there_o no_o more_o this_o alone_a will_v fright_v i_o from_o ever_o be_v protestant_n believe_v it_o the_o professor_n of_o a_o uncertain_a and_o endless_a reformable_a religion_n shall_v never_o come_v to_o settlement_n till_o they_o renounce_v the_o cheat_n and_o believe_v as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v ad_fw-la gal._n 1._o 8._o licet_fw-la nos_fw-la etc._n etc._n altough_n we_o or_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v otherwise_o to_o you_o then_o we_o have_v preach_v to_o you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v which_o be_v full_o to_o say_v believe_v he_o not_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v how_o destructive_a these_o word_n be_v of_o a_o uncertain_a and_o fallible_a teach_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n for_o admit_v which_o mr._n poole_n grant_v that_o all_o christian_a community_n all_o council_n all_o father_n all_o tradition_n etc._n etc._n deliver_v only_o fallible_a doctrine_n that_o be_v doctrine_n liable_a to_o error_n i_o only_o may_v not_o but_o be_o oblige_v to_o disbelieve_v this_o truth_n of_o s._n paul_n and_o believe_v he_o or_o a_o angel_n send_v from_o heaven_n if_o either_o of_o they_o preach_v contrary_a to_o this_o fallible_a learning_n why_o doctrine_n that_o be_v fallible_a may_v be_v false_a but_o the_o preach_n of_o a_o angel_n send_v from_o heaven_n can_v be_v false_a and_o therefore_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o may_v be_v false_a but_o i_o be_o oblige_v to_o quit_v the_o less_o certain_a doctrine_n for_o the_o most_o certain_a preach_v of_o a_o angel_n
of_o they_o certain_o know_v what_o he_o say_v they_o have_v christ_n promise_n of_o a_o spirit_n of_o truth_n '_o abide_v with_o some_o christian_a teacher_n find_v they_o where_o they_o can_v for_o ever_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o now_o they_o must_v say_v because_o all_o pastor_n be_v fallible_a that_o christ_n keep_v his_o not_o his_o word_n if_o all_o may_v deceive_v and_o teach_v both_o fallible_a and_o false_a doctrine_n final_o they_o must_v own_v such_o believer_n as_o s._n paul_n mention_v who_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o true_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o have_v not_o one_o pastor_n or_o doctor_n that_o dare_v show_v his_o face_n and_o say_v he_o teach_v this_o word_n infallible_o yet_o infallible_a believer_n and_o infallible_a teacher_n seem_v near_a correlative_n the_o one_o if_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v stagger_v without_o the_o other_o and_o teacher_n infallible_a hearer_n of_o god_n word_n suppose_v infallible_a teacher_n methinks_v when_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 10._o 14._o none_o can_v hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n he_o suppose_v as_o well_o the_o preacher_n instruct_v infallible_a as_o the_o hearer_n infallible_o instruct_v chap._n ii_o the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n necessary_o require_v infallible_a teacher_n 1._o the_o proof_n of_o my_o assertion_n be_v more_o full_o declare_v chap._n 4._o n._n 6._o and_o rely_v on_o this_o principle_n infallible_a doctrine_n teach_v only_o fallible_o under_o that_o notion_n of_o fallible_o teach_v doctrine_n be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v of_o god_n say_v scripture_n john_n epist_n 1._o cap._n 4._o v._n 6._o he_o that_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n hear_v we_o not_o hereby_o we_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o other_o term_n he_o that_o hear_v a_o infallible_a teacher_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o he_o that_o hear_v not_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n want_v this_o spirit_n of_o truth_n again_o epist_n 2._o v._n 9_o every_o one_o that_o recede_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o remain_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o god_n etc._n etc._n but_o every_o one_o that_o hear_v only_o a_o fallible_a teacher_n easy_o recede_v and_o remain_v not_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n therefore_o he_o have_v not_o god_n nor_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o he_o 2._o upon_o these_o ground_n i_o argue_v further_o christ_n doctrine_n infallible_a in_o itself_o be_v either_o now_o teach_v infallible_o by_o some_o pastor_n lawful_o send_v or_o fallible_o if_o the_o first_o we_o must_v own_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o this_o infallible_a doctrine_n if_o the_o second_o that_o be_v if_o christ_n infallible_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v only_o fallible_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la docentis_fw-la it_o follow_v evident_o first_o that_o though_o god_n speak_v infallible_o yet_o no_o man_n have_v certainty_n of_o what_o he_o say_v it_o follow_v second_o that_o such_o a_o fallible_a teach_v of_o christ_n doctrine_n may_v be_v cavil_v at_o and_o dispute_v against_o for_o against_o doctrine_n teach_v fallible_o may_v be_v cavil_v at_o and_o dispute_v against_o all_o doctrine_n teach_v fallible_o and_o which_o by_o force_n of_o its_o proposal_n or_o merit_n of_o the_o doctrine_n may_v deceive_v and_o be_v false_a be_v liable_a to_o cavil_v and_o dispute_v therefore_o this_o doctrine_n may_v be_v also_o cavil_v at_o and_o dispute_v against_o it_o follow_v three_o that_o real_o christ_n doctrine_n perchance_o pervert_v by_o a_o fallible_a and_o false_a delivery_n may_v not_o be_v teach_v at_o all_o the_o reason_n be_v no_o other_o doctrine_n be_v or_o can_v be_v teach_v but_o what_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v false_a but_o christ_n doctrine_n be_v nor_o fallible_a nor_o can_v be_v false_a therefore_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v only_o teach_v fallible_o as_o it_o be_v so_o deliver_v be_v none_o of_o christ_n infallible_a doctrine_n consequent_o if_o any_o man_n will_v now_o utter_o abjure_v all_o the_o teach_v doctrine_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n he_o may_v do_v it_o without_o be_v a_o haeretick_n i_o prove_v it_o he_o who_o only_o abjure_v and_o deny_v fallible_a doctrine_n which_o may_v be_v false_a neither_o abjure_v nor_o deny_v christ_n doctrine_n nor_o any_o christian_a verity_n which_o can_v be_v false_a but_o all_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o can_v be_v teach_v sectary_n say_v be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v false_a therefore_o he_o who_o deny_v such_o a_o fallible_a teach_v doctrine_n deny_v not_o christ_n doctrine_n and_o can_v be_v upon_o that_o account_n a_o haeretick_n you_o will_v say_v he_o who_o deny_v all_o christian_n teach_v doctrine_n certain_o deny_v some_o of_o those_o objective_a verity_n which_o be_v reveal_v in_o god_n word_n and_o therefore_o be_v a_o haeretick_n very_o true_a if_o he_o be_v sure_a that_o his_o teacher_n deliver_v those_o verity_n infallible_o but_o our_o protestant_n say_v because_o all_o teacher_n verity_n infallible_a doctrine_n teach_v only_o fallible_o imply_v no_o denial_n of_o christ_n infallible_a verity_n be_v fallible_a none_o can_v have_v that_o assurance_n from_o they_o or_o any_o therefore_o their_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v fallible_o may_v be_v cavil_v at_o yes_o and_o deny_v also_o without_o the_o guilt_n of_o haeresy_n the_o reason_n be_v whoever_o only_o deny_v the_o fallible_a teach_v of_o infallible_a doctrine_n yet_o not_o know_v for_o such_o deny_v not_o the_o objective_n infallible_a doctrine_n in_o itself_o but_o the_o formal_a fallible_a delivery_n of_o it_o and_o this_o he_o may_v bold_o say_v be_v none_o of_o christ_n doctrine_n 3._o the_o substance_n of_o what_o i_o will_v here_o express_v may_v fallible_o no_o assurance_n can_v be_v have_v from_o man_n that_o teach_v christ_n doctrine_n fallible_o perhaps_o more_o plain_o be_v reduce_v to_o form_n thus_o a_o society_n of_o man_n who_o can_v do_v no_o more_o but_o only_o teach_v fallible_a doctrine_n which_o may_v be_v false_a can_v assure_v none_o that_o they_o teach_v christ_n infallible_a doctrine_n which_o can_v be_v false_a but_o all_o society_n of_o christian_n can_v do_v no_o more_o but_o teach_v fallible_a doctrine_n which_o may_v be_v false_a for_o all_o church_n all_o council_n all_o father_n all_o papist_n all_o protestant_n and_o mr._n poole_n with_o they_o be_v as_o they_o say_v fallible_a in_o their_o feach_n therefore_o not_o one_o among_o they_o can_v assure_v any_o that_o he_o teach_v or_o deliver_v the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n i_o say_v that_o he_o teach_v for_o if_o we_o meet_v with_o a_o simplician_n that_o tell_v we_o he_o build_v his_o faith_n and_o religion_n not_o upon_o any_o preacher_n talk_v but_o on_o the_o objective_a verity_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n i_o answer_v unless_o faith_n objective_n reveal_v verity_n no_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o infallible_a faith_n he_o first_o learn_v of_o some_o infallible_a oracle_n what_o scripture_n exact_o speak_v in_o a_o hundred_o controvert_v place_n he_o shall_v never_o by_o his_o own_o pore_v on_o a_o bible_n either_o arrive_v to_o the_o depth_n of_o god_n true_a meaning_n or_o derive_v infallible_a faith_n from_o those_o objective_n reveal_v verity_n the_o reply_n suppose_v that_o all_o truth_n couch_v in_o scripture_n be_v as_o easy_o understand_v with_o the_o unclasp_a of_o a_o bible_n as_o the_o sun_n be_v see_v at_o noonday_n if_o so_o minister_n hereafter_o may_v for_o the_o most_o of_o man_n shut_v their_o book_n stop_v their_o mouth_n and_o preach_v no_o more_o 4._o some_o yet_o perhaps_o will_v say_v one_o may_v preach_v the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n though_o himself_o be_v fallible_a in_o the_o delivery_n of_o it_o which_o feem'_v manifest_a for_o every_o catechist_n or_o preacher_n though_o he_o deliver_v the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n yet_o deliver_v it_o not_o infallible_o why_o therefore_o may_v not_o minister_n in_o england_n teach_v as_o those_o do_v infallible_a doctrine_n though_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subjecti_fw-la docentis_fw-la they_o teach_v it_o fallible_o i_o answer_v first_o minister_n in_o england_n have_v no_o infallible_a church_n to_o recurre_v to_o in_o case_n they_o err_v for_o their_o whole_a community_n be_v fallible_a the_o catholic_n preacher_n have_v a_o sure_a oracle_n to_o rely_v on_o a_o infallible_a church_n that_o unbeguil_n he_o if_o he_o swerve_v from_o truth_n which_o be_v a_o mighty_a advantage_n and_o a_o great_a church_n the_o advantage_n of_o a_o infallible_a church_n disparity_n in_o the_o present_a question_n now_o if_o you_o say_v sectary_n may_v as_o well_o rely_v on_o infallible_a scripture_n for_o their_o direction_n as_o we_o do_v on_o a_o infallible_a church_n i_o deny_v the_o supposition_n and_o shall_v show_v hereafter_o that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o protestancy_n
miss_v in_o his_o teach_n as_o hit_v right_a on_o the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n the_o minor_a be_v grant_v by_o mr._n poole_n for_o all_o church_n whether_o roman_n or_o english_a arian_n or_o grecian_a be_v liable_a to_o error_n want_v special_a assistance_n in_o their_o teach_v and_o ought_v positive_o to_o renounce_v all_o society_n of_o infallible_a christian_a teacher_n therefore_o the_o conclusion_n undeniable_o follow_v which_o be_v that_o none_o can_v with_o certainty_n teach_v the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o from_o hence_o also_o follow_v a_o utter_a ruin_n of_o christian_a religion_n yea_o and_o of_o scripture_n too_o as_o i_o shall_v hereafter_o demonstrate_v for_o if_o all_o pastor_n all_o doctor_n all_o teacher_n of_o christian_a religion_n may_v err_v in_o the_o delivery_n of_o their_o doctrine_n all_o learner_n of_o it_o may_v likewise_o err_v in_o hear_v it_o and_o if_o so_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n that_o god_n be_v now_o adore_v in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n by_o either_o teacher_n or_o hearer_n 9_o the_o ultimate_a reason_n why_o a_o total_a ruin_n of_o christian_a for_o the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o christian_a religion_n follow_v the_o fallible_a teach_v of_o it_o in_o a_o whole_a church_n what_o all_o euangelical_n preacher_n lakour_v for_o religion_n accompany_v the_o fallible_a teach_v of_o it_o be_v thus_o prove_v none_o can_v teach_v christian_a faith_n that_o do_v not_o propose_v or_o make_v almighty_a god_n to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o our_o saviour_n john_n 7._o 16._o tell_v the_o jew_n that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v not_o he_o but_o his_o father_n that_o send_v he_o yea_o the_o prophet_n also_o and_o all_o other_o evangelical_n preacher_n chief_o labour_v in_o this_o to_o persuade_v their_o hearer_n that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o that_o doctrine_n they_o teach_v now_o say_v i_o none_o can_v propose_v or_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o christian_a faith_n that_o do_v not_o own_o it_o as_o a_o doctrine_n assert_v by_o his_o eternal_a veracity_n infallible_o reveal_v truth_n for_o this_o be_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o he_o that_o only_o teach_v fallible_a doctrine_n which_o may_v be_v false_a desert_n this_o formal_a object_n and_o can_v neither_o own_o god_n for_o the_o author_n of_o it_o nor_o his_o infallible_a reveal_n verity_n ergo_fw-la he_o must_v own_v a_o fallible_a authority_n to_o uphold_v this_o doctrine_n which_o be_v utter_o destructive_a of_o christian_a faith_n the_o reason_n will_v be_v yet_o more_o evidence_v if_o you_o propose_v it_o after_o this_o manner_n a_o doctrine_n which_o by_o force_n of_o all_o the_o principle_n it_o have_v be_v mere_o fallible_a and_o doctrine_n the_o last_o ground_n of_o this_o doctrine_n no_o more_o may_v be_v false_a but_o christian_n doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v teach_v by_o all_o pastor_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n etc._n etc._n be_v thus_o fallible_a ergo_fw-la it_o may_v be_v false_a but_o god_n never_o send_v christ_n our_o lord_n nor_o christ_n his_o apostle_n or_o any_o to_o teach_v a_o doctrine_n that_o may_v be_v false_a ergo_fw-la he_o send_v none_o to_o teach_v a_o doctrine_n or_o religion_n that_o be_v fallible_a i_o prove_v it_o he_o send_v none_o to_o teach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n but_o that_o which_o be_v found_v and_o intrinsical_o rely_v on_o his_o eternal_a infallible_a verity_n reveal_v truth_n but_o such_o a_o doctrine_n can_v neither_o be_v false_a nor_o fallible_a therefore_o this_o teach_a doctrine_n be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a for_o to_o grant_v that_o god_n send_v pastor_n to_o teach_v a_o doctrine_n which_o rely_v on_o his_o infallible_a revelation_n be_v to_o say_v he_o assist'_v they_o to_o teach_v it_o infallible_o chap._n iii_o other_o proof_n for_o teacher_n and_o a_o church_n infallible_a 1._o i_o argue_v again_o thus_o suppose_v the_o promise_n of_o christ_n make_v in_o scripture_n god_n goodness_n can_v oblige_v the_o whole_a moral_a body_n of_o christian_n to_o believe_v a_o falsity_n or_o to_o contradict_v his_o certain_a reveal_v verity_n but_o if_o all_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n may_v err_v in_o their_o instruction_n whilst_o they_o teach_v christian_a doctrine_n god_n will_v falsity_n god_n can_v oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v a_o falsity_n as_o indifferent_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v a_o falsity_n and_o contradict_v his_o certain_a verity_n as_o to_o hear_v truth_n when_o by_o chance_n it_o be_v teach_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o goodness_n the_o first_o proposition_n be_v evident_a and_o confess_o true_a for_o our_o adversary_n say_v it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o all_o conception_n of_o god_n goodness_n to_o require_v of_o man_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v something_o as_o infallible_o true_a which_o be_v real_o false_a the_o other_o also_o be_v as_o clear_v for_o if_o all_o pastor_n all_o doctor_n who_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o soul_n may_v because_o fallible_a as_o well_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n as_o true_a as_o easy_o err_v as_o deliver_v christ_n pure_a verity_n christian_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o god_n command_v already_o intimate_v bind_v both_o to_o hear_v and_o obey_v they_o matth._n 18._o 17._o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n that_o be_v as_o s._n chrysostome_n expound_v the_o prelate_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o it_o let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a etc._n etc._n hebr._n 13._o 17._o obey_v your_o prelate_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d your_o guide_n your_o leader_n and_o commander_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o they_o for_o they_o watch_v as_o be_v to_o render_v account_n of_o your_o soul_n again_o vers_fw-la 7._o the_o apostle_n command_v we_o to_o imitate_v the_o faith_n of_o these_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n from_o these_o and_o other_o innumerable_a place_n of_o scripture_n know_v to_o all_o i_o argue_v what_o be_v possible_a may_v be_v reduce_v to_o act_n but_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o all_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n may_v err_v and_o deliver_v false_a doctrine_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o in_o case_n they_o do_v so_o i_o be_o upon_o these_o plain_a express_v ordinance_n of_o god_n oblige_v to_o believe_v they_o therefore_o i_o must_v believe_v they_o although_o they_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n and_o if_o so_o god_n oblige_v i_o to_o believe_v a_o falsity_n or_o which_o be_v a_o real_a verity_n i_o be_o force_v to_o grant_v this_o undeniable_a truth_n that_o his_o all-seeing_a providence_n do_v now_o and_o ever_o will_v preserve_v a_o church_n who_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n be_v infallible_a in_o the_o delivery_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n without_o this_o certain_a establish_a infallibility_n in_o some_o one_o or_o other_o society_n of_o believer_n christianity_n be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o mere_a totter_a reel_a and_o uncertain_a religion_n yet_o i_o must_v listen_v to_o it_o whether_o those_o who_o teach_v it_o stand_v or_o fall_v that_o be_v whether_o they_o err_v or_o not_o teach_v a_o imposture_n or_o truth_n 2._o to_o confirm_v this_o proof_n i_o ask_v whether_o god_n after_o he_o have_v deliver_v his_o own_o certain_a verity_n infallible_o and_o make_v also_o by_o his_o divine_a assistance_n those_o first_o master_n of_o the_o gospel_n his_o bless_a apostle_n infallible_a in_o their_o delivery_n of_o these_o verity_n whether_o then_o i_o say_v in_o the_o ensue_a age_n he_o divorce_v himself_o from_o his_o sectary_n a_o question_n propose_v to_o sectary_n church_n and_o withdraw_v all_o special_a assistance_n from_o it_o or_o yet_o continue_v that_o gracious_a favour_n to_o some_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o a_o christian_a society_n if_o he_o continue_v that_o care_n and_o providence_n for_o the_o direction_n of_o some_o pastor_n in_o truth_n those_o because_o so_o guide_v be_v still_o infallible_a in_o their_o teach_v contrary_a wise_a if_o he_o abandon_v that_o charge_n and_o deprive_v all_o pastor_n for_o the_o future_a of_o infallible_a assistance_n this_o woeful_a consequence_n follow_v that_o christian_a religion_n once_o strong_o support_v by_o god_n unerring_a spirit_n ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n preach_v have_v lose_v that_o hold_v and_o now_o stand_v totter_v on_o no_o more_o steady_a ground_n than_o what_o the_o weak_a mutable_a and_o err_a sentiment_n of_o man_n can_v afford_v it_o now_o how_o unmeet_a these_o be_v for_o so_o great_a a_o charge_n solomon_n sap._n 9_o 15._o say_v enough_o cogitationes_fw-la mortalium_fw-la timidae_fw-la &_o incertae_fw-la providentiae_fw-la nostrae_fw-la the_o cogitation_n of_o mortal_a man_n be_v fearful_a and_o our_o providence_n uncertain_a yet_o so_o it_o be_v and_o here_o mark_v the_o hideous_a crime_n of_o protestant_n who_o first_o divorce_v christ_n from_o his_o church_n and_o violent_o pull_v religion_n transgress_v how_o sectary_n transgress_v from_o its_o centre_n which_o be_v god_n infallible_a direct_a spirit_n and_o then_o make_v all_o the_o teach_v doctrine_n of_o
christianity_n to_o lean_v and_o rely_v only_o upon_o man_n weak_a timid_a stagger_a and_o errable_a conception_n the_o proof_n be_v evident_a for_o either_o it_o rely_v on_o god_n and_o so_o be_v infallible_a or_o upon_o humane_a reason_n and_o therefore_o as_o this_o be_v various_a religion_n can_v but_o be_v changeable_a let_v then_o the_o world_n judge_n i_o appeal_v to_o no_o other_o tribunal_n whether_o christian_n can_v be_v satisfy_v with_o this_o comfortless_a doctrine_n all_o they_o can_v now_o learn_v from_o any_o christian_a pastor_n touch_v religion_n have_v only_o man_n weak_a thought_n and_o reason_n for_o it_o but_o no_o certain_a assurance_n that_o god_n speak_v by_o these_o pastor_n because_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o leave_v to_o themselves_o be_v fallible_a 3._o i_o must_v prosecute_v this_o matter_n further_o wherefore_o purity_n man_n too_o feeble_a to_o preserve_v christian_a doctrine_n in_o its_o purity_n i_o say_v this_o truth_n bold_o it_o be_v above_o man_n power_n and_o policy_n weak_a and_o errable_a in_o his_o conception_n constant_o and_o unchangable_o to_o support_v or_o carry_v on_o age_n after_o age_n the_o profound_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n in_o its_o primitive_a purity_n without_o divine_a assistance_n wit_n alone_o dazzle_v as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o most_o obvious_a thing_n in_o nature_n be_v insufficient_a either_o right_o to_o penetrate_v these_o high_a mystery_n of_o grace_n or_o with_o certainty_n to_o convey_v they_o unto_o we_o in_o that_o exact_a sense_n as_o god_n once_o deliver_v they_o the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o sublime_a excellency_n of_o christian_a religion_n excellency_n because_o of_o its_o sublime_a excellency_n which_o be_v as_o all_o know_v a_o doctrine_n of_o god_n own_o incomprehensible_a wisdom_n a_o communication_n of_o his_o deep_a secret_n can_v but_o transcend_v the_o force_n of_o humane_a knowledge_n it_o can_v but_o lie_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o region_n above_o the_o reach_n of_o weak_a reason_n only_o and_o stand_v at_o a_o great_a distance_n from_o our_o fallible_a discourse_n whence_o i_o argue_v thus_o all_o light_n and_o knowledge_n which_o flow_v from_o a_o fallible_a power_n and_o capacity_n can_v but_o be_v answerable_a to_o such_o a_o capacity_n id_fw-la est_fw-la deficient_a uncertain_a and_o fallible_a but_o all_o the_o light_n and_o knowledge_n which_o christian_n now_o have_v from_o either_o church_n or_o pastor_n concern_v this_o sublime_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o god_n reveal_v verity_n in_o scripture_n flow_v and_o be_v derive_v from_o no_o other_o but_o from_o a_o fallible_a capacity_n which_o be_v man_n errable_a and_o weak_a understanding_n and_o not_o from_o god_n infallible_a assistance_n who_o say_v our_o protestant_n have_v withdraw_v infallibility_n from_o the_o church_n ergo_fw-la this_o teach_a doctrine_n can_v but_o be_v deficient_a uncertain_a christ_n fallible_a doctrine_n be_v not_o christ_n and_o fallible_a grant_v this_o and_o none_o can_v prudent_o rely_v on_o it_o none_o can_v know_v by_o any_o principle_n whether_o it_o be_v true_a or_o false_a none_o final_o can_v own_v it_o for_o christ_n certain_a doctrine_n rob_v therefore_o the_o church_n of_o its_o proper_a dote_v which_o be_v divine_a assistance_n take_v from_o it_o the_o spirit_n of_o infallibility_n cancel_v that_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_z that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o destroy_v that_o impregnable_a rock_n whereon_o christianity_n be_v found_v matt._n 15._o tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n etc._n etc._n though_o all_o the_o pastor_n in_o the_o world_n be_v salomon_n for_o wit_n augustine_n for_o learning_n gregory_n for_o vigilancy_n chrysostoms_n for_o eloquence_n yet_o they_o will_v be_v too_o weak_a feeble_a and_o fallible_a instrument_n either_o right_o to_o illuminate_v religion_n wit_n alone_o too_o weak_a to_o tamper_v with_o religion_n we_o by_o the_o force_n of_o wit_n or_o learning_n only_a concern_v those_o high_a verity_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n or_o exact_o to_o preserve_v they_o in_o their_o first_o candour_n without_o change_n and_o alteration_n alas_o may_v wit_n alone_o tamper_v with_o god_n truth_n at_o pleasure_n may_v it_o turn_v religion_n into_o as_o many_o form_n or_o shape_n as_o weak_a reason_n often_o conceive_v this_o too_o unskilful_a master_n will_v as_o fancy_n and_o judgement_n be_v various_a now_o build_v now_o destroy_v now_o add_v now_o subtract_v now_o make_v now_o mar_v and_o bring_v in_o more_o confusion_n into_o christinianity_n than_o the_o wise_a man_n be_v able_a to_o redress_v and_o 4._o thus_o much_o we_o see_v evident_o not_o only_o in_o the_o old_a error_n man_n with_o the_o cause_n of_o error_n philosopher_n who_o lead_v on_o by_o their_o weak_a discourse_n and_o guess_n gross_o mistake_v in_o their_o opinion_n concern_v beatitude_n but_o in_o some_o learned_a father_n also_o witness_n a_o it_o example_n of_o it_o tertullian_n and_o origen_n for_o these_o two_o great_a wit_n of_o the_o world_n because_o they_o leave_v the_o guidance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o rely_v too_o much_o on_o their_o private_a judgement_n fell_a as_o we_o know_v into_o deplorable_a error_n but_o most_o of_o all_o this_o misery_n be_v visible_a in_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n as_o arian_n pelagian_o and_o nestorian_n witty_a and_o learned_a enough_o but_o because_o wit_v too_o bold_o enter_v into_o divine_a mystery_n and_o meddle_v with_o matter_n above_o its_o strength_n these_o man_n lose_v themselves_o and_o here_o be_v the_o sole_a cause_n error_n god_n special_a assistance_n preserve_v his_o curch_n from_o error_n of_o their_o ruin_n and_o fall_v from_o truth_n whence_o i_o conclude_v contrary_a to_o protestant_n who_o have_v nothing_o to_o support_v religion_n but_o their_o own_o weak_a and_o errable_a conjecture_n that_o unless_o god_n gracious_a providence_n particular_o protect_v his_o church_n and_o by_o special_a assistance_n preserve_v it_o from_o error_n the_o very_o best_a of_o we_o all_o though_o never_o so_o learned_a leave_v to_o our_o weak_a conjecture_n and_o fallible_a discourse_n may_v most_o easy_o become_v arian_n nestorian_n pelagian_n protestant_n socinian_o now_o christian_n now_o no_o christian_n or_o what_o you_o will_n protestancy_n and_o all_o haeresy_n which_o stand_v tople_a on_o no_o firm_a ground_n then_o mere_a conjecture_n be_v lead_v the_o way_n to_o these_o downfall_n to_o no_o religion_n or_o any_o religion_n as_o fancy_n best_o like_v 5._o to_o prevent_v therefore_o this_o great_a evil_n the_o wise_a providence_n church_n god_n providence_n over_o his_o church_n of_o god_n who_o well_o foresee_v man_n weakness_n and_o instability_n first_o deliver_v his_o own_o eternal_a truth_n infallible_o none_o doubt_v of_o this_o next_o he_o cause_v these_o truth_n to_o be_v teach_v infallible_o by_o the_o first_o master_n of_o the_o gospel_n his_o choose_a disciple_n here_o of_o also_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n with_o our_o modern_a man_n moreover_o because_o his_o real_a intention_n be_v that_o not_o only_o the_o primitive_a christian_n shall_v exact_o receive_v those_o reveal_v verity_n from_o infallible_a teacher_n but_o other_o also_o in_o ensue_a age_n for_o all_o soul_n be_v provident_o care_v for_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n establish_v a_o visible_a catholic_n church_n who_o head_n and_o pastor_n guide_v not_o by_o humane_a wit_n or_o policy_n but_o by_o assistance_n derive_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v by_o virtue_n of_o so_o special_a grace_n teach_v truth_n infallible_o and_o preserve_v poor_a soul_n from_o error_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n without_o this_o addition_n ruin_n preserve_v christianity_n from_o ruin_n of_o a_o perpetuate_v assistance_n as_o well_o in_o order_n to_o the_o late_a as_o first_o believer_n providence_n will_v not_o have_v do_v its_o work_n complete_o christianity_n ere_o this_o day_n too_o unsteedy_o build_v will_v have_v fall_v to_o ruin_n and_o as_o often_o alrer_v from_o itself_o in_o the_o space_n of_o 1667._o year_n as_o our_o sectary_n have_v do_v in_o this_o last_o hundred_o a_o more_o spiteful_a blow_v therefore_o can_v be_v give_v to_o god_n a_o great_a chimaera_n can_v be_v think_v on_o then_o to_o grant_v as_o sectary_n do_v that_o his_o all_o see_v wisdom_n first_o found_v a_o church_n upon_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o next_o to_o spoil_v all_o with_o this_o ungodly_a assertion_n viz_o afterward_o when_o christian_n as_o much_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o infallible_a pastor_n for_o their_o direction_n because_o of_o emergent_a heresy_n than_o it_o be_v he_o withdraw_v assistance_n from_o they_o abandon_v his_o charge_n and_o leave_v a_o whole_a church_n to_o the_o waver_a timid_a and_o uncertain_a sentiment_n of_o mere_a err_a man_n who_o altogether_o because_o by_o nature_n fallible_a may_v as_o easy_o without_o this_o superior_a grace_n of_o infallibility_n have_v teach_v gross_a error_n as_o the_o verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n this_o sequel_n follow_v
from_o our_o protestant_n principle_n where_o you_o se_fw-mi enough_o i_o say_v it_o once_o more_o of_o their_o great_a sin_n and_o haeresy_n chap._n iu._n reply_v to_o these_o argument_n be_v answer_v 1._o one_o perhaps_o may_v be_v god_n sure_o will_v never_o permit_v all_o the_o pastor_n of_o christianity_n to_o err_v and_o deceive_v the_o world_n at_o least_o this_o be_v no_o consequence_n they_o may_v err_v ergo_fw-la they_o do_v and_o will_v actual_o err_v for_o many_o thing_n may_v be_v which_o never_o will_v be_v i_o answer_v and_o many_o thing_n actual_o happen_v answer_v to_o objection_n which_o be_v never_o suspect_v will_v be_v and_o why_o may_v not_o this_o diffuse_a error_n be_v one_o of_o they_o who_o know_v the_o contrary_a in_o protestant_n principle_n we_o have_v the_o great_a presumption_n imaginable_a for_o this_o actual_a error_n of_o all_o for_o they_o say_v that_o ample_a and_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n with_o it_o err_v set_v then_o these_o aside_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o design_n plain_o such_o christian_a teacher_n as_o never_o the_o facto_fw-la err_v 2._o the_o very_a possibility_n yes_o and_o facility_n also_o of_o all_o fall_n into_o error_n make_v the_o actuality_n of_o it_o fearful_o doubtful_a now_o man_n have_v be_v mad_a to_o loose_v both_o life_n and_o good_n to_o die_v ignominious_o on_o gibbet_n for_o any_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a doctrine_n the_o apostle_n put_v other_o thought_n in_o the_o primitive_a martyr_n heart_n other_o word_n in_o their_o mouth_n scio_fw-la cvi_fw-la credidi_fw-la &_o certus_fw-la sum_fw-la i_o know_v who_o i_o believe_v and_o be_o certain_a no_o hearer_n therefore_o can_v certain_o rely_v on_o any_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a religion_n 2._o the_o second_o reply_n admit_v that_o all_o christian_a pastor_n reply_n second_o reply_n teach_v erroneous_a doctrine_n yet_o no_o great_a mischief_n follow_v for_o those_o who_o hear_v they_o be_v either_o conscious_a of_o the_o falsity_n and_o if_o so_o they_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v their_o teacher_n or_o they_o err_v invincible_o which_o be_v a_o blameless_a error_n and_o therefore_o can_v in_o justice_n be_v hold_v a_o offence_n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o reply_n suppose_v some_o instruct_a christian_n wise_a than_o all_o their_o teacher_n together_o which_o be_v a_o impertinency_n never_o hear_v of_o the_o second_o touch_v not_o the_o difficulty_n for_o here_o we_o blame_v not_o such_o as_o may_v perhaps_o invincible_o err_v but_o say_v that_o the_o blame_n go_v high_a and_o be_v unworthy_o cast_v on_o god_n who_o oblige_v christian_n to_o believe_v the_o pastor_n of_o a_o catholic_n church_n and_o yet_o give_v they_o such_o disable_v once_o that_o all_o of_o they_o may_v err_v universal_o and_o teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o he_o reveal_v truth_n here_o lie_v the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n uphold_v iniquity_n protestant_n mystery_n of_o iniquity_n by_o protestant_n and_o the_o uglines_n of_o it_o appear_v in_o this_o wrethched_a assertion_n god_n will_v have_v i_o to_o believe_v a_o catholic_n church_n yet_o this_o whole_a catholic_n church_n that_o be_v all_o the_o god_n they_o cast_v blame_v upon_o god_n pastor_n all_o the_o council_n all_o the_o father_n doctor_n and_o prelate_n of_o this_o church_n may_v teach_v i_o such_o false_a doctrine_n as_o god_n never_o intend_v i_o shall_v learn_v they_o may_v if_o fallible_a teach_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n that_o heaven_n be_v not_o a_o place_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n nor_o hell_n a_o abode_n of_o eternal_a torment_n such_o heresy_n have_v be_v spread_v by_o those_o who_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n and_o why_o may_v not_o i_o beseech_v you_o all_o christian_a pastor_n abuse_v the_o world_n as_o much_o if_o god_n gracious_a ordinance_n concern_v the_o church_n infallibility_n faill_v we_o 3._o a_o three_o reply_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o teach_v truth_n infallible_o teach_v truth_n infallible_o and_o another_o to_o teach_v it_o infallible_o put_v therefore_o the_o case_n that_o almighty_a god_n foresee_v from_o eternity_n that_o though_o all_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n potentiâ_fw-la antecedente_fw-la antecedent_o may_v err_v yet_o some_o at_o least_o ex_fw-la suppositione_n consequenti_fw-la or_o consequent_o will_v not_o err_v but_o teach_v christian_a verity_n faithful_o suppose_v i_o say_v only_o thus_o much_o we_o have_v sufficient_a assurance_n of_o truth_n actual_o teach_v in_o the_o world_n without_o that_o previous_a infallible_a assistance_n we_o plead_v for_o which_o seem_v here_o useless_a for_o if_o either_o man_n or_o angel_n deliver_v a_o verity_n it_o matter_n nothing_o whether_o it_o arise_v from_o a_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a cause_n our_o faith_n therefore_o have_v strength_n enough_o if_o it_o rely_v on_o truth_n actual_o teach_v though_o the_o teacher_n want_v infallibility_n i_o answer_v if_o god_n foresee_v that_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o his_o church_n will_v not_o err_v or_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n this_o verity_n be_v either_o reveal_v to_o christian_n as_o a_o divine_a truth_n or_o no_o if_o not_o we_o make_v that_o reveal_v which_o be_v not_o reveal_v and_o consequent_o can_v ground_v no_o assurance_n on_o it_o if_o it_o be_v reveal_v and_o know_v to_o we_o this_o very_a revelation_n viz_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o err_v be_v a_o undoubted_a principle_n which_o assent_v to_o by_o true_a faith_n be_v our_o security_n because_o such_o a_o faith_n suppose_v the_o contrary_a actual_a error_n of_o all_o essential_o exclude_v by_o virtue_n of_o god_n revelation_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n tell_v we_o this_o truth_n all_o the_o pastor_n of_o my_o church_n shall_v not_o err_v in_o any_o age_n and_o yet_o in_o sensu_fw-la composito_fw-la of_o this_o revelation_n permit_v they_o to_o err_v universal_o observe_v in_o one_o instance_n the_o security_n we_o have_v by_o force_n of_o such_o a_o revelation_n 4._o suppose_v that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o isaac_n that_o his_o father_n abraham_n will_v not_o sacrifice_v he_o and_o withal_o that_o isaac_n firm_o believe_v that_o verity_n he_o have_v be_v as_o indubitable_o secure_v from_o die_v at_o that_o time_n as_o if_o abraham_n hand_n have_v be_v tie_v in_o chain_n or_o whole_o make_v impotent_a to_o give_v a_o fatal_a blow_n now_o mark_v the_o application_n as_o god_n eternal_a prevision_n of_o abraham_n not_o take_v isaac_n life_n away_o antecedent_o suppose_v the_o cause_n thereof_o actual_o also_o foresee_v antecedent_o i_o say_v in_o a_o forego_n sign_n os_fw-la nature_n so_o likewise_o it_o be_v in_o our_o present_a case_n when_o from_o eternity_n he_o know_v that_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o his_o church_n will_v not_o actual_o err_v and_o reveal_v this_o truth_n in_o time_n his_o all-seing_a wisdom_n previous_o pro_fw-la priori_fw-la signo_fw-la rationis_fw-la foresee_v also_o the_o total_a cause_n of_o their_o actual_a not_o err_v which_o cause_n as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v be_v not_o the_o power_n of_o man_n weak_a variable_a and_o mistake_v reason_n but_o the_o most_o certain_a principle_n of_o god_n special_a and_o divine_a assistance_n when_o therefore_o god_n as_o the_o objection_n suppose_v reveal_v that_o verity_n all_o shall_v not_o err_v he_o do_v not_o only_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o revelation_n impossibilitate_v the_o contrary_a universal_a error_n burr_n warrant_v more_o that_o all_o of_o they_o because_o prevent_v by_o special_a assistance_n can_v not_o err_v and_o this_o be_v what_o scripture_n energitical_o tell_v we_o of_o hell_n gate_n not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v with_o the_o church_n to_o te_fw-mi end_n of_o the_o world_n whereof_o more_o hereafter_o in_o the_o interim_n you_o see_v that_o christian_a oracle_n christian_n faith_n rely_v on_o truth_n teach_v by_o a_o infallible_a oracle_n faith_n do_v not_o only_o rely_v on_o a_o mere_a contingent_a or_o hap_n hazard_v delivery_n of_o truth_n but_o on_o truth_n teach_v by_o a_o assist_v and_o infallible_a oracle_n which_o all_o must_v assert_v or_o grant_v that_o although_o christ_n himself_o by_o a_o suppose_a impossibility_n have_v be_v fallible_a in_o fallible_o no_o certitude_n of_o truth_n have_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v it_o fallible_o his_o preach_v or_o the_o apostle_n likewise_o fallible_a in_o their_o write_v scripture_n and_o only_o because_o liable_a to_o error_n have_v deliver_v god_n verity_n contingent_o by_o chance_n christian_a religion_n may_v yet_o have_v stand_v as_o firm_a and_o unshaken_a as_o now_o it_o be_v which_o be_v a_o horrid_a and_o a_o unheard_a of_o haeresy_n 5._o a_o four_o reply_n we_o can_v prove_v by_o good_a reason_n if_o we_o set_v aside_o some_o ambiguous_a passage_n of_o scripture_n which_o only_o seem_o say_v the_o contrary_a that_o the_o immediate_a proponent_n of_o true_a certain_a christian_a faith_n catholik_o
know_v not_o the_o object_n whereon_o it_o rely_v and_o therefore_o can_v be_v certain_a answer_n it_o be_v a_o catechresis_n or_o a_o abuse_n in_o speech_n to_o say_v that_o either_o faith_n or_o any_o other_o intellectual_a operation_n know_v its_o object_n the_o understanding_n inform_v by_o these_o vital_a act_n know_v if_o we_o speak_v proper_o yet_o if_o we_o go_v on_o in_o that_o vulgar_a language_n significant_a enough_o object_n faith_n can_v no_o more_o scientifical_o prove_v or_o know_v its_o object_n than_o science_n as_o science_n can_v believe_v its_o object_n i_o say_v faith_n as_o faith_n no_o more_o scientifical_o know_v or_o prove_v its_o object_n than_o science_n as_o science_n believe_v what_o it_o know_v this_o prove_v that_o certain_o believe_v whilst_o it_o rest_v immediate_o upon_o god_n revelation_n which_o be_v most_o ample_o prove_v by_o the_o preambulatory_a motive_n now_o touch_v on_o neither_o can_v faith_n scientifical_o know_v or_o prove_v its_o object_n without_o lose_v a_o essential_a predicate_v which_o be_v obscurity_n all_o therefore_o who_o destroy_v not_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o faith_n must_v allow_v it_o the_o great_a certainty_n under_o heaven_n certain_a i'faith_o both_o obscure_a and_o certain_a and_o withal_o grant_v as_o the_o apostle_n do_v that_o it_o be_v argumentum_fw-la non_fw-la apparentium_fw-la of_o a_o dark_a and_o obscure_a tendency_n 14._o you_o will_v reply_v again_o the_o mode_n then_o and_o tendency_n of_o faith_n unto_o its_o object_n be_v here_o suppose_a obscure_a and_o that_o previous_a judgement_n of_o credibility_n after_o all_o possible_a weigh_v of_o those_o motive_n which_o do_v manifest_v the_o credibility_n of_o this_o truth_n god_n speak_v by_o the_o church_n be_v no_o more_o but_o moral_o certain_a ergo_fw-la the_o belief_n of_o that_o truth_n stand_v still_o waver_v upon_o uncertainty_n i_o answer_v if_o these_o motive_n have_v a_o infallible_a connexion_n with_o divine_a revelation_n that_o be_v if_o they_o clear_o convince_v that_o god_n can_v but_o the_o facto_fw-la speak_v to_o christian_n after_o so_o many_o sign_n and_o wonder_n the_o judgement_n previous_a to_o faith_n be_v metaphysical_o certain_a however_o give_v it_o a_o lesser_a certainty_n we_o must_v yet_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n testimonia_fw-la tua_fw-la credibilia_fw-la believe_v the_o motive_n bring_v reason_n to_o a_o invariable_a state_n of_o believe_v facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la nimis_fw-la these_o motive_n well_o consider_v bring_v reason_n to_o a_o invariable_a state_n of_o believe_v in_o so_o much_o that_o none_o can_v disbelieve_v without_o sin_n and_o madness_n again_o we_o must_v say_v that_o judgement_n which_o thorough_o penetrat'_v they_o evacuat'_v both_o doubt_n and_o fear_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o far_o exceed_v all_o degree_n of_o probability_n which_o give_v reason_n the_o freedom_n to_o alter_v a_o opinion_n when_o strong_a proof_n come_v against_o it_o but_o no_o real_a proof_n whatever_o be_v capable_a to_o overthrow_n judgement_n no_o real_a proof_n can_v weaken_v this_o judgement_n the_o certainty_n of_o this_o judgement_n though_o fallacy_n may_v puzzle_v it_o call_v it_o then_o as_o you_o please_v moral_a or_o metaphysical_a evidence_n it_o have_v prove_v its_o own_o strength_n for_o never_o any_o without_o it_o since_o christianity_n begin_v either_o right_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o church_n 15._o this_o judgement_n therefore_o which_o like_o a_o interior_a voice_n suppose_v the_o exterior_a proposition_n of_o the_o church_n summon_n we_o to_o hear_v or_o like_o a_o light_n that_o discover_n god_n own_o language_n deliver_v by_o revelation_n make_v the_o language_n once_o dark_a clear_a enough_o to_o we_o now_o be_v thus_o manifest_v we_o lay_v hold_v on_o it_o and_o yield_v assent_n to_o the_o revelation_n for_o itself_o and_o not_o for_o the_o antecedent_n motive_n and_o because_o this_o revelation_n be_v without_o dispute_n more_o infallible_a than_o any_o truth_n in_o nature_n it_o can_v but_o answerable_o as_o i_o say_v above_o impart_v and_o contribute_v a_o strong_a certainty_n to_o faith_n than_o the_o most_o evident_a principle_n do_v to_o any_o science_n upon_o this_o strong_a fortress_n then_o christian_a religion_n stand_v firm_a which_o undoubted_o imply_v a_o great_a certainty_n then_o only_o moral_a and_o i_o think_v our_o adversary_n will_v say_v so_o too_o certain_a sectary_n own_o a_o faith_n more_o than_o moral_o certain_a who_o though_o they_o take_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n upon_o moral_a certainty_n yet_o they_o believe_v the_o particular_a reveal_v mystery_n contain_v in_o that_o book_n with_o a_o far_o sure_a assent_n than_o what_o be_v only_o moral_a moral_a certainty_n therefore_o necessary_o help_n be_v to_o faith_n though_o faith_n faith_n instance_n how_o moral_a certainty_n help_n be_v too_o faith_n ultimate_o rely_v not_o on_o it_o thus_o you_o know_v the_o will_n love_v good_a either_o real_a or_o apparent_a yet_o need_n be_v not_o to_o love_v the_o cognition_n which_o represent_v goodness_n for_o that_o be_v only_o conditio_fw-la applicans_fw-la a_o condition_n apply_v the_o object_n to_o the_o power_n but_o no_o cause_n of_o love_n i_o may_v also_o adhere_v to_o a_o doctrine_n in_o st._n austin_n for_o st._n augustine_n authority_n upon_o the_o moral_a certain_a word_n of_o one_o who_o tell_v i_o this_o great_a doctor_n say_v so_o why_o therefore_o may_v i_o not_o induce_v by_o far_o strong_a motive_n to_o believe_v this_o truth_n god_n speak_v by_o his_o church_n adhere_v only_o to_o his_o revelation_n without_o touch_v on_o the_o motive_n which_o serve_v well_o as_o condition_n to_o apply_v that_o object_n to_o the_o power_n yet_o want_v the_o strength_n of_o a_o formal_a object_n to_o support_v faith_n but_o more_o of_o this_o subject_a in_o another_o treatise_n where_o we_o shall_v show_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n at_o least_o unevident_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o material_a object_n be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o speculative_a as_o a_o prudent_a submissive_a and_o practical_a certainty_n chap._n vi_o i'faith_o only_o moral_o certain_a be_v no_o faith_n protestant_n have_v no_o moral_a certainty_n of_o protestant_a religion_n 1._o let_v we_o here_o suppose_v contrary_a to_o truth_n that_o all_o religion_n bring_v to_o a_o just_a trial_n come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o a_o high_a moral_a certainty_n which_o though_o it_o imply_v no_o absolute_a impossibility_n of_o be_v false_a yet_o be_v so_o strong_a that_o none_o consider_v the_o great_a evidence_n we_o have_v for_o christianity_n can_v without_o madness_n practical_o doubt_v or_o hold_v it_o otherwise_o then_o it_o be_v most_o moral_o certain_a put_v the_o case_n then_o that_o we_o arrive_v to_o this_o degree_n of_o certitude_n only_o you_o will_v ask_v why_o be_v not_o such_o a_o faith_n steadfast_a enough_o and_o very_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n thus_o far_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o some_o neoterik_v make_v faith_n certain_a and_o strip_v it_o of_o all_o further_a infallibility_n i_o answer_v a_o faith_n only_o moral_o certain_a be_v no_o faith_n and_o prove_v my_o assertion_n that_o whereon_o all_o moral_a certainty_n imaginable_a essential_o depend_v be_v fallible_a and_o may_v deceive_v we_o that_o fallible_a that_o whereon_o faith_n rely_v be_v infallible_a that_o whereon_o moral_a certainty_n depend_v be_v fallible_a whereon_o true_a faith_n essential_o depend_v which_o be_v divine_a revelation_n be_v infallible_a and_o can_v deceive_v ergo_fw-la what_o ever_o ground_n be_v a_o moral_a certainty_n only_o which_o may_v deceive_v be_v as_o unproportionate_a to_o uphold_v true_a faith_n as_o revelation_n own_v as_o divine_a be_v unfit_a to_o ground_v a_o fallible_a opinion_n as_o long_o therefore_o as_o the_o object_n of_o pure_a moral_a certainty_n become_v not_o god_n revelation_n which_o can_v never_o be_v so_o long_a faith_n can_v rely_v on_o it_o or_o if_o it_o do_v rest_n here_o it_o mistake_v its_o object_n and_o call_v tbat_v revelation_n which_o be_v none_o the_o ultimate_a reason_n of_o this_o discourse_n stand_v principle_n two_o sure_a principle_n firm_a upon_o these_o two_o principle_n 1._o all_o moral_a certainty_n may_v be_v false_a 2._o god_n revelation_n because_o it_o be_v infallible_a as_o god_n essential_o exclude_v that_o weak_a degree_n of_o certitude_n and_o can_v be_v false_a which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o plain_a term_n god_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v speak_v any_o thing_n only_o moral_o certain_a 2._o that_o all_o moral_a certainty_n may_v be_v false_a be_v evident_a for_o invent_v the_o strong_a imaginable_a as_o this_o be_v distinguish_v from_o physical_a or_o metaphysical_a certainty_n and_o say_v what_o you_o will_v within_o that_o compass_n viz._n rome_n and_o constantinople_n be_v now_o city_n in_o be_v or_o that_o when_o one_o in_o a_o large_a city_n sitt'_v imprison_v at_o noonday_n and_o hear_v no_o body_n yet_o say_v most_o sure_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o place_n be_v neither_o dead_a nor_o asleep_a
oppose_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n as_o false_a and_o paradoxal_a can_v be_v moral_o certain_a if_o this_o principle_n hold_v good_a it_o if_o follow_v that_o much_o and_o very_o much_o too_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n want_v also_o moral_a certainty_n because_o a_o very_a great_a number_n of_o christian_n oppugn_v it_o as_o fall_v some_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n other_o the_o real_a presence_n other_o purgatory_n other_o prage_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o protestant_n after_o their_o long_a study_n deny_v all_o these_o at_o once_o therefore_o such_o doctrine_n can_v be_v moral_o certain_a 7._o i_o answer_v first_o this_o objection_n without_o doubt_n prove_v too_o much_o and_o impugn'_v a_o certain_a truth_n of_o christianity_n for_o tell_v i_o when_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o st._n hierom_n say_v groan_v under_o arianism_n see_v that_o haeresy_n far_o and_o near_o diffuse_v do_v that_o opposition_n weaken_v the_o moral_a certainty_n which_o orthodox_n christian_n have_v then_o of_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o essence_n and_o we_o only_o speak_v now_o of_o moral_a evidence_n antecedent_n force_n ancient_a motive_n never_o loose_v their_o force_n to_o faith_n if_o so_o the_o motive_n moral_o evident_a for_o the_o belief_n of_o that_o mystery_n cease_v or_o at_o least_o lose_v their_o ancient_a vigour_n which_o be_v false_o and_o one_o great_a realon_n be_v because_o that_o true_a doctrine_n of_o a_o trinity_n have_v no_o first_o rise_v nor_o appear_v like_o a_o new_a paradox_n in_o protestancy_n catholic_n doctrine_n have_v no_o first_o rise_v like_o protestancy_n the_o world_n as_o protestancy_n do_v peep_v out_o like_o a_o unknown_a stranger_n when_o luther_n and_o calvin_n first_o broach_v it_o no_o that_o catholic_n doctrine_n be_v universal_o believe_v by_o all_o faithful_a christian_n before_o arian_n be_v bear_v the_o motive_n therefore_o which_o make_v it_o evident_o credible_a before_o arius_n continue_v firm_a notwithstanding_o his_o opposition_n and_o still_o induce_v christian_n to_o believe_v as_o they_o have_v do_v former_o which_o reason_n also_o hold_v good_a to_o our_o present_a purpose_n and_o do_v not_o only_o give_v a_o immense_a disparity_n between_o the_o moral_a evident_a certainty_n of_o catholic_n religion_n and_o what_o ever_o certainty_n haeresy_n can_v pretend_v to_o but_o also_o demonstrative_o make_v both_o protestancy_n and_o all_o haeresy_n improbable_a and_o this_o truth_n i_o shall_v evidence_n have_v first_o clear_v the_o fallacy_n which_o intricate_v the_o reply_n now_o in_o hand_n chap._n vii_o how_o sectary_n err_v in_o the_o search_n make_v after_o religion_n of_o their_o weak_a and_o improbable_a opposition_n the_o objection_n be_v more_o full_o answer_v 1._o our_o sectary_n and_o all_o heretic_n err_v gross_o in_o a_o main_a principle_n which_o breed_v nothing_o but_o confusion_n to_o themselves_o and_o other_o thus_o it_o be_v only_o heretic_n error_n in_o their_o search_n of_o true_a religion_n some_o for_o scripture_n only_o in_o their_o search_n after_o true_a religion_n they_o run_v on_o but_o how_o extra_n viam_fw-la in_o a_o wrong_n and_o mistake_a way_n some_o will_v find_v it_o out_o by_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o few_o exact_o read_v and_o none_o can_v understand_v by_o his_o private_a judgement_n these_o err_v not_o know_v scripture_n and_o may_v as_o st._n austin_n note_v epist_n 40._o ad_fw-la deo_fw-la gratias_fw-la end_v their_o life_n before_o they_o end_v difficulty_n this_o doctrine_n other_o fly_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n doctrine_n way_n other_o fly_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o loose_v themselves_o for_o what_o private_a man_n can_v now_o by_o his_o mere_a read_n moral_o ascertain_v i_o or_o any_o of_o the_o indubitable_a universal_a sense_n of_o that_o doctrine_n whereas_o all_o which_o the_o church_n hold_v then_o be_v not_o write_v of_o what_o be_v write_v part_n be_v lose_v and_o much_o of_o what_o remain_v be_v as_o experience_n teach_v only_o other_o be_v for_o reason_n only_o liable_a to_o cavil_n and_o misinterpretation_n other_o and_z it_z be_v a_o socinian_n jog_v decide_v all_o by_o weak_a humane_a reason_n as_o if_o forsooth_o wit_n alone_o be_v able_a to_o fathom_n god_n incomprehensible_a secret_n other_o final_o without_o faith_n ohers_n stay_n on_o the_o difficil_n mystery_n of_o faith_n further_a inspection_n stand_v poer_v on_o the_o material_a object_n or_o mystery_n of_o faith_n and_o after_o many_o a_o misspend_v hour_n ask_v at_o last_o of_o a_o very_a unskilful_a master_n their_o own_o weak_a reason_n what_o it_o judge_v of_o these_o mystery_n loft_n all_o labour_n loft_n if_o reason_n as_o it_o often_o fall_v out_o find'_v they_o difficil_n it_o cast_n they_o away_o as_o mere_a improbability_n thus_o the_o arian_n reject_n a_o trinity_n the_o pelagian_a original_a sin_n the_o protestant_a christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n because_o they_o run_v into_o dark_a matter_n whick_z only_a puzzle_n reason_n and_o wave_v those_o further_a consideration_n which_o clear_a all_o and_o make_v faith_n if_o not_o evident_o certain_a in_o attestante_fw-la at_o least_o evident_o credible_a 2._o i_o say_v therefore_o the_o most_o easy_a way_n to_o find_v out_o true_a religion_n or_o the_o first_o unquestionable_a evidence_n evident_a the_o way_n to_o find_v out_o true_a religion_n be_v easy_a and_o evident_a which_o point_v it_o out_o lie_v open_a and_o be_v obvious_a to_o all_o before_o we_o either_o examine_v particular_a mystery_n of_o faith_n or_o enter_v upon_o proof_n draw_v from_o scripture_n council_n or_o father_n it_o be_v true_a from_o these_o ground_n we_o have_v irrefragable_a argument_n against_o all_o sectary_n but_o can_v they_o think_v that_o the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n have_v put_v as_o it_o be_v religion_n so_o far_o out_o of_o sight_n or_o set_v it_o at_o so_o great_a a_o distance_n from_o we_o that_o none_o can_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o before_o scripture_n father_n and_o those_o large_a volume_n of_o council_n be_v exact_o examine_v whic_a few_o read_v and_o few_o understand_v no_o certain_o true_a religion_n evidence_v itself_o and_o be_v itself_o true_a religion_n evidence_v itself_o most_o discernible_a from_o error_n by_o a_o other_o clear_a and_o conspicuous_a light_n which_o none_o can_v but_o see_v unless_o he_o wilful_o shut_v his_o eye_n antecedent_o to_o the_o perusal_n of_o scripture_n father_n etc._n etc._n this_o light_n or_o evidence_n we_o may_v right_o call_v god_n own_o persuasive_a language_n whereby_o he_o speak_v to_o reason_n before_o we_o elicit_v faith_n and_o rational_o convince_v all_o of_o this_o general_a truth_n one_o society_n of_o christian_n there_o be_v wherein_o my_o eternal_a truth_n be_v teach_v this_o i_o make_v manifest_a by_o evident_a sign_n by_o the_o light_n of_o clear_a and_o undeniable_a motive_n whereof_o none_o can_v but_o most_o unreasonable_o doubt_n so_o it_o be_v say_v origen_n hom._n 30._o in_o matth._n ecclesia_fw-la plena_fw-la est_fw-la fulgore_fw-la ab_fw-la oriente_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la occidentem_fw-la the_o church_n like_o a_o resplendent_a sun_n cast_v out_o lustre_n from_o east_n to_o west_n and_o they_o be_v blind_a who_o see_v not_o so_o clear_a a_o brightness_n thus_o much_o premise_v 3._o i_o answer_v to_o the_o objection_n above_o and_o say_v doctrine_n sectary_n groundless_a impugning_a catholic_n doctrine_n though_o thousand_o more_o than_o sectary_n impugn_v part_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n yet_o as_o long_o as_o god_n demonstrative_o evidence_v the_o absolute_a credibility_n of_o that_o church_n which_o teach_v it_o by_o such_o rational_a prudent_a and_o press_v motive_n as_o have_v gain_v million_o of_o soul_n to_o believe_v our_o adversary_n in_o band_v against_o church_n doctrine_n only_o bewray_v malice_n ignorance_n or_o both_o and_o do_v no_o more_o but_o cast_a dirt_n at_o a_o sun_n which_o providence_n maugre_o their_o weak_a attempt_n will_v have_v to_o shine_v whilst_o christianity_n last_v so_o urgent_a therefore_o so_o illustrious_a be_v these_o motive_n as_o i_o shall_v present_o declare_v for_o the_o total_a belief_n of_o what_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n teach_v that_o they_o do_v not_o only_o suppress_v and_o silence_v such_o weak_a opponent_n but_o also_o make_v protestancy_n and_o all_o other_o sect_n improbable_a and_o incredible_a the_o reason_n hereof_o most_o ample_o lay_v forth_o in_o the_o three_o next_o follow_v chapter_n stand_v sure_o on_o these_o two_o undeniable_a principle_n first_o that_o church_n which_o christ_n jesus_n found_v and_o church_n christ_n manifest_a to_o all_o and_o so_o be_v his_o church_n his_o bless_a intention_n be_v to_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o it_o be_v so_o eminent_o glorious_a so_o clear_o mark_v with_o unboubted_a sign_n and_o most_o legible_a character_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o simple_a man_n if_o he_o follow_v reason_n may_v find_v
it_o out_o and_o believe_v secure_o no_o other_o but_o the_o credible_a the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n only_a evidence_v credible_a roman_n catholic_n church_n only_a be_v thus_o evidence_v se_fw-la chap._n 8._o 9_o 10._o the_o second_o principle_n this_o holy_a church_n which_o age_n after_o age_n without_o any_o late_a rise_n like_o that_o of_o protestancy_n have_v stand_v constant_o ever_o since_o christ_n and_o draw_v whole_a kingdom_n and_o nation_n to_o its_o belief_n be_v either_o on_o set_v purpose_v raise_v up_o by_o world_n it_o be_v not_o found_v by_o christ_n to_o cheat_v the_o world_n almighty_a god_n and_o conserve_v in_o be_v for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n to_o cheat_v the_o world_n into_o a_o false_a belief_n which_o be_v impious_a to_o think_v or_o must_v be_v own_v as_o it_o deserve_v for_o the_o only_a undoubted_a most_o manifest_a and_o glorious_o evidence_v church_n of_o christ_n se_fw-la chap._n 8._o n._n 5._o 6._o 4._o you_o will_v say_v notwithstanding_o all_o the_o glorious_a mark_n we_o can_v lay_v claim_n to_o and_o grace_v our_o church_n withal_o very_o many_o learned_a man_n do_v oppose_v it_o if_o then_o the_o argument_n above_o have_v force_v this_o very_a opposition_n of_o so_o many_o weaken'_v much_o and_o take_v of_o no_o few_o degree_n of_o that_o moral_a certainty_n we_o stand_v for_o contra._n very_o many_o learned_a man_n oppose_v both_o apostolical_a and_o of_o 'slight_o opposition_n not_o value_v of_o primitive_a doctrine_n atheist_n band_n against_o god_n and_o jew_n against_o christ_n the_o arian_n yet_o impugn_v a_o trinity_n be_v our_o sectary_n affright_v upon_o that_o account_n or_o weaken_v in_o their_o moral_a certainty_n of_o thar_z mystery_n whilst_o they_o believe_v it_o no._n every_o trivial_a and_o slight_a opposition_n therefore_o make_v against_o a_o verity_n which_o strong_o defend'_v and_o powerful_o plead_v forsit_v self_n can_v neither_o daunt_v nor_o discountenance_v it_o the_o opposition_n then_o in_o our_o present_a matter_n if_o to_o the_o purpose_n principle_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v deep_o rational_a and_o bring_v to_o certain_a principle_n ought_v to_o be_v well_o ground_v and_o deep_o rational_a ground_v i_o say_v not_o upon_o what_o this_o or_o that_o private_a person_n by_o his_o sole_a fallible_a bosom_n thought_n hold_v reasonable_a for_o so_o every_o arian_n will_v make_v good_a his_o haeresy_n but_o the_o opposition_n if_o rational_a must_v go_v further_o and_o rest_n at_o last_o upon_o a_o solid_a and_o satisfactory_a principle_n which_o well_o lay_v forth_o gentle_o force_v every_o prudent_a church_n sectary_n destitute_a of_o any_o rational_a proof_n against_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o disinterest_v man_n to_o acquiesce_v and_o yield_v to_o it_o but_o this_o can_v be_v do_v in_o our_o present_a case_n for_o sectary_n be_v so_o utter_o destitute_a of_o what_o ever_o look_n like_o a_o rational_a proof_n or_o any_o receive_a principle_n they_o be_v so_o disenable_v to_o speak_v with_o sense_n against_o the_o know_a evidence_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n that_o and_o i_o do_v assert_v it_o bold_o they_o shall_v as_o soon_o turn_v christianity_n out_o of_o the_o world_n as_o rational_o abate_v or_o lessen_v the_o plain_a and_o undisputable_a evidence_n of_o this_o one_o christian_a society_n 5._o this_o bless_a society_n therefore_o stand_v thus_o upon_o firm_a church_n solid_n principle_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n ground_n upon_o solid_a and_o undoubted_a principle_n i_o show_v you_o say_v this_o church_n those_o very_a motive_n which_o ancient_o countenance_v the_o preach_v of_o christ_n and_o convert_v the_o world_n and_o these_o plead_v for_o i_o with_o what_o urgent_a contrary_a proof_n can_v you_o my_o good_a protestant_n deface_v such_o glorious_a mark_n of_o truth_n or_o make_v they_o either_o insignificant_a or_o forceles_a argument_n be_v this_o weighty_o do_v by_o draw_v a_o few_o trivial_a gloss_n trifle_n sectary_n trifle_n out_o of_o mistake_a scripture_n by_o tell_v we_o of_o council_n contradict_v council_n by_o quote_v our_o author_n wrongful_o by_o relate_v a_o story_n not_o worth_a the_o hear_n of_o a_o pope_n or_o prelate_n be_v these_o manly_a proof_n think_v you_o or_o sufficient_a to_o eclipse_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n toy_n trifle_n frivolous_a i_o show_v you_o again_o church_n other_o evidence_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n say_v this_o church_n that_o the_o most_o wise_a of_o the_o world_n the_o most_o learned_a the_o most_o holy_a their_o number_n be_v numberless_a notwithstanding_o the_o opposition_n make_v against_o i_o have_v age_n after_o age_n even_o before_o and_o after_o it_o the_o most_o wise_a and_o learned_a of_o the_o world_n notwithstanding_o the_o opposition_n make_v against_o this_o church_n live_v and_o dye_v in_o it_o your_o haeresy_n begin_v constant_o profess_v my_o faith_n live_v and_o dye_v in_o it_o without_o change_n and_o alteration_n tell_v i_o be_v these_o million_o of_o soul_n learned_a and_o unlearned_a for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o all_o mad_a all_o besot_v all_o seduce_v by_o foolery_n it_o be_v worse_a than_o madness_n to_o say_v so_o here_o then_o be_v a_o principle_n in_o moral_a matter_n the_o sure_a imaginable_a for_o our_o church_n this_o nubes_fw-la testium_fw-la alone_a and_o of_o such_o witness_n which_o be_v ever_o to_o be_v reflect_v on_o make_v it_o evident_o credible_a and_o by_o what_o contrary_a rational_a proof_n or_o receive_v principle_n can_v our_o adversary_n enervate_a or_o make_v null_a the_o testimony_n foolery_n all_o these_o wise_a and_o learned_a can_v be_v suppose_v mad_a or_o seduce_v by_o foolery_n of_o these_o innumerable_a giver_n in_o of_o evidence_n who_o lead_v on_o by_o motive_n which_o they_o think_v rational_a and_o what_o pass_v for_o reason_n among_o so_o many_o and_o such_o qualify_a person_n aught_o to_o pass_v for_o reason_n with_o all_o believe_v this_o church_n and_o die_v in_o it_o happy_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o have_v our_o sectary_n salomon_n wisdom_n argument_n protestant_n can_v answer_v this_o one_o argument_n they_o will_v yet_o be_v unable_a to_o satisfy_v this_o one_o argument_n probable_o much_o less_o to_o evidence_n it_o forceles_a upon_o either_o solid_a proof_n or_o any_o receive_a principle_n the_o reason_n be_v no_o proof_n can_v vainquish_v a_o evident_a verity_n but_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a verity_n that_o god_n cheat_v truth_n no_o proof_n against_o evident_a truth_n not_o the_o world_n by_o mean_n of_o so_o numerous_a a_o multitude_n of_o catholic_n professor_n it_o be_v a_o evident_a verity_n that_o all_o those_o wise_a and_o learned_a catholic_n be_v neither_o mad_a nor_o for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n delude_v by_o foolery_n he_o therefore_o who_o when_o rational_a proof_n fail_v can_v more_o if_o sectary_n slight_a such_o witness_n they_o slight_a themselves_o much_o more_o speak_v a_o reasonable_a word_n against_o these_o million_o of_o witness_n but_o slight_n and_o undervalue_v they_o do_v not_o only_o slight_v the_o great_a authority_n on_o earth_n but_o also_o if_o he_o be_v a_o protestant_n must_v slight_a protestancy_n if_o a_o arian_n arianism_n for_o these_o sect_n have_v neither_o authority_n nor_o witness_n comparable_a to_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 6._o for_o conclusion_n of_o this_o matter_n be_v please_v to_o note_v that_o as_o our_o adversary_n be_v destitute_a of_o rational_a proof_n reducible_a to_o receive_v principle_n whilst_o they_o impugn_v the_o clear_a evidence_n of_o our_o church_n so_o they_o also_o want_v they_o in_o all_o other_o particular_a controversy_n for_o whether_o they_o go_v about_o to_o oppose_v our_o doctrine_n principle_n soctary_n never_o come_v to_o principle_n or_o to_o prove_v their_o own_o you_o can_v never_o draw_v from_o they_o proof_n bring_v to_o a_o undoubted_a principle_n as_o i_o shall_v most_o ample_o show_v hereafter_o they_o be_v opponent_n it_o be_v true_a when_o they_o tell_v we_o we_o have_v change_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n bring_v in_o novelty_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o we_o hear_v such_o talk_n but_o where_o be_v the_o propositio_fw-la quiescens_fw-la or_o ground_a proof_n to_o make_v this_o charge_n good_a they_o say_v so_o and_o that_o be_v all_o and_o yet_o if_o possible_a they_o be_v worse_o at_o it_o in_o prove_v their_o own_o doctrine_n take_v here_o one_o instance_n you_o shall_v have_v more_o hereafter_o we_o demand_v propose_v a_o question_n propose_v upon_o what_o rational_a proof_n can_v these_o man_n believe_v the_o sacred_a mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o deny_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v they_o force_v to_o admit_v of_o the_o one_o and_o proof_n protestant_n believe_v one_o mystery_n reject_v another_o with_o out_o proof_n reject_v the_o other_o by_o clear_a and_o manifest_a scripture_n evident_o no._n scripture_n be_v without_o controversy_n more_o
usque_fw-la ad_fw-la perfectum_fw-la diem_fw-la which_o as_o origen_n say_v cast_v such_o lustre_n from_o east_n to_o west_n that_o all_o eye_n behold_v it_o the_o other_o of_o protestancy_n reason_n find_v so_o naked_o poor_a so_o destitute_a of_o light_n and_o motive_n that_o its_o mean_a appearance_n make_v it_o despicable_a and_o not_o worth_a the_o look_n at_o 5._o brief_o then_o i_o argue_v for_o the_o moral_a evidence_n of_o our_o catholic_n roman_a religion_n a_o religion_n which_o after_o the_o just_a condemnation_n of_o so_o many_o undoubted_a and_o acknowledge_v heretic_n have_v permanent_o stand_v visible_o victorious_a for_o 16._o hundred_o year_n and_o which_o never_o yet_o be_v religion_n moral_a evidence_n for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n condemn_v by_o any_o know_a true_a church_n of_o error_n or_o haeresy_n a_o religion_n which_o have_v draw_v thousand_o of_o infidel_n and_o alien_n from_o christ_n to_o its_o belief_n and_o which_o have_v have_v age_n after_o age_n whole_a million_o of_o constant_a professor_n whereof_o innumerable_a be_v not_o only_o most_o wise_a learned_a and_o virtuous_a but_o willing_o also_o lose_v their_o temporal_a fortune_n and_o courageous_o shed_v their_o blood_n for_o it_o such_o a_o religion_n i_o say_v which_o have_v believer_n it_o have_v gain_v innumerable_a believer_n thus_o perswasive_o wrought_v on_o the_o reason_n of_o so_o many_o wise_a and_o learned_a etc._n etc._n and_o gain_v to_o it_o whole_a multitude_n of_o believer_n and_o martyr_n show_v by_o this_o one_o admirable_a effect_n have_v we_o no_o other_o proof_n strength_n and_o evidence_n enough_o to_o convince_v the_o most_o obdurate_a hart_n in_o the_o world_n for_o either_o as_o i_o note_v above_o we_o must_v say_v that_o all_o these_o wise_a and_o glorious_a man_n be_v mad_a as_o be_v induce_v by_o foolery_n to_o believe_v and_o die_v as_o they_o do_v or_o grant_v that_o they_o have_v clear_a and_o undeniable_a evidence_n to_o warrant_v their_o belief_n for_o which_o we_o now_o plead_v nay_o i_o say_v more_o so_o general_a a_o mistake_n and_o delusion_n delusion_n god_n providence_n over_o his_o church_n can_v not_o permit_v so_o general_a a_o delusion_n be_v upon_o a_o other_o account_v most_o impossible_a for_o that_o great_a care_n and_o providence_n which_o god_n have_v ever_o of_o his_o church_n can_v not_o permit_v if_o true_a faith_n be_v in_o the_o world_n from_o the_o five_o age_n to_o luther_n so_o learned_a so_o numerous_a and_o precious_a a_o part_n of_o christian_n as_o roman_a catholic_n be_v in_o those_o day_n to_o be_v lead_v into_o a_o falss_o belief_n by_o either_o trivial_a or_o foolish_a motive_n if_o we_o swallow_v down_o this_o vast_a impossibility_n we_o must_v conclude_v impossibility_n note_v well_o a_o vast_a impossibility_n that_o for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n god_n have_v no_o true_a church_n at_o all_o for_o none_o call_v christian_n be_v then_o in_o be_v but_o catholic_n only_o and_o know_v condemn_v heretic_n but_o of_o this_o particular_a most_o large_o hereafter_o in_o the_o interim_n 6._o i_o propose_v a_o second_o and_o most_o convince_a argument_n false_a no_o religion_n exit_fw-la terminis_fw-la evident_o true_a or_o false_a no_o religion_n whether_o it_o be_v that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o mahomet_n that_o of_o catholic_n or_o sectary_n either_o be_v or_o can_v be_v ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la evident_o true_a or_o false_a neither_o can_v a_o bare_a affirmation_n for_o its_o truth_n without_o far_a proof_n force_n religion_n convince_v argument_n for_o catholic_n religion_n reason_n to_o accept_v of_o it_o otherwise_o every_o man_n may_v now_o begin_v a_o new_a religion_n as_o he_o list_n and_o sufficient_o warrant_v it_o by_o only_a say_n he_o speak_v truth_n true_a religion_n therefore_o must_v have_v its_o evidence_n and_o know_v discernibility_n from_o error_n before_o it_o be_v accept_v of_o and_o now_o because_o both_o catholic_n and_o all_o sectary_n suppose_v that_o the_o religion_n which_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n teach_v be_v indubitable_o and_o clear_o evidence_v by_o mark_n and_o convince_a sign_n of_o truth_n we_o be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o ponder_v well_o those_o motive_n which_o make_v evident_a that_o first_o christian_a and_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o next_o to_o consider_v whether_o the_o very_a like_o motive_n have_v not_o evidence_v the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n age_n after_o age._n brief_o the_o great_a and_o most_o visible_a evidence_n for_o that_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v to_o omit_v other_o first_o most_o know_v and_o unquestioned_a miracle_n the_o dead_a rose_n up_o to_o life_n the_o blind_a see_v the_o deaf_a hear_v devil_n be_v eject_v out_o of_o possess_v person_n &c._n &c._n 2._o admirable_a conversion_n wrought_v upon_o infidel_n and_o gentile_n 3._o a_o examplar_n neglect_v of_o the_o world_n conjoin_v with_o great_a sanctity_n of_o life_n etc._n etc._n but_o these_o evidence_n be_v clear_a evidence_n apostolical_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n conversion_n etc._n etc._n be_v the_o church_n evidence_n without_o dispute_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o for_o no_o other_o religion_n therefore_o if_o those_o primitive_a miracle_n that_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n those_o great_a conversion_n that_o admirable_a sanctity_n of_o the_o first_o apostolical_a man_n perswasive_o induce_v alien_n from_o truth_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v yet_o as_o powerful_a and_o forceable_a to_o induce_v all_o who_o follow_v reason_n to_o believe_v both_o the_o antecedent_n church_n of_o rome_n and_o this_o modern_a church_n also_o now_o in_o be_v no_o tolerable_a reply_n can_v be_v give_v to_o this_o argument_n will_v our_o new_a man_n deny_v eminent_a sanctity_n to_o innumerable_a who_o profess_v our_o roman_a religion_n the_o contrary_n be_v evident_a by_o all_o those_o apparent_a sanctity_n evidence_n of_o sanctity_n sign_n whereby_o sanctity_n can_v be_v know_v in_o this_o mortal_a life_n witness_v the_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n manifest_a in_o thousand_o the_o charitable_a alm_n deed_n of_o secular_o the_o austere_a and_o mortify_a life_n of_o religious_a whereof_o more_o hereafter_o etc._n etc._n o_o but_o all_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o saint_n like_o the_o apostle_n frivolous_a no_o more_o be_v all_o the_o primitive_a pastor_n or_o people_n for_o 4._o or_o 5._o age_n after_o christ_n so_o eminent_o holy_a do_v out_o protestant_n arrive_v to_o that_o degree_n of_o sanctity_n yet_o thousand_o then_o be_v and_o be_v still_o without_o debate_n innocent_a holy_a and_o virtuous_a 7._o again_o can_v sectary_n deny_v those_o prodigious_a conversion_n of_o nation_n wrought_v by_o this_o church_n upon_o heathen_n and_o alien_n from_o christ_n if_o they_o do_v all_o be_v upon_o record_n both_o friend_n and_o enemy_n attribute_v these_o wonder_n to_o that_o mother_n church_n tell_v i_o i_o beseech_v you_o who_o convert_v our_o once_o most_o catholic_n conversion_n evidence_n of_o conversion_n england_n to_o the_o faith_n it_o ancient_o have_v but_o roman_a catholic_n who_o reduce_v germany_n polony_n spain_n france_n denmark_n swedland_n and_o the_o low-countries_n to_o the_o same_o faith_n they_o be_v man_n unite_v in_o belief_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o yet_o send_v missioner_n to_o those_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o china_n japony_n and_o other_o place_n this_o church_n only_o do_v god_n that_o service_n whilst_o our_o minister_n sit_v at_o home_n with_o ease_n tie_v fast_o to_o their_o fine_a wife_n and_o fat_a benefice_n if_o final_o they_o doubt_v of_o our_o miracle_n they_o may_v as_o well_o doubt_v of_o the_o sun_n light_n at_o noon_n day_n so_o conspicuous_a they_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o this_o church_n and_o be_v still_o to_o this_o present_a age._n whereof_o more_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n all_o i_o ask_v now_o be_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o moral_o certain_a that_o the_o world_n have_v once_o in_o it_o such_o man_n as_o be_v call_v alexander_n caesar_n pompey_n cicero_n yes_o as_o great_a evidence_n we_o have_v for_o most_o eminent_a miracle_n do_v by_o this_o church_n constant_a tradition_n know_v record_n church_n evidence_n of_o miracle_n do_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n undoubted_a history_n convey_v they_o to_o we_o all_o which_o none_o can_v deny_v without_o wilful_a perverseness_n and_o a_o high_a degree_n of_o impudence_n yet_o suppose_v man_n so_o impertinent_o bold_a as_o to_o question_v some_o miracle_n whether_o for_o example_n ever_o since_o the_o primitive_a age_n any_o be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n whether_o devil_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o whether_o sight_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o blind_a strength_n to_o the_o lame_a all_o these_o be_v upon_o record_n yet_o miracle_n conversion_n of_o nation_n a_o great_a miracle_n they_o can_v deny_v that_o grand_a and_o convince_a miracle_n of_o conversion_n which_o be_v proof_n enough_o as_o st._n
austin_n learned_o consider_n lib._n 22._o civitat_fw-la cap._n 5._o chief_o at_o those_o word_n discourse_n st._n augustine_n discourse_n si_fw-mi rem_fw-la credibilem_fw-la crediderunt_fw-la if_o man_n say_v he_o believe_v a_o thing_n credible_a he_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o like_a be_v of_o any_o other_o mystery_n in_o faith_n videant_fw-la quam_fw-la sint_fw-la stolidi_fw-la se_fw-la what_o fool_n those_o be_v who_o will_v not_o believe_v si_fw-mi autem_fw-la res_fw-la incredibilis_fw-la est_fw-la if_o the_o thing_n be_v incredible_a this_o be_v most_o incredible_a yea_o and_o the_o strange_a miracle_n of_o all_o that_o that_o which_o be_v deem_v incredible_a gain_v belief_n the_o whole_a world_n over_o the_o argument_n be_v convince_a and_o prove_v as_o well_o that_o those_o after_o conversion_n wrought_v upon_o infidel_n by_o roman_a evangelical_n preacher_n be_v admirable_a and_o true_o miraculous_a million_o have_v be_v convert_v by_o they_o these_o numerous_a multitude_n therefore_o of_o believer_n be_v either_o draw_v on_o by_o foolery_n if_o so_o christian_n foolery_n can_v not_o induce_v million_o to_o contemn_v the_o world_n and_o become_v good_a christian_n they_o be_v mad_a and_o here_o lie_v the_o miracle_n say_v st._n austin_n viz._n that_o foolery_n can_v induce_v so_o many_o to_o contemn_v the_o world_n and_o become_v good_a christian_n or_o contrariwise_o they_o believe_v this_o roman_a catholic_n church_n upon_o weighty_a rational_a motive_n if_o so_o why_o be_v not_o our_o protestant_n oblige_v to_o believe_v as_o they_o do_v upon_o the_o same_o prudent_a inducement_n if_o they_o tell_v we_o the_o church_n teach_v a_o other_o doctrine_n when_o these_o great_a conversion_n be_v make_v than_o it_o teach_v now_o they_o do_v not_o only_o most_o unlearned_o suppose_v what_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v yea_o can_v be_v prove_v because_o utter_o false_a but_o also_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n to_o the_o purpose_n for_o both_o our_o progenitor_n in_o england_n and_o innumerable_a other_o be_v draw_v from_o error_n by_o popish_a preacher_n and_o even_o in_o this_o present_a age_n the_o like_a glorious_a conversion_n be_v and_o have_v be_v wrought_v by_o these_o bless_a man_n labour_n miraculous_a why_o these_o conversion_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v miraculous_a and_o they_o only_o now_o if_o you_o ask_v upon_o what_o account_v such_o conversion_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v miraculous_a this_o one_o instance_n answer_v you_o imagine_v you_o see_v a_o little_a flock_n of_o sheep_n or_o lamb_n send_v into_o a_o desert_n full_a of_o ravenous_a wolf_n withal_o that_o these_o lamb_n though_o at_o first_o many_o be_v devour_v yet_o at_o length_n render_v the_o wolf_n so_o tame_a and_o so_o abate_v their_o rage_n that_o they_o become_v like_o lamb_n mild_a and_o submissive_a will_v you_o not_o say_v that_o such_o a_o work_n be_v prodigious_a and_o above_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n behold_v say_v our_o saviour_n luc._n 10._o i_o send_v you_o as_o lamb_n among_o wolf_n and_o these_o you_o must_v subdue_v it_o be_v do_v behold_v say_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n i_o send_v my_o preacher_n still_o abroad_o to_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v change_v wolf_n into_o lamb_n that_o be_v i_o have_v make_v infidel_n once_o rebellious_a to_o christ_n subject_a to_o his_o law_n the_o vicious_a i_o have_v make_v virtuous_a and_o bring_v thousand_o of_o they_o to_o no_o other_o religion_n but_o popery_n this_o work_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n be_v do_v et_fw-la est_fw-la mirabile_fw-la in_o oculis_fw-la nostris_fw-la and_o it_o be_v admirable_a have_v our_o protestant_n make_v such_o change_n or_o draw_v so_o many_o infidel_n to_o their_o new_a faith_n they_o will_v have_v talk_v of_o wonder_n but_o because_o catholic_n conversion_n why_o protestant_n flight_n miracle_n and_o conversion_n gain_v they_o to_o the_o old_a religion_n all_o be_v nothing_o so_o it_o be_v they_o have_v no_o miracle_n and_o therefore_o slight_v they_o no_o conversion_n and_o thersore_n undervalue_v they_o a_o strange_a proceed_n those_o very_a wonder_n which_o induce_v the_o world_n to_o become_v christian_a because_o they_o yet_o eminent_o appear_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n must_v lie_v under_o contempt_n those_o ancient_a proof_n of_o christianity_n be_v now_o proofle_n those_o primitive_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n conversion_n &c._n &c._n the_o church_n be_v in_o fault_n for_o show_v they_o can_v be_v see_v by_o these_o late_a man_n who_o yet_o have_v eye_n to_o discern_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n by_o its_o own_o light_n and_o majesty_n and_o by_o the_o way_n mark_v the_o paradox_n the_o exterior_a word_n of_o a_o bible_n for_o of_o these_o sectary_n a_o paradox_n of_o sectary_n we_o only_o speak_v be_v evidence_n enough_o for_o scripture_n yet_o those_o glorious_a work_n now_o mention_v be_v forsooth_o no_o evidence_n of_o this_o church_n the_o very_a majesty_n of_o the_o style_n ascertain_n these_o man_n that_o god_n speak_v by_o that_o sacred_a book_n yet_o all_o the_o perceptible_a miraculous_a majesty_n which_o the_o church_n show_v we_o can_v persuade_v they_o that_o he_o speak_v by_o this_o visible_a audible_a and_o most_o know_a oracle_n of_o truth_n a_o bible_n well_o know_v its_o true_a upon_o other_o ground_n to_o be_v most_o sacred_a discover_v its_o divinity_n and_o immediate_o prove_v who_o write_v it_o yet_o a_o church_n so_o glorious_o mark_v say_v nothing_o who_o direct_v it_o be_v this_o reason_n or_o religion_n think_v you_o can_v reason_n produce_v this_o unreasonable_a thought_n in_o any_o that_o the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n have_v permit_v so_o eminent_a so_o numerous_a so_o pious_a so_o learned_a and_o so_o long_o stand_v a_o multitude_n of_o christian_n as_o catholic_n have_v be_v and_o yet_o be_v to_o be_v cheat_v into_o error_n even_o whilst_o they_o evidence_n their_o faith_n by_o such_o proof_n and_o motive_n as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n manifest_v christian_n religion_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o miracle_n conversion_n of_o soul_n cast_v out_o of_o devil_n sanctity_n of_o life_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v once_o convince_a argument_n of_o christianity_n be_v now_o show_v to_o countenance_v a_o falsity_n to_o judge_v so_o be_v the_o most_o improbable_a improbable_o sectary_n judge_v improbable_o thought_n that_o ever_o enter_v a_o christian_n hart_n yea_o and_o impossible_a unless_o we_o hold_v that_o god_n can_v leave_v of_o to_o be_v goodness_n itself_o or_o make_v falsehood_n more_o apparent_o evident_a than_o truth_n the_o whole_a world_n over_o which_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o gross_a error_n 8._o other_o argument_n we_o have_v for_o a_o great_a certainty_n then_o moral_a previous_o evidence_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n before_o we_o believe_v whereof_o more_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n it_o be_v now_o sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o our_o protestant_n grant_v thus_o much_o first_o because_o religion_n protestant_n grant_v evidence_n of_o credibility_n to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n the_o more_o learned_a of_o they_o allow_v salvation_n to_o those_o who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o this_o faith_n but_o most_o sure_a it_o be_v that_o save_v faith_n have_v at_o least_o moral_a evidence_n and_o certainty_n for_o it_o 2._o whilst_o they_o talk_v of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o evidence_n manifest_v christian_n religion_n in_o general_n they_o only_o plead_v for_o our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n in_o behalf_n of_o protestancy_n the_o reason_n be_v if_o both_o these_o religion_n be_v not_o true_a that_o motive_n evidence_v true_a religion_n inseparable_o follow_v that_o but_o the_o one_o only_o the_o motive_n which_o evidence_n true_a religion_n inseparable_o follow_v that_o and_o can_v belong_v as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v to_o the_o other_o which_o be_v false_a therefore_o they_o or_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v they_o but_o protestancy_n can_v show_v so_o much_o as_o one_o prudent_a motive_n for_o itself_o as_o will_v most_o clear_o appear_v in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n ergo_fw-la what_o evidence_n there_o be_v for_o true_a christian_a faith_n catholic_n have_v it_o or_o there_o be_v none_o in_o the_o world_n for_o any_o religion_n chap._n ix_o a_o short_a digression_n concern_v the_o shuffle_n of_o protestant_n in_o this_o matter_n 1._o here_o i_o can_v but_o reflect_v on_o the_o slight_a endeavour_n of_o some_o late_a sectary_n who_o offer_v at_o endeavour_n mr._n stillingfleet_v weak_a endeavour_n much_o in_o a_o empty_a title_n call_v the_o protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n yet_o in_o prosecute_a the_o matter_n they_o handle_v it_o so_o unlucky_o that_o no_o man_n here_o be_v a_o word_n more_o speak_v in_o behalf_n of_o protestanism_n then_o of_o arianism_n or_o of_o what_o ever_o other_o haeresy_n motive_n and_o reason_n they_o give_v none_o for_o protestant_a
or_o without_o commission_n talk_v of_o a_o new_a gospel_n no._n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o say_v our_o saviour_n joan._n 20._o so_o i_o send_v you_o and_o they_o evidence_v their_o call_v to_o the_o great_a work_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n by_o clear_a and_o undoubted_a miracle_n which_o prove_v forcible_a persuasive_a argument_n and_o strong_o wrought_v upon_o the_o most_o obdurate_a heart_n yer_z fifteen_o hundred_o year_n after_o our_o novellist_n appear_v broach_v a_o new_a gospel_n aim_n at_o no_o les_fw-fr a_o matter_n then_o to_o pull_v down_o the_o idolatrous_a babel_n of_o popery_n so_o they_o style_v our_o ancient_a church_n and_o we_o must_v take_v their_o word_n for_o all_o they_o say_v though_o they_o neither_o show_v letter-missive_n or_o patent_n to_o warrant_v their_o doctrine_n no_o nor_o one_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o so_o destitute_a they_o be_v both_o of_o ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a mission_n some_o will_v say_v though_o they_o preach_v without_o mission_n they_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o ancient_a miracle_n without_o need_n of_o new_a one_o be_v wrought_v to_o confirm_v scripture-doctrin_n which_o be_v now_o pure_o proof_n sectary_n word_n it_o without_o proof_n teach_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n thus_o most_o pitiful_o mr._n poole_n pag._n 195._o where_o you_o se_fw-mi first_o a_o unlearned_a beg_v the_o question_n 2._o every_o arian_n licence_v to_o assert_v for_o himself_o what_o mr._n poole_n too_o simple_o assume_v here_o without_o proof_n 3._o this_o be_v most_o falss_o doctrine_n for_o no_o man_n yet_o ever_o lawful_o preach_v true_a christian_a doctrine_n no_o not_o christ_n himself_o without_o a_o mission_n sicut_fw-la misit_fw-la i_o pater_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o when_o he_o bless_a lord_n first_o establish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n contrary_a both_o to_o jew_n and_o infidel_n he_o do_v it_o not_o by_o word_n only_o without_o commission_n nor_o prove_v the_o verity_n of_o his_o gospel_n by_o the_o ancient_n and_o long_a since_o pase_v miracle_n wrought_v among_o the_o jew_n as_o these_o man_n do_v their_o doctrine_n by_o the_o primitive_a miracle_n of_o christianity_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o they_o but_o he_o evidence_v it_o and_o confirm_v it_o by_o new_a manifest_a gospel_n protestant_n oblige_v to_o show_n undoubted_a mark_n and_o sign_n when_o they_o preach_v a_o new_a gospel_n miracle_n visible_a sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o thus_o our_o protestant_n shall_v have_v do_v when_o they_o first_o publish_v their_o new_a unheard_a of_o learning_n and_o by_o it_o attempt_v to_o throw_v down_o that_o long_a stand_a church_n of_o popery_n undoubted_a miracle_n unquestioned_a sign_n of_o truth_n shall_v as_o we_o read_v of_o the_o primitive_a apostle_n mark_v 16._o 20._o have_v follow_v they_o also_o but_o in_o lieu_n of_o these_o what_o have_v you_o unwarrant_v talk_n mere_a proofle_n word_n of_o uncommission_v man_n miraculous_a word_n indeed_o if_o able_a to_o subvert_v a_o ancient_a church_n to_o pull_v down_o popery_n and_o build_v up_o protestancy_n 4._o unity_n in_o doctrine_n most_o know_a and_o remarkable_a doctrine_n no_o unity_n of_o doctrine_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o have_v none_o witness_n those_o innumerable_a sect_n which_o now_o swarm_v among_o they_o and_o this_o new_a faith_n have_v produce_v of_o arminian_o zwinglian_o brownist_n independent_o etc._n etc._n and_o now_o our_o late_a quaker_n be_v sprout_v out_o of_o it_o the_o last_o spring_n perhaps_o though_o no_o body_n know_v of_o this_o reform_a gospel_n i_o need_v not_o to_o say_v much_o on_o this_o point_n a_o serious_a thought_n cast_v upon_o the_o different_a procedure_n of_o a_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n will_v lay_v division_n the_o blessing_n of_o unity_n and_o curse_v of_o division_n open_a the_o great_a blessing_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o contrary_a curse_n of_o division_n in_o the_o other_o observe_v well_o catholic_n you_o shall_v find_v like_o right_a noble_a man_n stand_v upon_o a_o long_a continue_a pedigree_n on_o their_o ancient_a tradition_n on_o their_o never_o interrupt_a succession_n of_o pope_n of_o prince_n of_o bishop_n of_o people_n unite_v in_o one_o belief_n you_o look_v on_o protestant_n like_o new_a upstart_n unfortunate_o divide_v in_o their_o very_a first_o progenitor_n luther_n and_o calvin_n that_o beget_v they_o in_o discord_n and_o this_o spirit_n of_o division_n as_o a_o ghost_n do_v and_o will_v haunt_v they_o to_o the_o world_n end_n if_o they_o last_v so_o long_o catholic_n you_o will_v find_v like_o deep_a and_o silent_a water_n run_v together_o in_o one_o channel_n concentre_v in_o one_o principle_n settle_v on_o one_o rock_n the_o church_n infallibility_n you_o see_v protestant_n not_o only_o destroy_v both_o rock_n and_o centre_n but_o also_o so_o giddy_o unconstant_a unconstant_n sectary_n unconstant_n to_o their_o own_o tenant_n that_o you_o have_v they_o at_o a_o stand_v not_o where_o and_o this_o often_o shift_a have_v undo_v they_o once_o the_o 39_o article_n be_v point_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n now_o they_o be_v no_o more_o so_o once_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n now_o with_o many_o protestant_n he_o be_v the_o first_o patriarch_n once_o he_o be_v a_o horn_a beast_n now_o more_o than_o one_o of_o our_o new_a man_n take_v of_o his_o horn_n and_o make_v he_o rational_a once_o rome_n be_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n now_o with_o most_o it_o be_v pure_a yes_o and_o orthodox_n in_o fundamental_o once_o our_o bishop_n be_v all_o idolater_n unlawful_a pastor_n now_o they_o be_v so_o legitimate_a that_o our_o new_a man_n must_v either_o derive_v their_o ordination_n from_o they_o or_o have_v none_o at_o all_o and_o thus_o unsteedy_o they_o dance_v up_o and_o down_o say_v and_o unsay_v now_o yea_o now_o no_o as_o the_o fancy_n take_v they_o and_o they_o must_v do_v so_o until_o they_o have_v a_o firm_a ground_n of_o unity_n to_o set_v foot_v on_o 5._o mr_n pool_n page_n 201._o to_o impugn_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o impertinent_a mr._n pool_n instance_n of_o pagan_n and_o devil_n against_o unity_n be_v impertinent_a church_n tell_v we_o we_o that_o both_o pagan_n and_o devil_n have_v it_o yet_o in_o the_o very_a next_o page_n complain_v much_o of_o the_o want_n of_o unity_n in_o his_o protestant_a brethren_n methinks_v unreasonable_o enough_o for_o if_o unity_n be_v so_o proper_a to_o pagan_n and_o devil_n the_o more_o protestant_n be_v divide_v the_o better_a it_o be_v for_o they_o because_o further_o of_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o these_o agree_a monster_n but_o say_v mr._n poole_n unity_n without_o verity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v i_o answer_v every_o one_o know_v so_o much_o but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n where_o we_o sole_o treat_v of_o unity_n and_o assert_v it_o with_o the_o nicene_n father_n to_o be_v a_o grace_n or_o dowry_n of_o the_o church_n a_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n of_o truth_n and_o this_o our_o protestant_n must_v acknowledge_v who_o i_o hope_v will_v grant_v some_o large_a christian_a society_n agree_v at_o least_o in_o fundamental_o church_n protestant_n hold_v some_o unity_n laudable_a in_o the_o church_n which_o they_o call_v the_o catholic_n church_n i_o ask_v therefore_o whether_o such_o a_o unity_n extend_v to_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o laudable_a and_o a_o good_a mark_n of_o truth_n if_o so_o why_o be_v pagan_n and_o devil_n introduce_v to_o slight_v the_o church_n unity_n if_o not_o we_o have_v now_o not_o one_o laudable_a unite_a catholic_n church_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o follow_v in_o mr._n pool_n 203._o page_n objection_n mr._n pole_n simple_a objection_n concern_v division_n between_o dominican_n and_o jesuit_n &c_n &c_n be_v so_o profound_o simple_a that_o no_o man_n patience_n can_v so_o much_o as_o hear_v it_o every_o puny_a know_v these_o difference_n be_v not_o in_o faith_n but_o opinion_n only_o i_o pass_v by_o such_o trifle_n 6._o efficacy_n in_o doctrine_n a_o undeniable_a mark_n of_o doctrine_n no_o efficacy_n in_o doctrine_n the_o catholic_n church_n our_o protestant_n have_v not_o observe_v my_o proof_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o these_o man_n come_v but_o late_o into_o the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o church_n sure_a after_o the_o eleven_o hour_n and_o find_v it_o as_o they_o say_v in_o a_o sad_a condition_n overgrow_v with_o weed_n of_o popish_a error_n pester_v with_o arian_n and_o grecian_a heretic_n oppose_v by_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n do_v what_o our_o new_a zealot_n shall_v have_v do_v all_o these_o need_v the_o light_n of_o this_o new_a gospel_n to_o shine_v upon_o they_o and_o who_o will_v not_o have_v expect_v before_o this_o day_n great_a conversion_n wrought_v among_o so_o many_o stray_a soul_n by_o these_o new_a zelots_n popery_n ere_o now_o shall_v have_v be_v dissipate_v arian_n reclaim_v
my_o name_n and_o catholic_n my_o surname_n that_o indeed_o name_v i_o but_o this_o declare_v what_o i_o be_o and_o in_o both_o these_o we_o catholic_n glory_n chap._n xi_o argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n against_o protestant_n upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o declare_a motive_n 1._o we_o have_v see_v already_o both_o the_o weakness_n and_o different_a two_o church_n very_o different_a strength_n the_o obscurity_n and_o glory_n of_o two_o different_a church_n protestant_n and_o catholic_n the_o first_o pitiful_o naked_a the_o other_o rich_o adorn_v with_o such_o noble_a mark_n of_o truth_n as_o force_v reason_n to_o give_v a_o final_a sentence_n and_o say_v if_o religion_n be_v in_o the_o world_n it_o must_v be_v find_v among_o those_o christian_n who_o demonstrate_v it_o credible_a with_o most_o urgent_a and_o convince_a motive_n but_o this_o catholic_n religion_n only_a do_v and_o not_o protestancy_n for_o protestant_n i_o assert_v it_o bold_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o rational_a motive_n much_o les_fw-fr the_o complexum_fw-la of_o all_o now_o relate_v that_o work_v upon_o prudence_n and_o antecedent_o to_o their_o new_a faith_n make_v they_o believe_v as_o they_o do_v if_o they_o have_v any_o such_o my_o earnest_a petition_n be_v to_o hear_v of_o they_o or_o see_v they_o clear_o lay_v forth_o to_o the_o reason_n of_o other_o man_n or_o if_o they_o fail_v in_o this_o as_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v let_v they_o speak_v the_o plain_a truth_n viz._n that_o all_o they_o write_v and_o preach_v be_v lose_v labour_n whilst_o they_o go_v about_o to_o draw_v rational_a man_n to_o a_o religion_n for_o which_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n and_o 2._o here_o i_o answer_v to_o the_o trivial_a talk_n of_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o follow_v reason_n in_o all_o they_o believe_v and_o once_o more_o assert_v they_o have_v nothing_o like_o a_o shadow_n religion_n protestant_n have_v no_o shadow_n of_o reason_n for_o their_o new_a religion_n of_o reason_n previous_a to_o their_o faith_n either_o for_o their_o new_a religion_n in_o general_n or_o any_o particular_a tenent_n in_o it_o to_o prove_v my_o assertion_n we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o the_o prudent_a inducement_n that_o draw_v one_o to_o believe_v and_o the_o elicit_v act_n of_o faith_n itself_o these_o inducement_n precede_n faith_n and_o be_v proper_o the_o object_n of_o discourse_n i'faith_o sole_o rely_v on_o god_n reveal_v testimony_n without_o the_o mixture_n of_o reason_n for_o its_o motive_n the_o previous_a motive_n well_o ponder_v bring_v with_o they_o a_o obligation_n of_o believe_v and_o not_o faith_n itself_o for_o no_o man_n say_v i_o be_o oblige_v to_o believe_v because_o i_o believe_v but_o therefore_o i_o believe_v because_o antecedent_o to_o my_o faith_n i_o find_v myself_o oblige_v upon_o prudent_a reason_n to_o believe_v as_o i_o do_v thus_o much_o suppose_v 3._o make_v a_o search_n into_o all_o the_o motive_n imaginable_a that_o may_v prudent_o induce_v a_o seeker_n after_o truth_n to_o embrace_v protestant_a religion_n you_o shall_v find_v nothing_o propose_v to_o reason_n that_o have_v the_o appearance_n of_o reason_n in_o it_o for_o example_n ask_v first_o in_o general_n upon_o what_o motive_n extrinsical_a to_o their_o faith_n do_v these_o man_n own_o protestancy_n as_o the_o only_a true_a and_o pure_a religion_n why_o dare_v they_o so_o bold_o prefer_v it_o before_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o long_o stand_v catholic_n church_n yea_o or_o before_o that_o of_o their_o homebred_a sectary_n of_o quaker_n and_o independent_o silence_n will_v prove_v the_o best_a answer_n they_o can_v show_v no_o motive_n at_o all_o perhaps_o we_o may_v hear_v they_o say_v they_o reject_v the_o ancient_a church_n because_o of_o its_o error_n and_o novelty_n if_o so_o they_o first_o lamentable_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v prove_v 2._o they_o answer_v not_o to_o the_o difficulty_n for_o grant_v which_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v we_o ask_v not_o here_o for_o argument_n to_o refute_v those_o error_n but_o inquire_v after_o rational_a and_o persuasive_a motive_n whereby_o truth_n be_v prove_v to_o stand_v on_o the_o protestant_a side_n a_o poor_a better_o a_o poor_a comfort_n to_o learn_v that_o my_o religion_n be_v not_o good_a unless_o sectary_n prove_v they_o to_o be_v better_o comfort_n god_n know_v it_o be_v for_o i_o to_o hear_v from_o a_o protestant_n that_o my_o religion_n be_v not_o right_o unless_o upon_o weighty_a reason_n he_o convince_v i_o that_o he_o be_v better_a for_o say_v i_o if_o the_o old_a religion_n be_v naught_o this_o new_a one_o may_v be_v worse_o and_o more_o erroneous_a sectary_n be_v therefore_o oblige_v to_o bring_v in_o palpable_a evidence_n whereby_o their_o religion_n be_v positive_o demonstrate_v credible_a and_o only_o the_o best_a which_o shall_v never_o be_v do_v 4._o if_o yet_o to_o answer_v the_o difficulty_n they_o take_v post_n difficulty_n recourse_n to_o scripture_n clear'_v not_o the_o difficulty_n to_o scripture_n for_o proof_n of_o their_o religion_n they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o at_o the_o conclusion_n before_o they_o put_v the_o premise_n for_o in_o this_o place_n we_o make_v no_o inquiry_n after_o their_o formal_a act_n of_o faith_n nor_o the_o immediate_a object_n thereof_o we_o know_v well_o their_o answer_n but_o only_a quaker_n protestant_n have_v no_o motive_n to_o believe_v contrary_a to_o the_o church_n or_o contrary_a to_o the_o quaker_n ask_v for_o the_o rational_a motive_n perceptible_a by_o all_o that_o preced_n faith_n and_o prudent_o oblige_v they_o to_o believe_v contrary_a both_o to_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o their_o own_o honest_a quaker_n and_o this_o if_o the_o reply_v be_v pertinent_a must_v be_v evidence_v before_o they_o talk_v of_o a_o new_a faith_n ground_v on_o scripture_n have_v the_o primitive_a christian_n when_o they_o leave_v of_o judaisme_n and_o believe_v christ_n be_v ask_v why_o they_o receive_v christ_n doctrine_n and_o prefer_v that_o before_o their_o old_a religion_n they_o will_v have_v answer_v the_o blind_a se_fw-mi the_o lame_a walk_n the_o dead_a arise_v etc._n etc._n we_o behold_v strange_a wonder_n with_o our_o eye_n which_o powerful_o work_v upon_o reason_n and_o can_v but_o proceed_v from_o god_n when_o therefore_o our_o protestant_n desert_v the_o ancient_a church_n and_o teach_v a_o new_a faith_n contrary_a to_o it_o certain_o some_o visible_a apparent_a wonder_n inducement_n a_o new_a religion_n must_v have_v sign_n of_o truih_n and_o weighty_a inducement_n some_o persuasive_a sign_n of_o truth_n shall_v have_v usher_v it_o in_o and_o sound_v the_o trumpet_n before_o these_o new_a preacher_n all_o convince_v by_o reason_n shall_v have_v cry_v out_o here_o be_v antiquity_n here_o be_v unity_n in_o doctrine_n here_o we_o see_v the_o pedigree_n of_o our_o ancient_a church_n show_v forth_o now_o and_o not_o before_o our_o eye_n behold_v most_o glorious_a and_o undoubted_a miracle_n god_n certain_o speak_v by_o these_o new_a man_n etc._n etc._n but_o when_o we_o look_v about_o we_o and_o find_v nothing_o to_o countenance_v this_o unknown_a faith_n which_o like_o a_o stranger_n come_v among_o we_o when_o we_o hear_v a_o novelty_n preach_v without_o either_o sign_n motive_n or_o inducement_n to_o make_v it_o credible_a when_o we_o see_v a_o new_a religion_n bring_v give_v word_n only_o give_v in_o by_o uncommission_v man_n upon_o their_o bare_a parole_n and_o unproved_a fancy_n only_o what_o can_v we_o think_v but_o that_o both_o arian_n and_o pelagian_o yea_o and_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n have_v evidence_v as_o strong_o their_o old_a error_n by_o a_o verbal_a vent_n of_o they_o as_o protestant_n do_v now_o their_o new_a gospel_n for_o beside_o word_n you_o have_v nothing_o to_o warrant_v it_o 5._o perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v they_o be_v a_o part_n of_o christianity_n arian_n old_a motive_n no_o more_o for_o protestant_n then_o for_o arian_n and_o therefore_o the_o old_a motive_n belong_v to_o they_o i_o answer_v no_o more_o than_o to_o arian_n or_o pelagian_o who_o go_v as_o well_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n as_o protestant_n do_v o_o but_o their_o religion_n now_o profess_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n i_o dare_v swear_v it_o the_o arian_n and_o our_o modern_a quaker_n will_v yet_o principle_n a_o claim_n to_o the_o primitive_a faith_n no_o receive_a principle_n say_v as_o bold_o they_o believe_v exact_o the_o very_a doctrine_n which_o pure_a scripture_n teach_v but_o there_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o vast_a distance_n between_o say_v and_o prove_v what_o be_v say_v by_o a_o rational_a satisfactory_a and_o receive_a principle_n i_o say_v therefore_o their_o bare_a assertion_n of_o hold_v the_o primitive_a faith_n which_o we_o utter_o deny_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v either_o a_o probable_a or_o convince_a principle_n for_o
of_o priesthood_n give_v i_o warrant_v for_o either_o show_v your_o letter_n missive_n for_o if_o you_o can_v i_o may_v as_o prudent_o believe_v arius_n old_a haeresy_n as_o your_o new_a learning_n true_o sr_n reply_n mr._n poole_n my_o answer_n be_v the_o lord_n i_o hope_v senr_v we_o i_o can_v say_v more_o 3._o here_o the_o philosopher_n busy_v his_o thought_n and_o question_n be_v reason_n whether_o he_o may_v in_o prudence_n ground_n reflection_n the_o philosopher_n reflection_n his_o belief_n in_o christ_n upon_o a_o mysterious_a and_o yet_o unevidence_v book_n which_o above_o thousand_o year_n together_o be_v never_o own_a by_o any_o true_a professor_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n whether_o he_o may_v do_v so_o upon_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o these_o late_a man_n who_o without_o mission_n begin_v their_o preach_a only_o a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o who_o have_v no_o unity_n want_v miracle_n have_v make_v no_o conversion_n nor_o be_v able_a to_o tell_v he_o what_o the_o book_n say_v in_o those_o difficil_n place_n that_o puzzle_v his_o understanding_n it_o be_v impossible_a say_v he_o to_o acquiesce_v without_o further_a proof_n draw_v from_o reason_n tell_v i_o therefore_o good_a mr._n poole_n see_v scripture_n as_o you_o say_v contain_v strange_a mystery_n above_o my_o reach_n and_o no_o few_o seem_a contradiction_n which_o stand_v in_o reason_n rather_o affright_v then_o invite_v i_o to_o accept_v of_o it_o can_v you_o give_v i_o assurance_n by_o good_a motive_n or_o argument_n papist_n protestant_n can_v prove_v the_o holy_a scripture_n not_o from_o papist_n extrinsical_a to_o the_o book_n that_o it_o be_v divine_a or_o write_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o not_o by_o chance_n of_o ignorance_n or_o illusion_n answ_n i_o can_v first_o the_o papist_n once_o own_v this_o book_n as_o god_n own_o hand_n write_v phil._n o_o never_o mention_v these_o man_n they_o be_v now_o as_o we_o suppose_v forget_v sure_o you_o be_v able_a to_o evidence_n your_o book_n which_o be_v the_o sole_a ground_n of_o your_o faith_n without_o aid_n or_o argument_n borrow_v from_o papist_n i_o will_v do_v it_o therefore_o say_v mr._n poole_n the_o spirit_n of_o god_n bear_v witness_n with_o my_o spirit_n that_o this_o book_n be_v divine_a and_o god_n sacred_a word_n i_o be_o yet_o a_o infidel_n answer_v the_o philosopher_n spirit_n nor_o from_o the_o spirit_n and_o know_v little_a of_o god_n spirit_n much_o les_fw-fr of_o you_o my_o search_n be_v only_o after_o prudent_a motive_n to_o which_o reason_n ought_v to_o yield_v and_o accept_v of_o this_o book_n as_o sacred_a and_o divine_a which_o sr._n you_o be_v oblige_v to_o produce_v and_o not_o wink_v and_o fight_v it_o out_o with_o i_o by_o a_o unknown_a spirit_n which_o in_o real_a truth_n warrant_n be_v as_o well_o a_o jew_n to_o make_v good_a his_o talmud_n or_o a_o turk_n his_o alcoran_n as_o you_o your_o bible_n there_o be_v yet_o one_o argument_n more_o say_v mr._n poole_n to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n style_n nor_o from_o the_o majesty_n of_o style_n of_o scripture_n independent_a of_o popish_a tradition_n viz._n the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n the_o sublimity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n the_o purity_n of_o the_o matter_n etc._n etc._n these_o and_o the_o great_a reverence_n all_o bear_n to_o scripture_n seem_v powerful_a inducement_n to_o admit_v of_o it_o as_o god_n word_n philosop_n they_o be_v strong_a fancy_n of_o your_o own_o head_n and_o how_o void_a of_o all_o reason_n i_o will_v evident_o demonstrate_v nature_n scripture_n not_o like_o the_o first_o principle_n in_o nature_n first_o no_o man_n can_v assert_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o primam_fw-la cognitum_fw-la or_o per_fw-la se_fw-la notum_fw-la a_o thing_n know_v immediate_o by_o its_o own_o light_n as_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o nature_n be_v which_o yet_o this_o majesty_n prove_v or_o nothing_o for_o if_o so_o i_o shall_v see_v it_o yea_o and_o all_o without_o dispute_n will_v admit_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o canon_n of_o scripture_n 2._o as_o much_o majesty_n appear_v in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n or_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la which_o you_o reject_v as_o in_o the_o song_n of_o solomon_n or_o ecclesiaste_v admit_v by_o you_o 3._o if_o contrary_a to_o our_o supposition_n we_o may_v once_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o now_o forget_a church_n of_o popery_n there_o be_v no_o want_n you_o know_v it_o well_o either_o of_o exterior_a lustre_n glory_n majesty_n conversion_n miracle_n or_o of_o preach_v sublime_a doctrine_n to_o set_v it_o forth_o yet_o this_o glory_n and_o majesty_n you_o scornful_o cast_v of_o as_o a_o insufficient_a proof_n for_o that_o church_n and_o here_o without_o either_o conscience_n or_o reason_n you_o adore_v a_o far_o lesser_a exterior_a majesty_n and_o by_o it_o will_v outbrave_a i_o with_o a_o book_n the_o truth_n whereof_o be_v yet_o as_o unmanife_v to_o i_o by_o argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n as_o those_o very_a write_n be_v which_o you_o call_v apocryphal_a 4._o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v your_o great_a prove_v nor_o by_o the_o purity_n of_o it_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v simplicity_n in_o argue_v you_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o purity_n and_o majesty_n of_o it_o the_o first_o be_v in_o question_n for_o i_o who_o have_v peruse_v scripture_n and_o find_v no_o few_o seem_a contradiction_n in_o it_o must_v have_v my_o doubt_n clear_v and_o that_o purity_n evidence_v by_o proof_n extrinsical_a to_o scripture_n before_o i_o believe_v it_o pure_a concern_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n learn_v your_o error_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v in_o scripture_n the_o exterior_a connexion_n of_o word_n not_o the_o divinity_n of_o scripture_n scripture_n the_o exterior_a syntax_n or_o connexion_n of_o the_o word_n we_o read_v which_o sole_o consider_v be_v common_a to_o other_o pious_a book_n write_v by_o holy_a man_n without_o special_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o here_o be_v all_o the_o visible_a majesty_n that_o scripture_n present_v either_o to_o our_o eye_n or_o reason_n which_o therefore_o convince_v nothing_o divine_a what_o make_v scripture_n divine_a the_o other_o be_v and_o herein_o consist_v the_o virtue_n and_o majesty_n of_o scripture_n that_o god_n by_o his_o firm_a decree_n and_o gracious_a ordinance_n have_v please_v to_o seal_v as_o it_o be_v this_o book_n and_o own_o it_o as_o his_o sacred_a word_n now_o this_o signature_n because_o external_n to_o the_o letter_n or_o syntax_n of_o scripture_n be_v no_o object_n of_o sense_n nor_o your_o reason_n for_o you_o do_v not_o evidence_n it_o by_o antecedent_n proof_n none_o prove_v the_o bible_n by_o his_o faith_n but_o his_o faith_n by_o the_o bible_n antecedent_o own_v sacred_a the_o reverence_n show_v to_o scripture_n no_o proof_n rational_a motive_n you_o may_v well_o say_v it_o be_v the_o object_n of_o your_o faith_n or_o fancy_n but_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o your_o bible_n by_o your_o faith_n but_o evidence_n your_o faith_n by_o your_o bible_n antecedent_o prove_v divine_a to_o reason_n by_o good_a inducement_n hence_o i_o answer_v to_o that_o weak_a argument_n draw_v from_o the_o respect_n and_o reverence_n which_o all_o give_v to_o scripture_n and_o say_v it_o carry_v not_o one_o grain_n of_o weight_n with_o it_o for_o even_a christian_n much_o more_o infidel_n must_v first_o know_v upon_o prudent_a inducement_n that_o the_o bible_n be_v sacred_a before_o they_o reverence_n it_o and_o not_o prove_v it_o sacred_a because_o they_o reverence_n it_o for_o none_o prove_v this_o man_n to_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o prelate_n because_o he_o do_v he_o homage_n but_o therefore_o he_o complye_v with_o that_o duty_n because_o he_o be_v antecedent_o know_v or_o own_v for_o a_o person_n of_o such_o quality_n here_o say_v the_o philosopher_n be_v a_o few_o exception_n against_o your_o religion_n and_o my_o difficulty_n propose_v to_o solve_v they_o 5._o believe_v it_o old_a papist_n hitherto_o forget_v must_v religion_n catholic_n prove_v their_o religion_n show_v themselves_o and_o be_v remember_v again_o they_o and_o only_o they_o though_o we_o imagine_v no_o scripture_n write_v be_v able_a by_o a_o oral_n and_o never_o interrupt_v tradition_n to_o assure_v a_o heathen_a of_o christ_n our_o lord_n of_o the_o miracle_n he_o wrought_v of_o the_o apostle_n he_o call_v to_o find_v a_o church_n of_o the_o great_a conversion_n they_o make_v they_o scripture_n and_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o alone_o can_v warrant_v authentic_a write_v scripture_n and_o show_v who_o write_v it_o and_o how_o it_o be_v hand_v down_o by_o continue_a professer_n of_o their_o faith_n age_n after_o age_n to_o this_o present_a day_n they_o and_o only_o they_o do_v still_o preserve_v unity_n in_o doctrine_n reclaim_v infidel_n credential_n show_v their_o credential_n produce_v their_o credential_n for_o what_o
they_o preach_v and_o teach_v they_o only_o can_v show_v to_o all_o the_o world_n their_o pope_n their_o bishop_n their_o pastor_n their_o doctor_n who_o successive_o have_v teach_v and_o govern_v christ_n flock_n since_o the_o beginning_n of_o christianity_n they_o and_o only_o church_n and_o glorious_a mark_n of_o a_o long_a stand_a church_n they_o show_v you_o a_o church_n mark_v and_o make_v glorious_a by_o innumerable_a know_v and_o undoubted_a miracle_n a_o faith_n seal_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o innumerable_a bless_a martyr_n beautify_v with_o such_o eminent_a sanctity_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n in_o thousand_o as_o have_v cause_v admiration_n to_o very_a infidel_n and_o draw_v in_o no_o few_o to_o follow_v the_o like_a austerity_n such_o be_v the_o inducement_n which_o plead_v strong_o for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n and_o no_o other_o they_o full_o convince_v reason_n and_o prove_v that_o if_o god_n as_o i_o note_v above_o can_v conquer_v infidelity_n and_o haeresy_n by_o the_o force_n of_o prudential_a motive_n here_o they_o be_v see_v if_o ever_o he_o speak_v by_o church_n as_o god_n speak_v ancient_o by_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n he_o speak_v now_o by_o the_o church_n the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n he_o speak_v now_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o this_o one_o and_o only_a society_n of_o christian_n yea_o and_o he_o yet_o use_v as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o same_o powerful_a language_n for_o if_o the_o miracle_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n if_o their_o efficacious_a doctrine_n their_o sanctity_n of_o life_n their_o blood_n shed_v be_v conviction_n enough_o to_o infidel_n in_o those_o day_n they_o be_v now_o as_o forceable_a in_o the_o church_n and_o as_o manifest_v to_o our_o sense_n which_o cause_v that_o bless_a man_n richard_n de_fw-fr s._n victore_fw-la lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr trin._n c._n 2._o to_o exclaim_v si_fw-mi error_n est_fw-la quem_fw-la credidimus_fw-la à_fw-la te_fw-la decepti_fw-la sumus_fw-la if_o it_o be_v error_n we_o believe_v it_o be_v you_o who_o have_v deceive_v we_o jis_fw-la enim_fw-la signis_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o with_o such_o sign_n this_o doctrine_n be_v confirm_v which_o can_v proceed_v from_o none_o but_o you_o only_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o unquestioned_a miracle_n as_o be_v the_o resuscitation_n of_o dead_a man_n more_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n then_o in_o the_o primitive_a age._n to_o deny_v these_o miracle_n be_v be_v to_o deny_v all_o history_n which_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o sense_n in_o those_o who_o see_v they_o not_o to_o owm_n they_o to_o disow_v protestancy_n and_o profess_v plain_a popery_n our_o new_a man_n therefore_o speak_v at_o random_n when_o they_o talk_v of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o abstract_a evidence_n for_o christian_a religion_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o motive_n for_o scripture_n be_v agree_v on_o by_o all_o i_o answer_v above_o church_n no_o evidence_n for_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n nor_o for_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o church_n there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v motive_n for_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n if_o the_o word_n christian_n comprise_v all_o profess_a heretic_n for_o be_v it_o so_o god_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o make_v falsehood_n as_o credible_a as_o truth_n no_o motive_n can_v evidence_n scripture_n unless_o they_o first_o evidence_n a_o church_n that_o indubitable_o give_v we_o certain_a scripture_n which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o other_o term_n all_o motive_n as_o well_o for_o the_o verity_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o scripture_n be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o in_o no_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n if_o protestant_n can_v prove_v their_o faith_n or_o scripture_n by_o so_o much_o as_o a_o likelihood_n of_o either_o these_o now_o name_v know_v sectary_n be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v their_o motive_n know_v or_o any_o better_a inducement_n they_o be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v they_o know_v that_o man_n at_o last_o may_v see_v that_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereof_o they_o endless_o talk_v in_o their_o pulpit_n true_a candour_n and_o sincerity_n can_v but_o speak_v plain_o to_o this_o point_n without_o intricate_a tergiversation_n if_o so_o much_o as_o a_o spark_n of_o zeal_n live_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o rational_a motive_n do_v not_o fail_v they_o we_o expect_v a_o candid_a answer_n chap._n xiii_o protestancy_n for_o want_n of_o rational_a motive_n dishonor_n christ_n and_o make_v way_n for_o any_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n 1._o i_o prove_v the_o assertion_n that_o religion_n high_o christ_n protestancy_n dishonor_n christ_n dishonour_v christ_n which_o must_v of_o necessity_n confess_v that_o a_o false_a erroneous_a church_n be_v more_o eminent_o glorious_a and_o better_o mark_v with_o all_o evident_a sign_n of_o truth_n than_o that_o pure_a orthodox_n religion_n be_v which_o christ_n have_v now_o establish_v in_o the_o world_n but_o protestant_n must_v confess_v thus_o much_o and_o to_o prove_v my_o minor_a ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la i_o need_v no_o more_o but_o two_o principle_n prove_v by_o their_o own_o principle_n certain_a principle_n of_o their_o own_o one_o be_v the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n have_v be_v at_o least_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n erroneous_a yea_o some_o say_v antichristian_a it_o still_o contradict'_v the_o primitive_a doctrine_n hold_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n contrary_a to_o scripture_n such_o doctrine_n give_v sectary_n just_a cause_n as_o they_o say_v to_o leave_v this_o church_n and_o lash_v we_o so_o severe_o as_o they_o have_v do_v to_o pull_v down_o our_o monastery_n to_o banish_v the_o ancient_a clergy_n to_o ruin_v those_o who_o profess_v our_o religion_n they_o be_v not_o mere_a trifle_n nor_o petty_a mistake_n which_o make_v our_o kind_a heart_a countryman_n to_o use_v we_o so_o unkind_o here_o be_v my_o first_o principle_n grant_v by_o protestant_n the_o second_o be_v as_o clear_v viz._n that_o their_o new_a religion_n of_o protestancy_n as_o it_o stand_v now_o reform_v be_v the_o pure_a true_a and_o most_o orthodox_n christian_a religion_n for_o set_v this_o and_o the_o primitive_a church_n aside_o of_o three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n continuance_n you_o never_o yet_o have_v say_v they_o any_o society_n of_o man_n that_o teach_v pure_o christ_n doctrine_n no_o god_n wot_v a_o deluge_n of_o popish_a error_n overrun_v christianity_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o until_o these_o late_a man_n bring_v unto_o we_o the_o joyful_a tiding_n of_o their_o refine_a gospel_n 2._o upon_o these_o two_o undeniable_a supposition_n you_o shall_v plain_o see_v what_o a_o eternal_a disgrace_n what_o affront_v protestant_n will_v needs_o put_v upon_o our_o dear_a saviour_n do_v what_o we_o can_v to_o hinder_v they_o he_o bless_a lord_n found_v a_o church_n it_o cost_v he_o dear_a the_o effusion_n of_o his_o sacred_a blood_n and_o promise_v we_o a_o indeficient_a glorious_a church_n to_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n yet_o after_o all_o these_o ample_a promise_n he_o have_v protestancy_n a_o glorious_a church_n promise_v and_o a_o obscure_a one_o show_v we_o of_o protestancy_n give_v we_o a_o pitiful_a one_o indeed_o no_o better_o a_o thing_n then_o protestancy_n which_o be_v utrer_o disgrace_v obscure_v dishonour_v and_o quite_o put_v down_o by_o the_o majesty_n the_o miracle_n the_o antiquity_n the_o unity_n the_o sanctity_n of_o that_o church_n which_o must_v now_o forsooth_o be_v style_v false_a erroneous_a and_o antichristian_a if_o this_o pass_n for_o current_a doctrine_n you_o have_v with_o it_o sport_n enough_o for_o the_o dishonour_v how_o christ_n be_v dishonour_v devil_n and_o protestant_n only_o make_v it_o who_o upon_o their_o warrant_n may_v most_o just_o reproach_v both_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o thus_o powerful_o plead_v at_o the_o bar_n of_o reason_n saviour_n of_o the_o world_n my_o false_a popish_a antichristian_a church_n have_v stand_v a_o thousand_o year_n in_o error_n truth_n how_o the_o devil_n may_v plead_v and_o most_o rational_o if_o protestant_n speak_v truth_n you_o of_o protestancy_n only_o a_o hundred_o in_o truth_n i_o both_o be_v and_o have_v be_v universal_o spread_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o you_o yet_o see_v we_o little_a out_o of_o some_o few_o corner_n in_o europe_n my_o church_n have_v have_v most_o learned_a general_n council_n you_o never_o any_o i_o produce_v a_o long_a continue_a succession_n of_o pope_n of_o bishop_n of_o pastor_n you_o not_o a_o man_n before_o luther_n i_o be_v glorious_a with_o those_o very_a note_n and_o mark_n of_o truth_n which_o you_o manifest_v in_o your_o own_o sacred_a person_n and_o induce_v infidel_n to_o believe_v you_o your_o late_a congregation_n show_v nothing_o like_o they_o my_o false_a church_n fa_v pray_v contemplat_n convert_v more_o than_o
you_o it_o have_v more_o unity_n in_o faith_n you_o be_v rend_v and_o tear_v apiece_o with_o division_n and_o loe_o great_a god_n here_o be_v that_o glorious_a edifice_n which_o you_o after_o all_o your_o perfect_a idea_n of_o a_o church_n have_v erect_v for_o this_o you_o die_v and_o never_o shed_v your_o blood_n to_o establish_v my_o false_a erroneous_a synagogue_n of_o popery_n permit_v reason_n to_o judge_v in_o this_o case_n and_o say_v whether_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o ill_a advocate_n if_o protestant_n avouch_v truth_n and_o stand_v to_o their_o profess_a doctrine_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n drown_v in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n abandon_v the_o first_o verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o that_o their_o church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o be_v be_v the_o most_o choice_n goodly_a and_o only_o refine_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n 3._o my_o last_o argument_n hint_v at_o in_o the_o title_n be_v heresy_n foundation_n lay_v of_o new_a heresy_n thus_o a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n without_o motive_n of_o credibility_n may_v be_v as_o well_o or_o better_o defend_v by_o plain_a speak_a scripture_n than_o protestancy_n it_o be_v believe_v i_o the_o easy_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o draw_v haeresy_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v good_a my_o assertion_n read_v first_o st._n hierom_n in_o his_o dialogue_n reflection_n s._n hieroms_n reflection_n adversus_fw-la luciferianos_fw-la paris_n print_n anno_fw-la 1509._o at_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o dialogue_n this_o great_a doctor_n then_o to_o reduce_v some_o beguile_v by_o the_o luciferian_o who_o hold_v that_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n once_o desert_v their_o faith_n can_v never_o again_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o that_o text_n of_o st._n matthew_n cap._n 5._o v._n 13._o you_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o if_o the_o salt_n have_v lose_v its_o savour_n wherewith_o shall_v it_o be_v salt_v ad_fw-la nihilum_fw-la valet_fw-la ultra_fw-la it_o be_v good_a for_o nothing_o hereafter_o &c._n &c._n st._n hierom_n i_o say_v to_o refute_v these_o have_v a_o excellent_a reflection_n nec_fw-la sibi_fw-la blandiantur_fw-la si_fw-la de_fw-la scripturae_fw-la capitulis_fw-la videntur_fw-la sibi_fw-la assumere_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v they_o not_o flatter_v themselves_o if_o they_o seem_v to_o assume_v out_o of_o scripture_n scripture_n of_o error_n draw_v from_o scripture_n what_o they_o say_v for_o the_o devil_n have_v speak_v thing_n out_o of_o scripture_n scripture_n god_n know_v do_v not_o consist_v in_o what_o we_o read_v but_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o otherwise_o say_v the_o saint_n possumus_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la &c._n &c._n i_o be_o able_a to_o coin_v a_o new_a opinion_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o say_v that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n that_o be_v shoe_n or_o have_v two_o coat_n for_o that_o be_v scripture_n 4._o it_o be_v most_o easy_a to_o go_v on_o with_o this_o true_a reflection_n of_o st._n hierom_n and_o draw_v new_a heresy_n every_o particular_n particular_n hour_n from_o scripture_n one_o will_v say_v the_o sabbath-day_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v sacred_a in_o place_n of_o sunday_n and_o bring_v scripture_n for_o it_o exod._n 20._o 8._o another_o that_o we_o be_v as_o well_o to_o abstain_v from_o eat_v of_o blood_n or_o thing_n strangle_v as_o from_o fornication_n it_o be_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o apostolical_a council_n and_o scripture_n actor_n 15._o 29._o a_o three_o that_o infant_n aae_v not_o to_o be_v baptise_a there_o be_v ground_n for_o it_o matth._n 28._o a_o four_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o contend_v in_o law_n but_o quit_v our_o coat_n if_o any_o man_n will_v take_v it_o and_o cloak_n also_o matt._n 5._o a_o five_o that_o no_o euangelical_n preacher_n be_v to_o carry_v gold_n or_o silver_n with_o he_o or_o have_v two_o coat_n matt._n 10._o 7._o 5._o suppose_v that_o a_o new_a sect_n of_o man_n shall_v rise_v up_o up_o a_o new_a sect_n of_o man_n rise_v up_o this_o year_n in_o whole_a multitude_n and_o rigid_o adhere_v to_o the_o exact_a letter_n of_o scripture_n in_o these_o particular_n be_v it_o possible_a to_o convince_v they_o by_o scripture_n it_o be_v impossible_a and_o have_v they_o not_o think_v you_o more_o plain_a text_n of_o god_n word_n for_o these_o tenant_n than_o protestant_n have_v for_o pure_a protestancy_n yea_o most_o evident_o for_o they_o produce_v nothing_o but_o express_v scripture_n without_o gloss_n and_o do_v they_o not_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o admit_v of_o every_o jota_fw-la in_o scripture_n yea_o and_o therefore_o be_v sound_a in_o fundamental_o moreover_n do_v they_o not_o acknowledge_v both_o christ_n and_o scripture_n upon_o the_o same_o tradition_n or_o other_o evidence_n as_o protestant_n do_v yea_o and_o be_v ready_a perhaps_o to_o join_v in_o belief_n with_o they_o when_o they_o see_v scripture_n as_o plain_a for_o any_o protestant_a doctrine_n they_o only_o add_v a_o superstructure_n have_v have_v as_o good_a a_o church_n as_o luther_n have_v of_o these_o article_n and_o have_v they_o not_o as_o good_a a_o church_n as_o luther_n and_o calvin_n have_v a_o year_n after_o their_o new_a preach_v yes_o they_o swarm_v with_o multitude_n of_o follower_n and_o multitude_n make_v a_o church_n why_o then_o be_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o man_n all_o ground_a in_o scripture_n as_o good_a as_o that_o of_o protestant_n i_o think_v it_o be_v of_o two_o evil_n the_o better_a if_o more_o word_n of_o scripture_n can_v more_o advance_v the_o worth_n of_o either_o religion_n but_o i_o tell_v you_o and_o true_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v good_a because_o unreasonable_a and_o they_o be_v therefore_o unreasonable_a because_o no_o man_n reason_n can_v in_o this_o present_a state_n of_o christianity_n whilst_o god_fw-we govern_n u_fw-mi by_o the_o light_n of_o prudence_n fall_v upon_o a_o religion_n or_o believe_v a_o church_n which_o evident_o appear_v religion_n a_o religion_n without_o prudent_a motive_n be_v no_o religion_n naked_a and_o destitute_a of_o all_o rational_a motive_n inductive_a to_o true_a belief_n now_o scripture_n alone_o without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o a_o church_n evidence_v by_o forcible_a motive_n be_v what_o you_o please_v to_o make_v of_o it_o and_o a_o church_n not_o at_o all_o manifest_v by_o rational_a motive_n be_v no_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v interpret_v scripture_n if_o you_o ask_v why_o we_o say_v that_o protestancy_n be_v so_o bare_a of_o motive_n and_o consequent_o no_o church_n i_o have_v answer_v above_o because_o this_o religion_n never_o have_v nor_o shall_v have_v any_o such_o persuasive_a inducement_n or_o the_o like_a sign_n of_o truth_n for_o it_o as_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n manifest_v when_o they_o first_o teach_v the_o world_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o those_o motive_n gain_v innumerable_a soul_n to_o christianity_n look_v then_o about_o you_o and_o find_v i_o out_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v evidence_v by_o such_o sign_n as_o hold_v a_o strict_a analogy_n with_o those_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o you_o have_v the_o true_a church_n but_o this_o be_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n church_n what_o prove_v christianity_n ancient_o prove_v now_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n only_a and_o no_o other_o as_o i_o have_v large_o prove_v dare_v you_o therefore_o own_o the_o true_a christ_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n who_o wrought_v miracle_n live_v holy_o preach_v efficacious_o upon_o such_o motive_n you_o must_v also_o own_o this_o true_a church_n upon_o the_o like_a ground_a proof_n be_v miracle_n sanctity_n efficacious_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n rational_a inducement_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v now_o both_o powerful_a and_o persuasive_a to_o believe_v this_o church_n to_o deny_v as_o i_o say_v above_o all_o miracle_n to_o this_o church_n even_o the_o great_a as_o be_v the_o raise_v of_o dead_a man_n to_o life_n be_v to_o deny_v sense_n reason_n history_n church_n the_o forceable_a motive_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v take_v from_o our_o church_n and_o all_o authority_n and_o to_o appropriate_v these_o and_o other_o motive_n to_o protestant_n be_v only_o a_o attempt_v plagiary_n which_o can_v be_v do_v it_o be_v true_a these_o man_n glory_v in_o a_o steal_a bible_n and_o it_o be_v all_o they_o can_v pretend_v to_o beside_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o a_o fruitless_a and_o unevidence_v church_n but_o the_o mark_n and_o character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n they_o shall_v never_o have_v nor_o take_v from_o we_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o the_o motive_n of_o true_a faith_n the_o second_o discourse_n of_o scripture_n the_o first_o chapter_n scripture_n be_v useless_a if_o none_o declare_v infallible_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o 1._o when_o on_o the_o one_o side_n i_o consider_v
how_o useless_a a_o book_n abuse_v these_o impious_a gloss_n be_v lay_v forth_o only_o to_o show_v sectary_n how_o scripture_n may_v be_v abuse_v sole_a scripture_n be_v with_o these_o man_n to_o end_v their_o difference_n yea_o and_o what_o monster_n be_v produce_v out_o of_o it_o by_o those_o that_o pretend_v most_o to_o god_n write_v word_n and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n think_v you_o that_o these_o sole-scripturists_a these_o arian_n these_o protestant_n these_o anabaptist_n etc._n etc._n be_v so_o various_a so_o opposite_a in_o their_o tenant_n beget_v as_o they_o think_v out_o of_o the_o true_a write_a word_n proceed_v from_o whence_o the_o abuse_n proceed_v of_o god_n be_v it_o for_o want_v of_o wit_n learning_n or_o language_n they_o thus_o differ_v no._n be_v it_o for_o the_o want_n of_o study_n and_o confer_v one_o place_n of_o scripture_n clear_a as_o they_o think_v with_o other_o obscure_a no_o both_o arian_n and_o protestant_n have_v do_v this_o long_a ago_o be_v it_o that_o all_o these_o sectary_n go_v against_o their_o conscience_n or_o wilful_o draw_v god_n word_n to_o a_o perverse_n sense_n he_o never_o speak_v let_v the_o innocent_a cast_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o the_o guilty_a true_o i_o suspect_v it_o in_o some_o yet_o can_v judge_v that_o all_o be_v conscious_a of_o so_o hideous_a a_o impiety_n 6._o the_o true_a reason_n therefore_o be_v these_o sectary_n give_v the_o true_a reason_n be_v give_v after_o the_o reject_v of_o god_n infallible_a church_n the_o oracle_n of_o truth_n will_n by_o no_o more_o than_o half_a a_o ey_fw-mi of_o human_a reason_n dive_v into_o the_o deep_a secret_n of_o god_n eternal_a wisdom_n obscure_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o herein_o they_o neither_o show_v judgement_n nor_o learning_n with_o this_o purblind_a eye_n of_o weak_a reason_n they_o go_v to_o work_v they_o steer_v on_o their_o course_n they_o judge_v they_o determine_v they_o define_v they_o pronounce_v their_o fallible_a sentiment_n on_o these_o high_a mystery_n which_o never_o the_o less_o reason_n alone_o be_v uncapable_a to_o comprehend_v or_o master_n hence_o do_v why_o sectary_n vary_v as_o they_o do_v they_o vary_v as_o they_o do_v hence_o it_o be_v they_o weary_a themselves_o out_o with_o opposite_a frivolous_a interpretation_n of_o god_n word_n which_o be_v but_o one_o whilst_o they_o be_v so_o divide_v in_o their_o tenant_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o almost_o every_o year_n we_o have_v a_o new_a religion_n broach_v in_o england_n such_o a_o jumble_v we_o must_v expect_v such_o endless_a dissension_n among_o they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n for_o their_o pride_n who_o true_o be_v not_o more_o but_o poor_a scholar_n yet_o disdain_v to_o learn_v of_o a_o good_a master_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n 7._o i_o call_v it_o a_o jumble_a for_o from_o scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o les_fw-fr clear_a speak_v arise_v these_o dissension_n and_o though_o it_o be_v quote_v a_o thousand_o time_n say_v no_o scripture_n endless_a confusion_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n more_o now_o then_o it_o do_v sixteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o therefore_o can_v end_v they_o they_o next_o fall_v upon_o a_o doubtful_a confer_v one_o passage_n of_o the_o bible_n with_o another_o several_a version_n and_o language_n be_v examine_v much_o ado_n they_o make_v and_o all_o be_v to_o know_v what_o god_n speak_v in_o such_o text_n but_o without_o fruit_n for_o their_o difference_n be_v as_o high_a as_o ever_o and_o neither_o party_n gain_n or_o lose_v the_o victory_n since_o scripture_n alone_o nor_o the_o compare_v of_o text_n together_o be_v able_a to_o draw_v either_o side_n from_o their_o preconceive_a opinion_n after_o the_o confer_v of_o place_n they_o be_v hard_a at_o it_o with_o fallible_a explication_n when_o behold_v express_v scripture_n be_v cast_v away_o by_o these_o two_o combatant_n and_o now_o either_o the_o one_o must_v learn_v of_o the_o other_o what_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n by_o a_o human_a fallible_a explication_n which_o be_v no_o scripture_n or_o nothing_o be_v conclude_v uncertain_a arian_n and_o protestant_n equal_o uncertain_a who_o be_v then_o to_o be_v hold_v the_o master_n interpreter_n the_o arian_n or_o protestant_n neither_o and_o they_o have_v both_o reason_n for_o it_o for_o neither_o aught_o to_o yield_v in_o their_o own_o principle_n the_o quarrel_n therefore_o go_v on_o and_o be_v endless_a if_o after_o their_o fallible_a explication_n of_o scripture_n they_o proceed_v to_o inference_n this_o follow_v that_o follow_v etc._n etc._n all_o be_v plain_a sophistry_n for_o stand_v upon_o what_o unsteedy_a foundation_n haresy_n stand_v scripture_n vitiate_v with_o a_o fall_v explication_n can_v never_o support_v a_o true_a illation_n and_o upon_o such_o unsteedy_a foundation_n all_o haeresy_n stand_v scripture_n not_o understand_v be_v the_o ground_n doubtful_a collation_n of_o place_n fallible_a explication_n fall_v illation_n be_v the_o superstructure_n they_o have_v no_o more_o and_o thus_o you_o see_v how_o useless_a a_o book_n answer_v why_o scripture_n be_v useless_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o haeretick_n a_o question_n propose_v and_o answer_v of_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o haeretick_n who_o neither_o can_v tell_v i_o so_o much_o as_o true_o much_o les_fw-fr infallible_o what_o god_n speak_v in_o these_o high_a controvert_v point_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n 8._o but_o you_o will_v ask_v how_o then_o happen_v it_o that_o mr._n poole_n and_o protestant_n hit_v right_a in_o yield_v a_o assent_n to_o some_o catholic_n verity_n for_o example_n to_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n and_o contrary_a to_o arianism_n oversight_n protestant_n acknowledge_v a_o trinity_n by_o oversight_n profess_v the_o son_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o his_o eternal_a father_n in_o one_o divine_a nature_n i_o answer_v they_o light_n upon_o these_o verity_n by_o a_o oversight_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v mere_o by_o chance_n by_o oversight_n for_o believe_v it_o have_v luter_n think_v well_o on_o it_o he_o may_v with_o more_o ease_n have_v deny_v these_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n than_o the_o real_a change_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n by_o chance_n for_o as_o by_o chance_n they_o steal_v chance_n or_o by_o chance_n a_o bible_n from_o the_o old_a catholic_n church_n so_o casual_o they_o take_v from_o she_o here_o and_o there_o as_o it_o please_v fancy_n somewhat_o of_o her_o ancient_a tradition_n also_o and_o upon_o this_o ground_n of_o tradition_n or_o the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o believe_v as_o it_o unaware_o engage_v in_o a_o belief_n they_o labour_v in_o vain_a to_o find_v scripture_n for_o it_o well_o as_o they_o can_v these_o sublime_a mystery_n be_v thus_o unaware_o engage_v in_o a_o belief_n they_o weary_a their_o head_n and_o wear_v out_o their_o bible_n to_o find_v express_v scripture_n for_o it_o which_o can_v be_v find_v because_o forsooth_o they_o will_v believe_v nothing_o upon_o tradition_n or_o the_o church_n infallible_a doctrine_n i_o say_v express_v scripture_n can_v be_v find_v that_o assert_n three_o distinct_a person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n or_o the_o word_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o his_o eternal_a father_n therefore_o if_o they_o believe_v these_o verity_n they_o must_v ground_n their_o faith_n not_o upon_o sole_a scripture_n but_o on_o scripture_n explicate_v by_o that_o never_o err_a oracle_n of_o truth_n the_o catholic_n church_n or_o on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v which_o we_o call_v tradition_n you_o see_v arian_n sectary_n must_v own_v the_o church_n interpretation_n or_o become_v arian_n therefore_o how_o our_o protestant_n though_o in_o actu_fw-la signato_fw-la they_o seem_o reject_v tradition_n and_o the_o church_n interpretation_n upon_o scripture_n yet_o in_o actu_fw-la exercito_fw-la they_o own_o both_o and_o must_v necessary_o do_v so_o or_o become_v plain_a arian_n yet_o here_o they_o be_v pinch_v again_o for_o if_o they_o believe_v these_o mystery_n upon_o tradition_n or_o on_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o church_n they_o be_v neither_o papist_n protestant_n in_o do_v so_o they_o be_v neither_o papist_n nor_o protestant_n nor_o protestant_n no_o papist_n for_o papist_n hold_v tradition_n and_o the_o church_n interpretation_n infallible_a no_o protestant_n for_o they_o profess_v to_o believe_v no_o more_o than_o god_n have_v express_v in_o his_o write_a word_n though_o now_o they_o must_v leave_v that_o hold_v and_o believe_v upon_o the_o catholic_n motive_n or_o renounce_v the_o faith_n of_o these_o article_n 9_o if_o mr._n poole_n pretend_v express_v scripture_n for_o these_o high_a verity_n of_o christian_a faith_n the_o sure_a way_n will_v be_v to_o produce_v it_o without_o remit_v i_o to_o other_o author_n or_o add_v his_o fallible_a gloss_n to_o god_n word_n for_o every_o arian_n know_v
papist_n err_v in_o doctrine_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o have_v err_v in_o corrupt_a scripture_n purity_n or_o say_v it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o corrupt_v by_o these_o err_a papist_n for_o these_o man_n who_o err_v in_o doctrine_n may_v as_o well_o have_v insinuate_v error_n into_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n they_o have_v time_n enough_o to_o do_v it_o these_o man_n who_o change_v the_o ancient_a primitive_a faith_n of_o christianity_n may_v as_o perfidiouf_o have_v alter_v the_o bible_n they_o wrought_v secret_o a_o false_a belief_n into_o man_n heart_n concern_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n and_o why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o cunning_o have_v foist_v into_o scripture_n word_n and_o sentence_n suitable_a to_o such_o suppose_a error_n believe_v man_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o corrupt_v ●_o dead_a book_n then_o to_o pervart_v innumerable_a live_n man_n it_o it_o be_v much_o easy_a to_o corrupt_v a_o dead_a book_n then_o to_o pervert_v so_o many_o live_a christian_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o belief_n of_o so_o palpable_a hideous_a and_o erroneous_a novelty_n 5._o here_o then_o be_v my_o dilemma_n either_o the_o catholic_n dilemma_n a_o dilemma_n church_n have_v err_v when_o luther_n and_o protestant_n take_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n from_o it_o or_o be_v pure_a in_o doctrine_n if_o pure_a most_o wicked_a be_v they_o for_o desert_v it_o if_o the_o church_n have_v then_o err_v or_o be_v corrupt_v in_o doctrine_n neither_o luther_n nor_o any_o protestant_n can_v have_v affurance_n that_o they_o read_v yet_o true_a scripture_n for_o all_o the_o certainty_n they_o can_v have_v of_o this_o book_n be_v miserable_o uncertain_a and_o at_o last_o come_v to_o this_o doubtful_a judgement_n it_o may_v be_v we_o have_v true_a scripture_n it_o may_v be_v and_o more_o likely_a not_o god_n only_o argument_n a_o unanswerable_a argument_n know_v all_o depend_v on_o a_o erroneous_a church_n that_o give_v we_o scripture_n which_o may_v as_o well_o in_o the_o vast_a compass_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n have_v guilful_o change_v this_o our_o book_n from_o its_o ancient_a truth_n as_o cheat_v christianity_n into_o a_o false_a belief_n 6._o some_o may_v yet_o say_v all_o now_o agree_v as_o well_o catholic_n as_o protestant_n upon_o the_o verity_n and_o integrity_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o its_o needle_n for_o many_o book_n at_o least_o to_o question_v this_o point_n far_o i_o answer_v certainty_n protestant_n destroy_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o certainty_n catholic_n agree_v well_o because_o they_o take_v this_o book_n upon_o the_o warrant_n of_o christ_n never_o err_a church_n which_o can_v deceive_v they_o but_o protestant_n who_o ruin_n this_o ground_n of_o infallibility_n destroy_v with_o it_o all_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n in_o order_n to_o themselves_o their_o agreement_n therefore_o be_v no_o more_o but_o verbal_n whilst_o the_o principle_n which_o support_v a_o real_a one_o be_v shake_v a_o piece_n by_o they_o hence_o you_o see_v how_n mr._n poole_n speak_v at_o poole_n catholic_n confession_n no_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n to_o mr._n poole_n random_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o we_o he_o know_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o catholic_n confess_v and_o acknowledge_v so_o much_o i_o answer_v first_o their_o testimony_n with_o he_o be_v worth_a nothing_o for_o they_o have_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v lose_v all_o credit_n by_o introduce_v false_a doctrine_n into_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o why_o not_o say_v i_o as_o well_o a_o fall_v bible_n such_o doctrine_n he_o dare_v not_o admit_v of_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o catholic_n yet_o matter_n with_o no_o colour_n of_o reason_n do_v protestant_n admit_v of_o a_o bible_n upon_o the_o church_n testimony_n and_o reject_v her_o testimony_n in_o other_o matter_n he_o will_v kiss_v their_o hand_n and_o take_v from_o they_o such_o a_o bible_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o give_v he_o 2._o the_o testimony_n of_o catholic_n in_o this_o particular_a be_v with_o he_o fallible_a and_o may_v be_v fall_v but_o a_o testimony_n that_o may_v be_v fall_v can_v never_o give_v any_o assurance_n of_o true_a scripture_n which_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v have_v or_o none_o can_v ground_v faith_n upon_o it_o 3._o mr._n poole_n be_v pitiful_o out_o in_o all_o he_o say_v for_o he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v admit_v of_o scripture_n upon_o the_o confession_n or_o testimony_n of_o catholic_n why_o catholic_n hold_v scripture_n to_o be_v himself_o the_o church_n hold_v she_o own_o testimony_n infallible_a mr._n poole_n reject_v this_o therefore_o he_o make_v null_a the_o church_n testimony_n to_o himself_o the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o the_o infallible_a church_n of_o christ_n assure_v they_o it_o be_v god_n word_n this_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n poole_n utter_o disown_n and_o therefore_o he_o must_v of_o necessity_n by_o his_o own_o principle_n reject_v the_o catholic_n testimony_n 7._o other_o perhaps_o will_v say_v that_o god_n by_o special_a providence_n ever_o preserve_v scripture_n pure_a in_o all_o essential_o though_o he_o permit_v the_o church_n to_o deceive_v soul_n and_o lead_v they_o into_o error_n what_o a_o antiscriptural_a assertion_n have_v we_o here_o how_o be_v god_n affront_v what_o a_o lame_a and_o half_a providence_n be_v grant_v he_o providence_n sectary_n affront_n god_n by_o allow_v he_o no_o more_o than_o a_o half_a providence_n what_o no_o more_o but_o only_o to_o have_v care_n of_o a_o book_n to_o secure_v that_o from_o falsehood_n and_o in_o the_o interim_n to_o permit_v his_o own_o immaculate_a spouse_n his_o church_n which_o scripture_n shall_v instruct_v to_o play_v the_o harlot_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n and_o err_v damnable_o o_o but_o what_o ever_o becom'_v of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v say_v our_o protestant_n have_v true_a and_o incorrupt_a scripture_n or_o no_o man_n can_v know_v what_o he_o be_v to_o believe_v i_o answer_v and_o we_o must_v either_o have_v a_o true_a and_o incorrupt_a church_n or_o none_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o true_a and_o incorrupt_a scripture_n christian_n it_o avail_n little_a to_o have_v verity_n shut_v up_o in_o a_o bible_n if_o the_o church_n err_v in_o deliver_v they_o to_o christian_n say_v i_o beseech_v you_o what_o do_v it_o avail_n christianity_n to_o have_v the_o pure_a letter_n of_o scripture_n close_v up_o in_o a_o bible_n and_o preserve_v from_o error_n if_o christian_n universal_o have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v deserted_n by_o almighty_a god_n and_o permit_v before_o protestant_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n to_o err_v in_o the_o very_a substantial_o of_o faith_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v so_o for_o confess_o not_o only_o those_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n as_o arian_n year_n protestant_n say_v all_o christian_n err_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n pelagian_o donatist_n and_o the_o late_a grecian_n but_o also_o that_o great_a moral_a body_n of_o catholic_n if_o our_o protestant_n say_v true_a err_v in_o the_o very_a fundamental_o of_o faith_n since_o they_o teach_v as_o they_o do_v still_o their_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n gross_a error_n therefore_o reign_v among_o they_o whether_o we_o suppose_v the_o scripture_n pure_a or_o corrupt_v imagine_v then_o which_o be_v utter_o fall_v though_o heretic_n can_v prove_v it_o fall_v that_o our_o scripture_n have_v be_v corrupt_v they_o have_v then_o err_v because_o the_o book_n be_v falsify_v suppose_v again_o which_o be_v true_a that_o scripture_n be_v not_o corrupt_v you_o have_v still_o the_o same_o effect_n which_o be_v error_n in_o doctrine_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o very_a word_n of_o pure_a scripture_n the_o reason_n sure_o be_v because_o the_o church_n do_v not_o right_o understand_v scripture_n if_o so_o you_o see_v how_o scripture_n not_o understand_v as_o easy_o begett'_v error_n as_o scripture_n error_n equal_o prejudicial_a whether_o it_o be_v cause_v by_o a_o false_a church_n or_o falsify_v scripture_n if_o it_o be_v corrupt_v what_o then_o matter_n it_o in_o reference_n to_o poor_a beguile_v soul_n whether_o these_o great_a suppose_a error_n arise_v from_o scripture_n misunderstand_v or_o scripture_n corrupt_v error_n be_v error_n and_o alike_o prejudicial_a in_o both_o case_n i_o say_v therefore_o it_o be_v as_o great_a a_o evil_a to_o have_v a_o church_n that_o shall_v teach_v truth_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n in_o bring_v in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a faith_n as_o to_o have_v a_o bible_n corrupt_v for_o it_o be_v error_n and_o fall_v doctrine_n wrought_v in_o man_n heart_n that_o undo_v they_o now_o whether_o that_o be_v cause_v by_o a_o fall_v church_n or_o falsify_v fear_v what_o sectary_n ought_v to_o fear_v scripture_n it_o import_v little_a our_o protestant_n affirm_v the_o first_o and_o may_v
a_o lawful_a syllogism_n whereby_o they_o prove_v that_o their_o reason_n have_v ever_o the_o good_a luck_n the_o singular_a privilege_n to_o fall_v right_a on_o the_o true_a sense_n whilst_o right_a no_o principle_n to_o prove_v that_o protestant_n reason_n hitt'_v right_a other_o as_o learned_a as_o they_o swerve_v from_o it_o if_o here_o they_o talk_v of_o the_o unction_n teach_v truth_n of_o the_o spirit_n etc._n etc._n they_o will_v be_v urge_v again_o for_o a_o principle_n to_o prove_v that_o these_o favour_n singular_o belong_v to_o they_o and_o not_o to_o other_o who_o dissent_n from_o they_o but_o we_o will_v wave_v this_o argument_n and_o only_a note_n how_o in_o all_o those_o dispute_n which_o our_o protestant_n hold_v either_o with_o catholic_n or_o sectary_n take_v for_o a_o instance_n the_o arian_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v so_o far_o of_o from_o be_v a_o question_n the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n when_o two_o sectary_n dispute_n be_v ever_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n receive_a principle_n by_o both_o these_o litigious_a party_n that_o it_o be_v ever_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n and_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o another_o own_a and_o admit_v principle_n if_o the_o discourse_n stand_v upon_o solid_a ground_n 3._o one_o example_n will_v give_v you_o more_o light_n mr._n poole_n assault_v a_o arian_n a_o far_o weak_a adversary_n than_o a_o instance_n it_o be_v prove_v by_o a_o instance_n catholic_n with_o a_o scriptural_a proof_n for_o that_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o sacred_a trinity_n and_o argue_v thus_o scripture_n say_v john_n 1._o c._n 5._o 7._o there_o be_v three_o that_o bear_v record_n in_o heaven_n the_o father_n word_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o these_o three_o be_v one_o but_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o scripture_n say_v mr._n poole_n be_v that_o god_n be_v one_o in_o essenced_a and_o three_o distinct_a person_n the_o father_n vnproduced_a the_o son_n produce_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o both_o ergo_fw-la we_o must_v admit_v a_o trinity_n observe_v well_o the_o arian_n admit_n the_o first_o proposition_n or_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o here_o be_v the_o only_a principle_n agree_v on_o by_o these_o two_o disputant_n but_o utter_o deny_v the_o second_o viz._n the_o sense_n draw_v out_o of_o these_o word_n and_o tell_v we_o sense_n the_o arian_n admit_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n but_o deny_v mr._n pool_n sense_n his_o adversary_n that_o this_o sense_n be_v the_o very_a thing_n in_o question_n but_o no_o receive_a principle_n and_o therefore_o must_v be_v prove_v not_o suppose_v against_o he_o prove_v i_o say_v and_o by_o sole_a scripture_n which_o yet_o can_v be_v do_v though_o we_o turn_v to_o all_o the_o text_n in_o the_o bible_n most_o just_o therefore_o may_v the_o arian_n tell_v mr._n poole_n if_o his_o faith_n fall_v upon_o such_o a_o determinate_a sense_n now_o give_v he_o believe_v it_o either_o because_o his_o private_a judgement_n mould_n scripture_n to_o that_o mean_v or_o because_o he_o take_v it_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o church_n which_o he_o profess_o disow_v and_o will_v not_o believe_v 4._o in_o reference_n to_o what_o be_v here_o say_v note_v first_o that_o as_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v suppose_v and_o not_o prove_v against_o a_o arian_n by_o force_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o particular_a mystery_n so_o much_o more_o it_o be_v ever_o suppose_a and_o not_o prove_v when_o protestant_n dispute_v against_o catholic_n the_o reason_n be_v their_o private_a judgement_n triumph_n protestant_n first_o frame_n to_o themselves_o a_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o then_o triumph_n first_o make_v what_o sense_n they_o please_v which_o be_v no_o receive_a principle_n and_o afterward_o they_o vapour_n like_o conqueror_n as_o if_o sole_a scripture_n do_v the_o deed_n and_o defeat_v we_o upon_o the_o great_a assurance_n i_o have_v of_o this_o my_o assertion_n i_o challenge_v mr._n poole_n or_o any_o protestant_n judgement_n they_o have_v not_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n without_o the_o mixture_n of_o their_o private_a judgement_n to_o produce_v one_o text_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n which_o without_o the_o mixture_n of_o their_o private_a judgement_n or_o unadmit_v gloss_n speak_v so_o much_o as_o probably_n against_o it_o the_o more_o plausible_a place_n they_o insist_v on_o be_v that_o of_o st._n john_n cap._n 6._o unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n etc._n etc._n for_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n which_o nevertheless_o must_v have_v twenty_o gloss_n and_o as_o many_o self_n judgement_n upon_o it_o before_o it_o can_v put_v on_o a_o likelihood_n of_o a_o proof_n against_o we_o 5._o note_v 2._o that_o whilst_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n lie_v under_o dispute_n and_o be_v not_o agree_v on_o by_o the_o two_o party_n scripture_n why_o protestant_n lose_v labour_n when_o they_o argue_v by_o scripture_n at_o difference_n for_o example_n a_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n it_o be_v but_o labour_v lose_v in_o the_o protestant_n to_o assault_v his_o adversary_n with_o text_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o catholic_n answer_n olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la prio_fw-la possideo_fw-la i_o have_v ever_o believe_v the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n to_o be_v such_o as_o you_o know_v we_o catholic_n own_v and_o can_v you_o my_o antagonist_n answer_v what_o the_o catholic_n answer_v persuade_v yourself_o to_o drive_v i_o out_o of_o the_o possession_n of_o my_o ancient_a belief_n by_o your_o sole_a private_a judgement_n or_o those_o new_a gloss_n you_o father_n on_o scripture_n if_o so_o a_o worthy_a gentleman_n who_o by_o right_a of_o his_o ancestor_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o upward_o now_o quiet_o possess_v his_o land_n may_v be_v turn_v out_o of_o house_n and_o harbour_n upon_o the_o private_a judgement_n of_o some_o new_a upstart_n fellow_n that_o tell_v we_o he_o he_o very_o think_v the_o ancient_a write_n for_o his_o land_n be_v not_o well_o understand_v therefore_o he_o will_v first_o do_v he_o the_o favour_n to_o explicate_v they_o according_a to_o his_o private_a opinion_n though_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n hitherto_o receive_v which_o do_v he_o will_v drive_v he_o out_o a_o door_n and_o make_v he_o a_o beggar_n this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n 6._o contrariwise_o when_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v scripture_n how_o we_o may_v argue_v from_o scripture_n agree_v on_o we_o may_v argue_v as_o schoolman_n do_v and_o draw_v from_o it_o theological_a conclusion_n which_o though_o often_o various_a among_o divine_n yet_o the_o principle_n admit_v i_o mean_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n remain's_n unquestioned_a and_o be_v maintain_v without_o contradiction_n without_o such_o a_o agree_v on_o sense_n which_o either_o scripture_n as_o it_o often_o do_v deliver_n plain_o enough_o or_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o learned_a man_n make_v high_o probable_a or_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n declare_v certain_a it_o be_v to_o no_o more_o purpose_n to_o dispute_v out_o of_o scripture_n then_o to_o speak_v arabic_a to_o a_o illiterate_a peasant_n yet_o the_o loose_a behaviour_n of_o our_o protestant_n be_v such_o that_o it_o lead_v they_o without_o the_o guidance_n of_o these_o light_n first_o to_o fancy_n sectary_n the_o fancy_n of_o sectary_n a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o and_o then_o draw_v strange_a conclusion_n from_o it_o so_o mr._n poole_n after_o he_o have_v by_o his_o own_o interpretation_n pervert_v that_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n may_v well_o say_v the_o church_n be_v not_o prove_v infallible_a thus_o much_o be_v note_v if_o the_o word_n reason_n signify_v a_o formal_a discourse_n 7._o perhaps_o protestant_n may_v reply_v for_o in_o truth_n it_o refute_v another_o acception_n of_o the_o word_n reason_n refute_v be_v the_o hard_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n where_o to_o have_v they_o in_o their_o answer_n that_o reason_n here_o import_v not_o any_o discourse_n at_o all_o but_o a_o immediate_a clear_a light_n transfuse_v into_o their_o mind_n when_o they_o read_v scripture_n like_o a_o beam_n shoot_v from_o the_o sun_n whereby_o their_o eye_n as_o perspicuous_o discern_v the_o most_o abstruse_a sense_n in_o it_o as_o man_n do_v the_o sun_n by_o its_o light_n or_o the_o first_o know_v principle_n of_o nature_n by_o their_o own_o indisputable_a evidence_n be_v this_o reply_n think_v you_o rational_a that_o draw_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o dram_n of_o reason_n after_o it_o for_o if_o their_o new_a faith_n have_v set_v new_a eye_n in_o their_o head_n it_o have_v not_o sure_o pluck_v out_o their_o neighbour_n eye_n who_o yet_o i_o hope_v may_v see_v what_o be_v discernible_a by_o all._n none_o then_o ever_o question_v the_o suns-shining_a at_o noonday_n or_o write_v commentary_n on_o the_o first_o
move_v and_z draws_z man_n to_o believe_v be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v inheritance_n protestant_n can_v prove_v that_o the_o operation_n of_o grace_n be_v their_o peculiar_a inheritance_n though_o indeed_o our_o protestant_n have_v a_o odd_a spirit_n they_o can_v show_v probable_o that_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n divine_a grace_n be_v more_o their_o peculiar_a inheritance_n than_o other_o who_o believe_v contrary_a to_o they_o but_o of_o this_o hereafter_o in_o the_o interim_n note_n that_o in_o the_o discourse_n hitherto_o we_o inquire_v not_o so_o much_o after_o the_o reason_n of_o protestant_n for_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n as_o for_o its_o sense_n in_o point_n of_o controversy_n whereof_o you_o will_v see_v more_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n vi_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o protestant_n misinterpret_v scripture_n which_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v more_o ample_o refute_v 1._o we_o note_v above_o that_o it_o much_o avail_n when_o sectary_n take_v a_o liberty_n of_o gloss_v scripture_n as_o they_o please_v to_o urge_v they_o to_o a_o proof_n of_o their_o interpretation_n by_o this_o close_a deal_v we_o shall_v learn_v much_o of_o their_o fallacious_a spirit_n and_o see_v how_o they_o both_o abuse_v their_o reader_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n 2._o in_o the_o former_a discourse_n we_o handle_v that_o controversy_n teacher_n scripture_n most_o significant_a for_o infallible_a teacher_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o prove_v the_o verity_n we_o allege_v such_o express_a scripture_n that_o i_o dare_v affirm_v the_o whole_a bible_n speak_v no_o where_o any_o truth_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n then_o this_o in_o more_o plain_n catagorical_a and_o significant_a term_n may_v the_o word_n without_o patch_n of_o vain_a gloss_n have_v their_o open_a and_o obvious_a sense_n 3._o for_o the_o infallibility_n then_o of_o live_v teacher_n we_o cite_v what_o christ_n say_v luk._n 10._o 16._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o etc._n etc._n or_o as_o the_o greek_a read'_v and_o perhaps_o more_o significant_o hear_v you_o he_o hear_v i_o and_o argue_v thus_o he_o who_o hear_v christ_n speak_v here_o be_v a_o teacher_n teacher_n argument_n for_o infallible_a teacher_n subjective_o infallible_a in_o doctrine_n and_o teach_v but_o he_o who_o here_o be_v those_o who_o be_v point_v at_o by_o that_o particle_n you_o here_o be_v christ_n speak_v for_o hear_v you_o he_o hear_v i_o ergo_fw-la he_o here_o be_v teacher_n subjective_o infallible_a in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o teach_v 4._o to_o this_o a_o grandy_n among_o our_o sectary_n answer_n be_v sectary_n the_o gloss_n of_o sectary_n that_o say_v of_o christ_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o etc._n etc._n be_v absolute_o true_a in_o the_o apostle_n who_o keep_v themselves_o to_o that_o which_o be_v reveal_v by_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v only_o conditional_o true_a mark_v the_o gloss_n in_o their_o successor_n id_fw-la est_fw-la so_o long_o and_o so_o far_o as_o you_o speak_v my_o word_n and_o not_o your_o own_o observe_v i_o say_v the_o injury_n do_v the_o text_n by_o a_o self-conceited_a glosser_n and_o he_o speak_v peremptory_o it_o be_v but_o conditional_o true_a in_o their_o successor_n who_o say_v so_o good_a sir_n christ_n or_o you_o prove_v your_o gloss_n which_o overreach_v the_o text_n and_o all_o the_o word_n which_o god_n ever_o speak_v must_v i_o therefore_o be_v fool_v into_o a_o fallible_a how_o desperate_o fallible_a man_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v that_o all_o pastor_n be_v fallible_a false_a belief_n and_o hold_v all_o the_o pastor_n in_o christ_n church_n fallible_a because_o you_o a_o mere_a fallible_a man_n be_v please_v to_o tell_v i_o they_o be_v fallible_a or_o that_o all_o they_o have_v be_v only_o the_o small_a allowance_n of_o a_o conditional_a but_o of_o no_o absolute_a infallibility_n evangelical_n sincerity_n require_v a_o proof_n of_o a_o assertion_n so_o new_o coin_a produce_v it_o infallible_a a_o new_a sectary_n may_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v only_o conditional_o infallible_a but_o their_o suecessor_n absolute_o infallible_a then_o and_o let_v it_o be_v plain_a scripture_n unless_o this_o be_v do_v any_o new_a haeretick_n may_v give_v the_o quite_o contrary_a gloss_n to_o christ_n word_n and_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v only_o conditional_o infallible_a whilst_o live_v with_o christ_n they_o may_v be_v right_o instruct_v in_o case_n they_o err_v but_o that_o the_o follow_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v absolute_o infallible_a because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o so_o good_a a_o master_n to_o reclaim_v they_o in_o case_n they_o swerve_v from_o his_o doctrine_n thus_o much_o be_v say_v and_o only_o say_v without_o proof_n and_o your_o gloss_n good_a sir_n have_v no_o better_a proof_n to_o enhaunse_v it_o but_o your_o own_o say_v which_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o rush_n o_o but_o they_o be_v strange_a kind_n of_o sectary_n say_v you_o who_o deny_v the_o apostle_n infallibility_n they_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o as_o strange_a they_o be_v who_o deny_v to_o the_o true_a church_n infallible_a teacher_n but_o this_o be_v not_o what_o i_o aim_n at_o all_o i_o now_o say_v be_v that_o if_o such_o sectary_n appear_v perhaps_o among_o you_o in_o england_n they_o prove_v their_o assertion_n as_o well_o by_o vent_v their_o sectary_n fancy_n vent_v without_o proof_n by_o both_o these_o sectary_n gloss_n upon_o christ_n word_n as_o you_o do_v you_o you_o say_v those_o word_n be_v only_o conditional_o true_a in_o the_o apostle_n successor_n but_o prove_v nothing_o they_o say_v the_o word_n be_v conditional_a in_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o absolute_a in_o their_o successor_n and_o prove_v nothing_o you_o be_v here_o both_o alike_o unless_o luther_n proof_n help_v you_o out_o doctor_n martinus_n lutherus_n vult_fw-la sic_fw-la habere_fw-la sic_fw-la volo_fw-la sic_fw-la jubeo_fw-la you_o have_v not_o more_o you_o reply_v where_o the_o command_n be_v for_o preach_v matth._n 28._o the_o restraint_n be_v add_v what_o restraint_n none_o at_o all_o when_o send_v as_o lawful_a missioner_n to_o preach_v christ_n doctrine_n than_o they_o can_v deliver_v no_o other_o doctrine_n send_v by_o he_o and_o as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n then_o found_v herein_o they_o can_v neither_o go_v beyond_o infallible_a how_o far_o the_o apostle_n and_o true_a pastor_n be_v infallible_a nor_o fall_v short_a of_o their_o commission_n i_o say_v as_o send_v for_o no_o man_n god_n know_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n or_o 70._o disciple_n or_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v or_o be_v infallible_a in_o every_o ordinary_a matter_n whereof_o they_o casual_o discourse_v 5._o well_o but_o the_o message_n these_o 70._o disciple_n be_v send_v upon_o require_v no_o infallible_a assistance_n for_o they_o be_v not_o to_o deliver_v full_o christ_n doctrine_n but_o only_o to_o prepare_v for_o it_o by_o tell_v their_o hearer_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n here_o be_v also_o more_o than_o be_v probable_a or_o can_v be_v prove_v for_o be_v it_o probable_a think_v you_o that_o these_o 70._o send_v to_o preach_v reiterated_a nothing_o but_o these_o few_o word_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n be_v it_o probable_a that_o they_o be_v so_o toung-tyed_n as_o to_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n sacred_a virtue_n or_o of_o his_o miracle_n whereby_o he_o found_v this_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v they_o be_v infallible_a at_o least_o in_o the_o delivery_n of_o that_o message_n for_o have_v christ_n send_v by_o his_o eternal_a father_n personal_o deliver_v the_o message_n he_o have_v speak_v infallible_o but_o say_v the_o text_n he_o who_o here_o be_v you_o hear_v i_o ergo_fw-la these_o 70._o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o message_n they_o deliver_v you_o reply_v again_o though_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o 70._o disciple_n be_v suppose_v infallible_a before_o a_o obje_fw-fr ∣_o ction_n christ_n ascension_n yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v draw_v from_o hence_o for_o the_o church_n continual_a infallibility_n first_o because_o be_v send_v abroad_o by_o christ_n when_o there_o be_v no_o infallible_a write_n contain_v christ_n doctrine_n 2._o they_o have_v sufficient_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n in_o cure_v disease_n and_o cast_v out_o devil_n to_o attest_v that_o infallibility_n to_o this_o second_o answer_v i_o answer_v above_o that_o the_o church_n have_v the_o like_a evidence_n of_o infallibility_n by_o miracle_n cast_v of_o devil_n etc._n etc._n the_o first_o objection_n be_v proofle_n because_o infallible_a writing_n alone_o make_v no_o man_n infallible_a as_o be_v evident_a in_o all_o know_a heretic_n who_o have_v god_n infallible_a word_n yet_o most_o certain_o pervert_v it_o there_o be_v therefore_o as_o much_o need_n of_o a_o
infallible_a teacher_n to_o learn_v we_o now_o infallible_o what_o that_o write_a word_n speak_v in_o a_o hundred_o teach_v as_o great_a necessity_n now_o to_o learn_v we_o what_o scripture_n speak_v as_o what_o christ_n teach_v controvert_v point_n as_o then_o be_v necessary_a to_o declare_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n which_o he_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n i_o say_v the_o substance_n for_o without_o all_o doubt_n the_o apostle_n and_o the_o 70._o say_v explicit_o much_o more_o in_o their_o preach_v then_o mere_o what_o christ_n have_v implicit_o and_o in_o few_o word_n command_v they_o to_o preach_v yet_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v swerve_v in_o any_o doctrinal_a point_n therefore_o in_o the_o publish_n his_o doctrine_n they_o have_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o his_o ascension_n though_o it_o be_v then_o more_o ample_o confirm_v and_o promise_v anew_o not_o only_o to_o the_o apostle_n then_o live_v but_o also_o to_o their_o successor_n for_o ever_o 6._o and_o this_o be_v what_o our_o saviour_n dogmatical_o ever_o god_n spirit_n with_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o teach_v john_n 14._o 16._o of_o a_o comforter_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o shall_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o which_o word_n imply_v a_o continual_a abode_n can_v bu●_n be_v understand_v in_o a_o absolute_a sense_n yes_o say_v they_o he_o shall_v be_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o but_o how_o mark_v the_o gloss_n in_o regard_n of_o consolation_n and_o grace_n a_o mere_a guest_n grace_n not_o only_o for_o consolation_n and_o grace_n the_o only_a question_n be_v whether_o it_o hitt'_v right_a or_o no_o for_o who_o tell_v we_o you_o sir_n that_o this_o and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o absolute_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o well_o import_v the_o assistance_n of_o infallibility_n as_o that_o of_o consolation_n and_o grace_n prove_v your_o gloss_n and_o by_o scripture_n this_o we_o urge_v for_o we_o catholic_n say_v without_o draw_v further_o proof_n from_o either_o council_n or_o father_n which_o you_o hold_v fallible_a that_o christ_n follow_a word_n john_n 16._o 13._o when_o that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n take_v in_o their_o obvious_a sense_n warrant_v this_o infallible_a assistance_n for_o ever_o can_v your_o fallible_a spirit_n assure_v i_o of_o the_o contrary_a you_o say_v yes_o for_o these_o last_o word_n be_v restrain_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o here_o be_v another_o gloss_n or_o guess_n as_o unlucky_a as_o the_o former_a for_o who_o restrain_v here_o christ_n or_o you_o if_o you_o do_v it_o you_o may_v as_o well_o restrain_v the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n as_o infallible_a assistance_n 7._o we_o prove_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o blessing_n grant_v to_o the_o church_n by_o our_o saviour_n own_o word_n matt._n 28._o 20._o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o moreover_o affirm_v that_o the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n grant_v the_o church_n who_o duty_n be_v to_o teach_v we_o truth_n benefit's_n little_a in_o order_n to_o that_o infallibility_n consolation_n of_o grace_n nothing_o in_o a_o whole_a church_n without_o infallibility_n end_n unless_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o further_a privilege_n of_o infallibility_n for_o what_o comfort_n have_v any_o whether_o learned_a or_o illiterate_a to_o hear_v that_o the_o pastor_n of_o christ_n church_n have_v m●●h_o interior_a consolation_n and_o grace_n if_o this_o sorrowful_a thought_n afflict_v his_o hart_n all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o th●se_a pastor_n notwithstanding_o the_o plenty_n of_o their_o grace_n may_v cheat_v he_o into_o damnable_a error_n and_o teach_v there_o be_v neither_o god_n heaven_n nor_o hell_n 8._o i_o may_v further_o show_v how_o utter_o inconsistent_a this_o suppose_a and_o yet_o vnexplicate_v consolation_n of_o grace_n church_n the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n and_o want_v of_o divine_a assistance_n uncompossible_a in_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n which_o may_v deceive_v we_o but_o the_o thing_n need_n be_v not_o proof_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o god_n who_o have_v promise_v to_o direct_v we_o by_o his_o pastor_n can_v comfort_v they_o so_o plentiful_o with_o celestial_a inspiration_n and_o permit_v all_o to_o delude_v and_o cozen_v we_o with_o pernicious_a error_n will_v he_o give_v they_o grace_n think_v you_o to_o talk_v only_o and_o not_o to_o teach_v his_o verity_n certain_o to_o live_v holy_o for_o his_o grace_n serve_v for_o some_o end_n and_o leave_v they_o to_o a_o possibility_n of_o corrupt_v his_o spouse_n his_o own_o sanctify_a truth_n god_n court_v not_o his_o church_n with_o comfort_n and_o permitt'_v it_o to_o betray_v his_o truth_n church_n with_o false_a doctrine_n this_o in_o a_o word_n be_v to_o tell_v god_n that_o he_o court_n be_v the_o watchman_n of_o his_o church_n with_o heavenly_a consolation_n who_o nevertheless_o may_v betray_v his_o cause_n and_o give_v up_o his_o city_n to_o the_o devil_n when_o they_o please_v for_o here_o in_o they_o be_v leave_v to_o their_o own_o will_n and_o fancy_n god_n you_o know_v be_v truth_n and_o he_o love_v truth_n truth_n be_v that_o which_o he_o first_o establish_v in_o his_o church_n and_o it_o answer_v to_o that_o first_o operation_n of_o christian_a which_o be_v divine_a faith_n the_o ground_n of_o all_o sanctity_n to_o tell_v i_o therefore_o that_o he_o comfort_v a_o whole_a church_n by_o sectary_n a_o paradox_n of_o sectary_n grace_n and_o yet_o leave_v it_o so_o totter_v upon_o uncertainty_n that_o none_o can_v with_o absolute_a assurance_n say_v he_o either_o teach_v or_o hear_v truth_n deliver_v in_o any_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v worse_a than_o a_o mere_a chimaera_n and_o make_v our_o bountiful_a lord_n not_o only_o a_o very_a niggard_n of_o his_o grace_n but_o also_o give_v he_o a_o most_o high_a affront_n the_o grace_n therefore_o of_o consolation_n infallibility_n the_o comfort_n of_o grace_n suppose_v the_o favour_n of_o infallibility_n which_o he_o allow_v his_o church_n as_o a_o church_n ever_o imply_v or_o suppose_v that_o arcb-favour_n of_o infallible_a assistance_n rob_v it_o of_o this_o privilege_n and_o other_o grace_n avail_v little_a 9_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n i_o must_v needs_o propose_v one_o question_n to_o our_o protestant_n it_o be_v whether_o god_n suppose_v his_o promise_n already_o make_v can_v grace_n a_o question_n propose_v whether_o the_o church_n can_v withstand_v a_o loose_a all_o grace_n according_a to_o their_o principle_n permit_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n vnassi_v by_o his_o infallible_a spirit_n lose_v withstand_v and_o reject_v what_o ever_o grace_n he_o give_v or_o have_v give_v it_o if_o they_o say_v yes_o it_o be_v possible_a then_o i_o infer_v god_n can_v permit_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v turn_v traitor_n and_o become_v impious_a for_o a_o church_n which_o withstand_v lose_v or_o reject_v all_o grace_n be_v traitorous_a and_o impious_a if_o they_o say_v no_o it_o be_v against_o his_o goodness_n to_o permit_v such_o a_o universal_a impiety_n they_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o can_v but_o preserve_v a_o church_n for_o ever_o whether_o consist_v of_o elect_a or_o no_o we_o dispute_v not_o in_o his_o grace_n and_o favour_n grace_n truth_n as_o necessary_a to_o the_o church_n as_o grace_n and_o this_o infallible_o ergo_fw-la i_o say_v he_o can_v buth_n infallible_o also_o suppose_v his_o promise_n preserve_v it_o in_o truth_n by_o the_o special_a assistance_n of_o his_o own_o unerring_a spirit_n truth_n be_v as_o all_o know_v as_o necessary_a to_o the_o church_n as_o grace_n be_v and_o thus_o we_o see_v in_o notorious_a great_a sinner_n who_o although_o they_o have_v a_o thousand_o incitement_n of_o grace_n to_o amend_v their_o life_n yea_o better_a themselves_o by_o it_o in_o some_o particular_n yet_o as_o long_o as_o divine_a truth_n necessary_a to_o christian_n be_v want_v their_o state_n be_v deplorable_a to_o conclude_v then_o here_o be_v my_o dilemma_n either_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v all_z the_o teacher_n and_o hearer_n in_o it_o may_v abandon_v all_o god_n reveal_v verity_n and_o neither_o teach_v nor_o hear_v one_o word_n of_o his_o truth_n or_o it_o be_v impossible_a if_o the_o first_o be_v grant_v it_o be_v not_o only_o possible_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v revolt_v from_o god_n and_o truth_n but_o may_v loose_v all_o grace_n likewise_o grant_v this_o and_o say_v next_o what_o will_v become_v of_o our_o protestant_n elect_v people_n who_o because_o predestinate_v to_o eternal_a life_n can_v but_o have_v grace_n observe_v well_o sectary_n a_o paradox_n of_o sectary_n the_o paradox_n they_o can_v lose_v grace_n yet_o it_o be_v possible_a never_a to_o hear_v a_o word_n of_o
of_o these_o place_n now_o cite_v may_v be_v as_o protestant_n understand_v proof_n the_o bare_a say_v of_o sectary_n stand_v for_o no_o proof_n so_o i_o say_v the_o contradictory_n proposition_n be_v every_o whit_n as_o good_a the_o sense_n may_v be_v as_o catholic_n understand_v who_o must_v therefore_o whilst_o we_o be_v both_o yet_o suppose_v to_o stand_v as_o it_o be_v on_o equal_a term_n determine_v what_o god_n have_v absolute_o reveal_v in_o these_o scripture_n i_o say_v absolute_o for_o the_o question_n here_o be_v not_o what_o a_o particular_a man_n may_v imagine_v god_n to_o have_v speak_v but_o what_o he_o have_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la speak_v the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v clear_a because_o god_n speak_v not_o in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n as_o this_o be_v to_o try_v man_n wit_n or_o to_o hear_v they_o tell_v he_o lord_n such_o may_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o your_o word_n reveal_v faith_n rely_v not_o on_o what_o private_a man_n think_v god_n have_v reveal_v though_o i_o can_v say_v what_o it_o be_v nor_o can_v our_o faith_n rely_v on_o what_o we_o only_o think_v he_o may_v have_v speak_v but_o on_o what_o he_o have_v actual_o reveal_v and_o we_o have_v mean_n thanks_o be_v to_o god_n to_o know_v this_o absolute_a sense_n as_o i_o shall_v declare_v in_o the_o 9_o chapter_n where_o the_o objection_n be_v full_o solve_v 5._o in_o the_o mean_a time_n be_v please_v to_o reflect_v first_o that_o arian_n protestant_n gloss_n as_o injurious_a to_o god_n word_n as_o those_o of_o the_o arian_n when_o mere_a fallible_a man_n peremptory_o put_v upon_o scripture_n a_o sense_n which_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o prove_v but_o by_o their_o own_o err_v guess_n only_o to_o be_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o in_o a_o matter_n which_o high_o concern_v salvation_n they_o plain_o injure_v god_n sacred_a word_n protestant_n be_v these_o fallible_a man_n and_o do_v so_o ergo_fw-la they_o injure_v god_n word_n the_o first_o proposition_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o case_n of_o arian_n who_o because_o they_o peremptory_o give_v a_o sense_n to_o those_o scripture_n which_o relate_v to_o the_o real_a unity_n of_o three_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n the_o matter_n be_v of_o high_a importance_n and_o can_v prove_v it_o but_o by_o the_o force_n of_o their_o err_v guess_v only_o they_o wrong_v both_o god_n and_o his_o word_n the_o second_o proposition_n be_v as_o evident_a for_o proof_n the_o proof_n protestant_n absolute_o say_v the_o scripture_n now_o cite_v include_v not_o yea_o positive_o exclude_v a_o perpetual_a infallibility_n allow_v the_o church_n this_o sense_n and_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o high_a importance_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o it_o end_n be_v all_o controversy_n they_o can_v prove_v but_o by_o their_o own_o err_v guess_n only_o and_o therefore_o injure_v scripture_n in_o say_v god_n have_v speak_v that_o which_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o prove_v be_v speak_v 6._o reflect_v 2._o it_o be_v not_o enough_o that_o sectary_n tell_v we_o upon_o their_o own_o fallible_a parole_n that_o our_o place_n of_o difficulty_n sectary_n come_v not_o home_n to_o the_o difficulty_n scripture_n may_v be_v interpret_v as_o they_o please_v or_o come_v not_o home_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n for_o admit_v thus_o much_o gratis_o they_o yet_o convince_v nothing_o because_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v and_o god_n know_v only_o to_o say_v it_o our_o allege_a scripture_n for_o example_n that_o of_o st._n paul_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n prove_v contrary_n to_o say_v we_o prove_v not_o our_o doctrine_n be_v not_o to_o say_v they_o prove_v the_o contrary_n not_o a_o church_n infallible_a and_o a_o quite_o other_o positive_o to_o teach_v and_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v fallible_a the_o most_o they_o can_v infer_v out_o of_o thi●_n negative_a such_o place_n prove_v not_o be_v all_o grant_v they_o desire_v be_v that_o they_o give_v the_o slip_n to_o so_o many_o text_n of_o scripture_n or_o infringe_v so_o much_o force_n of_o our_o proof_n alas_o this_o only_o be_v to_o pull_v as_o it_o doctrine_n their_o weak_a endeavour_n be_v to_o pull_v down_o not_o to_o build_v up_o the_o machine_n of_o their_o new_a doctrine_n be_v so_o much_o of_o a_o house_n down_o but_o it_o do_v not_o therefore_o follow_v that_o they_o positive_o give_v in_o as_o good_a text_n to_o the_o contrary_a sense_n or_o build_v up_o the_o structure_n of_o their_o new_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o church_n fallibility_n to_o pull_v down_o one_o proof_n be_v not_o to_o destroy_v all_o we_o can_v say_v we_o have_v more_o string_n to_o our_o bow_n then_o one_o much_o les_fw-fr be_v it_o to_o build_v up_o a_o opposite_a doctrine_n the_o machine_n these_o sectary_n will_v fain_o build_v lie_v in_o this_o one_o positive_a assertion_n the_o whole_a church_n be_v fallible_a this_o say_v i_o fancy_n only_a erect_n for_o it_o stand_v unprope_v they_o fancy_n do_v all_o with_o they_o that_o be_v it_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v nor_o shall_v ever_o be_v positive_o prove_v and_o hence_o 7._o reflect_v 3._o if_o protestant_n who_o rely_v total_o on_o scripture_n proof_n positive_o assert_v as_o they_o do_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v fallible_a they_o be_v oblige_v both_o in_o conscience_n and_o all_o law_n of_o disputation_n to_o prove_v what_o they_o say_v for_o asserenti_fw-la incumbit_fw-la probatio_fw-la observe_v my_o reason_n when_o luther_n and_o sectary_n come_v among_o we_o and_o trouble_v the_o world_n they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o a_o whole_a ancient_a church_n against_o they_o own_v the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o god_n direct_v spirit_n for_o which_o we_o now_o argue_v the_o church_n plead_v thus_o olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la prio_fw-la possideo_fw-la this_o spirit_n of_o infallibility_n i_o long_o since_o have_v have_v and_o yet_o upon_o scripture_n proof_n do_v believe_v well_o now_o enter_v these_o sectary_n please_v they_o first_o reject_v church_n authority_n and_o then_o make_v scripture_n speak_v as_o fancy_n please_v and_o first_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o ancient_a church_n next_o they_o fall_v aboard_o with_o our_o scripture_n and_o because_o they_o be_v good_a at_o guess_v they_o tell_v we_o very_o these_o scripture_n seem_v not_o to_o prove_v a_o church_n infallible_a because_o they_o be_v able_a to_o interpret_v all_o to_o a_o contrary_a sense_n to_o this_o we_o have_v answer_v their_o seem_n be_v no_o proof_n withal_o that_o catholic_n as_o many_o and_o learned_a as_o they_o both_o can_v and_o do_v interpret_v they_o otherwise_o hitherto_o therefore_o their_o cause_n be_v nothing_o advance_v more_o than_o be_v necessary_a and_o it_o be_v that_o whilst_o they_o positive_o establish_v a_o new_a coin_a doctrine_n of_o a_o whole_a christian_a church_n fallible_a contrary_a to_o what_o antiquity_n ever_o own_v i_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o bring_v some_o positive_a proof_n and_o make_v good_a their_o unheard_a of_o assertion_n 8._o and_o here_o we_o may_v have_v plain_a deal_n if_o sectary_n church_n protestant_n have_n no_o text_n of_o scripture_n against_o a_o infallible_a church_n please_v turn_v then_o to_o your_o bible_n gentleman_n and_o show_v i_o any_o text_n like_o this_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o ever_o teach_v it_o all_o truth_n god_n have_v place_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n in_o his_o church_n but_o such_o as_o may_v suffer_v we_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o false_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n such_o expression_n we_o read_v in_o our_o bible_n for_o the_o contrary_a verity_n have_v you_o any_o thing_n like_o they_o in_o you_o to_o prove_v your_o opposite_a asserted_a doctrine_n i_o say_v any_o like_o they_o for_o i_o press_v not_o to_o have_v from_o you_o the_o same_o formal_a word_n but_o will_v be_v content_a with_o one_o plain_a significant_a text_n and_o we_o will_v stand_v to_o scripture_n or_o if_o scripture_n please_v you_o not_o we_o will_v accompany_v you_o to_o council_n and_o father_n which_o so_o much_o as_o meanly_n make_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n fallible_a such_o a_o scripture_n i_o tell_v you_o once_o more_o you_o can_v produce_v ergo_fw-la you_o only_o vent_v your_o fancy_n you_o talk_v and_o prove_v not_o you_o believe_v a_o doctrine_n which_o you_o can_v show_v be_v ever_o reveal_v in_o god_n word_n you_o may_v perhaps_o trifle_v it_o out_o and_o tell_v we_o as_o you_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v of_o our_o error_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o sectary_n what_o we_o desire_v of_o sectary_n we_o inquire_v not_o here_o after_o your_o proofle_n assertion_n they_o be_v answer_v a_o hundred_o time_n over_o nor_o ask_v what_o
you_o fallible_a teacher_n say_v but_o what_o god_n have_v say_v in_o scripture_n concern_v the_o fallibility_n of_o a_o whole_a christian_a church_n this_o we_o wish_v to_o hear_v of_o before_o we_o credit_v your_o talk_n or_o believe_v for_o your_o say_n it_o have_v err_v the_o facto_fw-la chap._n viii_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o sectary_n misinterpret_v scripture_n destroy_v protestant_n religion_n 1._o here_o we_o give_v you_o a_o four_o reflection_n consequent_a to_o the_o former_a discourse_n which_o follow_v upon_o our_o sectary_n misinterpretation_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o reader_n knowledge_n and_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o total_o ruin_n protestant_n religion_n thus_o it_o be_v the_o whole_a machine_n of_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n stand_v negative_n protestancy_n stand_v tople_a on_o negative_n tople_a upon_o suppose_a objective_n negative_n build_v up_o by_o fancy_n only_o without_o so_o much_o as_o one_o positive_a proof_n of_o scripture_n to_o support_v it_o if_o i_o evidence_n not_o this_o truth_n and_o consequent_o do_v not_o convince_v that_o our_o sectary_n have_v no_o faith_n deny_v i_o credit_v hereafter_o 2._o observe_v well_o no_o soon_o do_v these_o sectary_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o can_v abate_v the_o force_n of_o our_o scripture-proof_n for_o catholic_n doctrine_n but_o they_o negative_n how_o they_o proceed_v far_o a_o negative_n present_o lie_v hold_v on_o the_o quite_o contrary_a doctrine_n and_o make_v that_o a_o article_n of_o their_o new_a faith_n they_o say_v we_o prove_v not_o a_o church_n infallible_a therefore_o the_o contrary_a position_n the_o church_n be_v fallible_a be_v with_o they_o a_o certain_a truth_n they_o say_v we_o prove_v not_o a_o three_o place_n of_o purgatory_n therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o no_o inference_n mark_v th●se_o inference_n purgatory_n be_v a_o article_n of_o protestant_n faith_n we_o prove_v not_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o his_o not-presence_n constitute_v part_v of_o protestant_n doctrine_n we_o prove_v not_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n ergo_fw-la they_o believe_v the_o contrary_a etc._n etc._n to_o show_v their_o nullity_n of_o faith_n shall_v we_o here_o condescend_v to_o what_o they_o say_v and_o contrary_a both_o to_o conscience_n and_o manifest_a truth_n suppose_v with_o they_o the_o proof_n for_o our_o doctrine_n to_o be_v proofle_n be_v it_o so_o suppose_a at_o present_a pray_v you_o say_v next_o what_o be_v they_o able_a to_o infer_v upon_o such_o a_o fall_v concession_n marry_o thus_o much_o if_o we_o prove_v no_o purgatory_n there_o be_v sure_o no_v such_o place_n if_o we_o prove_v not_o the_o church_n infallible_a it_o be_v certain_o fallible_a and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n i_o answer_v this_o nonsense_n these_o sequels_fw-fr be_v deep_o nonsense_n sequel_n be_v nonsense_n and_o a_o pure_a non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la we_o prove_v not_o ergo_fw-la the_o contrary_a doctrine_n be_v true_a for_o how_o many_o thing_n be_v there_o both_o actual_a and_o possible_a which_o man_n prove_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v so_o a_o young_a student_n in_o mathematics_n can_v perhaps_o prove_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v great_a than_o a_o sieve_n be_v it_o therefore_o consequent_a that_o that_o luminous_a body_n be_v not_o great_a the_o proof_n be_v naught_o and_o here_o be_v all_o that_o follow_v one_o thing_n than_o it_o be_v in_o our_o present_a case_n to_o say_v our_o proof_n falsity_n proof_n may_v fall_v short_a and_o yet_o not_o fall_v upon_o falsity_n for_o catholic_n doctrine_n fall_v short_a or_o be_v forceles_a and_o a_o quite_o other_o to_o say_v they_o fall_v upon_o falsity_n ergo_fw-la no_o absolute_a denial_n of_o these_o catholic_n verity_n be_v deducible_a from_o our_o not_o prove_v they_o yet_o upon_o this_o fall_v suppose_v negative_a foundation_n we_o prove_v not_o all_o protestant_a religion_n stand_v totter_v as_o it_o do_v 3._o be_v please_v to_o hear_v more_o of_o this_o stuff_n let_v we_o also_o false_o suppose_v as_o our_o sectary_n will_v have_v it_o that_o these_o may_v be_v objective_a truth_n and_o verity_n no_o church_n be_v infallible_a there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n do_v it_o follow_v think_v you_o that_o they_o can_v believe_v these_o negative_n faith_n every_o truth_n be_v not_o a_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n with_o divine_a and_o steadfast_a faith_n upon_o the_o concession_n that_o they_o be_v now_o suppose_a truth_n no._n it_o be_v a_o lame_a consequence_n and_o a_o worse_a non_fw-la sequitur_n then_o the_o other_o observe_v my_o reason_n no_o objective_a verity_n although_o suppose_v true_a in_o itself_o can_v be_v believe_v by_o consequence_n a_o lame_a consequence_n divine_a faith_n unless_o god_n have_v positive_o reveal_v it_o or_o be_v at_o least_o clear_o deducible_a from_o scripture_n so_o sectary_n assert_v and_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o divine_a faith_n beside_o faith_n truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n be_v object_n of_o faith_n a_o material_a object_n believable_a require_v also_o and_o this_o essential_o the_o weight_n of_o a_o formal_a object_n which_o be_v god_n veracity_n to_o reveal_v that_o which_o be_v believe_v by_o faith_n seclude_v this_o veracity_n from_o the_o motive_n and_o formal_a object_n of_o our_o assent_n though_o we_o yield_v to_o a_o thousand_o verity_n not_o one_o of_o they_o can_v be_v believe_v by_o faith_n 4._o now_o i_o assume_v but_o the_o fallibility_n of_o christ_n whole_a church_n the_o not_o be_v of_o purgatory_n the_o not_o existency_n god_n that_o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n no_o real_a presence_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o where_o reveal_v by_o god_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacred_a eucharist_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o where_o positive_o reveal_v by_o god_n no_o nor_o clear_o deduce_v from_o any_o text_n in_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la although_o these_o be_v truth_n in_o themselves_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o reveal_v truth_n or_o truth_n speak_v by_o almighty_a god_n therefore_o they_o be_v insufficient_a to_o found_v divine_a faith_n the_o major_n be_v grant_v by_o protestant_n the_o minor_a viz_o that_o these_o suppose_a truth_n be_v faith_n ergo_fw-la can_v be_v article_n of_o protestant_n faith_n never_o speak_v by_o almighty_a god_n in_o scripture_n be_v so_o undeniable_o evident_a that_o here_o i_o be_o force_v to_o challenge_v sectary_n to_o produce_v so_o much_o as_o one_o text_n wherein_o god_n have_v positive_o say_v there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n no_o real_a presence_n etc._n etc._n this_o they_o can_v do_v by_o so_o much_o as_o by_o a_o probable_a deduction_n from_o scripture_n much_o les_fw-fr by_o plain_a scripture_n itself_o the_o conclusion_n sectary_n a_o evident_a conclusion_n against_o sectary_n therefore_o follow_v evident_o they_o believe_v not_o what_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o consequent_o want_v faith_n in_o the_o article_n they_o assent_v to_o as_o protestant_n nay_o i_o say_v more_o they_o can_v assent_v to_o these_o article_n as_o evident_a truth_n for_o no_o receive_a principle_n either_o in_o nature_n or_o grace_n can_v evidence_n so_o much_o as_o the_o suppose_a objective_n verity_n of_o these_o doctrine_n shall_v i_o yet_o add_v a_o word_n and_o say_v that_o no_o proof_n ground_v upon_o weighty_a moral_a reason_n can_v evidence_n these_o negative_a assertion_n to_o be_v truth_n moral_o know_v therefore_o though_o hitherto_o we_o have_v suppose_v they_o to_o pass_v for_o verity_n yet_o in_o real_a earnest_n they_o be_v unprove_v and_o no_o other_o but_o the_o weak_a thought_n of_o our_o adversary_n strong_a fancy_n now_o here_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o you_o see_v ruin_n enough_o of_o protestant_a religion_n protestancy_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o protestancy_n which_o stand_v upon_o a_o fancy_v opinion_n only_o and_o not_o upon_o what_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o his_o sacred_a word_n no_o nor_o can_v probable_o be_v make_v know_v by_o any_o receive_a principle_n 5._o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n i_o argue_v thus_o these_o negative_a article_n no_o purgatory_n no_o church_n infallible_a etc._n etc._n be_v either_o essential_a piece_n of_o protestant_a religion_n or_o not_o if_o not_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o protestant_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o reform_a part_n of_o it_o be_v whole_o dilemma_n a_o unanswerable_a dilemma_n make_v up_o of_o such_o negative_n no_o purgatory_n no_o transubstantiation_n no_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n no_o pray_v to_o saint_n no_o church_n infallible_a etc._n etc._n cast_v then_o these_o and_o the_o like_a away_o protestancy_n dwingle_v to_o nothing_o now_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o hold_v these_o as_o article_n of_o protestancy_n and_o say_v they_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o divine_a faith_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v which_o be_v utter_o impossible_a that_o god_n have_v positive_o reveal_v they_o in_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o say_v though_o we_o admit_v of_o such_o negative_n as_o objective_a
i_o answer_v admit_v of_o this_o most_o false_a supposition_n these_o doctrine_n be_v not_o teach_v negative_a sectary_n find_v faith_n on_o a_o negative_a no_o faith_n at_o all_o can_v be_v found_v on_o this_o negative_a before_o which_o will_v never_o be_v they_o prove_v their_o contrary_a doctrine_n positive_o reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n in_o scripture_n for_o this_o principle_n stand_v irrefragable_o sure_a no_o revelation_n no_o faith_n although_o the_o object_n assent_v to_o be_v true_a all_o the_o pain_n therefore_o these_o man_n take_v to_o reduce_v their_o reform_a gospel_n to_o the_o model_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v upon_o several_a respect_n mere_a labour_n lose_v but_o upon_o this_o account_n chief_o it_o church_n they_o can_v show_v one_o of_o their_o negative_n reveal_v to_o any_o ancient_a orthodox_n church_n falter_v most_o that_o they_o can_v show_v one_o negative_a believe_v by_o they_o to_o be_v a_o reveal_v truth_n to_o any_o christian_a society_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v pitiful_a to_o hear_v how_o they_o fumble_v in_o this_o discourse_n we_o ask_v how_o they_o prove_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n hold_v no_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n put_v this_o for_o one_o example_n it_o serve_v for_o all_o some_o answer_n they_o find_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o sacrifice_n register_v in_o those_o ancient_a write_n mark_v the_o proof_n they_o find_v it_o not_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v catholic_n as_o unconcluding_a the_o inference_n of_o sectary_n unconcluding_a clear_v sight_v as_o other_o find_v that_o doctrine_n express_o assert_v but_o because_o protestant_n be_v please_v to_o deny_v all_o they_o must_v and_o upon_o their_o own_o word_n be_v think_v the_o man_n of_o more_o credit_n well_o but_o suppose_v the_o doctrine_n be_v not_o register_v in_o those_o ancient_a record_n be_v this_o consequence_n good_a it_o be_v not_o write_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o teach_v no_o certain_o unless_o they_o show_v all_o teach_v doctrine_n be_v then_o write_v or_o register_v but_o let_v we_o false_o suppose_v that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v neither_o writ_n nor_o teach_v do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o contrary_a of_o no_o sacrifice_n now_o believe_v by_o protestant_n be_v a_o truth_n reveal_v to_o that_o church_n or_o teach_v by_o it_o no._n therefore_o they_o be_v here_o drive_v again_o upon_o the_o old_a negative_a and_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o church_n say_v nothing_o of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v hideous_o untrue_a ergo_fw-la protestant_n can_v now_o believe_v no_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v hideous_o fall_v and_o as_o unlucky_a a_o sequel_n as_o this_o that_o church_n say_v not_o whether_o the_o moon_n be_v a_o watery_a body_n full_a of_o rock_n ergo_fw-la protestant_n can_v believe_v the_o contrary_a with_o divine_a faith_n you_o will_v say_v we_o trifle_v now_o for_o that_o church_n be_v perfect_a in_o faith_n and_o either_o hold_v a_o sacrific_a 〈…〉_o deny_v it_o i_o answer_v in_o real_a truth_n it_o plain_o and_o undeniable_o hold_v a_o sacrifice_n yet_o must_v withal_o affirm_v though_o we_o false_o suppose_v and_o this_o fall_v supposition_n must_v be_v vigilant_o regard_v that_o it_o only_o negative_o abstract_v from_o such_o doctrine_n yet_o protestant_n be_v far_o of_o from_o prove_v it_o hold_v positive_o the_o contrary_a that_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n which_o yet_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v prove_v if_o they_o believe_v no_o sacrifice_n with_o divine_a faith_n 11._o they_o may_v yet_o reply_v they_o be_v able_a at_o least_o to_o produce_v some_o ancient_a father_n clear_o enough_o assert_v no_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n therefore_o they_o prove_v this_o negative_a and_o so_o they_o can_v do_v other_o i_o utter_o deny_v that_o clear_o enough_o and_o say_v they_o have_v not_o one_o ancient_a father_n 〈…〉_o nor_o council_n nor_o any_o approve_a authority_n sacrifice_n no_o ancient_a father_n against_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n that_o positive_o deny_v a_o sacrifice_n all_o unanimous_o teach_v the_o contrary_a as_o luther_n himself_o confess_v much_o less_o have_v they_o any_o that_o make_v this_o their_o doctrine_n a_o truth_n reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n or_o ever_o teach_v by_o any_o universal_a church_n be_v therefore_o these_o suppose_a authority_n of_o sectary_n which_o be_v none_o and_o reason_n also_o for_o no_o sacrifice_n more_o numerous_a and_o strong_a then_o what_o the_o world_n have_v hear_v of_o hitherto_o they_o can_v in_o conscience_n suppose_v they_o proof_n weighty_a enough_o to_o beat_v down_o the_o contrary_n assert_v and_o vndeniable_a doctrine_n not_o only_o of_o father_n but_o of_o a_o whole_a church_n they_o can_v suppose_v they_o powerful_a enough_o to_o build_v up_o such_o a_o new_a negative_a of_o protestant_a religion_n especial_o whilst_o they_o see_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o torrent_n of_o antiquity_n against_o they_o and_o our_o answer_n return_v to_o every_o trivial_a objection_n they_o make_v o_o but_o they_o can_v solve_n all_o we_o object_n and_o we_o must_v take_v their_o word_n because_o they_o say_v so_o we_o also_o tell_v they_o we_o solve_n what_o they_o object_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o believe_v do_v you_o not_o see_v here_o most_o pitiful_a do_n and_o controversy_n make_v endless_a by_o this_o proceed_v when_o each_o party_n say_v what_o it_o please_v and_o gain_n be_v no_o credit_n from_o the_o other_o a_o judge_n my_o good_a friend_n and_o a_o infallible_a judge_n be_v here_o necessary_a to_o decide_v matter_n between_o we_o but_o thus_o far_o evident_a reason_n judge_v and_o tell_v we_o you_v though_o you_o can_v solve_n all_o we_o say_v for_o the_o affirmative_a of_o a_o sacrifice_n you_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o a_o positive_a proof_n of_o your_o vnproved_a yet_o believe_v negative_a there_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o like_a i_o say_v of_o your_o other_o negative_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o mean_n leave_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n true_o one_o passage_n more_o of_o scripture_n prove_v infallible_a teacher_n be_v quote_v 1._o we_o come_v now_o to_o solve_n more_o full_o the_o objection_n propose_v chap._n 7._o n._n 2._o it_o be_v to_o this_o sense_n a_o protestant_n deliver_v what_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o mean_v of_o scripture_n so_o the_o catholic_n do_v also_o and_o can_v do_v no_o more_o both_o of_o they_o therefore_o be_v glosser_n scripture_n the_o difficulty_n propose_v again_o concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n the_o only_a difficulty_n be_v to_o know_v who_o gloss_n better_a here_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n 2._o to_o go_v on_o ground_o we_o may_v with_o our_o adversary_n leave_v suppose_v that_o god_n have_v not_o put_v a_o bible_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o christian_n to_o cause_v eternal_a debate_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o it_o and_o if_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n we_o may_v second_o suppose_v debate_n god_n desirous_a of_o unity_n in_o faith_n give_v we_o not_o scripture_n to_o cause_v eternal_a debate_n that_o his_o wise_a providence_n so_o earnest_o desirous_a of_o unity_n in_o faith_n among_o christian_n have_v afford_v some_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v right_o attain_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o sacred_a word_n for_o no_o man_n can_v imagine_v that_o god_n intention_n be_v that_o we_o only_o read_v without_o arrive_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o what_o we_o read_v or_o which_o be_v worse_a that_o we_o fall_v into_o error_n by_o our_o read_n scripture_n providence_n have_v afford_v mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v understand_v scripture_n this_o therefore_o providence_n have_v prevent_v by_o one_o mean_n or_o other_o if_o careless_o we_o do_v not_o reject_v it_o we_o may_v three_o suppose_v that_o god_n regular_o speak_v reveal_n to_o no_o private_a man_n the_o deep_a sense_n of_o scripture_n when_o he_o read_v and_o perhaps_o understand_v it_o not_o by_o private_a illustration_n new_a enthusiasm_n or_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n therefore_o mean_n private_a illustration_n no_o usual_a mean_n some_o other_o way_n be_v appoint_v by_o providence_n to_o come_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o what_o he_o read_v the_o reason_n be_v true_a religion_n require_v a_o true_a interpreter_n of_o the_o book_n which_o find_v religion_n otherwise_o god_n will_v have_v only_o careless_o as_o it_o be_v throw_v scripture_n among_o christian_n and_o bid_v they_o guess_v as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v at_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o they_o have_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o know_v his_o mean_v these_o thing_n premise_v 3._o i_o say_v first_o the_o holy_a book_n of_o scripture_n neither_o do_v self_n scripture_n can_v interpret_v its_o self_n nor_o can_v so_o interpret_v itself_o as_o to_o bring_v man_n dissgnt_v in_o faith_n to_o a_o accord_n or_o acquiescency_n in_o high_a point_n of_o controversy_n the_o assertion_n be_v evident_a for_o can_v the_o book_n clear_o interpret_v its_o own_o mean_v catholic_n arian_n protestant_n
and_o all_o sectary_n will_v as_o well_o agree_v in_o one_o harmony_n of_o doctrine_n by_o force_n of_o that_o clear_a interpretation_n none_o of_o they_o deny_v the_o clear_a sense_n of_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o scripture_n itself_o dissent_v if_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n there_o will_v be_v no_o dissent_v as_o they_o now_o agree_v in_o own_v scripture_n to_o be_v divine_a they_o accord_n not_o in_o the_o first_o therefore_o scripture_n be_v not_o its_o own_o interpreter_n or_o if_o any_o yet_o without_o proof_n strong_o assert_v so_o much_o most_o evident_o in_o order_n to_o these_o dissent_v man_n it_o be_v as_o useless_a a_o interpreter_n as_o if_o it_o be_v none_o at_o all_o for_o it_o compose_v no_o difference_n take_v here_o one_o instance_n sectary_n to_o prove_v scripture_n conspicuous_a and_o clear_a without_o a_o interpreter_n quote_v these_o and_o the_o like_a place_n thy_o word_n be_v a_o lantern_n to_o my_o foot_n a_o lante●_n shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n etc._n etc._n we_o answer_v scripture_n be_v true_o a_o light_n when_o that_o outward_a cover_n of_o ambiguous_a word_n wherein_o the_o sense_n often_o lie_v enclose_v be_v break_v open_a by_o a_o faithful_a interpreter_n and_o withal_o we_o add_v it_o be_v vain_o frivolous_a to_o make_v they_o such_o shine_a lamp_n as_o to_o silence_v all_o preach_a and_o interpretation_n yet_o this_o follow_v if_o sectary_n gloss_n right_a for_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o interpret_v or_o teach_v that_o a_o lantern_n shine_v which_o i_o see_v bright_a before_o my_o eye_n observe_v well_o the_o protestant_n make_v scripture_n clear_a without_o a_o teacher_n the_o catholic_n scripture_n interpretation_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o scripture_n say_v interpretation_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a scripture_n itself_o deliver_v not_o in_o formal_a word_n either_o the_o one_o or_o other_o gloss_n therefore_o it_o do_v not_o ever_o interpret_v itself_o home_o or_o declare_v its_o own_o mean_v nay_o it_o can_v do_v so_o for_o all_o interpretation_n proper_o take_v be_v a_o new_a more_o clear_a and_o distinct_a light_n superad_v to_o the_o formal_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o no_o hagiographer_n say_v this_o sacred_a book_n make_v any_o such_o new_a addition_n of_o gloss_n therefore_o it_o can_v interpret_v itself_o and_o this_o be_v what_o the_o apostle_n 2._o petri_n 1._o 20._o seem_v to_o teach_v scripture_n be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o its_o own_o explication_n 4._o i_o say_v 2._o no_o private_a man_n whether_o catholic_n arian_n protestant_n or_o other_o can_v upon_o his_o own_o discourse_n or_o judgement_n only_o so_o interpret_v a_o difficil_n scripture_n with_o certainty_n as_o to_o assure_v any_o that_o god_n speak_v as_o he_o interpret_n the_o reason_n be_v every_o private_a judgement_n be_v fallible_a and_o liable_a to_o error_n which_o truth_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n roman_n 3_o omnis_fw-la homo_fw-la mendax_fw-la teach_v but_o a_o judgement_n sense_n a_o judgement_n liable_a to_o error_n can_v give_v certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n sense_n fallible_a and_o liable_a to_o error_n can_v with_o no_o certainty_n give_v i_o that_o sense_n which_o god_n reveal_v in_o a_o difficil_n place_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o can_v trust_v to_o it_o nor_o assure_o ground_n my_o faith_n on_o such_o a_o interpretation_n and_o thus_o much_o protestant_n acknowledge_v for_o they_o say_v neither_o church_n nor_o ancient_a father_n be_v to_o be_v rely_v on_o as_o infallible_a in_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o much_o less_o can_v a_o minister_n or_o lay_v man_n assume_v to_o himself_o the_o infallible_a spirit_n of_o interpret_n or_o resolve_v what_o a_o whole_a universal_a church_n be_v to_o believe_v alas_o such_o a_o man_n want_v certitude_n in_o what_o he_o say_v he_o want_v a_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o both_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n never_o perhaps_o exact_o peruse_v he_o want_v a_o constant_a stability_n for_o what_o he_o judge_v this_o hour_n he_o may_v upon_o after_o thought_n change_v the_o next_o for_o as_o he_o be_v fallible_a so_o be_v he_o also_o changeable_a in_o his_o judgement_n 5._o yet_o more_o what_o private_a man_n dare_v when_o he_o be_fw-mi the_o learned_a of_o contrary_a religion_n at_o debate_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n step_v in_o among_o they_o and_o say_v my_o master_n you_o be_v to_o believe_v i_o and_o acquiesce_v to_o what_o i_o judge_v of_o the_o sense_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v i_o and_o not_o you_o that_o know_v god_n mean_v will_v not_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o all_o company_n yet_o this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n when_o a_o new_a upstart_n puff_v up_o with_o his_o own_o sentiment_n tell_v we_o either_o catholic_n or_o protestant_n what_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v in_o controvert_v point_n of_o faith_n and_o hence_o i_o say_v the_o catholic_n can_v assure_v a_o protestant_n without_o a_o better_a proof_n than_o his_o own_o opinion_n that_o the_o sectary_n err_v in_o his_o interpretation_n nor_o can_v the_o protestant_n upon_o his_o own_o assertion_n remove_v the_o catholic_n from_o the_o judgement_n he_o make_v of_o the_o scripture_n sense_n both_o fallible_a as_o private_a man_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v both_o fallible_a of_o they_o be_v alike_o fallible_a if_o no_o other_o certain_a principle_n be_v lay_v hold_v on_o here_o then_o be_v the_o difference_n the_o catholic_n for_o his_o interpretation_n of_o such_o place_n prudent_o rely_v on_o a_o firm_a ground_n than_o his_o variable_a judgement_n the_o protestant_n have_v nothing_o to_o uphold_v the_o sense_n he_o defend_v but_o his_o own_o waver_v and_o unsteedy_a thought_n which_o be_v as_o changeable_a as_o catholic_n be_v moral_a certainty_n sufficient_a why_o be_v it_o to_o be_v more_o grant_v the_o sectary_n than_o the_o catholic_n the_o man_n be_v fallible_a here_o be_v the_o best_a support_n for_o his_o interpretation_n and_o faith_n also_o if_o he_o tell_v you_o he_o have_v moral_a assurance_n or_o interpret_n as_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v i_o answer_v above_o he_o only_o think_v so_o but_o prove_v nothing_o let_v he_o show_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n ever_o interpr_v those_o word_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n as_o he_o now_o interpret_v they_o if_o he_o say_v he_o believe_v as_o his_o own_o judgement_n interpret_n i_o grant_v this_o be_v too_o pitiful_o true_a but_o what_o be_o i_o the_o better_a on_o that_o account_n can_v we_o rely_v on_o a_o protestant_n easy_a fallible_a and_o erroneous_a judgement_n in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n at_o last_o sure_o he_o will_v hit_v on_o it_o and_o say_v he_o interpret_v as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n sugge_v happy_a man_n do_v he_o so_o but_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o otherwise_o present_o however_o because_o the_o word_n be_v of_o comfort_n let_v he_o hear_v it_o on_o god_n name_n for_o it_o be_v the_o resolution_n of_o our_o whole_a question_n certain_o the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o interpret_v scripture_n certain_o 6._o i_o say_v therefore_o 3._o no_o other_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n interpret_n scripture_n certain_o john_n 16._o 23._o when_o that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v teach_v all_o truth_n but_o one_o and_o a_o most_o necessary_a truth_n be_v to_o have_v scripture_n faithful_o interpret_v therefore_o this_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v if_o he_o teach_v all_o truth_n again_o john_n 14._o 16._o he_o be_v call_v a_o paraclete_n or_o comforter_n abide_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o but_o he_o be_v not_o a_o permanent_a comforter_n unless_o he_o solace_n as_o well_o by_o his_o spirit_n of_o truth_n mention_v john_n 17._o 19_o as_o with_o other_o interior_a consolation_n to_o allege_v more_o text_n obvious_a to_o all_o be_v needle_n the_o assertion_n deliver_v in_o these_o general_a term_n be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o protestaent_n i_o think_v who_o endless_o talk_v of_o their_o interior_a spirit_n will_v not_o deny_v it_o interpret_n the_o difficulty_n by_o who_o the_o spirit_n interpret_n 7._o the_o only_a difficulty_n which_o will_v trouble_v they_o be_v see_v this_o al-teaching_a spirit_n usual_o interpret_n not_o by_o private_a illustration_n nor_o assume_v every_o private_a man_n to_o be_v the_o oracle_n whereby_o he_o speak_v and_o interpret_n see_v also_o he_o leave_v scripture_n still_o as_o speechless_a in_o order_n to_o its_o own_o further_a explication_n as_o it_o be_v 16._o hundred_o year_n ago_o the_o difficulty_n i_o say_v be_v to_o find_v out_o that_o oracle_n and_o a_o christian_a society_n it_o must_v be_v for_o angel_n be_v not_o interpreter_n wherein_o he_o presides_n as_o master_n and_o by_o it_o interpret_n scripture_n find_v this_o speak_a oracle_n out_o and_o we_o have_v enough_o hear_v it_o and_o we_o hear_v truth_n to_o our_o purpose_n then_o 8._o do_v this_o spirit_n
of_o truth_n reside_v in_o the_o late_a and_o hardly_o yet_o well_o know_v congregation_n of_o protestant_n do_v he_o teach_v and_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o this_o society_n protestant_n the_o spirit_n reside_v no●_n in_o protestant_n of_o man_n no_o most_o certain_o no_o for_o that_o society_n wherein_o this_o all-knowing_a spirit_n presides_n as_o master_n be_v teach_v infallible_o those_o he_o instruct_v to_o interpret_v scripture_n both_o teach_v and_o interpret_v infallible_o for_o truth_n itself_o can_v make_v none_o his_o instrument_n and_o interpret_v by_o they_o either_o false_o or_o fallible_o but_o protestant_n fallible_a because_o they_o profess_v to_o be_v fallible_a profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v fallible_a in_o what_o ever_o they_o teach_v and_o interpret_v therefore_o they_o joint_o own_v themselves_o to_o be_v no_o teach_v or_o interpret_n instrument_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n observe_v well_o the_o reason_n this_o bless_a spirit_n when_o it_o learn_v a_o whole_a church_n what_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v can_v but_o interpret_v infallible_o by_o those_o he_o teach_v to_o interpret_v our_o sectary_n deny_v this_o grace_n of_o interpret_n infallible_o to_o all_o society_n of_o christian_n convince_a the_o reason_n be_v convince_a therefore_o they_o deny_v it_o to_o themselves_o for_o they_o be_v among_o these_o all_o and_o in_o do_v so_o they_o divorce_v their_o little_a company_n from_o the_o infallible_a interpret_n spirit_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n consequent_o this_o spirit_n leave_v they_o for_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a he_o interpret_v not_o by_o such_o or_o for_o such_o as_o deny_v and_o abjure_v his_o infallible_a interpretation_n god_n forbid_v may_o sectary_n reply_v we_o abjure_v it_o not_o but_o only_o modest_o say_v we_o can_v teach_v infallible_o as_o he_o interpret_v in_o our_o heart_n no._n to_o what_o purpose_n then_o do_v this_o divine_a spirit_n lie_v up_o his_o infallible_a learning_n in_o your_o heart_n if_o you_o can_v never_o utter_v it_o or_o teach_v other_o after_o your_o instruction_n secret_o receive_v as_o this_o spirit_n speak_v in_o you_o infallible_o here_o be_v light_a indeed_o close_o hide_v under_o a_o bushel_n unseen_a by_o all_o beneficial_a to_o none_o this_o short_a discourse_n can_v protestant_n discover_v sophistry_n in_o it_o let_v they_o speak_v total_o evert_n their_o private_a spirit_n and_o evidence_n that_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n final_o come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o a_o fallacy_n or_o a_o self-imagined_n fancy_n all_o i_o will_v say_v here_o be_v summon_v up_o in_o these_o few_o word_n protestant_n confess_v that_o they_o neither_o teach_v nor_o can_v interpret_v scripture_n infallible_o therefore_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n they_o aro_fw-mi neither_o oracle_n nor_o instrument_n nor_o interpreter_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o teach_v and_o interpret_v by_o none_o when_o ●e_n deliver_v doctrine_n for_o a_o whole_a church_n but_o by_o such_o as_o do_v it_o infallible_o hence_o 9_o i_o say_v 4._o one_o only_a society_n of_o christian_n there_o be_v hell_n infallible_o one_o only_a siciety_n that_o teach_v infallible_o gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o or_o seduce_v it_o by_o error_n which_o teach_v and_o interpret_v the_o word_n of_o god_n infallible_o this_o one_o dove_n be_v chaste_a this_o one_o spouse_n be_v loyal_a this_o one_o oracle_n be_v infallible_a he_o that_o here_o be_v it_o hear_v christ_n he_o wh●_n slight_n it_n slight_n christ_n and_o draw_n upon_o he_o the_o malediction_n of_o a_o separate_a heathen_a and_o publican_n matt._n 18._o 17._o si_fw-mi ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la audierit_fw-la etc._n etc._n you_o do_v i_o know_v prevent_v my_o meaning_n for_o by_o this_o spouse_n and_o oracle_n i_o understand_v no_o other_o but_o that_o long_o stand_v ancient_z holy_a and_o catholic_n roman_n church_n which_o church_n which_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n ever_o teach_v the_o world_n in_o forego_v age_n before_o our_o sectary_n se●_n foot_v in_o it_o beside_o this_o faithful_a oracle_n i_o do_v demonstrate_v in_o the_o 1._o chap._n of_o the_o next_o discourse_n there_o never_o be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v any_o thing_n like_o a_o catholic_n holy_a church_n now_o as_o it_o be_v ecclesia_fw-la docens_fw-la a_o church_n teach_v and_o consist_v of_o prelate_n unite_v with_o one_o head_n direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o teach_v and_o interprett_a scripture_n infallible_o as_o it_o be_v ecclesia_fw-la discens_fw-la or_o the_o church_n learning_n it_o receive_v and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o bless_a spirit_n both_o instruction_n and_o interpretation_n infallible_o 10._o the_o truth_n of_o my_o assertion_n stand_v firm_a upon_o the_o undeniable_a ground_n already_o lay_v no_o less_o well_o prove_v then_o presuppose_v here_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o proof_n a_o summary_n of_o the_o precedent_a proof_n the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n have_v leave_v sufficient_a mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v know_v exact_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o scripture_n in_o matter_n concern_v salvation_n whilst_o learned_a man_n of_o different_a sect_n be_v at_o endless_a debate_n about_o this_o sense_n and_o persist_v most_o obstinate_o in_o what_o they_o have_v once_o lay_v hold_v on_o god_n therefore_o most_o assure_o will_v not_o have_v we_o run_v on_o thus_o in_o jarr_n to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o conclude_v nothing_o there_o be_v mean_n then_o of_o a_o reconciliation_n afford_v if_o we_o please_v but_o that_o be_v not_o scripture_n alone_o which_o can_v interpret_v itself_o but_o lie_v still_o in_o that_o ancient_a darkness_n as_o it_o be_v first_o write_v nor_o can_v it_o be_v man_n private_a judgement_n for_o that_o be_v both_o various_a and_o fallible_a certain_o it_o be_v not_o the_o protestant_n spirit_n for_o this_o we_o see_v change_v every_o year_n and_o confess_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n infallible_a direct_a spirit_n it_o be_v no_o condemn_a sect_n of_o ancient_a haereick_n acknowledge_v for_o such_o both_o by_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n enthusiasm'_v no_o man_n believe_v angel_n interpret_v not_o scripture_n what_o then_o remain_v but_o that_o we_o have_v recours_fw-fr to_o that_o one_o ancient_z holy_a and_o universal_a roman_a church_n as_o well_o for_o instruction_n as_o interpretation_n by_o this_o sole_a oracle_n the_o holy_a ghost_n interpret_n and_o teach_v or_o we_o must_v grant_v which_o be_v lamentable_a that_o we_o be_v turn_v loose_a into_o a_o inexplicable_a labyrinth_n of_o god_n deep_a secret_n reveal_v in_o his_o word_n without_o hope_n of_o find_v any_o exit_fw-la 11._o to_o prove_v my_o assertion_n further_o positive_o by_o scripture_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o father_n will_v be_v both_o tedious_a to_o a_o reader_n and_o little_a avail_n with_o sectary_n and_o i_o wave_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v the_o useless_a repetition_n of_o so_o often_o quote_v authority_n who_o turn_n of_o scripture_n by_o far-fetched_a gloss_n and_o undervalue_v father_n as_o be_v fallible_a yet_o while_o they_o do_v so_o know_v well_o enough_o their_o own_o misery_n at_o home_n within_o their_o breast_n which_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o spirit_n of_o fallibility_n you_o find_v proof_n ample_o allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n council_n and_o father_n to_o our_o present_a matter_n in_o our_o polemical_a writer_n chief_o when_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n however_o one_o text_n though_o often_o quote_v i_o will_v here_o give_v you_o sectary_n may_v tamper_v long_o enough_o with_o it_o before_o they_o return_v a_o probable_a answer_n 12._o the_o great_a apostle_n of_o the_o gentile_n write_v to_o scripture_n a_o solid_a proof_n from_o scripture_n the_o ephesian_n cap._n 4._o after_o he_o have_v warn_v they_o of_o keep_v unity_n in_o spirit_n and_o faith_n also_o vers_fw-la 11._o add_n and_o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o other_o some_o evangelist_n and_o other_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n and_o why_o give_v he_o these_o teacher_n the_o follow_a word_n answer_v for_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o saint_n unto_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n how_o long_o be_v these_o to_o continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n until_o say_v scripture_n we_o meet_v into_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n what_o intention_n have_v god_n in_o establish_v these_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o pastor_n in_o his_o church_n that_o now_o we_o be_v not_o child_n fluctuate_a and_o carry_v away_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v turn_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n in_o the_o wickedness_n of_o man_n in_o craftiness_n to_o the_o circumvention_n of_o error_n thus_o the_o hierarchy_n teach_v the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n that_o teach_v of_o christ_n teach_v church_n be_v constitute_v and_o by_o no_o other_o than_o truth_n itself_o now_o i_o say_v no_o society_n of_o christian_n
since_o st._n paul_n write_v these_o word_n can_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o show_v itself_o permanent_o bless_v with_o a_o apostolical_a teacher_n but_o our_o ancient_a roman_a church_n only_o where_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n st._n peter_n yet_o live_v in_o every_o lawful_a succeed_a pope_n no_o society_n of_o christian_n can_v lay_v claim_n to_o such_o continue_a age._n the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n only_a show_v through_o every_o age._n prophet_n as_o this_o church_n have_v have_v in_o it_o age_n after_o age_n whether_o by_o prophet_n we_o understand_v with_o scripture_n 1_o cor._n 14._o 1._o holy_a man_n pray_v and_o prophesy_v or_o such_o as_o foretell_v future_a thing_n our_o church_n have_v have_v abundance_n of_o these_o if_o undoubted_a history_n may_v gain_v credit_n no_o evangelist_n prophet_n laborious_a evangelist_n society_n of_o christian_n can_v show_v so_o many_o laborious_a evangelist_n as_o this_o one_o church_n alone_o and_o st._n paul_n point_v at_o 2._o timot._fw-la 4._o 5._o they_o be_v those_o who_o have_v indefatigable_o through_o every_o age_n without_o cessation_n preach_v and_o carry_v christ_n sacred_a gospel_n to_o vnconvert_v and_o most_o remote_a nation_n thus_o st._n austin_n send_v by_o st._n gregory_n pope_n ancient_o be_v a_o evangelist_n to_o our_o english_a st._n boniface_n to_o the_o german_n bless_v st._n francis_n xavier_n and_o many_o other_o evangelical_n man_n be_v so_o also_o to_o the_o further_a part_n of_o the_o world_n no_o society_n of_o christian_n but_o our_o ancient_a roman_a church_n only_o can_v reckon_v up_o so_o long_a a_o perpetuate_v hierarchy_n of_o lawful_a commission_v doctor_n pastor_n and_o profound_a learned_a doctor_n pastor_n so_o many_o profound_a and_o learned_a doctor_n who_o labour_v unto_o death_n in_o christ_n sacred_a vineyard_n and_o innumerable_a shed_v their_o blood_n in_o defense_n of_o it_o these_o be_v undeniable_a truth_n 13._o i_o argue_v thus_o this_o know_v visible_a and_o never_o interrupt_v society_n of_o evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n this_o ecclesia_fw-la docens_fw-la or_o teach_v church_n constitute_v argument_n the_o argument_n by_o christ_n himself_o be_v ever_o and_o be_v still_o infallible_a and_o because_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v and_o interpret_n scripture_n infallible_o or_o it_o can_v err_v and_o cheat_v that_o ample_a flock_n of_o christian_n commit_v to_o its_o charge_n into_o damnable_a falsity_n if_o the_o first_o be_v grant_v we_o have_v all_o we_o wish_v viz._n a_o infallible_a hierarchy_n of_o live_a pastor_n who_o shall_v successive_o instruct_v we_o infallible_o to_o the_o world_n end_n if_o contrariwise_o this_o whole_a hierarchy_n can_v deceive_v and_o lead_v we_o into_o damnable_a error_n these_o two_o woeful_a sequels_fw-fr undeniable_o follow_n doctrine_n fearful_a sequels_fw-fr from_o sectarte_n fall_v doctrine_n the_o first_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n direct_v not_o teach_n not_o that_o live_a hierarchy_n of_o pastor_n which_o christ_n appoint_v to_o teach_v we_o here_o on_o earth_n for_o both_o this_o and_o every_o other_o society_n of_o christian_a teacher_n may_v beguile_v we_o with_o false_a doctrine_n and_o misinterpret_v scripture_n grant_v so_o much_o and_o it_o follow_v 2._o that_o our_o learned_a st._n paul_n mistake_v himself_o and_o utter_v not_o one_o word_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o place_n now_o cite_v for_o if_o these_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n appoint_v by_o christ_n to_o teach_v and_o so_o specifical_o here_o note_v can_v delude_v we_o yea_o and_o have_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la err_v as_o protestant_a assert_v it_o be_v possible_a that_o they_o neither_o comply_v with_o the_o work_n of_o their_o ministry_n nor_o edify_v the_o moral_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o destroy_v it_o nor_o persevere_v in_o teach_v truth_n until_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o a_o unity_n of_o faith_n that_o happy_a day_n be_v not_o yet_o see_v nor_o final_o after_o all_o their_o endeavour_n afford_v mean_n to_o persevere_v steadfast_a in_o christ_n sacred_a doctrine_n they_o find_v yet_o a_o great_a part_n of_o people_n call_v christian_n like_o wilful_a child_n rest_v on_o self-opinion_n only_o they_o see_v they_o toss_v and_o turn_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o new_a learning_n such_o be_v the_o fault_n and_o unlucky_a fate_n of_o novellist_n who_o will_v be_v so_o wanton_o childish_a as_o to_o slight_v a_o oracle_n undeceivable_a here_o then_o be_v the_o conclusion_n the_o apostle_n word_n be_v true_a therefore_o sectary_n vent_v a_o hideous_a conclusion_n the_o conclusion_n untruth_n whilst_o they_o say_v these_o now_o name_v evangelist_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n may_v deceive_v and_o lead_v we_o into_o error_n chap._n x._o objection_n be_v answer_v 1._o perhaps_o they_o will_v reply_v we_o mistake_v st._n paul_n meaning_n for_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n prophet_n and_o doctor_n etc._n etc._n whereof_o he_o speak_v be_v long_o since_o dead_a a_o go_v they_o be_v those_o who_o preach_v whilst_o christ_n live_v on_o earth_n or_o soon_o after_o and_o teach_v we_o still_o by_o the_o write_a word_n now_o in_o our_o hand_n since_o those_o day_n we_o have_v have_v no_o other_o evangelist_n and_o pastor_n continue_v in_o any_o christian_a society_n that_o either_o teach_v or_o interpret_v infallible_o round_o speak_v but_o without_o book_n and_o as_o false_o as_o fallible_o principle_n let_v sectary_n prove_v this_o gloss_n contrary_a to_o the_o express_a word_n and_o bring_v their_o proof_n to_o a_o receive_a principle_n for_o who_o see_v we_o not_o the_o obvious_a sense_n of_o st._n paul_n testimony_n plain_o pervert_v whilst_o he_o point_v at_o teacher_n successive_o abide_v in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o consummation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o the_o coagmentation_n of_o saint_n or_o until_o they_o be_v join_v together_o in_o one_o faith_n and_o all_o meet_a in_o a_o unity_n of_o belief_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o decease_a apostle_n now_o in_o heaven_n will_v it_o be_v true_a see_v this_o last_o day_n but_o be_v not_o now_o with_o we_o nor_o teach_v until_o that_o consummation_n be_v therefore_o other_o succeed_v and_o teach_v in_o their_o place_n so_o god_n have_v order_v to_o the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n i_o have_v answer_v to_o what_o be_v add_v of_o their_o present_a instruction_n by_o the_o write_a word_n the_o bible_n difference_n the_o write_a word_n insufficient_a to_o reconcile_v difference_n i_o say_v can_v because_o it_o interpret_n not_o if_o self_n reconcile_v our_o difference_n and_o no_o decease_a evangelist_n appear_v now_o either_o to_o arian_n or_o protestant_n to_o instruct_v they_o when_o they_o fail_v or_o mistake_v god_n true_a sense_n this_o very_a scripture_n therefore_o require_v a_o interpreter_n in_o who_o all_o must_v acquiesce_v or_o we_o may_v run_v on_o in_o endless_a dissension_n to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n but_o you_o will_v ask_v who_o be_v in_o fault_n see_v no_o man_n blame_v himself_o nor_o the_o bible_n he_o read'_v christ_n answer_n be_v he_o who_o hear_v not_o the_o church_n be_v both_o the_o accuse_v and_o faulty_a person_n and_o upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o answer_v to_o a_o second_o objection_n 2._o our_o adversary_n may_v say_v all_o appellation_n from_o a_o low_a tribunal_n to_o a_o high_a be_v lawful_a and_o they_o do_v so_o for_o they_o appeal_v from_o the_o church_n which_o only_o consist_v of_o man_n to_o god_n and_o his_o word_n the_o high_a scripture_n sectary_n by_o appealign_a from_o the_o church_n to_o scripture_n tribunal_n imaginable_a therefore_o their_o procedure_n be_v blameless_a i_o answer_v it_o be_v most_o blameless_a can_v they_o know_v infallible_o what_o god_n certain_o say_v in_o his_o word_n but_o this_o they_o can_v know_v in_o controvert_v point_n but_o by_o the_o infallible_a oracle_n of_o his_o church_n to_o this_o tribunal_n christ_n send_v we_o for_o satisfaction_n in_o all_o only_o in_o real_a truth_n appeal_v not_o to_o scripture_n but_o to_o fancy_n only_o our_o difficulty_n if_o we_o reject_v or_o forsake_v this_o oracle_n in_o real_a truth_n we_o appeal_v not_o to_o the_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n but_o to_o our_o own_o unsteedy_a sentiment_n which_o be_v fancy_n only_o and_o nothing_o like_o god_n word_n will_v you_o see_v this_o clear_o imagine_v only_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o sectary_n who_o will_v both_o appeal_n from_o church_n and_o scripture_n to_o god_n interior_a and_o eternal_a infallible_a assertion_n this_o instance_n prove_v the_o assertion_n knowledge_n of_o truth_n they_o appeal_v from_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o man_n from_o scripture_n because_o they_o understand_v it_o not_o in_o a_o hundred_o passage_n therefore_o they_o will_v rely_v on_o what_o god_n know_v to_o be_v true_a and_o guess_v at_o it_o as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v will_v you_o not_o esteem_v such_o man_n mad_a and_o upon_o this_o account_n that_o they_o can_v
church_n which_o verify_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o article_n can_v be_v plain_o and_o without_o fumble_v design_v say_v then_o on_o god_n name_n what_o christian_n have_v we_o who_o constitute_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n grecian_n nor_o papist_n according_a to_o protestant_n nor_o the_o late_a grecian_n in_o those_o day_n papist_n you_o say_v be_v all_o in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n which_o make_v luther_n to_o leave_v they_o our_o late_a grecian_n hold_v and_o hold_v still_o a_o true_a mass_n sacrifice_n the_o real_a presence_n pray_v to_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n they_o therefore_o contrary_a to_o our_o sectary_n be_v neither_o the_o holy_a nor_o universal_a church_n luther_n none_o say_v sectary_n but_o gross_a err_a man_n be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o luther_n much_o les_fw-fr be_v arian_n abyssins_n pelagian_n monotbelits_n or_o all_o of_o they_o together_o now_o beside_o such_o err_a man_n there_o be_v no_o other_o in_o the_o world_n if_o therefore_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v essential_o make_v up_o of_o particular_a church_n as_o true_o it_o be_v for_o there_o be_v no_o vniversale_fw-la à_fw-la parte_fw-la rei_fw-la and_o all_o particular_a church_n nameable_a in_o those_o day_n gross_o err_v it_o follow_v evident_o that_o then_o no_o holy_a catholic_n church_n can_v be_v believe_v since_o those_o time_n our_o protestant_n come_v in_o church_n protestant_n only_o be_v not_o the_o holy_a universal_a church_n and_o will_v they_o if_o that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n be_v falso_n in_o the_o last_o age_n verify_v it_o now_o and_o style_v themselves_o the_o only_a universal_a church_n i_o be_o confident_a they_o will_v not_o donatize_v so_o far_o or_o dare_v to_o do_v so_o the_o question_n therefore_o propose_v deserve_v a_o exact_a answer_n viz._n where_o or_o among_o what_o christian_n shall_v we_o find_v the_o answer_n the_o question_n propose_v deserve_v a_o clear_a answer_n holy_a universal_a church_n then_o free_a from_o notable_a error_n 2._o can_v our_o novellist_n rational_o say_v that_o all_o those_o who_o right_o believe_v in_o christ_n constitute_v the_o holy_a universal_a church_n if_o so_o the_o reply_n be_v too_o general_a faith_n a_o abstract_a belief_n in_o christ_n insufficient_a to_o constitute_v true_a catholic_n faith_n and_o we_o ask_v again_o who_o those_o be_v and_o urge_v to_o have_v the_o particular_a community_n specify_v that_o catholick_o believe_v in_o christ_n we_o demand_v moreover_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o that_o belief_n in_o christ_n be_v it_o enough_o to_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a messus_n our_o redeemer_n our_o master_n or_o to_o acknowledge_v his_o death_n his_o resurrection_n without_o believe_v more_o of_o his_o doctrine_n sure_o salvation_n more_o be_v require_v and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n no._n for_o first_o god_n never_o speak_v those_o other_o excellent_a verity_n register_v in_o scripture_n whether_o dogmatical_a or_o relate_v to_o manner_n in_o vain_a but_o to_o good_a purpose_n and_o with_o intention_n that_o they_o shall_v beside_o that_o abstract_a faith_n in_o christ_n both_o be_v hearken_v to_o and_o believe_v after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n again_o be_v the_o late_a grecian_n who_o firm_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o hold_v never_o the_o les_fw-fr almost_o all_o the_o tenant_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n catholic_n believer_n also_o if_o so_o papist_n can_v in_o no_o justice_n be_v exclude_v from_o that_o communion_n perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v you_o do_v not_o exclude_v they_o no._n why_o then_o have_v you_o hang_v they_o upon_o gibbet_n mere_o for_o be_v papist_n if_o you_o answer_v you_o do_v so_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o particular_a error_n then_o hang_v up_o a_o number_n of_o your_o own_o minister_n who_o confess_o have_v more_o error_n among_o they_o or_o if_o petty_a difference_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v pardon_v in_o the_o one_o why_o be_v they_o so_o severe_o punish_v in_o the_o other_o but_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la 3._o say_v plain_o and_o answer_v categorical_o without_o christ_n arian_n and_o pelagian_o believe_v in_o christ_n shuffle_n be_v arian_n pelagian_o nestorian_n monothelits_n part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n for_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o own_v he_o for_o their_o redeemer_n master_n and_o doctor_n yea_o and_o admit_v of_o scripture_n also_o if_o you_o affirm_v it_o then_o there_o never_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v heresy_n in_o the_o christian_a haretick_n yet_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o haretick_n world_n whilst_o christ_n be_v acknowledge_v in_o this_o general_n way_n and_o consequent_o the_o ancient_a council_n deal_v most_o unjust_o with_o these_o man_n in_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n communion_n and_o proclaim_v they_o heretic_n beside_o observe_v i_o pray_v you_o what_o a_o pretty_a church_n be_v here_o make_v up_o of_o man_n irreconciliable_a in_o their_o dispute_n be_v this_o think_v you_o that_o holy_a universal_a church_n a_o church_n compound_v of_o hideous_a dissent_v member_n be_v not_o christ_n church_n and_o unite_a society_n of_o christian_n which_o christ_n jesus_n cement_v together_o in_o one_o faith_n who_o do_v nothing_o but_o clash_v one_o with_o another_o and_o will_v he_o own_v this_o for_o his_o spouse_n when_o he_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n yet_o far_o no_o doctrine_n proper_a to_o particular_a sectary_n as_o arianism_n be_v to_o arian_n pelagianism_n to_o pelagian_n protestanism_n to_o protestant_n can_v because_o bind_v up_o within_o the_o narrow_a compass_n of_o these_o community_n deserve_v catholic_n no_o doctrine_n peculiar_a to_o sectary_n can_v be_v catholic_n the_o name_n or_o notion_n of_o either_o holy_a universal_a or_o catholic_n doctrine_n prescind_v therefore_o from_o these_o particular_a doctrine_n or_o lay_v they_o aside_o which_o as_o protestant_n must_v say_v do_v not_o vnchurch_n they_o my_o demand_n be_v and_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v answer_v wherein_o consist_v the_o question_n protestant_n can_v answer_v the_o question_n remainder_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o imply_v the_o pure_a essential_o of_o christian_a religion_n join_v man_n together_o in_o one_o faith_n and_o make_v they_o true_a member_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n 4._o will_v you_o hear_v as_o i_o think_v the_o best_a answer_n of_o some_o new_a protestant_n they_o may_v say_v who_o ever_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o scripture_n and_o join_v in_o that_o belief_n which_o be_v universal_o own_v by_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n before_o luther_n be_v right_o in_o faith_n and_o a_o member_n of_o the_o holy_a universal_a church_n though_o perhaps_o he_o believe_v with_o his_o taint_a church_n some_o error_n a_o most_o wretched_a refute_v the_o first_o answer_n refute_v and_o unproved_a assertion_n for_o who_o ever_o yet_o maintain_v that_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n own_v some_o doctrine_n true_a as_o all_o have_v do_v and_o more_o perhaps_o fall_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o true_a holy_a catholic_n church_n we_o say_v bonum_fw-la ex_fw-la integrâ_fw-la causâ_fw-la malum_fw-la ex_fw-la quolibet_fw-la defectu_fw-la a_o faith_n therefore_o true_o good_a be_v entire_o good_a any_o falsity_n spoil_n it_n and_o then_o most_o when_o it_o be_v vitiate_v with_o notable_a error_n tell_v i_o if_o scripture_n word_n a_o church_n vitiate_v with_o gross_a error_n be_v no_o more_o a_o church_n then_o the_o bible_n notable_o corrupt_v be_v god_n word_n be_v corrupt_v in_o some_o point_n of_o consequence_n will_v you_o own_v the_o whole_a bible_n for_o god_n word_n no_o certain_o how_o then_o can_v we_o own_o that_o for_o christ_n true_a church_n which_o be_v corrupt_v with_o falso_n doctrine_n you_o will_v say_v we_o must_v take_v the_o good_a without_o the_o bad_a and_o believe_v as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o essential_a be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o that_o make_v we_o catholic_n though_o we_o joint_o believe_v some_o error_n with_o it_o answer_n this_o be_v worse_a than_o before_o and_o more_o confuse_a stuff_n who_o be_v those_o we_o that_o can_v choose_v thus_o church_n none_o can_v separate_v truth_n from_o falsehood_n if_o i_o live_v in_o a_o err_v church_n or_o tell_v i_o if_o i_o live_v in_o a_o err_v church_n where_o fall_v doctrine_n be_v secret_o mingle_v with_o truth_n what_o i_o be_o to_o choose_v or_o what_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a if_o a_o poor_a simple_a man_n deceive_v by_o his_o pastor_n fall_v into_o a_o error_n there_o be_v other_o ready_a to_o unbeguile_v he_o but_o himself_o because_o he_o who_o endeavour_v to_o unbeguile_v i_o may_v then_o most_o err_v himself_o here_o be_v none_o to_o do_v this_o service_n because_o none_o can_v certain_o judge_v of_o the_o right_n or_o wrong_n will_v you_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v to_o decide_v in_o such_o doubt_n pray_v you_o tell_v i_o if_o by_o a_o suppose_a impossibility_n scripture_n
itself_o be_v corrupt_v in_o certain_a great_a matter_n and_o no_o body_n know_v where_o on_o who_o judgement_n shall_v we_o rely_v to_o single_a out_o those_o corruption_n this_o case_n only_o suppose_v be_v a_o real_a one_o in_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n if_o the_o roman_a fail_v we_o for_o all_o other_o be_v corrupt_v exigency_n neither_o scripture_n nor_o man_n own_o private_a judgement_n can_v help_v in_o such_o a_o exigency_n and_o no_o protestant_n can_v certain_o say_v in_o what_o however_o take_v scripture_n as_o it_o be_v most_o pure_a and_o plead_v with_o it_o against_o a_o arian_n he_o laugh_v at_o you_o and_o say_v he_o have_v more_o clear_a scripture_n for_o his_o particular_a tenant_n than_o protestant_n have_v for_o they_o what_o then_o be_v next_o every_o private_a man_n must_v in_o such_o exigency_n judge_v for_o himself_o the_o arian_n answer_v he_o do_v so_o and_o think_v his_o judgement_n as_o good_a as_o you_o yet_o still_o remain's_n in_o his_o error_n well_o at_o last_o you_o shall_v hear_v the_o right_a solution_n chap._n ii_o of_o a_o late_a writer_n doctrine_n 1._o when_o all_o christian_a society_n say_v he_o consent_n to_o such_o stillingfleet_n mr._n stillingfleet_n thing_n as_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o those_o society_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n then_o we_o be_v right_o in_o faith_n and_o this_o judgement_n be_v best_a make_v refute_v a_o second_o answer_v refute_v when_o we_o regulate_v our_o belief_n by_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o first_o age_n here_o be_v no_o man_n know_v what_o and_o not_o only_o a_o generality_n but_o impossibility_n upon_o impossibility_n say_v therefore_o shall_v we_o ever_o see_v that_o day_n when_o all_o christian_a society_n will_v stand_v thus_o unite_v in_o one_o judgement_n concern_v the_o be_v or_o the_o essential_o impossibility_n these_o man_n propose_v impossibility_n of_o a_o church_n never_o unless_o every_o particular_a society_n first_o lay_v down_o its_o own_o suppose_a error_n and_o say_v so_o much_o be_v not_o essential_o necessary_a 2._o do_v you_o think_v that_o catholic_n will_v ever_o come_v in_o and_o acknowledge_v either_o their_o belief_n of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n or_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v error_n no._n they_o hold_v these_o doctrine_n as_o essential_a as_o to_o believe_v a_o trinity_n do_v you_o think_v that_o arian_n pelagian_o and_o other_o heretic_n will_v so_o far_o disow_v their_o particular_a tenant_n as_o to_o lay_v they_o down_o or_o grant_v they_o make_v not_o up_o a_o church_n no_o certain_o this_o confent_n of_o judgement_n therefore_o in_o all_o christian_n society_n for_o the_o belief_n the_o suppose_a consent_n of_o judgement_n for_o own_v so_o much_o precise_a doctrine_n essential_a be_v a_o chimaera_n sectary_n can_v propound_v that_o precise_a doctrine_n whereof_o god_n require_v explicit_a belief_n own_n of_o so_o much_o precise_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o essential_a be_v of_o a_o church_n be_v a_o most_o unlearned_a speculation_n neither_o do_v we_o mend_v the_o matter_n in_o say_v as_o some_o do_v that_o nothing_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n but_o what_o may_v be_v evident_o propound_v to_o all_o person_n as_o a_o thing_n whereof_o god_n require_v explicit_fw-la belief_n for_o upon_o who_o proposition_n make_v evident_a to_o we_o may_v we_o assure_o rest_v and_o hold_v that_o god_n require_v a_o explicit_fw-la belief_n of_o so_o many_o article_n and_o no_o more_o if_o you_o answer_v it_o be_v so_o much_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n receive_v you_o still_o lurk_v in_o darkness_n and_o prove_v ignotum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la for_o you_o never_o yet_o tell_v we_o nor_o can_v tell_v we_o where_o this_o catholic_n church_n be_v or_o what_o it_o teach_v you_o will_v say_v it_o be_v that_o church_n or_o the_o agreed-on_a doctrine_n which_o all_o who_o go_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o christian_n own_v as_o holy_a and_o catholic_n answ_n there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o church_n nor_o such_o doctrine_n own_v by_o all_o in_o the_o world_n for_o christ_n true_a doctrine_n always_o meet_v with_o opposition_n and_o have_v falso_n doctrine_n against_o it_o you_o will_v say_v the_o primitive_a ancient_n arian_n oppose_v as_o much_o the_o ancient_n church_n and_o doctrine_n be_v pure_a let_v we_o stick_v to_o that_o and_o all_o be_v well_o i_o answer_v first_o it_o be_v most_o pure_a yet_o both_o arian_n and_o other_o oppose_v it_o they_o therefore_o will_v not_o agree_v to_o it_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n i_o may_v ask_v why_o their_o authority_n be_v not_o then_o every_o whit_n as_o good_a to_o vncatholick_n that_o first_o church_n as_o sectary_n church_n as_o protetant_n do_v the_o present_a church_n be_v now_o to_o uncatholick_n the_o roman_a 2._o it_o be_v a_o mere_a subterfuge_n thus_o to_o run_v up_o to_o the_o primitive_a church_n whilst_o you_o and_o we_o agree_v not_o though_o it_o be_v your_o fault_n what_o that_o ancient_a church_n teach_v in_o many_o particular_n if_o you_o say_v we_o must_v read_v and_o judge_v alas_o we_o have_v all_o be_v read_v these_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o be_v at_o variance_n about_o that_o doctrine_n you_o see_v then_o how_o controversy_n be_v make_v endless_a by_o this_o proceed_v but_o what_o will_v you_o it_o be_v a_o old_a fallacy_n of_o our_o new_a man_n who_o first_o suppose_v and_o then_o go_v on_o to_o prove_v they_o suppose_v the_o primitive_a doctrine_n to_o be_v know_v and_o agree_v on_o by_o themselves_o and_o we_o and_o then_o appeal_v to_o it_o there_o church_n why_o sectary_n recur_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v no_o such_o thing_n the_o real_a truth_n therefore_o be_v they_o take_v up_o shelter_v here_o because_o controversy_n that_o be_v now_o most_o handle_v be_v in_o those_o day_n the_o least_o examine_v 2._o some_o of_o our_o late_a man_n may_v perhaps_o pretend_v that_o we_o have_v not_o be_v able_a hitherto_o to_o understand_v their_o meaning_n or_o to_o dive_v into_o the_o speculative_a conceit_n resute_v a_o three_o answer_v resute_v of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o therefore_o teach_v we_o thus_o that_o doctrine_n wherein_o all_o church_n have_v agree_v on_o ever_o since_o christ_n time_n can_v be_v no_o matter_n of_o discord_n for_o where_o all_o agree_v there_o can_v be_v no_o disagreement_n take_v therefore_o that_o precise_a and_o vniform_a doctrine_n which_o all_o christian_n have_v antecedent_o to_o particular_a error_n universal_o own_v as_o unquestioned_a christian_a doctrine_n therein_o consist_v the_o essential_o of_o save_v faith_n or_o the_o very_a quintessence_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o no_o more_o 3._o mark_v well_o a_o strong_a speculation_n about_o nothing_o you_o must_v prescind_v one_o vniform_a vnivocal_a true_a religion_n from_o nothing_o the_o abstract_n true_a doctrine_n from_o fall_n be_v a_o speculation_n worth_n nothing_o all_o fall_v religion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o then_o you_o have_v the_o true_a religion_n that_o be_v you_o must_v cut_v of_o from_o arianism_n from_o pelagianism_n from_o donatism_n from_o protestanism_n from_o popery_n for_o here_o be_v also_o some_o thing_n suppose_v amiss_o what_o be_v error_n and_o the_o remainder_n of_o doctrine_n wherein_o all_o agree_v constitute_v the_o essence_n of_o save_v faith_n believe_v it_o it_o will_v prove_v a_o mighty_a diffic_n 〈…〉_o thy_fw-mi to_o cut_v and_o carve_v right_a in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matte●_n pray_v you_o who_o must_v go_v above_o this_o work_n protestant_n error_n protestant_n aught_o first_o to_o lay_v down_o their_o own_o error_n toy_n let_v they_o on_o god_n name_n who_o be_v so_o much_o upon_o reformation_n first_o lead_v the_o way_n and_o lay_v down_o their_o own_o error_n next_o we_o shall_v see_v who_o follow_v they_o i_o be_o sure_a catholic_n will_v not_o disow_v the_o belief_n catholic_n will_v abute_v nothing_o of_o their_o belief_n least_o article_n of_o their_o belief_n for_o they_o as_o i_o tell_v you_o just_a now_o assent_n with_o equal_a assurance_n to_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o do_v also_o i_o think_v the_o arian_n and_o other_o sectary_n to_o their_o particular_a error_n but_o suppose_v conclude_v admit_v of_o the_o supposition_n nothing_o be_v conclude_v that_o we_o mental_o conceive_v one_o agreed-on_a harmonious_a doctrine_n universal_o hold_v by_o all_o christian_n who_o can_v assure_v i_o that_o so_o much_o precise_o be_v enough_o for_o save_v faith_n you_o may_v say_v that_o that_o doctrine_n wherein_o all_o christian_n agree_v can_v but_o be_v true_a because_o all_o own_o it_o but_o you_o shall_v never_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o show_v that_o save_a faith_n require_v no_o more_o or_o stand_v safe_a upon_o such_o a_o generality_n the_o arian_n believe_v in_o christ_n that_o be_v general_a doctrine_n but_o deny_v his_o godhead_n cerinthus_n and_o ebion_n believe_v in_o
implicit_o if_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n though_o he_o yet_o know_v not_o so_o much_o yea_o and_o may_v sometime_o rational_o doubt_v whether_o the_o church_n propose_v it_o or_o no_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n so_o schoolman_n of_o different_a judgement_n often_o dispute_v whether_o such_o and_o such_o point_n be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o because_o they_o be_v contrary_a in_o their_o position_n either_o these_o or_o those_o contendent_o light_n where_o it_o will_v err_v material_o yet_o i_o say_v the_o err_v party_n who_o admit_v of_o all_o that_o the_o church_n proposes_n as_o faith_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la believe_v implicit_o upon_o his_o universal_a assent_n to_o all_o the_o very_a explicit_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v implicit_o what_o by_o error_n he_o deny_v explicit_o matter_n which_o he_o by_o error_n explicit_o deny_v yea_o and_o have_v as_o true_a faith_n as_o the_o other_o that_o hitt'_v on_o truth_n neither_o be_v there_o so_o much_o as_o a_o seem_a contradiction_n between_o these_o two_o judgement_n of_o true_a implicit_a faith_n and_o a_o untrue_a material_a explicit_fw-la error_n for_o the_o one_o be_v error_n no_o contradiction_n between_o true_a implicit_a faith_n and_o untrue_a material_a explicit_fw-la error_n so_o far_o from_o oppose_v the_o other_o that_o the_o erroneous_a judgement_n in_o actu_fw-la exercito_fw-la yield_v to_o truth_n and_o resolve_v into_o all_o the_o strength_n it_o have_v say_v no_o more_o but_o this_o by_o a_o conditional_a tendency_n if_o what_o i_o affirm_v be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o church_n doctrine_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o catholic_n god_n be_v ever_o bless_v do_v not_o only_o easy_o lay_v down_o their_o material_a error_n when_o the_o reason_n the_o reason_n church_n declare_v against_o they_o but_o most_o usual_o also_o in_o their_o learned_a volume_n submit_v all_o they_o write_v to_o fancy_n learned_a catholic_n submit_v to_o the_o church_n censure_n sectary_n submit_v to_o nothing_o but_o fancy_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o imply_v a_o tacit_a retractation_n or_o a_o unsay_n of_o whatever_o shall_v be_v censure_v or_o sentence_v to_o be_v amiss_o o_o will_v our_o protestant_n acknowledge_v such_o a_o live_a judge_n of_o controversy_n they_o may_v make_v excellent_a good_a use_n of_o their_o bible_n but_o to_o snatch_v that_o pure_a book_n from_o catholic_n as_o they_o have_v don_n and_o afterward_o to_o debase_v it_o to_o prostitute_n it_o to_o every_o wild_a fancy_n that_o shall_v plea_n to_o meddle_v with_o it_o be_v plain_o to_o abjure_v and_o renounce_v all_o possibility_n of_o either_o know_v what_o fundamental_o be_v or_o of_o ever_o arrive_v to_o better_a settlement_n in_o faith_n than_o now_o we_o see_v which_o indeed_o be_v none_o at_o all_o therefore_o though_o they_o protest_v a_o thousand_o time_n that_o they_o believe_v every_o thing_n in_o scripture_n with_o the_o like_a implicit_a faith_n as_o we_o do_v the_o church_n it_o avail_n nothing_o whilst_o every_o private_a man_n make_v that_o book_n to_o speak_v what_o he_o will_v have_v it_o that_o be_v what_o his_o fancy_n please_v 2._o other_o final_o have_v recours_fw-fr to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o say_v all_o thing_n there_o as_o they_o relate_v to_o salvation_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n not_o sufficient_a for_o salvation_n scripture_n and_o not_o more_o be_v fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n first_o admit_v of_o the_o assertion_n without_o any_o likelihood_n of_o proof_n protestant_n have_v little_a to_o glory_n in_o for_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o protestancy_n observe_v it_o well_o contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n nothing_o of_o protestancy_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n creed_n therefore_o nothing_o of_o their_o religian_a as_o protestancy_n can_v be_v account_v fundamental_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 2._o one_o may_v admit_v of_o all_o those_o express_a word_n in_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n and_o be_v a_o haeretick_n for_o the_o arian_n grant_v this_o and_o yet_o be_v heretic_n because_o they_o deny_v the_o high_a godhead_n of_o christ_n and_o consubstantiality_n likewise_o with_o his_o father_n which_o be_v not_o evident_o deduce_v out_o of_o those_o word_n and_o here_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o protestant_n when_o either_o arian_n plain_o let_v it_o please_v sectary_n to_o answer_v this_o question_n plain_o or_o any_o sectary_n that_o do_v not_o only_a abstract_n from_o christ_n supreme_a divinity_n but_o positive_o also_o abjure_v it_o yet_o in_o some_o manner_n frigid_o own_v his_o christ_n for_o the_o only_a son_n of_o his_o father_n whether_o i_o faith_n such_o a_o one_o may_v be_v reckon_v of_o as_o a_o true_a believer_n in_o fundamental_o 3._o though_o the_o creed_n comprise_v much_o in_o that_o one_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o some_o ancient_a father_n most_o deserve_o magnify_v the_o catholic_n protestant_n can_v plain_o point_v at_o the_o church_n which_o the_o creed_n call_v catholic_n completeness_n of_o it_o as_o a_o excellent_a summary_n of_o christian_a faith_n yet_o protestant_n for_o their_o life_n can_v say_v what_o or_o where_o this_o catholic_n church_n be_v and_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o oblige_v i_o to_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v neither_o know_v nor_o can_v be_v point_v out_o now_o be_v it_o know_v a_o great_a difficulty_n yet_o remain's_n to_o be_v examine_v viz._n whether_o god_n will_v ever_o preserve_v this_o church_n infallible_a in_o the_o delivery_n of_o fundamental_a doctrine_n or_o suppose_v his_o present_a decree_n whether_o he_o can_v so_o leave_v it_o to_o a_o possibility_n of_o err_v in_o fundamental_o that_o christian_n may_v absolute_o loose_a all_o faith_n both_o of_o christ_n and_o creed_n if_o this_o second_o be_v fundamental_o sectary_n be_v press_v whether_o they_o grant_v or_o deny_v a_o church_n infallible_a in_o fundamental_o grant_v we_o have_v no_o assurance_n after_o all_o christ_n promise_n to_o the_o contrary_a but_o that_o christianity_n may_v total_o perish_v before_o the_o world_n end_n if_o they_o say_v god_n will_v ever_o preserve_v a_o church_n infallible_a in_o fundamental_o they_o must_v joint_o acknowledge_v a_o continue_a extinguish_v society_n of_o christian_n whereof_o some_o be_v pastor_n and_o teach_v infallible_o these_o fundamental_o and_o some_o difficulty_n sectary_n must_v solve_v their_o own_o difficulty_n hear_v they_o also_o infallible_o i_o will_v have_v these_o plain_o mark_v out_o and_o withal_o have_v sectary_n know_v that_o all_o their_o difficulty_n propose_v against_o a_o infallible_a church_n must_v be_v solve_v by_o they_o if_o they_o grant_v such_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o fundamental_o as_o be_v large_o creed_n baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n not_o in_o the_o creed_n prove_v above_o 4._o to_o omit_v that_o the_o creed_n deliver_v no_o explicit_fw-la doctrine_n concern_v baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n though_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o be_v also_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o much_o i_o observe_v that_o catholic_n gloss_n catholic_n admit_v of_o the_o creed_n without_o gloss_n without_o gloss_n and_o interpretation_n own_o the_o candid_a and_o plain_a obvious_a expression_n of_o the_o creed_n in_o all_o and_o every_o particular_a article_n of_o it_o therefore_o they_o be_v at_o least_o if_o not_o more_o as_o good_a believer_n of_o the_o creed_n fundamental_o as_o sectary_n and_o if_o which_o we_o deny_v they_o err_v by_o ignorance_n in_o lesser_a matter_n as_o protestant_n may_n and_o do_v err_v in_o great_a they_o must_v yet_o grant_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o be_v faith_n enough_o to_o save_v both_o party_n this_o suppose_a 3._o i_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o word_n with_o my_o long_a forget_a friend_n mr._n poole_n and_o ask_v why_o he_o deem'_v it_o such_o poole_n a_o word_n with_o mr._n poole_n a_o strict_a piece_n of_o justice_n to_o chafe_v as_o he_o do_v at_o a_o convert_a captain_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o change_a religion_n as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o lose_a and_o perish_v soul_n a_o instrument_n forsooth_o he_o will_v prove_v append._n p._n 2._o if_o not_o of_o god_n mercy_n to_o reduce_v he_o to_o the_o truth_n from_o which_o he_o be_v revolt_v at_o least_o of_o god_n justice_n and_o a_o witness_n on_o god_n behalf_n to_o leave_v he_o without_o excuse_n what_o need_v i_o say_v so_o much_o ado_n about_o nothing_o for_o both_o the_o captain_n and_o all_o catholic_n whilst_o they_o believe_v the_o creed_n relate_v to_o scripture_n be_v very_o secure_a and_o confess_o right_a in_o fundamental_o which_o be_v suppose_v it_o be_v more_o than_o impertinent_a in_o the_o protestant_n to_o keep_v such_o a_o coyl_n about_o lesser_a matter_n essential_a protestant_n keep_v a_o coyl_n to_o no_o purpose_n about_o matter_n not_o essential_a or_o to_o reduce_v the_o main_a
controversy_n between_o we_o to_o a_o trial_n of_o that_o which_o least_o concern_v we_o and_o can_v as_o they_o think_v be_v decide_v by_o any_o receive_a principle_n viz._n whether_o they_o or_o we_o be_v better_o settle_v in_o nonfundamentals_a which_o import_v so_o little_a if_o our_o protestant_n say_v true_a that_o the_o know_v of_o they_o be_v scarce_o worth_a our_o knowledge_n because_o they_o be_v whole_o unnecessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o make_v we_o neither_o more_o nor_o les_fw-fr essential_a member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n the_o catholic_n church_n 4._o from_o this_o concession_n of_o our_o adversary_n i_o infer_v that_o no_o protestant_a can_v probable_o go_v about_o to_o draw_v any_o salvation_n if_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v sufficient_a protestant_n can_v draw_v catholic_n from_o their_o religion_n superfluity_n though_o grant_v hinder_v not_o salvation_n intelligent_a catholic_n from_o his_o religion_n first_n because_o he_o be_v as_o firm_a in_o the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o as_o any_o sectary_n whoever_o and_o that_o will_v save_v his_o soul_n now_o if_o they_o say_v we_o want_v no_o fundamental_o but_o abound_v in_o superfluity_n it_o be_v only_o say_v and_o not_o prove_v however_o grant_v all_o though_o contrary_a to_o truth_n these_o redundancy_n hinder_v not_o salvation_n and_o may_v well_o be_v list_a among_o non-necessaries_a 2._o no_o catholic_n voluntary_o oppose_v himself_o to_o so_o much_o as_o to_o one_o jota_n of_o god_n word_n sufficient_o propose_v nor_o can_v he_o and_o remain_v catholic_n 3._o he_o can_v thwart_v his_o judgement_n of_o discern_v or_o go_v against_o his_o conscience_n in_o believe_v catholic_n religion_n for_o by_o do_v either_o he_o lose_v faith_n 4._o as_o long_o as_o he_o be_v a_o cordial_n and_o sincere_a believer_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n he_o can_v have_v no_o evident_a demonstration_n against_o it_o or_o tax_v this_o church_n of_o error_n or_o if_o in_o conscience_n he_o do_v so_o eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la he_o cease_n to_z be_v a_o member_n of_o this_o church_n and_o be_v no_o long_a orthodox_n 5._o yet_o i_o say_v more_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o prudent_a religion_n a_o prudent_a man_n can_v but_o see_v the_o great_a evidence_n of_o catholic_n religion_n man_n seclude_v gross_a and_o most_o culpable_a ignorance_n which_o make_v he_o imprudent_a to_o shut_v his_o eye_n or_o not_o to_o see_v those_o clear_a evidence_n those_o visible_a note_n those_o glorious_a mark_n and_o character_n of_o truth_n whereby_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v make_v manifest_a to_o the_o view_n of_o all_o the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n will_v have_v this_o discernibility_n or_o perspicuity_n of_o it_o both_o apparent_a and_o obvious_a to_o ordinary_a prudence_n otherwise_o which_o be_v impious_a we_o may_v blame_v his_o goodness_n and_o tell_v almighty_a god_n you_o o_o lord_n assure_v we_o in_o scripture_n of_o our_o final_a beatitude_n but_o you_o have_v with_o it_o leave_v we_o in_o darkness_n concern_v the_o way_n and_o mean_n to_o find_v plead_v how_o one_o of_o prudence_n may_v plead_v it_o out_o and_o to_o attain_v this_o happiness_n what_o avail_n it_o to_o know_v the_o end_n and_o to_o be_v invincible_o ignorant_a of_o the_o mean_n all_o who_o profess_v christianity_n be_v not_o true_a believer_n how_o shall_v we_o discern_v the_o haeretical_a society_n from_o other_o christ_n answer_v your_o way_n by_o the_o light_n and_o satisfy_v what_o answer_n satisfy_v guidance_n of_o those_o mark_n of_o truth_n which_o manifest_v i_o when_o i_o first_o teach_v christianity_n and_o yet_o beautify_v my_o only_a church_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o evident_a without_o dispute_n ut_fw-la nec_fw-la stulti_fw-la errent_fw-la per_fw-la ●am_fw-la that_o be_v hard_a for_o the_o most_o ignorant_a to_o miss_v of_o it_o much_o more_o for_o the_o prudent_a 6._o no_o conviction_n therefore_o no_o evident_a demonstration_n can_v so_o forcible_o press_v upon_o a_o catholic_n as_o to_o make_v he_o to_o desert_n his_o faith_n and_o if_o he_o stand_v not_o evident_o faith_n catholic_n can_v unless_o evident_o convict_v of_o error_n which_o be_v impossible_a desert_v their_o faith_n convict_v of_o manifest_a error_n it_o be_v worse_a than_o madness_n in_o he_o yea_o and_o damnable_a also_o to_o change_v his_o religion_n let_v sectary_n therefore_o stentor-like_a cry_v out_o till_o they_o grow_v hoar_v again_o mr._n poole_n all_o along_o smooth_n his_o discourse_n with_o such_o harsh_a eloquence_n o_o you_o blind_a papist_n o_o you_o seduce_a man_n when_o will_v you_o open_v your_o eye_n &_o c_o the_o solid_a catholic_n answer_n rail_a be_v no_o reason_n your_o ancestor_n and_o i_o be_v papist_n before_o you_o or_o your_o haeresy_n be_v in_o be_v i_o believe_v my_o creed_n as_o opponent_n their_o solid_a answer_n to_o all_o opponent_n well_o as_o you_o i_o admit_v of_o every_o word_n in_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o you_o i_o go_v no_o more_o against_o my_o judgement_n or_o conscience_n nor_o perhaps_o so_o much_o as_o you_o do._n wherein_o then_o be_o i_o faulty_a nay_o i_o must_v yet_o tell_v you_o more_o though_o by_o a_o suppose_a impossibility_n the_o church_n whereof_o i_o be_o a_o member_n shall_v err_v and_o i_o joint_o be_v in_o error_n with_o it_o yet_o as_o long_o as_o the_o error_n be_v unavoidable_a and_o invincible_a in_o i_o whereof_o my_o conscience_n reprove_v i_o not_o it_o be_v in_o your_o own_o principle_n no_o matter_n of_o damnation_n because_o ignorance_n excuse_v i_o therefore_o as_o blame_n the_o catholic_n every_o way_n without_o blame_n i_o be_o every_o way_n without_o blame_n in_o my_o belief_n so_o i_o can_v be_v reclaim_v from_o it_o by_o you_o 7._o but_o say_v the_o catholic_n give_v i_o a_o company_n of_o man_n who_o admit_v of_o christ_n and_o so_o far_o deny_v his_o church_n that_o church_n he_o evident_o convince_v sectary_n of_o their_o error_n and_o most_o unhappy_a forsake_v the_o ancient_a church_n they_o can_v say_v where_o it_o be_v that_o will_n reform_v their_o elder_a brethren_n before_o they_o have_v certainty_n of_o their_o own_o half_n well_o make_v reformation_n that_o think_v themselves_o wise_a than_o all_o the_o now_o live_v and_o the_o ancient_a decease_a defender_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n that_o have_v causeless_o separate_v themselves_o from_o a_o ancient_a church_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o join_v to_o any_o society_n of_o christian_n which_o bear_v the_o resemblance_n of_o a_o catholic_n community_n who_o never_o yet_o have_v so_o much_o as_o one_o general_n council_n to_o direct_v they_o no_o infallible_a oracle_n to_o teach_v they_o be_v protestancy_n describe_v as_o it_o be_v no_o motive_n no_o miracle_n to_o evidence_n their_o new_a faith_n who_o make_v every_o private_a person_n a_o church_n every_o man_n reason_n judge_n of_o high_a mystery_n that_o transcend_v reason_n who_o take_v and_o leave_v what_o they_o listen_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n upon_o no_o other_o warrant_n but_o their_o own_o wilful_a choice_n who_o seem_o own_v a_o universal_a church_n but_o yield_v obedience_n to_o none_o who_o be_v always_o seek_v for_o truth_n without_o hope_n of_o find_v it_o always_o teach_v more_o learned_a than_o themselves_o and_o yet_o to_o this_o day_n know_v not_o what_o they_o teach_v who_o too_o unlucky_o spend_v the_o few_o day_n of_o their_o life_n in_o scribble_a controversy_n though_o they_o see_v it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o beside_o a_o high_a offence_n give_v to_o god_n all_o the_o credit_n they_o gain_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n abroad_o and_o their_o repute_n at_o home_n among_o intelligent_a person_n be_v no_o better_a amount_n to_o this_o ignominy_n that_o unfortunat_o they_o patronize_v a_o late_o invent_v haeresy_n which_o at_o last_o they_o must_v quit_v or_o quite_o despair_v of_o salvation_n give_v i_o i_o say_v such_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n they_o be_v not_o only_o batter_v and_o baffle_v but_o also_o by_o most_o press_v argument_n draw_v both_o from_o authority_n and_o reason_n may_v be_v evident_o convince_v yea_o and_o if_o god_n grace_n want_v not_o easy_o reclaim_v from_o their_o error_n if_o perverseness_n in_o some_o and_o ignorance_n in_o other_o i_o mean_v the_o ignorance_n of_o pride_n hinder_v not_o their_o conversion_n but_o to_o withdraw_v a_o know_v catholic_n upon_o rational_a inducement_n from_o prosylit_n how_o they_o have_v gain_v some_o prosylit_n his_o religion_n be_v impossible_a it_o be_v true_a they_o have_v gain_v some_o prosylit_n unnatural_a child_n to_o their_o ancient_a mother_n church_n but_o how_o alas_o too_o indulgent_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n they_o be_v allure_v by_o sensual_a not_o rational_a motive_n the_o truth_n be_v evident_a i_o say_v no_o more_o 8._o to_o end_v this_o chapter_n of_o fundamental_o be_v fundamental_o three_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v in_o this_o question_n of_o fundamental_o please_v
they_o name_v not_o the_o guilty_a person_n that_o extend_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n beyond_o its_o foundation_n be_v they_o catholic_n who_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n reveal_n and_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v reveal_v or_o sectary_n that_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n for_o any_o article_n of_o their_o protestancy_n 3._o if_o they_o hold_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o preserver_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n they_o must_v prove_v it_o by_o strong_a principle_n and_o first_o show_n positive_o by_o scripture_n that_o they_o have_v just_a so_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n before_o unity_n sectary_n who_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n for_o one_o word_n of_o protestancy_n most_o unreasonable_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o preserver_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n they_o make_v we_o guilty_a of_o any_o breach_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n this_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a task_n for_o if_o they_o say_v we_o break_v the_o church_n unity_n in_o believe_v a_o sacrifice_n a_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v and_o by_o plain_a scripture_n that_o either_o their_o contrary_a negative_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o that_o neither_o our_o positives_n nor_o their_o negative_n merit_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v impossible_a for_o what_o scripture_n say_v we_o be_v neither_o to_o believe_v a_o sacrifice_n nor_o the_o contrary_a 5._o in_o the_o next_o place_n they_o come_v to_o solve_n the_o enigma_n to_o explicate_v the_o main_a subject_n of_o the_o present_a dispute_n and_o it_o be_v to_o tell_v we_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v proof_n their_o own_o say_n be_v the_o only_a proof_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v own_v by_o all_o christian_a society_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n on_o which_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n depend_v happy_a be_v they_o can_v they_o unridle_v the_o mystery_n necessary_a protestant_n can_v show_v what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a and_o say_v what_o thing_n be_v thus_o necessary_a but_o our_o author_n still_o run_v on_o in_o general_n and_o determin_n nothing_o be_v please_v to_o hear_v his_o resolution_n 6._o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v own_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o christian_a society_n but_o such_o thing_n which_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o those_o society_n be_v antecedent_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n no_o man_n i_o think_v know_v to_o what_o that_o word_n antecedent_o relate_v nor_o can_v this_o author_n make_v sense_n of_o it_o one_o may_v guess_v what_o he_o will_v be_v at_o he_o will_v perhaps_o say_v when_o all_o christian_a impossibility_n they_o fall_v upon_o impossibility_n society_n stand_v firm_o unite_v in_o one_o judgement_n concern_v the_o be_v and_o the_o essential_o of_o a_o church_n than_o we_o be_v right_a in_o these_o essential_o answ_n but_o this_o be_v never_o yet_o see_v nor_o will_v be_v see_v as_o be_v more_o large_o declare_v chap._n 2._o n._n 1._o whither_o i_o remit_v the_o reader_n for_o further_a satisfaction_n he_o add_v two_o thing_n more_o one_o be_v there_o can_v be_v any_o reason_n give_v why_o any_o thing_n else_o shall_v be_v judge_v necessary_a to_o the_o church_n communion_n he_o mean_v not_o who_o be_v to_o judge_v he_o that_o say_v he_o dissent_v not_o in_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o all_o those_o church_n who_o do_v not_o manifest_o dissent_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n be_v agree_v in_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o my_o god_n what_o confusion_n have_v we_o here_o where_o be_v the_o protestant_n that_o can_v assure_v we_o without_o believe_v protestant_n can_v show_v what_o the_o primitive_a church_n believe_v dispute_n what_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n positive_o believe_v and_o positive_o reject_v can_v this_o one_o point_n be_v clear_v without_o endless_a debate_n a_o better_a union_n may_v be_v hope_a for_n but_o herein_o both_o we_o and_o sectary_n dissent_n as_o be_v prove_v above_o therefore_o by_o church_n no_o appeal_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n without_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n their_o appeal_n to_o the_o ancient_a church_n whilst_o they_o abstract_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o a_o present_a catholic_n church_n they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v ignotum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la and_o convince_v nothing_o 7._o they_o add_v a_o second_o consideration_n which_o may_v be_v reflect_v on_o ad_fw-la perpetuam_fw-la rei_fw-la memoriam_fw-la and_o it_o be_v to_o doctrine_n memorable_a doctrine_n this_o sense_n after_o their_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o case_n of_o great_a division_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n any_o national_a church_n may_v reform_v itself_o as_o be_v suppose_v england_n abuse_v man_n uncertain_a in_o all_o they_o say_v take_v on_o to_o teach_v wherein_o faith_n be_v abuse_v have_v do_v and_o declare_v its_o sense_n of_o those_o abuse_n in_o article_n of_o religion_n yea_o and_o require_v of_o man_n a_o subscription_n against_o those_o abuse_n etc._n etc._n they_o go_v on_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o own_v some_o proposition_n in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o the_o believe_v of_o they_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n now_o mark_v what_o follow_v doctrine_n no_o orthodox_n church_n ever_o except_v against_o our_o church_n doctrine_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n impose_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v a_o most_o unproved_a assertion_n which_o article_n be_v except_v against_o by_o other_o church_n name_n the_o orthodox_n church_n that_o ever_o except_v against_o they_o it_o can_v be_v do_v but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n doctrine_n mark_v the_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n and_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o rome_n itself_o and_o in_o other_o thing_n she_o require_v subscription_n to_o truth_n protestant_n religion_n reduce_v to_o inferior_a truth_n they_o not_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o inferior_a truth_n which_o she_o expect_v submission_n to_o in_o order_n to_o her_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n and_o thus_o much_o the_o late_a primate_n of_o ireland_n express_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o her_o thirtynine_a article_n 8._o be_v it_o know_v to_o all_o man_n by_o these_o present_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n so_o far_o as_o it_o maintain_v these_o church_n the_o english_a church_n consist_v of_o negative_n be_v no_o church_n negative_a protestant_a article_n of_o no_o sacrifice_n no_o real_a presence_n no_o purgatory_n be_v here_o confess_o own_v to_o have_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o it_o be_v neither_o any_o christian_n or_o catholic_n church_n because_o these_o negative_n the_o very_a marrow_n of_o protestancy_n be_v now_o degrade_v and_o throw_v down_o from_o their_o ancient_a height_n of_o article_n to_o the_o low_a rank_n of_o a_o few_o humble_a and_o inferior_a truth_n 9_o but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o who_o assure_v you_o sir_n of_o truth_n inferior_a truth_n be_v none_o of_o god_n truth_n their_o be_v truth_n at_o all_o god_n you_o say_v that_o reveal_n nothing_o but_o most_o supreme_a truth_n own_o be_v none_o of_o them_o no_o orthodox_n church_n no_o ancient_a council_n no_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n no_o nor_o your_o own_o synod_n in_o england_n though_o without_o proof_n they_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v truth_n ever_o yet_o define_v they_o as_o you_o two_o young_a pope_n do_v doctor_n bramhal_o and_o yourself_o to_o be_v truth_n of_o a_o inferior_a rank_n and_o order_n be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v i_o be_o sure_a the_o declaration_n before_o these_o article_n say_v they_o be_v article_n of_o religion_n article_n these_o author_n clash_n with_o the_o 39_o article_n and_o contain_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n if_o so_o god_n word_n be_v agreeable_a to_o these_o article_n and_o prove_v they_o again_o some_o of_o your_o own_o coat_n and_o perhaps_o as_o learned_a as_o you_o call_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n certain_o they_o truth_n these_o negative_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n be_v neither_o article_n of_o faith_n nor_o inferior_a truth_n be_v none_o of_o our_o faith_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v you_o or_o no_o body_n upon_o who_o then_o shall_v we_o rely_v for_o the_o last_o definition_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o both_o the_o assertion_n of_o their_o be_v either_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o inferior_a truth_n stand_v totter_v without_o proof_n or_o principle_n upon_o the_o sole_a fancy_n of_o those_o who_o say_v so_o 10._o 3._o if_o these_o dull_a negative_n be_v only_o vote_v for_o
i_o say_v be_v whether_o their_o positive_a own_n of_o a_o sign_n or_o figure_n only_o be_v a_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o no_o more_o but_o one_o of_o their_o inferior_a suppose_a truth_n if_o this_o late_a they_o never_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v any_o determinate_a answer_v a_o dilemma_n that_o can_v be_v answer_v faith_n of_o this_o sacred_a mystery_n which_o yet_o god_n have_v most_o certain_o reveal_v unto_o we_o in_o holy_a scripture_n and_o consequent_o they_o believe_v nothing_o of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n by_o divine_a faith_n for_o inferior_a truth_n be_v no_o article_n faith_n inferior_a truth_n be_v not_o article_n of_o faith_n of_o belief_n with_o them_o contrariwise_o if_o they_o say_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o sign_n or_o figure_n only_o be_v one_o of_o their_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o thing_n believe_v a_o object_n of_o faith_n they_o must_v certain_o eat_v their_o own_o word_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o english_a church_n make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o such_o as_o never_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n much_o less_o of_o rome_n itself_o for_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n never_o believe_v so_o some_o perhaps_o will_v answer_v they_o believe_v in_o general_n christ_n own_o word_n what_o some_o sectary_n believe_v they_o know_v not_o what_o to_o be_v true_a though_o they_o know_v not_o well_o what_o he_o mean_v when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n answer_n if_o they_o know_v not_o what_o he_o speak_v why_o do_v they_o charge_v idolatry_n on_o we_o by_o the_o force_n of_o their_o inferior_a suppose_a inconsequence_n their_o inconsequence_n truth_n for_o adore_v christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o be_o sure_a arius_n of_o old_a be_v a_o haeretick_n for_o deny_v the_o high_a godhead_n of_o our_o saviour_n upon_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o his_o suppose_a superior_a truth_n and_o sectary_n be_v now_o in_o a_o worse_a arian_n they_o be_v in_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o arian_n case_n whilst_o they_o contradict_v all_o orthodox_n church_n in_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o make_v we_o idolater_n mere_o upon_o the_o uncertainty_n of_o their_o imagine_a inferior_a truth_n 15._o another_o proposition_n be_v thus._n nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v impose_v as_o a_o necessarij_fw-la article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o but_o what_o may_v be_v evident_o propound_v to_o all_o person_n as_o a_o thing_n which_o god_n do_v require_v the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o observe_v the_o vnexplicate_v word_n evident_o propound_v to_o all_o person_n who_o must_v propound_v these_o article_n of_o faith_n must_v god_n angel_n or_o man_n private_a fancy_n do_v it_o no._n the_o oracle_n of_o truth_n christ_n own_o we_o christ_n church_n can_v only_o propose_v faith_n unto_o we_o church_n find_v it_o where_o you_o can_v be_v both_o to_o propose_v faith_n to_o we_o and_o to_o decide_v all_o difficulty_n when_o they_o arise_v among_o we_o as_o be_v already_o prove_v submit_v to_o this_o and_o all_o controversy_n be_v end_v here_o be_v also_o another_o loose_a proposition_n nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v require_v as_o a_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o receive_v for_o such_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o insignificant_a another_o proposition_n too_o general_n and_o insignificant_a all_o age_n sir_n say_v you_o plain_o where_o this_o catholic_n church_n be_v in_o all_o age_n and_o tell_v we_o exact_o how_o many_o article_n it_o hold_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o we_o shall_v drive_v you_o out_o of_o your_o generality_n which_o prove_v just_a nothing_o to_o a_o more_o open_a and_o plain_a be_v they_o run_v on_o in_o general_n be_v doctrine_n whereof_o you_o be_v as_o much_o afraid_a as_o the_o devil_n of_o holy_a water_n we_o know_v not_o what_o you_o mean_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n 16._o well_o but_o the_o next_o assertion_n will_v clear_v all_o it_o be_v sufficient_a evidence_n that_o be_v not_o look_v on_o as_o a_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o admit_v into_o the_o ancient_a creed_n pray_v you_o prove_v this_o sufficient_a evidence_n by_o a_o clear_a principle_n upon_o what_o ground_n do_v the_o etc._n the_o belief_n of_o the_o creed_n not_o sufficient_a etc._n etc._n assertion_n stand_v distinct_a from_o your_o own_o fancy_n the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n the_o admit_v of_o so_o many_o book_n for_o the_o exact_a canon_n of_o scripture_n the_o belief_n all_o aught_o to_o have_v of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v not_o explicit_o set_v down_o in_o creed_n necessary_a particular_n not_o express_v in_o the_o creed_n the_o ancient_a creed_n therefore_o we_o must_v have_v recours_fw-fr to_o the_o catholic_n church_n both_o for_o the_o faith_n of_o these_o and_o many_o other_o article_n but_o we_o have_v say_v enough_o of_o this_o subject_a 17._o you_o go_v on_o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_v a_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v universal_o believe_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v deliver_v as_o such_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n sir_n before_o this_o proposition_n be_v clear_v you_o church_n these_o author_n say_v not_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o these_o dark_a term_n believe_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v to_o declare_v what_o you_o mean_v by_o those_o term_n believe_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o if_o right_o suppose_v there_o be_v never_o any_o true_a church_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n only_o continue_v age_n after_o age_n and_o upon_o this_o supposition_n reply_n which_o be_v easy_a to_o your_o assertion_n and_o the_o ten_o follow_a point_n you_o will_v say_v i_o mistake_v your_o mean_v concern_v the_o very_a notion_n of_o that_o church_n which_o your_o fancy_n make_v catholic_n and_o if_o i_o licence_v you_o to_o enlarge_v the_o catholic_n church_n as_o far_o as_o you_o plea_n or_o to_o comprise_v in_o it_o all_o who_o have_v have_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n though_o otherwise_o know_v heretic_n your_o proposition_n to_o we_o be_v de_fw-la subjecto_fw-la non_fw-la supponente_fw-la of_o a_o subject_n not_o supposable_a and_o the_o annex_v point_n be_v high_o impertinent_a be_v they_o be_v to_o specify_v what_o and_o where_o this_o catholic_n church_n be_v name_v therefore_o exact_o the_o catholic_n church_n upon_o ground_a principle_n and_o all_o be_v do_v 18._o after_o the_o end_n these_o negative_n they_o inquire_v what_o we_o ought_v positive_o to_o believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o remit_v we_o without_o any_o further_a proof_n but_o their_o own_o say_n to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o ancient_a propose_v a_o question_n propose_v creed_n this_o be_v large_o refute_v already_o next_o they_o propose_v a_o question_n whether_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n may_v by_o any_o mean_n whatsoever_o afterward_o become_v necessary_a so_o that_o the_o not_o believe_v it_o damnable_a whether_o the_o church_n can_v define_v any_o thing_n anew_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o that_o the_o not_o believe_v of_o it_o become_v damnable_a become_v damnable_a the_o question_n if_o i_o mistake_v not_o drive_v at_o this_o to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n can_v make_v no_o new_a definition_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n because_o all_o faith_n necessary_a be_v antecedent_o suppose_v as_o it_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o very_a church_n foundation_n before_o it_o define_v which_o foundation_n be_v both_o full_o and_o solid_o lay_v when_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v the_o world_n for_o the_o earth_n be_v full_a of_o his_o knowledge_n he_o teach_v his_o disciple_n all_o thing_n he_o have_v hear_v of_o his_o father_n the_o messiah_n when_o he_o come_v will_v tell_v they_o all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o a_o church_n solid_o found_v and_o before_o it_o define_v doubt_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o doubt_n full_a of_o truth_n can_v make_v nothing_o so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o a_o new_a superadded_a definition_n that_o the_o not_o believe_v of_o it_o become_v damnable_a definition_n the_o ground_n of_o sectary_n show_v null_a though_o the_o church_n make_v new_a definition_n 19_o before_o we_o answer_v the_o question_n it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o show_v you_o the_o nullity_n of_o our_o adversary_n ground_n and_o the_o inconsequence_n of_o they_o herein_o lie_v the_o chief_a strength_n of_o all_o that_o be_v say_v a_o church_n must_v be_v a_o church_n before_o it_o can_v define_v and_o consequent_o there_o must_v be_v a_o union_n in_o belief_n by_o which_o the_o church_n be_v constitute_v in_o be_v antecedent_o to_o its_o new_a definition_n very_a good_n all_o this_o in_o true_a but_o make_v reason_n the_o reason_n nothing_o against_o the_o church_n though_o it_o define_v anew_o i_o will_v prove_v it_o and_o explicate_v myself_o by_o one_o instance_n in_o a_o kingdom_n
or_o commonwealth_n there_o be_v always_o a_o agreement_n or_o settlement_n in_o some_o great_a matter_n before_o it_o proceed_v to_o make_v new_a law_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o law_n commonwealth_n though_o antecedent_o settle_v may_v make_v new_a law_n consequent_a to_o say_v that_o the_o agreement_n ought_v to_o be_v so_o explicit_fw-la in_o all_o thing_n in_o all_o point_n in_o all_o particular_a matter_n that_o nothing_o afterward_o can_v be_v decree_v anew_o it_o be_v therefore_o sufficient_a that_o these_o new_a law_n arise_v from_o some_o first_o solid_a principle_n of_o that_o commonwealth_n antecedent_o settle_v in_o be_v and_o if_o this_o be_v so_o they_o oblige_v as_o much_o as_o the_o former_a convention_n do_v when_o it_o be_v first_o settle_v though_o they_o be_v not_o at_o all_o mention_v at_o the_o first_o sound_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n 20._o answerable_o hereunto_o one_o may_v say_v christ_n found_v a_o church_n assist_v as_o be_v here_o suppose_a by_o a_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o first_o settle_v it_o upon_o some_o few_o principle_n from_o which_o all_o other_o after-definition_n may_v proceed_v or_o be_v derive_v the_o setlement_n the_o church_n assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n derive_v new_a definition_n from_o its_o first_o setlement_n church_n thus_o assist_v define_v anew_o upon_o the_o former_a setlement_n just_a as_o the_o commonwealth_n make_v new_a law_n upon_o its_o first_o agreement_n such_o definition_n therefore_o because_o they_o proceed_v from_o a_o infallible_a oracle_n call_v they_o yet_o new_a or_o old_a as_o you_o plea_n be_v as_o certain_a and_o of_o as_o great_a necessity_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o those_o new_a law_n be_v obligatory_a and_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v obey_v here_o be_v one_o disparity_n which_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n viz._n that_o the_o commonwealth_n law_n proceed_v from_o human_a authority_n the_o church_n definition_n from_o divine_a assistance_n those_o oblige_n under_o a_o temporal_a exact_o the_o parity_n hold_v exact_o punishment_n these_o under_o eternal_a but_o the_o parity_n exact_o hold_v thus_o far_o those_o law_n be_v implicit_o and_o virtual_o contain_v in_o the_o first_o ground_v setlement_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n these_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o first_o setlement_n of_o christianity_n those_o may_v be_v call_v new_a these_o may_v be_v also_o call_v so_o those_o become_v necessary_a to_o be_v obey_v these_o become_v necessary_a believe_v new_a law_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v and_o new_a definition_n if_o any_o be_v be_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v believe_v now_o further_o as_o no_o man_n doubt_n but_o that_o the_o church_n may_v make_v new_a law_n in_o order_n to_o obedience_n so_o none_o can_v but_o most_o unreasonable_o doubt_v of_o its_o power_n in_o set_v forth_o new_a definition_n it_o be_v very_o true_a here_o may_v be_v much_o of_o a_o quaestio_fw-la de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la whether_o they_o be_v to_o be_v call_v old_a or_o new_a because_o of_o their_o different_a respect_n relate_v to_o the_o first_o settle_v old_a upon_o different_a respect_n these_o definition_n may_v be_v call_v either_o new_a or_o old_a foundation_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n from_o whence_o they_o proceed_v they_o may_v take_v a_o denomination_n and_o be_v call_v old_a because_o radicate_v in_o those_o old_a certain_a principle_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v they_o as_o more_o ample_a express_v and_o significant_a declaration_n of_o god_n eternal_a truth_n they_o may_v without_o offence_n or_o clash_v in_o the_o least_o with_o church-doctrin_n be_v call_v new_a definition_n thus_o much_o be_v brief_o say_v to_o show_v how_o groundless_a our_o adversary_n ground_n be_v 21._o but_o we_o will_v not_o leave_v the_o difficulty_n thus._n to_o answer_v therefore_o with_o more_o satisfaction_n be_v please_v to_o note_v it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o own_o a_o church_n perfect_o found_v note_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v note_v and_o full_o instruct_v in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o a_o other_o to_o suppose_v that_o all_o know_v explicit_o what_o that_o perfect_a found_v doctrine_n be_v which_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n this_o late_a require_v a_o clear_a proposition_n make_v by_o some_o oracle_n of_o truth_n of_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o scripture_n itself_o for_o though_o i_o own_o all_o that_o scripture_n say_v to_o be_v true_a in_o the_o sense_n intend_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o i_o must_v learn_v by_o a_o sure_a teacher_n what_o it_o say_v in_o a_o hundred_o difficil_n passage_n 22._o now_o to_o question_n whether_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o necssary_a to_o salvation_n may_v afterward_o become_v so_o necessary_a that_o the_o not_o believe_v it_o be_v damnable_a etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v answer_v the_o question_n answer_v nothing_o be_v now_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n after_o the_o church_n definition_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a before_o yea_o and_o believe_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o the_o ground_n of_o my_o assertion_n be_v because_o the_o apostle_n immediate_o illuminate_v mystery_n the_o apostle_n the_o first_o and_o best_a know_v master_n of_o divine_a mystery_n by_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o his_o divine_a mystery_n they_o have_v primitias_fw-la spiritus_fw-la the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n believe_v as_o we_o believe_v teach_v as_o we_o teach_v and_o never_o deliver_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o church_n in_o after-age_n hence_o divine_v common_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n proper_o speak_v faith_n the_o church_n make_v no_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o declare_v more_o explicit_o what_o be_v ancient_o of_o faith_n make_v no_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o declare_v more_o significant_o and_o express_o what_o those_o well_o instruct_v master_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n own_a disciple_n both_o believe_v and_o upon_o several_a occasion_n teach_v other_o and_o here_o one_o grand_a cheat_n be_v to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o sectary_n think_v that_o all_o those_o christian_a truth_n which_o the_o apostle_n believe_v explicit_o be_v now_o explicit_o enough_o upon_o record_n in_o holy_a writ_n it_o be_v a_o error_n our_o saviour_n as_o st._n john_n testify_v scripture_n all_o that_o the_o apostle_n believe_v be_v not_o explicit_o in_o scripture_n cap._n 21._o v._n 25._o do_v many_o thing_n which_o if_o write_v in_o particular_a the_o whole_a world_n will_v not_o contain_v may_v not_o then_o the_o apostle_n also_o believe_v many_o thing_n as_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o mass_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n yea_o and_o teach_v those_o verity_n though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o plain_o deliver_v in_o holy_a writ_n yet_o express_o enough_o but_o that_o heretic_n may_v cavil_v at_o they_o 23._o here_o then_o be_v my_o resolution_n which_o be_v most_o catholic_n resolution_n the_o resolution_n doctrine_n christ_n our_o lord_n establish_v a_o church_n that_o be_v to_o tell_v we_o truth_n to_o the_o end_n of_o age_n this_o oracle_n which_o rely_v not_o on_o god_n write_v word_n only_o but_o on_o the_o unwritten_a also_o undoubted_a tradition_n answerable_a to_o necessary_a ocsion_n of_o new_a heretic_n rise_v up_o or_o of_o schism_n make_v in_o christian_a society_n etc._n etc._n often_o propose_v more_o definition_n the_o church_n use_v clear_a term_n in_o her_o definition_n explicit_o what_o the_o primive_a faith_n be_v and_o the_o apostle_n believe_v not_o that_o it_o make_v new_a article_n if_o we_o speak_v rigorous_o but_o propose_v the_o old_a one_o again_o in_o more_o clear_a and_o significant_a term_n and_o how_o can_v sectary_n blame_v this_o procedure_n when_o they_o without_o the_o warrant_n of_o god_n word_n write_v or_o unwritten_a propose_v and_o declare_v as_o they_o think_v the_o ancient_a sense_n of_o scripture_n itself_o to_o their_o hearer_n in_o a_o hundred_o passage_n definition_n sectary_n without_o god_n word_n write_v or_o unwritten_a make_v new_a definition_n for_o example_n christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n they_o by_o a_o new_a proposition_n define_v this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n will_v they_o licence_v themselves_o to_o propose_v what_o they_o please_v out_o of_o god_n word_n already_o write_v and_o storm_n at_o a_o whole_a church_n if_o it_o do_v so_o or_o further_o declare_v what_o be_v not_o write_v yet_o ever_o believe_v though_o perhaps_o not_o by_o all_o so_o explicit_o as_o it_o be_v after_o the_o church_n clear_a definition_n the_o church_n in_o this_o proceed_v upon_o a_o certain_a principle_n indubitable_a tradition_n sectary_n have_v neither_o tradition_n nor_o scripture_n for_o what_o they_o propose_v anew_o you_o see_v therefore_o whoever_o pertinacious_o article_n whoever_o deny_v the_o church_n definition_n deny_v the_o old_a believe_v article_n deny_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n deny_v not_o only_o the_o new_a declare_v but_o the_o
old_a believe_v article_n and_o consequent_o be_v liable_a to_o damnation_n 24._o you_o see_v moreover_o it_o be_v not_o only_o suitable_a to_o reason_n but_o necessary_a also_o for_o the_o very_a preservation_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o the_o church_n to_o who_o the_o mystery_n religion_n necessary_a for_o christian_a religion_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v commit_v though_o it_o make_v no_o new_a article_n nor_o suppose_v any_o other_o foundation_n then_o what_o be_v lay_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n may_v yet_o as_o explicit_o that_o the_o church_n declare_v more_o explicit_o necessity_n require_v declare_v more_o explicit_o the_o primitive_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n for_o by_o what_o better_a mean_n can_v we_o possible_o arrive_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o doctrine_n primitive_a doctrine_n those_o necessary_a truth_n which_o the_o apostle_n either_o believe_v or_o teach_v then_o by_o their_o heir_n and_o successor_n master_n the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n teach_v in_o the_o place_n of_o those_o decease_a master_n i_o mean_v the_o vigilant_a watchman_n who_o be_v and_o still_o be_v substitute_v in_o the_o place_n of_o those_o first_o infallible_a decease_a master_n they_o bless_a man_n run_v up_o and_o down_o the_o world_n from_o country_n to_o country_n from_o house_n to_o house_n testify_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n yet_o neither_o commit_v all_o the_o truth_n deliver_v by_o they_o to_o holy_a writ_n nor_o suppose_v teach_v the_o apostle_n write_v not_o all_o they_o teach_v the_o ignorant_a and_o vulearned_a fit_a instrument_n to_o teach_v as_o they_o have_v teach_v the_o legacy_n therefore_o of_o our_o christian_a truth_n be_v leave_v in_o sure_a hand_n i_o mean_v chief_o in_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o successor_n of_o those_o first_o great_a master_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o timothy_n deposit_v doctrine_n commend_v to_o timothy_n apostle_n commend'_v to_o timothy_n more_o than_o once_o the_o keep_v of_o a_o depositum_fw-la of_o mighty_a value_n which_o the_o father_n and_o none_o more_o express_o than_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n call_v the_o common_a catholic_n doctrine_n or_o to_o speak_v lir._n talentum_fw-la catholicum_fw-la say_v vinc._n lir._n in_o this_o worthy_a author_n word_n upon_o the_o text_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 20._o lib._n contr_n prof_o hae._n novit_n biblioth_n patrum_fw-la tom._n 4._o cap._n 27._o talentum_fw-la catholicum_fw-la fidei_fw-la the_o catholic_n talon_n of_o our_o faith_n aurum_fw-la accepistis_fw-la add_n vincentius_n aurum_fw-la red_a thou_o o_o bishop_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n have_v receive_v gold_n render_v as_o pure_a gold_n again_o etc._n etc._n what_o thing_n thou_o have_v learned_a so_o teach_v adorn_v and_o illustrate_v and_o mark_v here_o a_o further_a declaration_n of_o the_o deposit_v of_o a_o further_a declaration_n of_o deposit_v doctrine_n allow_v of_o doctrine_n allow_v of_o ut_fw-la cum_fw-la dicas_fw-la nouè_fw-la non_fw-la dicas_fw-la nova_fw-la that_o when_o thou_o propose_v thing_n anew_o thou_o teach_v not_o new_a thing_n but_o the_o old_a doctrine_n and_o hence_o it_o also_o be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v style_v by_o most_o ancient_a father_n depositorium_n dives_n a_o rich_a treasury_n dives_fw-la the_o church_n call_v by_o most_o ancient_a father_n depositorium_n dives_fw-la wherein_o the_o depositum_fw-la of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v keep_v and_o not_o only_o once_o keep_v and_o then_o lose_v but_o as_o a_o depositum_fw-la ought_v to_o be_v it_o be_v hand_v down_o from_o age_n to_o age_n from_o church_n to_o church_n successive_o continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n if_o therefore_o you_o look_v for_o the_o apostolical_a depositum_fw-la leap_v not_o i_o beseech_v you_o over_o the_o head_n of_o all_o those_o christian_n who_o have_v be_v betwixt_o we_o and_o the_o first_o 3._o or_o hand_n the_o apostolical_a depositum_fw-la be_v in_o the_o church_n hand_n 4._o age_n as_o if_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v there_o and_o no_o where_o else_o but_o demand_v of_o this_o present_a church_n now_o in_o be_v it_o be_v she_o that_o know_v better_a and_o inform_n we_o more_o exact_o of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n then_o all_o the_o lose_v write_n of_o the_o doctrine_n the_o present_a church_n best_a inform's_n we_o of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n ancient_a church_n can_v have_v do_v or_o those_o that_o be_v hitherto_o preserve_v can_v do_v because_o they_o be_v all_o liable_a to_o endless_a dispute_n and_o consequent_o can_v absolute_o decide_v no_o controversy_n now_o if_o any_o one_o boggle_v at_o this_o assertion_n as_o if_o we_o can_v not_o have_v sufficient_a certitude_n of_o dispute_v the_o most_o ancient_a writing_n be_v liable_a to_o dispute_v what_o the_o ancient_a church_n deliver_v by_o the_o testimony_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n but_o further_a requir'_v express_a record_n to_o be_v produce_v of_o all_o that_o be_v ever_o teach_v let_v he_o correct_v his_o error_n and_o know_v that_o what_o be_v carve_v in_o brass_n or_o write_v in_o velume_v can_v be_v more_o secure_o keep_v then_o apostolical_a doctrine_n deposit_v in_o the_o hand_n and_o write_v in_o the_o brass_n apostolical_a doctrine_n better_o preserve_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o christ_n pastor_n thenife_v have_v be_v carve_v in_o brass_n heart_n of_o christ_n faithful_a pastor_n be_v now_o preserve_v for_o what_o be_v in_o brass_n or_o parchment_n time_n may_v wear_v out_o and_o blemish_n but_o that_o which_o god_n have_v commit_v to_o his_o church_n and_o chief_a pastor_n thereof_o who_o be_v to_o teach_v christian_n age_n after_o age_n shall_v never_o perish_v never_o pass_v or_o be_v put_v out_o of_o remembrance_n and_o this_o doctrine_n the_o church_n deliver_n more_o explicit_o in_o her_o definition_n chief_o when_o she_o declare_v truth_n against_o heretic_n chap._n vii_o more_o of_o this_o subject_a objection_n be_v answer_v 1._o to_o go_v on_o with_o our_o discourse_n i_o will_v willing_o know_v when_o the_o apostle_n exhort_n the_o galatian_n cap._n 1._o vers_fw-la 8._o 9_o not_o to_o believe_v a_o angel_n preach_v contrary_a to_o what_o he_o have_v preach_v and_o they_o have_v former_o receive_v as_o also_o the_o thessalonian_o 2._o c._n 2._o 14._o to_o hold_v the_o tradition_n learn_v by_o word_n or_o epistle_n whether_o lose_v all_o that_o the_o apostle_n oral_o teach_v be_v neither_o write_v nor_o can_v be_v suppose_v lose_v we_o can_v imagine_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n oral_o deliver_v be_v either_o express_o register_v in_o scripture_n or_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o that_o divine_a doctrine_n of_o equal_a certitude_n with_o god_n write_v word_n be_v now_o total_o lose_v neither_o be_v probable_a the_o essential_o therefore_o of_o that_o doctrine_n lay_v up_o sure_a in_o the_o rich_a treasury_n of_o the_o treasury_n the_o essential_o of_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n treasury_n church_n still_o remain_v with_o christ_n own_o faithful_a pastor_n and_o this_o be_v the_o depositum_fw-la mention_v in_o scripture_n whereby_o the_o church_n assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n regulate_v herself_o when_o she_o define_v therefore_o great_a divine_n assert_v that_o the_o church_n never_o teach_v or_o will_v teach_v any_o new_a verity_n that_o be_v unknown_a to_o the_o apostle_n divine_n the_o doctrine_n of_o divine_n se_fw-la greg._n de_fw-fr valentia_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la disp_n 1._o quaest_n 1._o puncto_fw-la 6._o §_o illud_fw-la vero_fw-la and_o §_o hinc_fw-la quoque_fw-la suarez_n disp_n 2._o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la sect._n 6._o n._n 18._o tanner_n disp_n 1._o de_fw-la fide_fw-la quaest_n 1._o dub._n 7._o n._n 211._o 2._o st._n paul_n methinks_v confirm's_n this_o doctrine_n roman_n 12._o 6._o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n whereupon_o our_o faith_n what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n sectary_n because_o the_o greek_a read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d endless_o talk_v of_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n let_v we_o bring_v word_n to_o sense_n and_o sense_n to_o principle_n what_o be_v this_o analogy_n this_o measure_n or_o proportion_n of_o faith_n be_v that_o which_o every_o man_n private_a fancy_n fall_v upon_o to_o be_v faith_n the_o measure_n and_o analogy_n of_o it_o god_n forbid_v if_o so_o faith_n will_v be_v as_o various_a as_o fancy_n be_v changeable_n in_o heretic_n we_o must_v therefore_o find_v out_o a_o better_a analogy_n and_o if_o you_o say_v it_o be_v scripture_n i_o answer_v before_o the_o write_n of_o scripture_n write_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n before_o scripture_n be_v write_v there_o be_v a_o true_a and_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n otherwise_o these_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n presuppose_v the_o rule_n he_o mention_n before_o he_o write_v this_o epistle_n be_v insignificant_a again_o when_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o thessalonian_o epist_n 1._o c._n 1._o of_o their_o be_v a_o pattern_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o macedonia_n and_o achaia_n of_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n sound_v out_o by_o they_o it_o scripture_n
prove_v it_o in_o every_o place_n of_o their_o faith_n spread_v abroad_o etc._n etc._n what_o think_v you_o be_v this_o not_o yet_o write_v word_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o the_o true_a analogy_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o faith_n as_o well_o dilate_v as_o approve_v of_o what_o final_o be_v that_o form_n of_o doctrine_n commend_v in_o the_o roman_n cap._n 6._o 17_o why_o do_v the_o apostle_n blame_v the_o unsettle_a galatian_n for_o be_v so_o soon_o transfer_v into_o another_o gospel_n and_o denounce_v anathema_n cap._n 1._o 6._o if_o they_o believe_v a_o angel_n preach_v contrary_a to_o his_o former_a doctrine_n all_o these_o and_o many_o other_o passage_n of_o holy_a writ_n manifest_o declare_v religion_n before_o the_o write_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v a_o platform_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o there_o be_v divine_a doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o very_a founder_n of_o christianity_n before_o the_o write_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v a_o platform_n of_o christian_a religion_n make_v by_o the_o very_a apostle_n before_o they_o separate_v themselves_o and_o begin_v their_o preach_v to_o several_a nation_n and_o to_o comply_v with_o this_o rule_n or_o form_n of_o faith_n bless_v st._n paul_n though_o full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n go_v to_o confer_v with_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o rest_n gal._n 2._o 2._o act._n 15._o 36._o upon_o it_o the_o apostle_n hold_v council_n yea_o write_v council_n hold_v upon_o that_o platform_n and_o scripture_n write_v and_o as_o some_o grave_a and_o learned_a doctor_n affirm_v by_o the_o measure_n thereof_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v write_v see_v the_o note_n on_o the_o rheims_n testament_n rom._n cap._n 12._o v._n 6._o 3._o be_v it_o how_o sectary_n will_v there_o be_v faith_n in_o the_o world_n before_o write_v scripture_n the_o apostle_n who_o teach_v it_o have_v their_o rule_n of_o doctrine_n prescribe_v by_o a_o master_n the_o apostle_n have_v their_o rule_n of_o doctrine_n from_o a_o certain_a master_n good_a master_n the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o they_o teach_v not_o christian_a doctrine_n upon_o their_o own_o frail_a judgement_n consider_v as_o men._n no_o they_o have_v ever_o the_o guidance_n and_o direction_n of_o this_o bless_a spirit_n with_o they_o and_o as_o his_o instrument_n deliver_v so_o much_o as_o this_o master_n according_a to_o christ_n promise_n give_v assistance_n to_o and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o now_o those_o pious_a christian_n apostle_n the_o first_o pious_a christian_n have_v their_o rule_n from_o the_o apostle_n who_o hear_v this_o apostolical_a learning_n make_v it_o most_o certain_o their_o rule_n their_o measure_n of_o faith_n their_o analogy_n and_o form_n of_o doctrine_n whence_o i_o argue_v this_o form_n or_o rule_n of_o oral_a doctrine_n first_o lay_v up_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o afterward_o deliver_v to_o different_a nation_n be_v neither_o all_o set_v down_o in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o volume_n will_v not_o contain_v it_o nor_o all_o entire_o lose_v it_o be_v pity_n such_o a_o rich_a depositum_fw-la shall_v perish_v therefore_o it_o yet_o remain_v somewhere_o in_o safe_a custody_n church_n that_o doctrine_n be_v yet_o preserve_v in_o the_o church_n but_o no_o place_n be_v fit_a for_o it_o then_o that_o which_o the_o father_n call_v thesaurarium_fw-la dive_v the_o rich_a treasury_n of_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v still_o preserve_v and_o those_o timothy_n i_o mean_v those_o evangelist_n those_o pastor_n those_o doctor_n mention_v ephes_n 4._o 11._o appoint_a by_o providence_n to_o edify_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n the_o chief_a preserver_n of_o this_o legacy_n and_o noble_a depositum_fw-la be_v as_o necessity_n require_v to_o impart_v it_o and_o make_v it_o know_v to_o the_o world_n by_o their_o definition_n lest_o like_o child_n we_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o false_a doctrine_n and_o tradition_n the_o ground_n of_o tradition_n herein_o lie_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o all_o apostolical_a tradition_n this_o be_v not_o i_o but_o the_o great_a vincentius_n lirinensis_n own_o doctrine_n now_o cite_v where_o ponder_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n o_o timothy_n keep_v thy_o depositum_fw-la he_o ask_v quis_fw-la est_fw-la body_n timotheus_n nisi_fw-la vel_fw-la universa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vel_fw-la specialiter_fw-la totum_fw-la corpus_fw-la praepositorum_fw-la &_o c._n who_o be_v now_o or_o at_o this_o depositum_fw-la the_o whole_a church_n or_o ruler_n of_o it_o preserve_v this_o depositum_fw-la day_n our_o timothy_n but_o either_o the_o universal_a church_n or_o more_o special_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o those_o guide_n and_o ruler_n set_v over_o it_o that_o be_v themselves_o to_o have_v the_o entire_a knowledge_n of_o divine_a worship_n or_o to_o infuse_v it_o into_o other_o &_o c_o afterward_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la depositum_fw-la what_o be_v this_o deposit_v doctrine_n he_o answer_v id_fw-la quod_fw-la tibi_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o thou_o not_o that_o thou_o invent'_v that_o which_o thou_o have_v receive_v not_o what_o thou_o have_v fancy_v of_o thy_o own_o head_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o of_o wit_n but_o of_o doctrine_n non_fw-la usurpationis_fw-la propriae_fw-la not_o of_o thy_o private_a use_n fashion_v or_o practise_v sed_fw-la doctrine_n the_o church_n no_o author_n but_o keeper_n of_o divine_a doctrine_n publicae_fw-la traditionis_fw-la but_o of_o public_a and_o know_a tradition_n bring_v to_o thou_o handed_z to_o thou_o whereof_o thou_o be_v not_o to_o be_v author_n sed_fw-la custos_fw-la but_o a_o keeper_n and_o preserver_n then_o he_o go_v on_o depositum_fw-la custodi_fw-la catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la talentum_fw-la etc._n etc._n 4._o and_o thus_o you_o see_v we_o have_v a_o church_n a_o catholic_a proceed'_v principles_n whereon_o the_o church_n proceed'_v talon_n of_o faith_n commit_v to_o it_o a_o depositum_fw-la of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n lay_v up_o in_o its_o treasury_n we_o have_v a_o moral_a body_n of_o timothy_n of_o teacher_n unite_v with_o one_o supreme_a head_n and_o pastor_n that_o assure_v we_o more_o explicit_o by_o its_o definition_n what_o the_o ancient_n deposit_v doctrine_n be_v and_o reclaim_v we_o if_o we_o swerve_v from_o it_o we_o have_v express_a scripture_n that_o both_o all_o a_o mystical_a body_n of_o teacher_n god_n write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n sectary_n want_v all_o prove_v and_o approve_v the_o church_n proceed_v in_o do_v so_o and_o this_o sacred_a write_v word_n faithful_o interpret_v and_o the_o unwritten_a deposit_v word_n also_o most_o infallible_o propose_v be_v our_o form_n our_o rule_n and_o perfect_a analogy_n of_o faith_n o_o have_v sectary_n but_o half_a as_o much_o for_o what_o they_o bold_o assert_v contrary_a to_o we_o and_o because_o every_o man_n be_v a_o chutch_n with_o they_o they_o define_v more_o than_o our_o church_n define_v the_o consecrate_a host_n be_v bread_n only_o a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n only_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n only_o work_n justify_v not_o but_o faith_n only_o etc._n etc._n have_v i_o say_v these_o man_n but_o half_a definition_n protestant_n have_v no_o authority_n for_o their_o definition_n so_o much_o authority_n for_o their_o definition_n how_o will_v they_o warble_v out_o the_o note_n of_o their_o novelty_n but_o god_n have_v silence_v they_o for_o they_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n nor_o ancient_a depositum_fw-la nor_o tradition_n nor_o analogy_n nor_o rule_n of_o faith_n nor_o motive_n to_o make_v religion_n talk_v only_o of_o a_o nullity_n and_o a_o unproved_a negative_a religion_n what_o they_o define_v probable_a nor_o any_o other_o thing_n to_o talk_v of_o but_o of_o a_o mere_a nothing_o i_o mean_v the_o nullity_n of_o their_o unproved_a negative_a religion_n 5._o what_o hitherto_o be_v say_v of_o catholic_n definition_n make_v by_o pope_n and_o council_n chief_o relate_v to_o such_o matter_n as_o have_v be_v ancient_o without_o dispute_n reveal_v yea_o and_o believe_v also_o though_o not_o perhaps_o in_o order_n defining_n one_o way_n of_o defining_n to_o all_o so_o explicit_o and_o this_o way_n of_o defining_n some_o divine_n call_v propositionem_fw-la that_o be_v a_o repropose_v of_o mystery_n former_o believe_v whether_o clear_o deduce_v word_n god_n unwritten_a word_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o his_o write_a word_n out_o of_o god_n word_n or_o draw_v from_o undoubted_a tradition_n it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o for_o as_o the_o oral_n teach_v doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v and_o be_v certain_a as_o doctrine_n register_v in_o scripture_n so_o all_o that_o real_o be_v god_n unwritten_a word_n when_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n as_o such_o be_v in_o substance_n of_o equal_a authority_n and_o credit_n with_o the_o write_a for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o set_n down_o of_o truth_n in_o velume_v or_o parchment_n that_o add_n more_o weight_n to_o they_o or_o make_v they_o high_a verity_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n i_o can_v but_o reflect_v on_o the_o
inconsequent_a proceed_v of_o protestant_n who_o must_v trust_v our_o church_n for_o the_o handing_z down_o to_o they_o god_n write_v word_n consequence_n sectary_n ill_a consequence_n whilst_o most_o unreasonable_o they_o reject_v her_o authority_n when_o she_o declare_v what_o the_o unwritten_a word_n be_v i_o say_v most_o unreasonable_a for_o if_o it_o can_v deceive_v in_o this_o late_a it_o may_v as_o well_o have_v deceive_v christian_n in_o the_o first_o and_o give_v they_o false_a scripture_n whereof_o see_v more_o in_o the_o second_o discourse_n 6._o it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v another_o way_n of_o define_v asseveration_n another_o way_n call_v by_o divine_n asseveration_n call_v by_o some_o divine_v asseveratio_fw-la or_o the_o assert_v of_o a_o truth_n not_o so_o explicit_o at_o least_o believe_v before_o as_o when_o the_o church_n define_v against_o open_a heretic_n what_o be_v antecedent_o of_o faith_n and_o herein_o the_o church_n proceed_v not_o so_o much_o upon_o a_o previous_a know_a act_n of_o faith_n as_o upon_o the_o general_a own_a principle_n of_o catholic_n belief_n whereunto_o theological_n discourse_v draw_v from_o sound_a divinity_n and_o other_o principle_n partly_o evident_a and_o partly_o in_o a_o high_a measure_n moral_o certain_a have_v access_n and_o be_v most_o prudent_o join_v not_o that_o the_o definition_n in_o itself_o rely_v on_o those_o low_a principle_n but_o on_o god_n gracious_a assistance_n ever_o with_o his_o church_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o truth_n however_o providence_n will_v have_v this_o way_n follow_v as_o a_o usual_a and_o necessary_a condition_n because_o man_n of_o reason_n in_o so_o weighty_a matter_n be_v not_o as_o sectary_n do_v to_o define_v at_o random_n but_o industrious_o to_o use_v reason_n and_o proceed_v on_o rational_a principle_n but_o this_o belong_v more_o to_o divinity_n then_o to_o controversy_n for_o i_o think_v the_o church_n never_o yet_o define_v any_o thing_n against_o heretic_n that_o be_v not_o antecedent_o a_o know_a and_o own_a truth_n of_o faith_n though_o not_o so_o full_o express_v as_o it_o often_o be_v by_o the_o church_n clear_a proposition_n thus_o we_o say_v the_o real_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n etc._n the_o real_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiaton_n as_o old_a as_o that_o of_o the_o trinity_n etc._n etc._n be_v as_o old_a as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o his_o eternal_a father_n though_o the_o word_n express_v these_o mystery_n more_o significant_o and_o clear_o be_v of_o a_o late_a date_n 7._o now_o to_o the_o objection_n and_o one_o hint_v at_o above_o be_v the_o church_n be_v solid_o found_v in_o the_o objection_n a_o objection_n apostle_n time_n in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o these_o post-nate_a definition_n of_o it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o confirm_v this_o our_o young_a antagonist_n ask_v whether_o the_o apostolical_a declaration_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a lose_v of_o apostolical_a declaration_n lose_v faith_n be_v lose_v in_o the_o intermediate_v age_n or_o no_o if_o not_o lose_v show_v they_o say_v he_o and_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o new_a definition_n if_o they_o be_v lose_v in_o their_o passage_n down_o the_o church_n now_o want_v they_o and_o therefore_o can_v define_v nothing_o be_v the_o play_n worth_a the_o candle_n i_o may_v here_o demand_v of_o protestant_n whether_o their_o declare_v sense_n this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n add_v retort_v be_v retort_v to_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o sense_n they_o suppose_v to_o be_v apostolical_a be_v lose_v in_o the_o intermediate_v age_n or_o no_o if_o not_o lose_v show_v we_o that_o apostolical_a declaration_n and_o it_o be_v enough_o but_o this_o be_v impossible_a if_o it_o be_v lose_v or_o rather_o never_o in_o be_v how_o dare_v sectary_n make_v such_o a_o declaration_n on_o their_o own_o head_n without_o produce_v the_o apostle_n warrant_v i_o answer_v always_o the_o answer_n the_o church_n be_v solid_o found_v as_o it_o be_v now_o that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a in_o one_o age_n serve_v not_o always_o brief_o to_o the_o objection_n the_o church_n then_o be_v solid_o found_v just_a as_o it_o be_v now_o the_o doctrine_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o and_o every_o article_n of_o it_o be_v ever_o and_o be_v now_o still_o either_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o believe_v yet_o these_o new_a declaration_n be_v necessary_a because_o the_o proposition_n of_o a_o doctrine_n sufficient_a in_o one_o time_n or_o age_n serve_v not_o for_o all_o time_n and_o age_n when_o new_a difficulty_n occur_v and_o heresy_n rise_v up_o against_o it_o the_o church_n therefore_o ever_o vigilant_a and_o desirous_a to_o quiet_v all_o speak_v again_o more_o clear_o the_o old_a receive_a verity_n causeless_o too_o often_o bogle_v at_o by_o sectary_n i_o say_v more_o clear_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o assert_v such_o a_o verity_n be_v not_o at_o all_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o ancient_n deposit_v declaration_n different_a circumstance_n require_v clear_a and_o more_o ample_a declaration_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o another_o to_o say_v it_o be_v so_o clear_o there_o that_o in_o order_n to_o we_o and_o different_a circumstance_n it_o need_v not_o at_o all_o a_o further_a declaration_n sectary_n continual_o declare_v their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n for_o they_o have_v no_o other_o deposit_v apostolical_a doctrine_n to_o talk_v of_o and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o church_n authorize_v by_o christ_n with_o better_a reason_n do_v so_o too_o to_o what_o be_v add_v to_o help_n on_o the_o objection_n i_o have_v answer_v preserve_v deposit_v doctrine_n follow_v the_o church_n through_o all_o age_n be_v secure_o preserve_v the_o deposit_v doctrine_n oral_o deliver_v without_o writing_n be_v not_o lose_v but_o still_o remain_n in_o the_o church_n treasury_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v handed_z down_z from_o age_n to_o age_n and_o inseparable_o accompany_v the_o church_n through_o all_o age_n yea_o and_o be_v keep_v there_o though_o not_o in_o chist_n or_o coffer_n as_o secure_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v engrave_v in_o brass_n or_o marble_n and_o sectary_n must_v say_v thus_o much_o this._n sectary_n must_v grant_v this._n if_o they_o own_o scripture_n for_o god_n word_n for_o be_v not_o they_o now_o as_o well_o assure_v upon_o the_o church_n testimony_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n that_o st._n johns_n gospel_n be_v indict_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o if_o the_o church_n produce_v a_o handwriting_n to_o evidence_n that_o verity_n yes_o most_o assure_o whoever_o therefore_o dare_v call_v into_o frivolous_a their_o urge_n for_o a_o hand_n write_v of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v prove_v frivolous_a question_n the_o church_n authority_n assert_v a_o doctrine_n though_o it_o produce_v no_o manual_a write_n for_o it_o may_v as_o easy_o doubt_v if_o it_o show_v you_o one_o whether_o that_o very_o exhibit_v evidence_n be_v authentical_a or_o no._n let_v we_o only_o imagine_v that_o the_o apostle_n that_o write_v the_o last_o part_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v exact_o set_v down_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o church_n now_o receive_v let_v we_o suppose_v again_o that_o very_a copy_n to_o be_v leave_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o pious_a christian_n live_v in_o those_o day_n authority_n no_o hand-writing_n distinct_a from_o scripture_n be_v comparable_a to_o the_o church_n own_o authority_n and_o so_o long_o preserve_v until_o after_o heretic_n exclude_v from_o the_o canon_n such_o and_o such_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o luther_n late_o do_v st._n james_n epistle_n both_o they_o and_o luther_n might_n more_o rational_o have_v doubt_v of_o that_o very_a write_a instrument_n than_o any_o can_v now_o doubt_v of_o a_o whole_a church_n authority_n own_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v no_o charter_n therefore_o no_o write_a instrument_n though_o once_o true_o make_v when_o the_o author_n be_v go_v can_v parallel_v the_o church_n testimony_n in_o what_o it_o assert_n the_o reason_n the_o reason_n reason_n be_v because_o a_o manuscript_n only_o tell_v we_o you_v what_o it_o contain_v but_o not_o who_o it_o be_v and_o though_o it_o do_v so_o man_n may_v yet_o question_v the_o forgery_n of_o it_o unless_o a_o authority_n beyond_o exception_n extrinsical_a to_o the_o writing_n take_v away_o all_o fear_n of_o cozenage_n and_o make_v it_o undoubted_a manuscript_n tradition_n sure_a than_o any_o manuscript_n this_o reason_n prove_v tradition_n necessary_a in_o the_o church_n as_o well_o for_o the_o own_n of_o scripture_n as_o other_o verity_n 8._o i_o have_v say_v thus_o much_o to_o show_v how_o near_o to_o a_o piece_n of_o nonsense_n our_o adversary_n draw_v when_o to_o cancel_v the_o late_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n they_o urge_v we_o to_o produce_v the_o old_a apostolical_a declaration_n whereby_o
11._o one_o word_n now_o to_o a_o tedious_a harange_n of_o jeer_n it_o be_v a_o mile_n long_o at_o least_o and_o weary_v one_o out_o before_o he_o run_v it_o half_o over_o after_o our_o adversary_n have_v millstone_n answer_v to_o our_o adversary_n jeer_n of_o millstone_n talk_v of_o millstone_n hang_v about_o our_o neck_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n he_o tell_v we_o we_o when_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v to_o preach_v all_o that_o christ_n command_v this_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o teach_v more_o if_o she_o please_v alas_o the_o apostle_n be_v only_a tutor_n to_o the_o church_n in_o its_o minority_n but_o the_o great_a divine_a mystery_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n indulgence_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v declare_v till_o the_o church_n be_v at_o age_n what_o not_o one_o word_n of_o necessary_a point_n all_o this_o while_n nothing_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o christ_n vicar_n on_o earth_n &_o c_o thus_o our_o young_a tully_n tattle_v to_o retort_n his_o argument_n i_o may_v here_o load_v he_o with_o the_o lesser_a millstone_n of_o his_o inferior_a negative_a truth_n for_o these_o hang_v about_o his_o submissive_a neck_n if_o he_o be_v a_o child_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o be_v as_o numerous_a as_o our_o contrary_a positives_n but_o he_o will_v say_v they_o weigh_v little_a because_o they_o be_v light_a negative_n be_v it_o so_o be_v the_o apostle_n think_v you_o so_o tongue-tied_n so_o spare_v of_o their_o word_n as_o not_o once_o to_o hint_n at_o one_o of_o these_o inferior_a truth_n what_o not_o a_o syllable_n doctrine_n the_o apostle_n strange_o spare_v of_o protestant_n doctrine_n through_o the_o whole_a bible_n of_o two_o sacrament_n only_o of_o no_o purgatory_n of_o no_o sacrifice_n nor_o of_o a_o sort_n of_o new_a man_n that_o be_v to_o peep_n out_o sixteen_o age_n after_o and_o reform_v the_o world_n o_o be_v they_o alive_a again_o how_o will_v sectary_n storm_v at_o their_o silence_n and_o utter_a forgetfulness_n of_o these_o new_a nothing_o which_o yet_o be_v the_o very_o best_a essential_o of_o protestancy_n or_o it_o have_v no_o essence_n thus_o man_n may_v talk_n but_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la 12._o this_o whole_a wordy_a argument_n be_v just_a like_o protestant_a religion_n pure_o negative_a and_o bring_v to_o its_o best_a sense_n draw_v apace_o towards_o nonsense_n thus_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n declare_v not_o to_o the_o world_n these_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o they_o be_v no_o foundation_n of_o faith_n i_o first_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n how_o will_v trinity_n scripture_n speak_v more_o express_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n then_o of_o a_o trinity_n you_o prove_v it_o marry_o thus._n scripture_n say_v nothing_o of_o they_o i_o deny_v that_o also_o it_o speak_v more_o express_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n then_o of_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n or_o of_o infant_n baptism_n but_o let_v we_o gratis_o suppose_v it_o do_v not_o so_o here_o lie_v the_o strength_n of_o your_o objection_n which_o be_v improbable_o negative_a scripture_n say_v not_o that_o the_o apostle_n negative_a the_o objection_n improbable_o negative_a believe_v and_o teach_v a_o sacrifice_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la they_o neither_o believe_v nor_o teach_v they_o observe_v well_o your_o negative_a from_o the_o not_o register_n of_o all_o in_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n know_v believe_v and_o teach_v you_o infer_v they_o know_v no_o more_o or_o at_o least_o believe_v and_o teach_v no_o more_o which_o be_v as_o unlucky_a a_o sequel_n as_o this_o you_o sir_n have_v not_o write_v down_o in_o your_o rational_a account_n of_o protestancy_n all_o that_o your_o learned_a head_n have_v in_o it_o all_z you_o believe_v and_o teach_v other_o therefore_o you_o know_v nothing_o believe_v nothing_o teach_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v express_v in_o that_o book_n in_o a_o word_n i_o have_v answer_v doctrine_n the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n teach_v what_o be_v apostolical_a doctrine_n above_o n._n 22._o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v the_o heir_n and_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n with_o who_o the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n be_v deposit_v teach_v we_o what_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v and_o this_o positive_a approve_v by_o scripture_n and_o all_o antiquity_n have_v more_o weight_n in_o it_o then_o twenty_o of_o your_o weak_a negative_a discourse_n 13._o but_o we_o must_v not_o part_v thus_o i_o say_v just_a now_o your_o objection_n against_o we_o be_v a_o improbable_a negative_a and_o i_o appeal_v to_o your_o own_o conscience_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o so_o for_o can_v you_o or_o any_o prudent_a man_n imagine_v that_o all_o the_o exact_a word_n or_o express_a doctrine_n deliver_v by_o scripture_n it_o be_v improbable_a to_o say_v all_o that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v be_v register_v in_o scripture_n the_o apostle_n in_o their_o laborious_a sermon_n when_o they_o preach_v to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v record_v in_o holy_a scripture_n no._n i_o may_v well_o say_v in_o st._n johns_n sense_n speak_v of_o our_o saviour_n work_n the_o whole_a world_n or_o whole_a volume_n will_v not_o contain_v they_o therefore_o all_o they_o teach_v not_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v either_o lose_v or_o shut_v up_o in_o scripture_n take_v here_o your_o own_o instance_n of_o st._n paul_n it_o undo_v you_o he_o bless_a man_n act._n 20._o 20._o 21._o keep_v nothing_o back_o that_o be_v profitable_a to_o they_o but_o show_v they_o and_o teach_v they_o public_o from_o house_n to_o house_n testify_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n penance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n you_o upon_o this_o testimony_n too_o simple_o demand_v what_o not_o one_o word_n all_o this_o while_n of_o the_o necessary_a point_n nothing_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o christ_n vicar_n on_o earth_n i_o may_v ask_v you_o nothing_o all_o this_o whole_a of_o infant_n baptism_n of_o the_o eternal_a consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o god_n his_o father_n good_a sir_n reflect_v whilst_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o faith_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n he_o may_v well_o have_v declare_v both_o these_o now_o name_v and_o many_o other_o particular_a christian_a verity_n i_o do_v not_o say_v he_o do_v so_o at_o that_o present_a but_o this_o i_o will_v defend_v against_o you_o because_o scripture_n only_o relate_v in_o a_o general_n way_n what_o st._n paul_n preach_v adversary_n a_o weak_a inference_n of_o this_o adversary_n you_o can_v neither_o probably_n nor_o positive_o infer_v that_o he_o omit_v to_o speak_v of_o these_o and_o other_o necessary_a doctrine_n i_o say_v in_o a_o general_n way_n for_o do_v you_o think_v that_o st._n luke_n recount_v in_o particular_a all_o the_o doctrinal_a point_n that_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v when_o he_o go_v preach_v from_o house_n to_o house_n or_o can_v you_o persuade_v yourself_o that_o all_o the_o hagiographer_n put_v together_o have_v recount_v all_o the_o doctrinal_a matter_n not_o one_o omit_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n ever_o speak_v and_o the_o apostle_n teach_v upon_o several_a occasion_n pray_v you_o ask_v your_o conscience_n whether_o you_o can_v judge_v this_o probable_a if_o believe_v it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o what_o scripture_n relate_v not_o be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v not_o the_o argument_n scripture_n relate_v not_o those_o particular_a doctrine_n whereat_o you_o cavil_v which_o be_v yet_o untrue_a ergo_fw-la they_o be_v neither_o believe_v nor_o teach_v be_v not_o only_o a_o negative_a but_o a_o improbable_a negative_a 14._o to_o conclude_v let_v i_o friendly_o ask_v you_o whether_o this_o your_o positive_a assertion_n the_o apostle_n never_o believe_v nor_o teach_v a_o sacrifice_n or_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v a_o article_n of_o your_o new_a faith_n or_o only_a one_o of_o your_o inferior_a truth_n if_o you_o affirm_v the_o first_o you_o be_v oblige_v to_o produce_v positive_a scripture_n for_o it_o and_o then_o it_o will_v be_v a_o answer_v a_o dilemma_n that_o can_v be_v answer_v superior_a truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n though_o perhaps_o in_o your_o principle_n not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n grant_v thus_o much_o and_o you_o too_o clear_o own_o reveal_v article_n over_o and_o above_o those_o which_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o rome_n itself_o believe_v now_o if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o inferior_a truth_n and_o not_o in_o god_n write_v word_n with_o what_o purpose_n sectary_n offer_v to_o reclaim_v we_o by_o scripture_n and_o have_v not_o one_o text_n to_o that_o purpose_n conscience_n or_o countenance_n can_v you_o protestant_n who_o always_o pretend_v to_o reclaim_v we_o from_o our_o
error_n by_o pure_a scripture_n venture_v probable_o on_o such_o a_o work_n when_o you_o bave_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n that_o inable_v you_o to_o advance_v a_o proof_n against_o we_o rely_v on_o these_o ground_n and_o firm_a principle_n 15._o we_o easy_o solve_n another_o trivial_a objection_n of_o necessary_a another_o objection_n solve_v of_o scripture_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a sectary_n which_o be_v scripture_n contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o we_o need_v no_o new_a definition_n make_v by_o the_o church_n i_o may_v say_v much_o less_o do_v we_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o protestant_n new_a declaration_n force_v on_o scripture_n without_o a_o church_n but_o y'le_v answer_n in_o a_o word_n though_o scripture_n contain_v all_o the_o oral_n teach_v apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o what_o ever_o else_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v falso_n yet_o when_o we_o see_v with_o our_o eye_n that_o sacred_a book_n pitiful_o abuse_v by_o heretic_n not_o only_o useless_a heretic_n make_v scripture_n useless_a in_o lesser_a matter_n as_o they_o account_v of_o they_o but_o in_o the_o very_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o useless_a book_n in_o their_o hand_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n and_o therefore_o can_v decide_v controversy_n nor_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o i_o have_v large_o prove_v disc_n 2._o nay_o far_o some_o may_v just_o question_v misunderstand_v it_o may_v be_v doubt_v whether_o a_o angel_n can_v write_v a_o book_n so_o plain_a of_o other_o high_a mystery_n which_o the_o vulgar_a will_v not_o misunderstand_v whether_o if_o a_o very_a angel_n write_v a_o book_n as_o full_a of_o other_o high_a mystery_n yet_o unknown_a to_o the_o world_n as_o the_o bible_n now_o contain_v and_o use_v his_o best_a skill_n to_o express_v those_o vertty_n in_o the_o most_o clear_a and_o significant_a language_n imaginable_a some_o i_o say_v may_v doubt_v whether_o such_o a_o write_a book_n leave_v only_o to_o the_o private_a judgement_n of_o those_o whole_a multitude_n who_o now_o read_v scripture_n will_v not_o be_v misunderstand_v in_o a_o hundred_o passage_n if_o no_o after_o teacher_n regulate_v the_o weak_a reader_n of_o it_o in_o their_o difficulty_n or_o do_v not_o comply_v with_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n therefore_o the_o bible_n which_o be_v now_o extant_a and_o contain_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n often_o less_o clear_o express_v much_o more_o need_n be_v a_o interpreter_n and_o perhaps_o the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n will_v have_v it_o write_v so_o on_o set_a purpose_n that_o christian_n shall_v have_v recours_fw-fr to_o a_o live_a oracle_n of_o truth_n and_o learn_v of_o it_o what_o they_o can_v reach_v to_o by_o their_o own_o simple_a read_n you_o it_o church_n doctrine_n be_v repeat_v again_o and_o again_o none_o can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o will_v say_v a_o angel_n can_v write_v a_o book_n as_o clear_v to_o all_o capacity_n as_o the_o church_n definition_n be_v very_a true_a what_o then_o that_o book_n only_o once_o write_v be_v leave_v as_o we_o now_o suppose_v to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o private_a ignorant_a man_n as_o the_o bible_n now_o be_v in_o their_o hand_n but_o god_n have_v provide_v that_o the_o church_n doctrine_n be_v not_o only_o once_o deliver_v no._n it_o be_v lay_v forth_o anew_o it_o be_v implant_v anew_o it_o be_v repeat_v and_o cast_v like_o good_a seed_n again_o and_o again_o into_o man_n heart_n and_o memory_n by_o faithful_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n who_o shall_v never_o fail_v the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 16._o a_o three_o objection_n the_o church_n definition_n because_o man_n declare_v they_o and_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n can_v be_v infallible_a and_o therefore_o ground_n no_o faith_n contra_n 1_o ergo_fw-la neither_o sectary_n novelty_n nor_o the_o general_n doctrine_n sectary_n at_fw-fr cleur_fw-fr conviction_n of_o sectary_n own_v by_o all_o christian_n of_o one_o god_n and_o one_o christ_n because_o man_n teach_v they_o and_o all_o be_v liar_n may_v yet_o be_v fallible_a and_o fall_v also_o grant_v or_o deny_v the_o sequel_n you_o be_v silence_v contra_fw-la 2._o if_o all_o be_v fallible_a and_o consequent_o may_v be_v liar_n in_o what_o they_o teach_v why_o vent_v you_o my_o good_a friend_n so_o many_o negative_a doctrine_n which_o may_v all_o be_v false_a true_o if_o there_o be_v no_o infallibility_n in_o the_o world_n you_o neither_o aught_o to_o vapour_n as_o you_o do_v with_o your_o inferior_a negative_n not_o blame_v our_o fallible_a they_o condemn_v themselves_o whilst_o their_o censure_n be_v fallible_a contrary_a positives_n for_o in_o do_v so_o you_o condemn_v your_o own_o judgement_n and_o advance_v no_o proof_n against_o we_o your_o fallible_a censure_n be_v our_o church_n fallible_a go_v not_o one_o step_v above_o a_o totter_a fallibility_n and_o therefore_o be_v too_o faint_a to_o oppose_v the_o church_n contrary_a doctrine_n though_o false_o suppose_v fallible_a mark_v well_o i_o doctrine_n our_o church_n doctrine_n though_o suppose_v fallible_a be_v as_o good_a as_o sectary_n confess_v fatli●●e_a doctrine_n must_v say_v it_o once_o more_o you_o fallible_a man_n tell_v i_o that_o my_o church_n doctrine_n be_v fallible_a admit_v of_o the_o fall_v supposition_n it_o be_v yet_o upon_o all_o account_n as_o good_a as_o you_o or_o as_o this_o very_a fallible_a affirmation_n be_v that_o say_v its_o fallible_a and_o if_o in_o real_a truth_n it_o be_v infallible_a it_o be_v much_o better_o 17._o one_o word_n more_o if_o any_o people_n on_o earth_n ought_v to_o stand_v for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o new_a invent_v religion_n the_o abetter_n of_o protestancy_n can_v they_o proceed_v consequent_o shall_v do_v it_o why_o they_o deprive_v man_n of_o their_o estate_n cast_v they_o into_o prison_n banish_v some_o hang_v up_o tolerate_v why_o sectary_n persecute_v catholic_n while_o jew_n be_v tolerate_v other_o and_o all_o this_o be_v don_n because_o poor_a catholic_n can_v in_o conscience_n conform_v to_o a_o religion_n that_o be_v profess_o fallible_a and_o uncertain_a now_o if_o such_o cruelt_o can_v be_v practise_v on_o christian_n whilst_o jew_n and_o the_o worst_a of_o heretic_n be_v tolerate_v to_o live_v quiet_o for_o a_o thing_n that_o be_v only_o fallible_a and_o may_v as_o well_o be_v fall_v as_o true_a we_o be_v true_a the_o reason_n be_v because_o we_o can_v believe_v a_o religion_n that_o may_v be_v as_o likely_a falsas_fw-la true_a sure_o at_o a_o end_n of_o all_o good_a discourse_n ground_v on_o christian_a principle_n what_o to_o banish_v we_o to_o confiscate_v man_n estate_n to_o shed_v our_o blood_n for_o a_o religion_n that_o may_v be_v fall_v when_o we_o believe_v our_o creed_n and_o profess_v as_o much_o as_o these_o new_a sectary_n make_v essential_a to_o any_o religion_n of_o christian_n be_v to_o speak_v moderate_o a_o unheard_a of_o severity_n yet_o so_o it_o be_v they_o do_v not_o harrass_n we_o as_o they_o do_v because_o we_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n and_o one_o christ_n or_o own_o a_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n for_o themselves_o believe_v so_o much_o but_o here_o be_v our_o suppose_a crime_n mark_v well_o our_o suppose_a crime_n crime_n we_o can_v assent_v to_o a_o religion_n that_o may_v be_v fall_v we_o can_v subscribe_v to_o a_o company_n of_o new_a negative_a nothing_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v lash_v and_o persecute_v nay_o and_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o a_o wonder_n our_o gild_n go_v not_o so_o high_a admire_v a_o wonder_n never_o enough_o to_o be_v admire_v for_o though_o we_o be_v in_o our_o very_a heart_n arian_n or_o as_o we_o be_v catholic_n yet_o if_o in_o the_o exterior_a we_o do_v as_o sectary_n do_v we_o be_v still_o lovely_a child_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n learn_v therefore_o this_o truth_n it_o be_v vndeniable_a all_o the_o storm_n of_o persecution_n raise_v against_o we_o be_v not_o upon_o any_o hypocrite_n in_o real_a truth_n we_o be_v persecute_v because_o we_o will_v not_o be_v plain_a hypocrite_n account_n of_o want_n of_o true_a faith_n but_o for_o this_o sole_a reason_n that_o we_o will_v not_o believe_v one_o thing_n and_o force_v our_o conscience_n to_o profess_v a_o other_o which_o be_v to_o say_v we_o be_v handle_v thus_o rough_o because_o we_o will_v not_o dissemble_v with_o god_n and_o man_n and_o become_v plain_a hypocrite_n herein_o only_o lie_v our_o trespass_n justus_n es_fw-la domine_fw-la &_o recta_fw-la judicia_fw-la tua_fw-la judge_v you_o my_o god_n whether_o that_o no-offence_n merit_n be_v these_o scourge_v 18._o by_o what_o be_v now_o say_v you_o may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o when_o sectary_n seem_o bemoan_v our_o blindness_n god_n know_v how_o much_o of_o the_o grief_n lie_v at_o their_o
heart_n and_o tell_v we_o they_o have_v do_v what_o be_v possible_a to_o convert_v we_o to_o drive_v we_o from_o superstition_n we_o sectary_n can_v say_v to_o what_o they_o will_v convert_v we_o and_o draw_v we_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o new_a gospel_n they_o only_o give_v word_n without_o substance_n for_o to_o what_o will_v they_o convert_v we_o will_v they_o have_v we_o believe_v the_o general_n receive_v doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n we_o be_v convert_v to_o this_o before_o protestant_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n do_v they_o desire_v to_o convert_v we_o to_o a_o belief_n of_o their_o new_a negative_n these_o be_v at_o most_o uncertain_a inferior_a truth_n no_o way_n essential_a to_o christian_a religion_n put_v negative_n our_o positive_a doctrine_n weigh_v with_o sectary_n negative_n the_o case_n by_o a_o suppose_a impossibility_n that_o our_o contrary_a positives_n be_v only_o inferior_a truth_n like_o protestant_n negative_n they_o may_v notwithstanding_o most_o just_o hang_v in_o the_o balance_n with_o they_o and_o will_v certain_o outweigh_v they_o because_o a_o more_o ample_a and_o universal_a church_n own_o be_v them_o all_o therefore_o they_o can_v drive_v at_o when_o they_o pretend_v to_o convert_v we_o be_v that_o we_o carry_v protestancy_n they_o only_z careser_fw-ge the_o exterior_a form_n of_o protestancy_n about_o we_o the_o exterior_a form_n of_o protestancy_n in_o our_o demeanour_n though_o we_o still_o remain_v catholic_n in_o hart_n they_o care_v not_o that_o be_v as_o i_o say_v now_o they_o will_v convert_v we_o to_o be_v plain_a hypocrite_n 19_o from_o this_o and_o the_o precedent_n discourse_v it_o follow_v itself_o a_o fallible_a religion_n can_v defend_v itself_o that_o whosoever_o embrace_v a_o fallible_a religion_n which_o may_v be_v fall_v can_v neither_o defend_v his_o own_o nor_o impugn_v another_o upon_o any_o ground_a principle_n much_o less_o can_v he_o persecute_v his_o adversary_n to_o death_n or_o imprisonment_n though_o he_o other_o nor_o the_o professor_n of_o it_o persecute_v other_o mantain_n a_o contrary_a religion_n in_o like_a manner_n fallible_a the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v clear_n because_o the_o defense_n of_o a_o religion_n that_o be_v fallible_a and_o the_o opposition_n make_v against_o another_o answerable_o weak_a and_o fallible_a can_v go_v beyond_o the_o strength_n evident_a the_o reason_n be_v evident_a of_o that_o last_o ground_n whereon_o the_o defense_n or_o impugnation_n ultimate_o resolve_v have_v their_o foot_n but_o if_o the_o religion_n be_v fallible_a and_o uncertain_a the_o last_o ground_n whereon_o the_o whole_a machine_n either_o of_o proof_n or_o opposition_n stand_v must_v needs_o be_v a_o distasteful_a opinative_a conjecture_n which_o without_o certitude_n or_o satisfaction_n be_v as_o scorn_n a_o defender_n of_o a_o fallible_a religion_n can_v preserve_v himself_o from_o scorn_n unfit_a and_o forceles_a to_o convince_v another_o of_o a_o contrary_a belief_n as_o to_o preserve_v itself_o from_o the_o scorn_n and_o contempt_n of_o he_o though_o he_o profess_v no_o more_o but_o a_o faith_n that_o be_v fallible_a put_v the_o case_n that_o a_o pelagian_a and_o a_o protestant_a be_v hard_o at_o a_o hot_a dispute_n the_o question_v propose_v be_v whether_o of_o these_o two_o religion_n we_o suppose_v they_o both_o fallible_a be_v the_o better_a with_o what_o proof_n or_o principle_n can_v this_o fallible_a protestant_a assault_n his_o fallible_a adversary_n when_o he_o know_v he_o can_v go_v one_o step_v further_o than_o to_o what_o be_v pure_o fallible_a if_o he_o interpret_v scripture_n that_o be_v fallible_a if_o he_o quote_v father_n both_o they_o and_o he_o be_v fallible_a if_o he_o cite_v council_n the_o definition_n with_o he_o be_v fallible_a if_o he_o cry_v up_o his_o own_o religion_n as_o have_v the_o upperhand_n in_o probability_n he_o only_o throw_v his_o single_a vote_n into_o the_o vr●_n which_o when_o it_o be_v examine_v come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o his_o own_o sic_fw-la videtur_fw-la or_o self_n fallible_a unjust_o he_o can_v neither_o convince_v his_o adversary_n nor_o persecute_v he_o but_o most_o unjust_o conceit_n and_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o he_o can_v prove_v his_o religion_n against_o his_o adversary_n so_o he_o can_v but_o must_v unjust_o persecute_v he_o if_o he_o refuse_v to_o embrace_v that_o which_o can_v be_v prove_v but_o most_o certain_o his_o proof_n go_v not_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o uncertainty_n and_o therefore_o can_v oblige_v his_o adversary_n to_o believe_v he_o and_o thus_o these_o two_o combatant_n may_v wink_v and_o fight_v to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n without_o end_v one_o controversy_n or_o fall_v on_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o certain_a principle_n 20._o i_o will_v say_v here_o a_o strange_a word_n and_o think_v it_o very_o true_a will_v a_o learned_a atheist_n write_v a_o large_a volume_n as_o a_o atheist_n may_v say_v as_o much_o against_o god_n as_o against_o the_o existency_n of_o god_n or_o a_o learned_a jew_n against_o jesus_n christ_n they_o may_v prove_v as_o much_o by_o a_o rove_a fallible_a talk_n ground_v on_o no_o principle_n against_o these_o great_a verity_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o ever_o protestant_n have_v yet_o prove_v against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n church_n protestant_n can_v say_v against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n for_o their_o new_a mode_n of_o writing_n be_v a_o long_a loose_a wearisome_a discourse_n without_o reduce_v either_o proof_n for_o their_o own_o religion_n or_o opposition_n make_v against_o catholic_n doctrine_n to_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o receive_a principle_n mark_v this_o in_o all_o particular_a controversy_n you_o will_v find_v mere_a uncertain_a conjecture_n to_o be_v the_o last_o ground_n whereon_o either_o their_o proof_n or_o argument_n against_o we_o stand_v most_o unsettle_a yet_o it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o for_o whoever_o will_v venture_v to_o impugn_v a_o religion_n that_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n infallible_a must_v strike_v home_o and_o reach_v to_o sound_v principle_n before_o he_o touch_v it_o much_o less_o break_v it_o a_o piece_n sectary_n may_v say_v they_o be_v able_a at_o least_o to_o defend_v christian_a religion_n in_o general_n own_a purpose_n their_o defense_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o in_o general_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n by_o all_o the_o world_n for_o the_o rest_n of_o protestancy_n it_o may_v go_v whether_o you_o will_v nec_fw-la seritur_fw-la nec_fw-la metitur_fw-la they_o be_v not_o solicitous_a my_o god_n be_v we_o come_v to_o this_o pass_v now_o what_o must_v all_o the_o disturbance_n of_o sectary_n their_o schism_n and_o rebellion_n make_v against_o a_o church_n their_o gloss_n on_o scripture_n and_o the_o whole_a machine_n of_o protestancy_n end_v thus_o in_o a_o non_fw-la probatur_fw-la it_o can_v be_v prove_v be_v that_o only_a now_o assert_v defensible_a to_o wit_n the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o precise_o take_v be_v no_o man_n religion_n and_o need_v no_o defense_n 21._o some_o other_o objection_n yet_o remain_v but_o be_v all_o solve_v upon_o the_o principle_n now_o establish_v one_o be_v if_o every_o doctrine_n define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a the_o church_n lay_v its_o own_o foundation_n contra_fw-la there_o be_v fundamental_a faith_n in_o the_o church_n before_o scripture_n be_v write_v do_v scripture_n therefore_o lie_v new_a foundation_n of_o church_n scripture_n declare_v anew_o the_o antecedent_n believe_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n because_o it_o declare_v anew_o that_o antecedent_n own_a doctrine_n thus_o we_o say_v the_o church_n declare_v the_o ancient_a objective_n faith_n of_o forego_v christian_n ever_o implicit_o at_o least_o believe_v and_o not_o otherwise_o a_o second_o objection_n less_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o teach_v church_n either_o believe_v in_o that_o instant_a sht_v define_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o do_v not_o if_o she_o do_v it_o be_v necessary_a before_o the_o definition_n new_o make_v if_o not_o she_o define_v something_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o before_o necessary_a to_o answer_v the_o objection_n i_o may_v ask_v whether_o st._n john_n when_o he_o write_v this_o proposition_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n believe_v that_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n before_o he_o write_v it_o or_o no_o if_o yes_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o be_v believe_v before_o if_o not_o he_o deliver_v something_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o so_o before_o in_o one_o short_a word_n here_o be_v the_o solution_n to_o no_o real_a difficulty_n the_o church_n at_o least_o implicit_o believe_v before_o what_o definition_n the_o church_n believ'_v implicit_o before_o she_o define_v but_o more_o explicit_o after_o for_o she_o own_o definition_n it_o define_v yet_o may_v and_o do_v more_o explicit_o believe_v the_o same_o mystery_n in_o that_o very_a instant_a she_o define_v because_o god_n speak_v that_o truth_n more_o clear_o
to_o you_o or_o to_o i_o mr._n poole_n but_o to_o all_o rational_a man_n who_o know_v what_o evidence_n be_v an_o now_o we_o need_v not_o go_v to_o school_n and_o learn_v that_o for_o nature_n with_o a_o little_a logic_n teach_v sufficient_o what_o evidence_n be_v this_o evidence_n therefore_o draw_v out_o in_o a_o close_o continue_v argue_v in_o form_n will_v do_v the_o deed_n and_o show_v whether_o we_o be_v foil_v or_o you_o fight_v unlucky_o unless_o this_o way_n be_v take_v to_o blamable_a the_o loose_a and_o unclude_a way_n of_o argue_v in_o sectary_n be_v most_o insipid_a and_o blamable_a whilst_o you_o run_v on_o in_o a_o loose_a vnconclude_a talk_n and_o own_o no_o infallible_a judge_n to_o decide_v between_o we_o we_o may_v stay_v till_o doom_n day_n which_o be_v pitiful_a and_o end_v our_o life_n before_o we_o end_v so_o much_o as_o one_o controversy_n study_v therefore_o well_o for_o this_o propositio_fw-la quiescens_fw-la which_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o its_o own_o light_n apparent_a to_o all_o make_v we_o to_o yield_v up_o the_o cause_n if_o you_o can_v do_v this_o you_o be_v gallant_a man_n if_o not_o know_v that_o your_o shism_n be_v evident_a this_o be_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o song_n but_o the_o pretend_a cause_n of_o it_o lay_v on_o we_o lie_v yet_o in_o darkness_n vnevidence_v and_o therefore_o be_v vnjustifiable_a 9_o what_o will_v you_o say_v if_o a_o new_a zealot_n of_o our_o english_a schism_n argue_v thus_o most_o sure_o protestant_n wise_a and_o learned_a man_n can_v all_o so_o numerous_a as_o they_o be_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v make_v a_o bustle_n in_o the_o world_n about_o nothing_o they_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v leave_v a_o ancient_a church_n but_o upon_o the_o sight_n of_o great_a difficulty_n which_o fright_v many_o and_o final_o withdraw_v they_o from_o hold_v communion_n with_o it_o long_o i_o shall_v answer_v the_o objection_n large_o hereafter_o now_o i_o only_o say_v when_o a_o rebellion_n be_v manifest_a and_o decry_v abettor_n a_o know_a rebellion_n in_o kingdom_n or_o a_o clear_a schism_n in_o the_o church_n can_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o author_n or_o abettor_n by_o all_o indifferent_a and_o vnconcerned_a man_n the_o sole_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o begin_v it_o can_v never_o make_v it_o justifiable_a the_o case_n be_v clear_a in_o civil_a affair_n for_o example_n in_o that_o ungodly_a rebellion_n raise_v in_o england_n against_o our_o lawful_a sovereign_n as_o also_o in_o ecclesiastical_a witness_n the_o arian_n schism_n against_o the_o church_n these_o partisan_n authority_n alone_o it_o be_v well_o know_v be_v too_o weak_a and_o insufficient_a to_o justify_v either_o of_o these_o impious_a fact_n 10._o to_o that_o talk_v of_o a_o sight_n of_o difficulty_n i_o answer_v he_o who_o for_o seem_a difficulty_n will_v leave_v a_o ancient_a church_n religion_n whoever_o leave_v a_o ancient_a church_n for_o seem_a difficulty_n may_v as_o easy_o relinquish_v all_o christian_a religion_n shall_v at_o last_o be_v force_v to_o abandon_v all_o christian_a religion_n which_o certain_o have_v its_o difficulty_n and_o be_v there_o none_o think_v you_o against_o our_o protestant_n novelty_n i_o say_v therefore_o suppose_v we_o once_o digest_v the_o hard_a mystery_n of_o christian_a faith_n common_a to_o we_o all_o so_o few_o so_o slight_a so_o unvaluable_a be_v the_o difficulty_n against_o our_o church_n that_o when_o one_o serious_o reflect_v on_o this_o church_n long_a continuance_n on_o the_o several_a council_n convene_v in_o it_o on_o the_o different_a judgement_n of_o learned_a man_n on_o the_o various_a disposition_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n which_o make_v it_o up_o etc._n etc._n all_o apt_a enough_o according_a to_o nature_n to_o breed_v endless_a dissension_n he_o must_v say_v if_o a_o spark_n of_o church_n it_o be_v a_o special_a providence_n that_o difficulty_n be_v no_o great_a in_o the_o church_n reason_n live_v in_o he_o digitus_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la hic_fw-la the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o a_o special_a providence_n over_o his_o church_n appear_v in_o this_o alone_a that_o difficulty_n be_v no_o more_o nor_o great_a in_o so_o long_o stand_v a_o moral_a body_n than_o those_o slight_a one_o be_v which_o causeless_o affright_v our_o adversary_n do_v not_o then_o i_o say_v desert_a christian_a religion_n total_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o those_o difficil_n mystery_n it_o teach_v you_o can_v never_o in_o prudence_n relinquish_v this_o ancient_a church_n for_o pretend_a contradiction_n in_o council_n for_o suppose_a superstructur_n innovation_n and_o such_o like_a trifle_n which_o though_o stumble_v block_n to_o sectary_n be_v no_o soon_o look_v on_o then_o remove_v and_o put_v away_o by_o most_o satisfactory_a answer_n chap._n x._o the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n whilst_o evidence_n come_v not_o against_o it_o stand_v firm_a upon_o its_o ancient_n possess_v right_o this_o long_a possession_n prove_v the_o church_n orthodox_n 1._o some_o perhaps_o may_v object_n against_o the_o former_a discourse_n we_o catholic_n do_v not_o so_o clear_o objection_n a_o objection_n acquit_v ourselves_o of_o error_n nor_o consequent_o of_o the_o charge_n in_o be_v cause_n of_o protestant_n scbism_n as_o we_o rigorous_o exact_v of_o they_o to_o have_v these_o error_n lay_v evident_o forth_o against_o we_o for_o if_o one_o shall_v ask_v how_o we_o prove_v our_o church_n to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n and_o this_o clear_o or_o that_o by_o our_o error_n we_o occasion_v not_o protestant_n separation_n from_o we_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v i_o answer_v though_o we_o have_v demonstration_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o religion_n suppose_v christ_n once_o establish_v a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o can_v show_v this_o truth_n by_o a_o close_a order_n of_o argue_v in_o right_a form_n yea_o and_o we_o will_v do_v it_o when_o sectary_n have_v satisfy_v our_o difficulty_n yet_o to_o solve_n this_o present_a argument_n we_o be_v not_o oblige_v by_o the_o law_n of_o disputation_n to_o prove_v any_o thing_n nor_o to_o do_v more_o then_o only_o to_o stand_v upon_o our_o guard_n and_o defense_n the_o reason_n be_v our_o protestant_n be_v here_o the_o actor_n the_o aggressor_n charge_n protestant_n because_o aggressor_n be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v their_o charge_n it_o be_v therefore_o their_o task_n to_o prove_v we_o only_o to_o defend_n which_o be_v easy_a if_o you_o mark_v how_o strange_o in_o vain_a they_o make_v their_o attempt_n against_o we_o observe_v it_o after_o our_o church_n have_v stand_v a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o in_o the_o quiet_a possession_n of_o truth_n they_o accuse_v it_o of_o attempt_n their_o weak_a attempt_n error_n after_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o learned_a and_o virtuous_a man_n that_o live_v holy_o and_o die_v happy_o in_o it_o yes_o and_o have_v eye_n as_o quick_a judgement_n as_o deep_a and_o will_n as_o good_a to_o find_v out_o these_o error_n have_v any_o be_v as_o the_o best_a of_o sectary_n yet_o find_v none_o they_o forsooth_o espy_v they_o after_o innocency_n the_o church_n purity_n and_o innocency_n this_o church_n have_v its_o purity_n and_o innocency_n sign_v and_o seal_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o innumerable_a martyr_n evidence_v by_o undoubted_a miracle_n manifest_v by_o so_o many_o glorious_a conversion_n wrought_v on_o alien_n draw_v to_o christ_n and_o final_o demonstrative_o prove_v by_o all_o those_o illustrious_a mark_n of_o truth_n whereof_o we_o treat_v above_o our_o protestant_n rise_v up_o and_o calumniate_v this_o great_a society_n of_o christian_n lay_v a_o foul_a aspersion_n of_o heresy_n on_o it_o be_v not_o they_o think_v you_o as_o actor_n oblige_v in_o justice_n to_o make_v their_o charge_n good_a against_o we_o by_o evident_a proof_n and_o be_v not_o we_o possession_n prove_v by_o a_o long_a possession_n exempt_v from_o all_o further_a obligation_n of_o plead_v then_o only_o to_o stand_v upon_o our_o ancient_n blameless_a and_o quiet_a possession_n believe_v it_o this_o olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la prio_fw-la possideo_fw-la be_v warrant_n sufficient_a and_o our_o wall_n of_o defense_n against_o such_o weak_a aggressor_n and_o yet_o we_o strengthen_v our_o hold_n with_o canon_n proof_n it_o be_v evident_a reason_n also_o nemo_fw-la praesumitur_fw-la malus_fw-la nisi_fw-la probetur_fw-la no_o man_n upon_o vain_a also_o and_o evident_a reason_n also_o presumption_n aught_o to_o be_v account_v nought_o unless_o reason_n prove_v he_o a_o delinquent_n 2._o for_o example_n give_v i_o a_o loyal_a subject_n that_o have_v don_n wonder_n and_o great_a service_n for_o his_o prince_n instance_n a_o instance_n that_o have_v enlarge_v his_o kingdom_n gain_v he_o friend_n defeat_v his_o enemy_n and_o yet_o be_v struggle_v to_o do_v he_o more_o service_n who_o repute_n be_v never_o stain_v nor_o fame_n blemish_v etc._n etc._n suppose_v now_o that_o a_o little_a knot_n of_o unknown_a man_n shall_v offer_v at_o some_o small_a or_o vnconsiderable_a
proof_n and_o with_o these_o endeavour_n to_o impeach_v he_o of_o treason_n will_v not_o the_o prince_n think_v you_o either_o require_v evidence_n to_o be_v bring_v in_o against_o so_o worthy_a a_o subject_a or_o reject_v these_o accuser_n as_o unworthy_a of_o credit_n yes_o most_o assure_o this_o be_v our_o case_n though_o no_o instance_n take_v from_o private_a man_n can_v christ_n the_o church_n evident_o have_v prove_v her_o fidelity_n to_o christ_n parallel_v the_o fidelity_n of_o the_o church_n towards_o christ_n the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n i_o speak_v of_o no_o other_o for_o there_o be_v none_o have_v faithful_o don_n great_a service_n for_o the_o king_n of_o king_n christ_n jesus_n it_o have_v dilate_v his_o empire_n far_o and_o near_o it_o have_v defeat_v his_o enemy_n perfidious_a heathen_n gain_v he_o friend_n and_o innumerable_a servant_n it_o yet_o struggle_v maugre_o all_o attempt_n against_o it_o to_o promote_v impeachment_n hitherto_o of_o unspotted_a fame_n before_o sectary_n impeachment_n his_o honour_n and_o gain_v he_o more_o so_o long_v it_o be_v of_o a_o unspotted_a fame_n and_o account_v pure_a without_o blemish_n till_o now_o at_o last_o a_o little_a inconsiderable_a knot_n of_o protestant_n impeach_v it_o of_o treason_n and_o make_v it_o a_o rebel_n against_o that_o king_n for_o who_o it_o have_v serve_v so_o long_o and_o faithful_o what_o then_o do_v our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o all_o justice_n too_o require_v of_o these_o accuser_n but_o evidence_n yes_o and_o if_o possible_a more_o than_o evidence_n be_v necessary_a to_o make_v their_o charge_n good_a against_o this_o church_n it_o have_v evident_a proof_n enough_o of_o its_o fidelity_n cavil_n justice_n in_o this_o charge_n require_v evidence_n not_o unprove_v cavil_n by_o its_o faithful_a long_a service_n by_o its_o hitherto_o irreprehensible_a purity_n allow_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o upward_a and_o therefore_o can_v be_v suppose_v a_o delinquent_n upon_o mere_a cavil_n or_o for_o thing_n which_o look_v like_o proof_n but_o when_o examine_v be_v no_o soon_o see_v then_o slight_v no_o soon_o weigh_v then_o cast_v away_o as_o weightles_a 3._o take_v one_o instance_n more_o though_o none_o of_o the_o hominem_fw-la another_o instance_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la best_a it_o may_v yet_o best_a serve_v for_o protestant_n suppose_v that_o another_o kind_a of_o luther_n with_o a_o few_o follower_n once_o protestant_n as_o these_o be_v ancient_o catholic_n shall_v now_o separate_a from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o open_o accuse_v all_o the_o minister_n within_o that_o island_n of_o error_n in_o doctrine_n of_o injustice_n of_o schism_n of_o their_o force_v scripture_n by_o vnproved_a gloss_n to_o say_v what_o god_n never_o speak_v etc._n etc._n the_o accusation_n certain_o will_v be_v look_v on_o by_o minister_n as_o a_o heinous_a calumny_n what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v will_v not_o they_o after_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n return_v to_o the_o objection_n of_o these_o suppose_a calumniator_n hold_v themselves_o unblemished_a upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o suppose_a ancient_n good_a fame_n instance_n thus_o much_o be_v only_o suppose_v to_o give_v force_n to_o the_o instance_n and_o we_o must_v now_o imagine_v it_o of_o their_o unquestioned_a integrity_n both_o in_o life_n and_o doctrine_n whereof_o they_o have_v have_v possession_n in_o man_n opinion_n for_o a_o hundred_o year_n together_o will_v they_o not_o all_o unanimous_o say_v that_o by_o this_o very_a maxim_n ground_v in_o nature_n nemo_fw-la praesumitur_fw-la malus_fw-la nisi_fw-la probetur_fw-la none_o who_o have_v the_o repute_n of_o a_o honest_a man_n be_v to_o loose_v it_o unless_o evidence_n come_v against_o he_o and_o blemish_v his_o honesty_n yes_o all_o of_o they_o will_v swear_v it_o they_o need_v not_o therefore_o to_o preach_v to_o these_o accuser_n or_o to_o show_v by_o positive_a argument_n how_o true_a this_o be_v also_o only_o suppose_v in_o their_o behalf_n though_o not_o true_a pure_o they_o teach_v christ_n doctrine_n how_o innocent_o they_o have_v live_v how_o free_a from_o all_o injustice_n how_o their_o hearer_n have_v hithertho_fw-la reverence_v they_o as_o saint_n and_o laborious_a workman_n in_o christ_n vineyard_n no._n this_o be_v it_o so_o prove_v itself_o the_o very_a have_v don_n well_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o and_o so_o long_o carry_v with_o it_o its_o own_o evidence_n and_o be_v argument_n enough_o wash_v verity_n they_o be_v not_o in_o real_a truth_n calumny_n but_o verity_n then_o away_o the_o object_v calumny_n if_o yet_o calumny_n and_o the_o work_n be_v do_v they_o be_v sound_v in_o doctrine_n clear_a innocent_a and_o blameless_a upon_o this_o fall_v supposition_n 4._o the_o application_n of_o this_o instance_n to_o our_o present_a instance_n the_o application_n of_o the_o instance_n case_n be_v easy_a the_o first_o luther_n accompany_v with_o a_o handful_n of_o man_n accuse_v not_o only_o a_o few_o islander_n of_o error_n but_o a_o church_n of_o a_o far_o large_a extent_n renown_a the_o whole_a world_n over_o we_o have_v answer_v to_o all_o their_o calumny_n not_o one_o objection_n be_v omit_v if_o there_o be_v any_o new_a one_o for_o god_n sake_n let_v we_o hear_v they_o this_o don_n we_o stand_v still_o upon_o our_o ancient_a possession_n of_o truth_n and_o prepossess_v good_a fame_n in_o teach_v it_o these_o evidence_n what_o evidence_v itself_o need_v no_o far_o evidence_n evidence_n themselves_o and_o need_v no_o further_o proof_n for_o this_o argument_n be_v good_n once_o we_o be_v honest_a man_n and_o therefore_o be_v so_o now_o once_o right_o in_o faith_n and_o we_o be_v right_o still_o unless_o evidence_n drive_v we_o out_o of_o our_o ancient_a possession_n no_o less_o than_o evident_a proof_n can_v drive_v we_o out_o of_o our_o ancient_a possession_n right_n and_o honesty_n solve_n then_o a_o few_o object_v calumny_n the_o work_n be_v do_v we_o stand_v upon_o clear_a ground_n which_o be_v the_o yet_o unshake_a hold_v of_o our_o long_a olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la prio_fw-la possideo_fw-la 5._o you_o will_v say_v the_o whole_a force_n of_o this_o instance_n come_v to_o one_o trial._n viz._n whether_o we_o catholic_n reply_v what_o sectary_n may_v reply_v have_v already_o solve_v or_o can_v solve_n as_o well_o the_o objection_n of_o protestant_n against_o our_o church_n as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o vainquish_v what_o ever_o this_o now_o suppose_a sect_n propose_v against_o their_o new_a doctrine_n if_o the_o parity_n hold_v here_o the_o instance_n press_v if_o not_o it_o be_v forceles_a answer_n here_o be_v it_o worth_a the_o while_n we_o may_v have_v sport_n and_o see_v how_o our_o adversary_n either_o pitiful_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o what_o they_o say_v or_o licence_n every_o man_n to_o be_v his_o own_o judge_n though_o he_o vent_v plain_a haeresy_n or_o final_o draw_v controversy_n into_o endless_a cavil_v observe_v it_o they_o say_v they_o can_v better_a solve_n the_o argument_n of_o these_o new_a sectary_n against_o themselves_o then_o we_o be_v able_a to_o solve_v they_o against_o we_o be_v not_o question_n they_o beg_v the_o question_n this_o a_o mere_a proofle_n petitio_fw-la principi_fw-la most_o assure_o yes_o and_o mark_v how_o it_o go_v on_o just_o as_o protestant_n tell_v we_o catholic_n that_o we_o solve_v not_o their_o argument_n protestant_n these_o new_a suppose_a sectary_n argue_v strong_o against_o protestant_n so_o these_o new_a man_n stand_v stiff_o to_o it_o and_o tell_v protestant_n they_n solve_n not_o they_o and_o they_o instance_n strong_o thus._n you_o think_v yourselves_o safe_a and_o all_o clear_a for_o you_o when_o you_o say_v papist_n answer_v not_o to_o what_o you_o object_n against_o they_o and_o our_o reply_n be_v the_o same_o we_o be_v as_o safe_a in_o say_v bold_o you_o answer_v not_o our_o objection_n against_o you_o .._o you_o say_v you_o solve_n our_o argument_n we_o say_v no._n will_v you_o be_v judge_n in_o your_o own_o cause_n for_o the_o affirmative_a permit_v we_o then_o to_o be_v judge_n in_o we_o for_o the_o negative_a if_o you_o say_v again_o you_o give_v a_o probable_a solution_n to_o our_o objection_n so_o catholic_n answer_v you_o if_o you_o say_v our_o objection_n do_v not_o so_o evident_o conclude_v against_o you_o but_o that_o still_o you_o be_v able_a to_o solve_n they_o negative_o that_o be_v to_o show_v they_o do_v not_o force_v your_o understanding_n to_o yield_v to_o they_o so_o catholic_n answer_v you_o with_o this_o advantage_n that_o they_o can_v enervate_v all_o you_o object_n positive_o by_o contrary_a valid_a proof_n and_o when_o this_o be_v do_v have_v twenty_o for_o one_o as_o learned_a against_o you_o beside_o the_o infallible_a church_n they_o pretend_v to_o that_o vote_n and_o voice_n for_o they_o and_o pity_v your_o folly_n in_o object_v now_o if_o after_o all_o say_v these_o new_a sectary_n you_o protestant_n blame_v we_o for_o our_o late_a separation_n make_v
from_o the_o english_a church_n and_o therefore_o charge_v schism_n on_o we_o know_v that_o clodius_n accusat_fw-la moechos_fw-la you_o lead_v the_o danse_n and_o first_o schismatize_v from_o a_o more_o ancient_a church_n than_o we_o have_v do_v you_o yet_o though_o formal_a separatist_n be_v not_o the_o schismatic_n but_o rome_n that_o give_v you_o cause_n and_o just_o so_o we_o say_v we_o be_v indeed_o the_o formal_a separatist_n from_o you_o but_o your_o error_n give_v we_o just_a cause_n to_o part_n from_o you_o and_o therefore_o the_o sin_n of_o schism_n be_v on_o your_o side_n and_o thus_o these_o two_o dissent_v party_n principlet_n their_o dispute_n be_v endless_a because_o neither_o own_o be_v a_o lawful_a judge_n nor_o can_v come_v to_o certain_a principlet_n may_v dispute_v until_o they_o both_o be_v breathless_a and_o stand_v gaze_v on_o one_o a_o other_o without_o further_a progress_n unless_o they_o bring_v their_o discourse_n to_o vndubitable_a principle_n or_o have_v recours_fw-fr to_o some_o three_o equal_a judge_n between_o they_o or_o final_o grant_v which_o evident_o follow_v that_o without_o a_o judge_n or_o certain_a principle_n the_o worst_a of_o heresy_n may_v be_v defend_v if_o every_o one_o may_n first_o accuse_v his_o adversary_n and_o then_o give_v sentence_n for_o himself_o for_o there_o be_v no_o arian_n no_o nestorian_a but_o solve_v every_o one_o think_v well_o of_o his_o heresy_n and_o will_v pretend_v as_o protestant_n do_v that_o his_o argument_n be_v not_o solve_v think_v well_o of_o his_o error_n and_o will_v at_o least_o pretend_v as_o our_o protestant_n do_v that_o his_o argument_n for_o they_o be_v not_o solve_v chap._n xi_o of_o a_o late_a writer_n exception_n against_o our_o plead_v possession_n 1._o it_o be_v very_o true_a do_v not_o i_o see_v the_o strain_n of_o sectary_n stillingfleet_n mr._n stillingfleet_n argue_v to_o be_v every_o where_o like_o itself_o weak_a and_o deficient_a i_o shall_v scarce_o have_v think_v that_o a_o man_n of_o part_n can_v have_v miss_v so_o enormous_o as_o one_o do_v in_o this_o controversy_n whilst_o he_o give_v you_o hint_n of_o hit_v the_o nail_n on_o the_o head_n and_o say_v much_o to_o the_o purpose_n thus_o it_o be_v 2._o we_o plead_v a_o lawful_a succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o a_o quiet_a possession_n of_o truth_n with_o it_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o immemorial_n tradition_n our_o adversary_n tell_v we_o we_o the_o obligation_n of_o prove_v lie_n upon_o we_o of_o prove_v what_o for_o god_n sake_n marry_o that_o which_o proof_n we_o be_v urge_v to_o prove_v what_o be_v by_o itself_o a_o evident_a proof_n immemorial_n tradition_n most_o evident_o prove_v in_o so_o much_o that_o we_o be_v now_o urge_v to_o prove_v that_o proof_n which_o be_v alone_o its_o own_o most_o clear_a light_n and_o undeniable_a evidence_n they_o proceed_v here_o just_a as_o if_o one_o shall_v bid_v i_o prove_v that_o all_o mankind_n descend_v from_o adam_n adam_n if_o scripture_n be_v not_o undoubted_a tradition_n will_v prove_v we_o all_o come_v from_o adam_n have_v we_o no_o other_o argument_n to_o convince_v the_o truth_n but_o immemorial_n tradition_n because_o some_o forsooth_o may_v imagine_v without_o proof_n that_o god_n in_o one_o age_n or_o other_o though_o they_o can_v say_v when_o break_v of_o this_o lineal_a descent_n by_o create_v a_o new_a sort_n of_o man_n from_o who_o we_o come_v and_o not_o from_o adam_n which_o be_v senseless_a for_o the_o very_a tradition_n alone_o have_v more_o weight_n in_o it_o to_o convince_v the_o affirmative_a we_o all_o come_v from_o adam_n then_o a_o pure_a imagination_n without_o proof_n to_o persuade_v the_o contrary_a negative_a take_v one_o instance_n perhaps_o more_o press_v and_o significant_a a_o kingdom_n or_o commonwealth_n prove_v the_o succession_n of_o its_o monarch_n or_o prince_n for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n by_o a_o constant_a tradition_n never_o call_v into_o doubt_n or_o question_v by_o any_o suppose_v some_o zelots_n shall_v begin_v to_o quarrel_v with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o tell_v they_o gentleman_n you_o be_v all_o mistake_v believe_v we_o in_o instance_n a_o instance_n one_o age_n or_o other_o though_o we_o know_v not_o when_o it_o happen_v the_o lineal_a race_n of_o your_o suppose_a king_n fail_v a_o usurper_n get_v to_o the_o throne_n by_o force_n fraud_n or_o both_o and_o it_o be_v he_o its_o true_a we_o can_v name_v the_o man_n that_o bring_v in_o novelty_n strange_a opinion_n dangerous_a maxim_n contrary_a to_o your_o ancient_a law_n and_o custom_n imagine_v i_o say_v thus_o much_o will_v not_o these_o novellist_n think_v you_o after_o no_o small_a contempt_n be_v put_v to_o their_o proof_n or_o be_v scornful_o laugh_v at_o shall_v they_o urge_v the_o kingdom_n to_o prove_v what_o be_v prove_v by_o certain_a tradition_n this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n we_o prove_v monarch_n we_o prove_v as_o clear_o the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o pope_n and_o catholic_n pastor_n as_o any_o kingdom_n the_o succession_n of_o their_o monarch_n the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o our_o pope_n of_o our_o prelate_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o people_n by_o vndeniable_a tradition_n from_o st._n peter_n to_o this_o present_a age_n and_o we_o be_v now_o call_v on_o to_o prove_v that_o which_o the_o very_a strength_n and_o efficacy_n of_o tradition_n prove_v by_o itself_o without_o more_o ado_n a_o most_o impertinent_a demand_v for_o if_o he_o that_o deny_v the_o lawful_a lineal_a succession_n of_o monarch_n in_o a_o kingdom_n warrant_v by_o undubitable_a tradition_n must_v if_o he_o stand_v to_o it_o be_v put_v to_o his_o proof_n the_o kingdom_n prove_v enough_o by_o its_o immemorial_n tradition_n much_o more_o be_v these_o man_n force_v to_o prove_v in_o our_o case_n if_o they_o oppugn_v the_o tradition_n of_o a_o whole_a universal_a evidence_n the_o church_n clear_a evidence_n church_n for_o the_o church_n give_v in_o her_o last_o and_o clear_a evidence_n when_o she_o plead_v undeniable_a tradition_n no_o man_n can_v require_v more_o 3._o you_o may_v say_v first_o beside_o tradition_n whereby_o the_o lawful_a descent_n of_o monarch_n be_v prove_v there_o be_v also_o record_v at_o hand_n to_o confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o tradition_n i_o answer_v the_o church_n have_v as_o good_a kingdom_n the_o church_n record_n as_o ample_n as_o any_o in_o a_o kingdom_n record_n whereby_o she_o manife_v the_o lawful_a succession_n of_o her_o pope_n prelate_n and_o pastor_n as_o any_o kingdom_n on_o earth_n produce_v for_o the_o lineal_a descent_n of_o its_o monarch_n therefore_o it_o be_v you_o that_o must_v show_v and_o by_o sound_a principle_n as_o well_o these_o record_n to_o be_v forge_v or_o vnauthentick_a as_o oral_a tradition_n which_o be_v a_o distinct_a proof_n to_o be_v fall_v and_o fallible_a both_o be_v above_o your_o power_n skill_n and_o learning_n be_v it_o otherwise_o the_o proof_n certain_o lie_v on_o your_o side_n and_o it_o be_v all_o i_o intend_v at_o present_a 4._o you_o may_v reply_v second_o the_o instance_n of_o produce_v record_n contrary_a to_o the_o church_n can_v be_v produce_v monarch_n succeed_v in_o a_o kingdom_n uphold_v by_o tradition_n be_v forceles_a if_o contrary_a record_n be_v produce_v and_o prove_v that_o a_o usurper_n get_v in_o and_o interrupt_v the_o right_a line_n of_o succession_n the_o like_a may_v have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n when_o her_o pope_n and_o prelate_n become_v usurper_n and_o change_v the_o primitive_a doctrine_n of_o it_o mark_v a_o supposition_n for_o a_o proof_n and_o withal_o observe_v how_o you_o cast_v the_o obligation_n of_o prove_v on_o yourself_o for_o adversary_n the_o obligation_n of_o prove_v be_v incumbent_n in_o our_o adversary_n now_o it_o be_v your_o task_n to_o produce_v these_o suppose_a record_n contrary_a to_o the_o lawful_a succession_n we_o plead_v for_o show_v they_o therefore_o and_o argue_v by_o they_o or_o if_o you_o fail_v in_o this_o as_o you_o must_v fail_v the_o tradition_n from_o our_o ancestor_n stand_v s_o still_o in_o its_o ancient_a vigour_n unshaken_a against_o mere_a unproved_a cavil_n and_o calumny_n 5._o you_o may_v three_o reply_n that_o instance_n of_o monarch_n lawful_a succession_n in_o their_o respective_a kingdom_n when_o warrant_v by_o undoubted_a tradition_n seem_v good_a and_o convince_a because_o no_o man_n question_v the_o right_a no_o man_n within_o the_o kingdom_n doubt_v of_o the_o acknowledge_v succession_n but_o all_o be_v contrary_a in_o our_o present_a controversy_n for_o innumerable_a call_v christian_n do_v not_o only_o doubt_v but_o express_o deny_v that_o right_o and_o lawfulness_n of_o succession_n which_o we_o attribute_v ro_o our_o church_n to_o our_o pope_n and_o catholic_n pastor_n therefore_o because_o the_o party_n fail_n the_o instance_n be_v forceles_a first_o a_o word_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la let_v it_o plea_n our_o adversary_n to_o declare_v plain_o the_o
succession_n of_o their_o church_n of_o their_o bishop_n of_o their_o pastor_n by_o virtue_n of_o any_o immemorial_n tradition_n let_v argument_n sectary_n must_v solve_v their_o own_o argument_n they_o also_o vouchsafe_v to_o give_v in_o that_o title_n whereby_o they_o lie_v claim_v to_o a_o possession_n of_o truth_n what_o ever_o be_v allegeable_a for_o the_o one_o or_o other_o whether_o it_o be_v tradition_n scripture_n or_o father_n will_v suffer_v more_o contradiction_n from_o innumerable_a call_v christian_n than_o the_o least_o article_n if_o any_o be_v little_a of_o our_o catholic_n faith_n therefore_o they_o must_v solve_n their_o own_o argument_n the_o reason_n be_v if_o they_o plead_v traditjoin_v for_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o a_o protestant_a church_n ever_o since_o christ_n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n yea_o even_a protestant_n themselves_o oppose_v the_o paradox_n if_o their_o plea_n for_o pure_a protestancy_n be_v scripture_n they_o will_v meet_v with_o as_o many_o adversary_n have_v not_o one_o syllable_n for_o it_o in_o god_n word_n if_o final_o they_o make_v a_o belief_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n to_o be_v their_o essential_a faith_n none_o like_v the_o doctrine_n both_o friend_n and_o enemy_n catholic_n and_o heretic_n stand_v against_o they_o therefore_o i_o say_v once_o more_o they_o must_v solve_v their_o own_o objection_n solve_v the_o argument_n be_v solve_v 6._o now_o you_o shall_v have_v my_o answer_n and_o i_o say_v a_o argument_n that_o draw_v all_o the_o force_v it_o have_v from_o the_o opposition_n of_o enemy_n and_o they_o be_v all_o know_a it_o opposition_n of_o heretic_n no_o proof_n against_o it_o heretic_n that_o oppose_v our_o catholic_n tradition_n destroy_v not_o only_o evident_a truth_n but_o also_o impugn'_v christ_n and_o christian_a religion_n atheist_n make_v objection_n against_o god_n jew_n against_o christ_n yea_o and_o the_o very_a instance_n now_o allow_v of_o suppose_v some_o wilful_a zelots_n contrary_a to_o the_o common_a receive_v tradition_n of_o so_o many_o monarch_n undoubted_a succession_n you_o christianity_n christian_n truth_n meet_v with_o adversary_n he_o that_o will_v side_n with_o such_o opponent_n shall_v at_o last_o desert_n christianity_n see_v therefore_o how_o weak_a this_o way_n of_o argue_v be_v believe_v it_o there_o be_v no_o one_o christian_a verity_n but_o have_v its_o adversary_n therefore_o the_o man_n that_o will_v side_n with_o such_o opponent_n and_o cavil_v also_o because_o a_o company_n of_o dismember_v and_o jar_a sectary_n do_v so_o must_v look_v how_o he_o strike_v lest_o he_o cut_v to_o deep_a and_o wound_v those_o he_o will_v not_o hurt_v for_o at_o last_o he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o shake_v of_o the_o very_a name_n a_o notion_n of_o a_o christian_n i_o will_v say_v in_o a_o word_n what_o be_v more_o ample_o lay_v forth_o disc_n 1._o chap._n 7._o n._n 4._o 5._o we_o have_v a_o ancient_a church_n against_o these_o scatter_a company_n of_o novellist_n a_o church_n unite_v in_o doctrine_n against_o their_o jar_n and_o endless_a dissension_n a_o glorious_a church_n manifest_v by_o such_o mark_n and_o motive_n as_o make_v the_o world_n christian_n and_o these_o plead_v against_o their_o vnevidence_v opinion_n final_o we_o have_v most_o certain_a tradition_n against_o their_o uncertain_a guess_n upon_o such_o proof_n which_o can_v be_v shake_v we_o stand_v therefore_o unless_o our_o adversary_n beside_o the_o multitude_n of_o opponent_n bring_v rational_a proof_n against_o our_o possession_n which_o rest_v at_o last_o upon_o undeniable_a principle_n we_o be_v safe_a and_o can_v be_v daunt_v alas_o the_o mere_a number_n of_o know_a enemy_n without_o evidence_n proofle_n clamour_n of_o know_a enemy_n without_o a_o rational_a trial._n proofle_n to_o warrant_v what_o be_v pretend_a seem_v much_o like_a unjust_a clamour_n in_o a_o disorder_v commonwealth_n loud_a it_o be_v true_a but_o as_o senseless_a as_o loud_a when_o reason_n ought_v to_o have_v place_n and_o plead_v the_o cause_n by_o proof_n and_o principle_n therefore_o we_o appeal_v to_o principle_n may_v they_o bear_v sway_n we_o be_v content_a if_o not_o we_o tell_v you_o above_o though_o as_o many_o heretic_n rise_v up_o against_o we_o as_o there_o be_v atheist_n opposite_a to_o god_n and_o jew_n to_o christ_n we_o regard_v they_o not_o if_o they_o come_v unarm_v and_o only_a fight_n by_o the_o vote_n of_o their_o own_o scatter_a and_o divide_v company_n but_o enough_o be_v say_v of_o this_o subject_a in_o the_o discourse_n now_o cite_v 7._o here_o i_o will_v only_o add_v one_o consideration_n more_o and_o it_o be_v to_o assure_v our_o adversary_n though_o they_o run_v to_o pass_v age_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o and_o gather_v all_o the_o vote_n of_o enemy_n either_o against_o the_o possession_n or_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o our_o church_n they_o only_o give_v we_o a_o number_n of_o jar_a suffrage_n which_o bind_v up_o together_o can_v amount_v to_o a_o weak_a probability_n schism_n a_o weak_a probability_n though_o grant_v can_v clear_v sectary_n from_o schism_n however_o let_v truth_n suffer_v suppose_v they_o weak_o probable_a be_v this_o enough_o think_v you_o to_o warrant_v sectary_n foul_a schism_n be_v here_o ground_n enough_o to_o justify_v a_o evident_a divorce_n make_v from_o a_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o their_o ancestor_n live_v peaceable_o time_n out_o of_o mind_n age_n after_o age_n without_o trouble_n and_o disturbance_n no._n all_o be_v improbable_a for_o what_o ever_o be_v less_o than_o evidence_n ground_v on_o sure_a principle_n will_v show_v itself_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o proofle_n cavil_v against_o so_o long_a prescription_n and_o immemorial_n possession_n of_o our_o ancient_n faith_n 8._o some_o may_v yet_o reply_v all_o that_o be_v say_v hitherto_o objection_n a_o objection_n show_v only_o a_o personal_a succession_n of_o pope_n prelate_n pastor_n and_o people_n in_o forego_v age_n but_o be_v far_o from_o prove_v the_o main_a point_n in_o controversy_n they_o mean_v a_o full_a and_o quiet_a possession_n of_o truth_n which_o we_o make_v so_o hereditary_a to_o these_o pope_n and_o bishop_n descend_v from_o st._n peter_n that_o it_o be_v never_o lose_v this_o they_o say_v be_v to_o be_v prove_v i_o answer_v we_o be_v yet_o oblige_v to_o prove_v nothing_o for_o the_o very_a testimony_n the_o vnanimous_a it_o when_o the_o church_n give_v in_o her_o evidence_n sectary_n be_v to_o disprove_v it_o consent_n the_o constant_a tradition_n of_o our_o unite_a and_o learned_a church_n without_o more_o be_v most_o pregnant_a argument_n as_o well_o for_o the_o possession_n of_o apostolical_a truth_n lay_v claim_v to_o as_o for_o the_o personal_a succession_n of_o our_o catholic_n pastor_n therefore_o unless_o sectary_n can_v weaken_v this_o plea_n by_o a_o contrary_a evidence_n more_o strong_a than_o our_o church_n tradition_n be_v and_o then_o the_o prove_v be_v incumbent_n on_o they_o we_o stand_v firm_a upon_o our_o olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la which_o can_v be_v shake_v i_o say_v by_o a_o contrary_a evidence_n strong_a than_o our_o church_n testimony_n and_o tradition_n speak_v now_o it_o be_v your_o time_n of_o prove_v what_o have_v you_o to_o allege_v against_o this_o sole_a improbable_a want_v of_o principle_n make_v sectary_n cavil_n improbable_a consent_n and_o tradition_n be_v it_o scripture_n produce_v it_o and_o we_o be_v silence_v if_o not_o vouchsafe_v to_o hold_v your_o peace_n hereafter_o have_v you_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n or_o ancient_a council_n to_o make_v your_o cause_n good_a against_o our_o plead_v tradition_n and_o the_o ancient_a possession_n of_o truth_n with_o it_o no._n examen_fw-la these_o learned_a volume_n you_o will_v not_o find_v one_o clear_a sentence_n favour_v your_o unjust_a process_n against_o a_o church_n that_o make_v your_o progenitor_n christian_n what_o then_o remain_v arian_n sectary_n own_o vote_n as_o weightles_a as_o the_o arian_n to_o scare_v we_o with_o but_o your_o ownself_n simple_a vote_n and_o if_o these_o cast_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o balance_n against_o our_o ancient_a possession_n can_v out_o weigh_v it_o and_o so_o deprive_v we_o of_o our_o right_n the_o arian_n long_o since_o have_v destroy_v we_o all_o for_o their_o vote_n be_v as_o weighty_a as_o unite_v as_o you_o yes_o and_o more_o numerous_a 9_o well_o though_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o prove_v prove_v a_o few_o proof_n brief_o hint_v at_o though_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o prove_v what_o both_o tradition_n and_o our_o ancient_a possession_n convince_v i_o will_v yet_o hint_n most_o brief_o at_o a_o few_o proof_n in_o behalf_n of_o our_o just_a possession_n first_o it_o be_v a_o undeniable_a verity_n that_o christ_n found_v a_o catholic_n church_n and_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a sectary_n confess_v it_o that_o he_o invest_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o a_o ancient_a possession_n of_o truth_n 2._o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a verity_n
that_o christ_n found_v christ_n abandon_v not_o the_o church_n he_o found_v never_o abandon_v the_o church_n he_o found_v for_o he_o tell_v we_o hell_n gate_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o he_o give_v assurance_n of_o his_o be_v with_o we_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n etc._n etc._n if_o therefore_o christ_n stand_v to_o his_o word_n and_o once_o establish_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o truth_n it_o be_v orthodox_n still_o and_o preserve_v in_o truth_n by_o his_o special_a assistance_n 3._o it_o be_v a_o evident_a verity_n that_o god_n who_o providence_n never_o fail_v his_o church_n can_v not_o permit_v this_o ample_a and_o ancient_a moral_a body_n of_o catholic_n to_o cheat_v the_o world_n by_o its_o plead_v a_o possession_n of_o truth_n if_o it_o have_v none_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o when_o which_o be_v deep_o to_o be_v ponder_v there_o be_v not_o any_o ponder_v a_o truth_n well_o to_o be_v ponder_v other_o sound_a church_n on_o earth_n for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n to_o teach_v christian_n the_o orthodox_n faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 4._o we_o have_v our_o quiet_a possession_n acknowledge_v by_o innumerable_a vote_n of_o most_o learned_a father_n 5._o and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a proof_n for_o nothing_o scripture_n except_v can_v parallel_v it_o the_o testimony_n and_o warrant_n of_o this_o ample_a catholic_n society_n carry_v with_o it_o our_o evidence_n no_o less_o for_o a_o actual_a prescription_n then_o for_o the_o right_n and_o title_n of_o our_o long_a plead_v and_o enjoy_a possession_n and_o who_o can_v suppose_v that_o all_o those_o innumerable_a professor_n of_o this_o learned_a church_n by_o who_o this_o evidence_n be_v convey_v age_n after_o age_n be_v all_o besot_v or_o delude_v with_o error_n 6._o and_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a demonstration_n no_o ancient_n or_o modern_a church_n repute_v orthodox_n by_o the_o christian_a world_n ever_o so_o much_o as_o quarrel_v with_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n or_o once_o possession_n no_o orthodox_n church_n ever_o censure_v we_o for_o the_o want_n of_o a_o just_a possession_n question_v the_o right_n of_o her_o possess_v ancient_a truth_n deliver_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n none_o censure_v it_o none_o condemn_v it_o upon_o any_o suppose_a want_n of_o a_o most_o just_a possession_n but_o only_o know_v and_o profess_a heretic_n and_o to_o these_o our_o english_a schismatic_n adhere_v proof_n a_o inference_n ground_v on_o these_o proof_n with_o these_o and_o no_o other_o they_o side_z if_o therefore_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v once_o lay_v firm_a by_o christ_n if_o he_o stand_v to_o his_o promise_n express_v in_o scripture_n if_o his_o assistance_n fail_v not_o the_o church_n once_o establish_v by_o he_o if_o god_n can_v not_o 〈◊〉_d this_o great_a moral_a body_n to_o deceive_v christian_n by_o plead_v a_o possession_n of_o truth_n when_o it_o have_v none_o and_o when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o orthodox_n church_n to_o deliver_v christian_a verity_n to_o the_o world_n if_o final_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o church_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o most_o ancient_a father_n may_v speak_v in_o our_o cause_n and_o this_o convince_v proof_n also_o have_v place_n none_o ever_o gainsay_v our_o ancient_a possession_n but_o know_v and_o condemn_v heretic_n we_o may_v well_o hope_v to_o silence_v our_o adversary_n at_o present_a or_o if_o these_o persuasive_a reason_n with_o many_o other_o insist_v on_o hereafter_o become_v insignificant_a to_o their_o obdurate_a heart_n when_o they_o can_v not_o speak_v a_o reasonable_a word_n against_o our_o evidence_n what_o shall_v we_o do_v but_o commiserate_v their_o condition_n you_o see_v how_o roundly_o i_o deal_v with_o proof_n sectary_n can_v answer_v our_o proof_n they_o and_o say_v they_o can_v speak_v a_o probable_a word_n against_o these_o positive_a proof_n though_o whilst_o we_o plead_v possession_n it_o be_v their_o task_n to_o prove_v who_o be_v the_o accuser_n and_o charge_v heresy_n on_o we_o 10._o observe_v therefore_o if_o they_o say_v our_o saviour_n prove_v what_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v once_o settle_v not_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o truth_n they_o be_v to_o prove_v it_o if_o they_o say_v he_o violate_v his_o promise_n and_o preserve_v not_o the_o church_n he_o found_v in_o perpetual_a truth_n they_o be_v to_o prove_v it_o if_o they_o say_v we_o misunderstand_v the_o scripture_n now_o cite_v they_o be_v to_o prove_v if_o they_o say_v our_o catholic_n church_n cheat_v the_o world_n for_o ten_o whole_a age_n together_o by_o pretend_v possession_n of_o apostolical_a verity_n when_o it_o have_v none_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v if_o they_o say_v our_o church_n be_v once_o sound_a in_o faith_n but_o fail_v afterward_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v and_o withal_o distinct_o to_o point_v at_o some_o other_o orthodox_n christian_n society_n that_o succeed_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o false_o suppose_v fall_v into_o error_n and_o this_o will_v give_v sectary_n work_v enough_o again_o if_o they_o slight_v the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o our_o church_n evidence_v by_o most_o glorious_a miracle_n and_o other_o illustrious_a mark_n of_o truth_n they_o be_v to_o give_v in_o lieu_n of_o that_o a_o more_o valid_a testimony_n a_o strong_a authority_n for_o their_o pretence_n which_o be_v impossible_a if_o final_o they_o talk_v of_o any_o orthodox_n church_n that_o plain_o censure_v or_o condemn_v the_o roman_a of_o error_n and_o heresy_n and_o herein_o we_o urge_v they_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o cause_n the_o proof_n lie_v still_o on_o their_o side_n or_o if_o they_o prove_v not_o believe_v it_o our_o olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la be_v impregnable_a the_o presciption_n and_o clear_a evidence_n of_o a_o long_a quiet_a possession_n be_v our_o wall_n of_o defence_n not_o to_o be_v batter_v or_o beat_v down_o by_o calumny_n 11._o thus_o much_o premise_v you_o shall_v see_v in_o brief_a how_o forceles_a the_o objection_n of_o our_o adversary_n show_v forceles_a all_o come_v to_o nothing_o wherewith_o this_o late_a writer_n too_o weak_o oppugn'_v our_o ancient_a possession_n who_o after_o his_o tell_v we_o part_n 3._o c._n 5._o page_n 627._o that_o the_o proof_n lie_v upon_o we_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n and_o let_v it_o be_v his_o first_o objection_n 12._o they_o who_o challenge_v full_a and_o quiet_a possession_n by_o virtue_n of_o immemorial_n tradition_n and_o succession_n from_o their_o ancestor_n aught_o to_o produce_v the_o conveyance_n of_o that_o tradition_n from_o he_o who_o alone_o can_v invest_v they_o in_o that_o possession_n mark_v these_o mysterious_a word_n ought_v to_o produce_v the_o conveyance_n of_o that_o tradition_n from_o he_o etc._n etc._n what_o signify_v this_o have_v he_o say_v they_o ought_v to_o produce_v a_o conveyance_n warrant_v the_o possession_n of_o truth_n to_o be_v in_o their_o church_n we_o will_v have_v send_v he_o back_o to_o the_o proof_n already_o allege_v and_o here_o only_o insist_v on_o our_o tradition_n but_o to_o demand_v for_o a_o conveyance_n of_o our_o very_a tradition_n the_o efficacy_n and_o force_n of_o tradition_n tradition_n which_o be_v either_o by_o itself_o it_o be_v own_o most_o manifest_a and_o clear_a conveyance_n or_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o another_o clear_a tradition_n and_o so_o in_o infinitum_fw-la tend_v methinks_v a_o little_a towards_o nonsense_n true_o i_o know_v not_o what_o the_o man_n will_v be_v at_o will_v he_o have_v we_o think_v you_o to_o produce_v a_o letter_n write_v by_o christ_n jesus_n for_o conveyance_n here_o must_v signify_v charta_n or_o tradition_n no_o charter_n or_o write_v strong_a than_o tradition_n instrumentum_fw-la whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o our_o church_n be_v sound_a and_o orthodox_n this_o will_v signify_v just_a nothing_o because_o sectary_n may_v more_o just_o cavil_v at_o such_o a_o writing_n and_o say_v it_o be_v forge_v then_o they_o can_v now_o except_o against_o the_o great_a testimony_n imaginable_a of_o a_o whole_a learned_a church_n that_o must_v give_v credit_n to_o this_o write_n if_o it_o have_v any_o therefore_o he_o who_o can_v doubt_v of_o this_o attestation_n of_o a_o reason_n the_o reason_n far_o extend_v church_n may_v more_o rational_o doubt_v of_o the_o write_n itself_o though_o it_o be_v now_o actual_o lay_v before_o our_o eye_n to_o read_v see_v more_o of_o this_o subject_a above_o chap._n 7._o n._n 7._o 8._o perhaps_o our_o adversary_n will_v say_v we_o be_v to_o produce_v scripture_n if_o not_o for_o the_o conveyance_n of_o our_o tradition_n at_o least_o for_o the_o possession_n of_o truth_n we_o pretend_v to_o i_o answer_v this_o be_v now_o don_n give_v our_o proof_n be_v already_o give_v n._n 9_o 10._o where_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o christ_n found_v the_o roman_n catholic_n
church_n in_o truth_n and_o promise_v to_o be_v with_o the_o church_n he_o found_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n withal_o that_o no_o orthodox_n church_n ever_o oppose_v this_o just_a possession_n etc._n etc._n it_o therefore_o lie_v on_o our_o adversary_n to_o disprove_v these_o scripture_n and_o to_o weaken_v those_o reason_n by_o sound_a principle_n or_o at_o least_o to_o offer_v at_o a_o answer_n which_o i_o think_v will_v be_v difficil_n to_o do_v by_o any_o proof_n that_o be_v weak_o probable_a 13._o in_o the_o interim_n you_o see_v the_o strain_n of_o sectary_n write_v controversy_n the_o strain_n of_o sectary_n write_v controversy_n controversy_n it_o be_v ever_o to_o be_v cavil_v at_o our_o tradition_n at_o our_o possession_n and_o prescription_n and_o thus_o they_o run_v on_o as_o if_o their_o cause_n be_v not_o at_o all_o concern_v though_o it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o for_o do_v not_o protestant_n truth_n protestant_n pretend_v to_o a_o possession_n of_o truth_n as_o well_o pretend_v to_o a_o possession_n of_o truth_n as_o those_o they_o call_v blind_a papist_n yes_o and_o will_v they_o not_o say_v that_o the_o truth_n they_o lay_v claim_v to_o be_v either_o a_o belief_n common_a to_o all_o heretic_n or_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o the_o english_a church_n yes_o for_o they_o will_v have_v no_o mixture_n of_o popery_n with_o it_o well_o now_o we_o urge_v they_o to_o produce_v a_o conveyance_n from_o he_o alone_o it_o but_o can_v produce_v no_o conveyance_n from_o he_o that_o can_v invest_v they_o in_o it_o who_o can_v invest_v they_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o either_o the_o one_o or_o other_o doctrine_n here_o you_o will_v have_v they_o silent_a for_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o syllable_n of_o scripture_n nor_o one_o clear_a sentence_n of_o a_o father_n lest_o of_o all_o any_o ancient_a tradition_n ever_o favour_v such_o extravagancy_n however_o you_o must_v have_v patience_n and_o hear_v sectary_n loud_a in_o their_o complaint_n against_o our_o tradition_n and_o ancient_a possession_n and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n for_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o cavil_v at_o truth_n then_o to_o speak_v sense_n for_o falsehood_n 14._o a_o second_o objection_n it_o be_v plain_a in_o this_o case_n viz._n of_o prescription_n or_o possession_n the_o full_a right_n depend_v not_o upon_o mere_a occupancy_n but_o a_o title_n must_v be_v plead_v to_o show_v that_o the_o possession_n be_v bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la so_o that_o the_o question_n come_v from_o the_o possession_n to_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o title_n answ_n by_o this_o word_n right_o or_o title_n i_o understand_v a_o just_a and_o meet_a reason_n allegeable_a for_o title_n what_o be_v mean_v in_o this_o place_n by_o right_n and_o title_n that_o whereunto_o a_o man_n lay_v claim_v and_o whereof_o he_o have_v possession_n for_o long_a a_o time_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v ask_v a_o ancient_a gentleman_n by_o what_o right_o he_o hold_v his_o land_n and_o how_o long_o he_o have_v have_v they_o he_o answer_v they_o be_v settle_v on_o he_o by_o his_o ancestor_n and_o here_o be_v his_o title_n both_o they_o and_o he_o have_v quiet_o possess_v they_o without_o cavil_n proofle_n cavil_n against_o know_a right_a proofle_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n etc._n etc._n suppose_v now_o a_o wrangle_a lawer_fw-we shall_v tell_v the_o gentleman_n sir_n whatever_o become_v of_o your_o long_a possession_n i_o question_v your_o right_n or_o title_n and_o therefore_o say_v your_o possession_n be_v not_o bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la but_o a_o mere_a occupancy_n will_v not_o this_o busy_a fellow_n think_v you_o if_o he_o say_v no_o more_o be_v put_v to_o his_o proof_n when_o the_o gentleman_n show_v his_o right_n and_o just_o plead_v his_o long_a possession_n yes_o most_o assure_o here_o be_v our_o very_a case_n it_o be_v more_o title_n the_o right_a and_o church_n title_n certain_a that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v once_o most_o lawful_o invest_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o truth_n by_o the_o gracious_a goodness_n of_o he_o that_o found_v it_o than_o ever_o any_o be_v lawful_o settle_v in_o right_o of_o his_o land_n for_o so_o much_o ●he_v whole_a world_n and_o sectary_n also_o acknowledge_v as_o undoubted_a and_o here_o be_v the_o church_n first_o right_a or_o title_n it_o be_v again_o most_o evident_a that_o innumerable_a of_o unspotted_a fame_n of_o great_a learning_n sanctity_n and_o virtue_n have_v not_o only_o avouch_v this_o blessing_n to_o be_v once_o confer_v on_o the_o church_n but_o moreover_o have_v profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v it_o the_o heir_n and_o professor_n of_o it_o heir_n of_o this_o ancient_a right_n and_o so_o far_o the_o professor_n of_o those_o primitive_a verity_n that_o they_o convey_v they_o age_n after_o age_n to_o posterity_n i_o say_v no_o more_o yet_o but_o only_o what_o they_o profess_v now_o start_v up_o a_o minister_n and_o tell_v we_o the_o church_n just_a as_o the_o lawer_fw-we prove_v it_o be_v tacit_o suppose_v by_o our_o adversary_n a_o occupancy_n but_o not_o prove_v do_v the_o gentleman_n she_o have_v no_o right_a nor_o title_n but_o a_o mere_a occupancy_n that_o be_v no_o possession_n the_o church_n prove_v this_o right_o first_o to_o have_v be_v consert_v by_o one_o that_o can_v give_v it_o then_o she_o show_v it_o to_o have_v remain_v with_o she_o in_o every_o age_n by_o sure_a witness_n of_o virtue_n and_o integrity_n must_v not_o therefore_o this_o minister_n think_v you_o that_o contrast'_v with_o such_o witness_n and_o encounter_v such_o a_o army_n of_o old_a try_v soldier_n be_v put_v to_o his_o proof_n and_o fight_v lusty_o by_o evidence_n and_o if_o possible_a with_o strong_a proof_n be_v all_o manful_o don_n pray_v you_o judge_v when_o he_o whole_o suppose_v what_o shall_v be_v prove_v and_o be_v please_v to_o miscall_v our_o ancient_n undoubted_a right_n our_o just_a title_n and_o unquestioned_a possession_n by_o a_o new_a coin_v word_n of_o occupancy_n let_v he_o keep_v the_o occupancy_n to_o himself_o and_o apply_v it_o to_o his_o protestant_a religion_n that_o have_v neither_o right_a to_o plead_v by_o nor_o title_n nor_o any_o ancient_a possession_n 15._o a_o three_o objection_n if_o we_o plead_v possession_n by_o immemorial_n tradition_n from_o ancestor_n many_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v contest_v and_o this_o be_v one_o that_o no_o antecedent_n law_n have_v determine_v contrary_a to_o what_o we_o challenge_v by_o virtue_n of_o possession_n very_a good_n when_o you_o sir_n show_v we_o this_o antecedent_n law_n contrary_a to_o what_o possession_n our_o adversary_n be_v to_o show_v a_o antecedent_n law_n contrary_a to_o our_o possession_n we_o challenge_v by_o virtue_n of_o our_o possession_n we_o will_v yield_v but_o you_o be_v to_o make_v this_o evident_a and_o consequent_o the_o proof_n lie_v on_o you_o which_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a task_n for_o we_o know_v there_o be_v no_o such_o law_n against_o we_o 16._o a_o four_o objection_n christ_n law_n have_v determine_v matter_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o one_o way_n or_o other_o for_o example_n whether_o the_o present_a church_n be_v infallible_a or_o no._n if_o the_o law_n have_v determine_v against_o we_o possession_n and_o prescription_n signify_v nothing_o if_o for_o we_o the_o question_n must_v be_v whole_o remove_v from_o the_o plea_n of_o possession_n and_o be_v try_v on_o this_o issue_n whether_o christ_n by_o his_o law_n have_v determine_v on_o determination_n the_o legislator_n determination_n your_o side_n or_o we_o i_o answer_v the_o legislator_n have_v most_o plain_o determine_v for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o that_o church_n which_o he_o found_v and_o though_o you_o slight_v those_o sacred_a text_n super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la e●o_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la or_o what_o else_o you_o plea_n they_o be_v yet_o vigorous_a proof_n against_o your_o mere_a cavil_n therefore_o because_o you_o offer_v to_o be_v try_v upon_o this_o issue_n whether_o christ_n offer_v we_o like_v our_o adversary_n offer_v have_v determine_v for_o you_o or_o we_o we_o accept_v of_o the_o challenge_n and_o be_v ready_a to_o dispute_v by_o scripture_n only_o produce_v then_o your_o text_n as_o plain_a and_o significant_a for_o the_o fallibility_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n once_o confess_o true_a as_o these_o now_o hint_v at_o and_o many_o more_o cite_v above_o be_v for_o her_o infallibility_n this_o don_n you_o may_v vapour_n as_o much_o as_o you_o plea_n and_o offer_v to_o be_v try_v by_o law_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o know_v your_o want_n you_o have_v not_o after_z all_z this_o talk_n a_o syllable_n of_o scripture_n infallibility_n sectary_n have_v no_o scripture_n against_o the_o church_n infallibility_n against_o our_o church_n infallibility_n now_o to_o the_o other_o horn_n of_o the_o dilemma_n where_o you_o say_v if_o christ_n law_n have_v determine_v on_o our_o side_n the_o question_n must_v be_v remove_v from_o
the_o plea_n of_o possession_n and_o be_v try_v by_o the_o law_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o strange_a piece_n of_o a_o argument_n possession_n the_o question_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o plea_n of_o possession_n and_o say_v it_o must_v not_o be_v remove_v unless_o you_o can_v show_v by_o your_o logic_n that_o when_o a_o man_n have_v two_o good_a proof_n for_o a_o verity_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o make_v use_n of_o both_o but_z be_v to_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o one_o only_o thus_o it_o be_v we_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n by_o significant_a scripture_n as_o a_o possessor_n bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la prove_v the_o right_n to_o his_o land_n by_o his_o ancient_a write_n and_o instance_n a_o instance_n as_o he_o add_n to_o his_o write_n a_o just_a possession_n so_o we_o plead_v also_o possession_n in_o our_o case_n why_o therefore_o shall_v we_o throw_v away_o this_o second_o proof_n take_v from_o possession_n unless_o a_o evident_a law_n come_v against_o it_o which_o we_o expect_v from_o you_o but_o fear_v it_o not_o sir_n you_o possess_v a_o benefice_n and_o can_v if_o need_v be_v show_v how_o you_o come_v by_o it_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o write_n or_o some_o thing_n equivalent_a it_o import_v not_o you_o have_v beside_o the_o possession_n of_o it_o suppose_v now_o any_o one_o will_v endeavour_v to_o disturb_v you_o or_o doubt_v of_o your_o suppose_a right_n you_o will_v plead_v both_o these_o title_n will_v you_o not_o answer_v this_o and_z your_o objection_n be_v solve_v 17._o a_o five_o objection_n page_n 628._o lie_v i_o know_v not_o how_o wrap_v up_o in_o twenty_o obscurity_n it_o be_v much_o to_o this_o sense_n we_o must_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o interpret_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n but_o by_o our_o church_n withal_o that_o the_o church_n can_v come_v into_o a_o possession_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o what_o be_v original_o give_v she_o by_o the_o legislator_n mark_v upon_o what_o duty_n we_o be_v with_o sectary_n put_v we_o on_o duty_n which_o they_o can_v comply_v with_o put._n we_o must_v prove_v and_o by_o the_o ●aw_v for_o here_o be_v the_o last_o trial_n with_o these_o man_n that_o our_o church_n interpret_n faithful_o whilst_o they_o sit_v down_o speechless_a as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o must_v not_o prove_v that_o their_o church_n interpret_n better_a moreover_o note_v also_o by_o the_o way_n how_o the_o whole_a question_n be_v interpretation_n the_o question_n be_v remove_v from_o the_o law_n to_o interpretation_n now_o remove_v from_o the_o law_n and_o come_v to_o this_o issue_n whether_o our_o interpretation_n or_o they_o be_v more_o conformable_a to_o god_n word_n most_o certain_o their_o interpretation_n be_v worth_a little_a because_o confess_o fallible_a and_o therefore_o proceed'_v not_o from_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o be_v ample_o declare_v adversary_n the_o proof_n lie_v on_o our_o adversary_n disc_n 2._o c._n 9_o n._n 7._o 8._o 9_o where_o we_o propose_v the_o difficulty_n and_o prove_v that_o one_o only_a oracle_n christ_n own_o spouse_n which_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n interpret_n scripture_n infallibily_n now_o if_o our_o adversary_n except'_v against_o our_o scripture_n and_o reason_n there_o allege_v the_o task_n of_o prove_v will_v lie_v on_o he_o for_o he_o must_v either_o prove_v that_o our_o proof_n be_v proofle_n or_o that_o he_o far_o surpass_v they_o in_o worth_n and_o a_o clear_a evidence_n and_o he_o will_v find_v a_o insuperable_a difficulty_n in_o both_o all_o i_o say_v now_o be_v though_o the_o interpretation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v fallible_a it_o be_v as_o good_a as_o you_o and_o if_o we_o respect_v its_o age_n which_o give_v some_o pre-eminence_n it_o may_v be_v account_v much_o better_a we_o have_v large_o answer_v to_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o objection_n in_o the_o whole_a first_o discourse_n and_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n can_v come_v into_o the_o possession_n of_o any_o doctrine_n but_o what_o be_v allow_v of_o by_o the_o legislator_n it_o be_v otherwise_o err._n a_o fallible_a church_n may_v bold_o err._n i_o be_o sure_a with_o your_o church_n which_o because_o fallible_a may_v alter_v when_o and_o as_o often_o as_o sectary_n pleas._n to_o end_n our_o adversary_n shall_v have_v know_v that_o the_o matter_n now_o debate_v depend_v not_o immediate_o on_o the_o church_n infallibility_n for_o here_o be_v our_o immediate_a plea_n the_o church_n be_v once_o true_a and_o ever_o since_o its_o first_o foundation_n plead_v constant_o this_o quiet_a possession_n of_o truth_n ergo_fw-la unless_o that_o first_o ground_n be_v shake_v and_o this_o plead_v possession_n be_v evident_o disprove_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v suppose_v true_a still_o and_o thus_o you_o see_v how_o the_o obligation_n of_o prove_v lie_v irremovable_o on_o our_o adversary_n 19_o there_o yet_o remain_v some_o other_o wordy_a objection_n but_o i_o wave_v they_o because_o they_o be_v solve_v and_o in_o real_a truth_n be_v mere_a supposition_n and_o no_o proof_n sometime_o they_o will_v have_v tradition_n to_o be_v prove_v which_o be_v its_o own_o manifest_a proof_n sometime_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o bare_a possession_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v a_o senseless_a plea_n they_o suppose_v we_o have_v no_o more_o sometime_o that_o we_o be_v plain_o the_o imposer_n and_o they_o not_o aggressor_n and_o both_o be_v suppose_v i_o pass_v these_o and_o now_o hasten_v to_o one_o objection_n more_o solve_v in_o a_o three_o proposition_n chap._n xii_o an_o other_o objection_n and_o whether_o protestant_n can_v acquit_v themselves_o of_o schism_n 1._o some_o may_v argue_v further_o and_o say_v we_o have_v objection_n a_o simple_a objection_n hitherto_o suppose_v a_o wrong_a principle_n viz._n that_o our_o error_n be_v to_o be_v show_v we_o evident_o which_o be_v not_o so_o for_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v they_o know_v by_o strong_a moral_a proof_n these_o sufficient_o convince_v we_o as_o guilt_o and_o clear_v they_o of_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n neither_o can_v we_o have_v strong_a argument_n then_o moral_a in_o this_o matter_n because_o principle_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o evident_a in_o themselves_o all_o discourse_n therefore_o build_v on_o they_o must_v fall_v short_a of_o metaphysical_a evidence_n observe_v in_o pass_v if_o our_o protestant_n as_o they_o think_v bring_v strong_a moral_a argument_n against_o our_o suppose_a error_n we_o give_v they_o as_o good_a as_o they_o bring_v and_o clear_v our_o cause_n by_o as_o strong_a good_a moral_a solution_n to_o those_o argument_n they_o say_v the_o one_o and_o we_o the_o other_o who_o must_v be_v believe_v or_o who_o must_v judge_v here_o and_o if_o again_o they_o hold_v themselves_o by_o force_n of_o such_o moral_a proof_n acquit_v of_o schism_n which_o all_o sectary_n pretend_v to_o we_o charge_v it_o again_o on_o they_o by_o far_o more_o valid_a argument_n who_o judge_n now_o who_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v neither_o of_o we_o yet_o for_o hitherto_o we_o only_o talk_v without_o principle_n yet_o the_o catholic_n have_v his_o principle_n in_o readiness_n a_o long_a ancient_a possession_n now_o insist_v on_o principle_n the_o catholic_n answer_n found_v on_o a_o certain_a principle_n which_o be_v eleven_o point_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o what_o good_a law_n do_v our_o protestant_n take_v this_o right_n from_o he_o or_o turn_v he_o out_o of_o possession_n by_o what_o strong_a moral_a proof_n ground_v on_o a_o undubitable_a moral_a principle_n can_v they_o convince_v we_o of_o error_n and_o clear_v themselves_o of_o schism_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o and_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n they_o have_v neither_o principle_n we_o will_v glad_o hear_v of_o protestant_n proof_n against_o we_o reduce_v to_o sound_a principle_n proof_n nor_o principle_n to_o rely_v on_o but_o their_o own_o proofle_n word_n if_o i_o wrong_v they_o they_o can_v right_o themselselves_fw-mi and_o convince_v i_o by_o good_a argument_n in_o form_n to_o what_o be_v add_v of_o the_o vnevidence_n of_o faith_n i_o answer_v though_o the_o principle_n thereof_o for_o example_n the_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o definition_n of_o council_n want_v metaphysical_a evidence_n in_o themselves_o because_o only_o reveal_v conclusion_n principle_n of_o faith_n once_o admit_v of_o may_v ground_v a_o certain_a conclusion_n truth_n yet_o they_o be_v certain_a and_o once_o admit_v of_o as_o certain_a can_v ground_n a_o discourse_n which_o if_o well_o deduce_v need_n be_v no_o more_o to_o falter_v or_o deviate_v from_o good_a form_n then_o if_o we_o argue_v out_o of_o euclid_n principle_n thus_o much_o per_fw-la transennam_fw-la now_o to_o answer_v the_o argument_n home_o here_o be_v 2._o my_o three_o proposition_n protestant_n can_v so_o much_o as_o probably_n acquit_v themselves_o of_o schism_n nor_o probably_n impeach_v
year_n together_o that_o they_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o these_o now_o imagine_v roman_n error_n by_o any_o public_a censure_n or_o condemnation_n but_o contrariwise_o permit_v rome_n to_o revel_v to_o countenance_v error_n yea_o and_o to_o be_v quite_o carry_v away_o with_o the_o slight_a doctrine_n as_o they_o suppose_v of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n only_o forsooth_o one_o martin_n luther_n and_o our_o protestant_n have_v such_o quick_a eye_n as_o to_o see_v they_o and_o upon_o the_o sight_n to_o hold_v themselves_o oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v a_o eternal_a divorce_n from_o this_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v baptise_a observe_v here_o not_o only_a paradox_n upon_o paradox_n but_o also_o a_o whole_a heap_n of_o impossibility_n pack_v together_o our_o new_a man_n see_v these_o too_o plain_a and_o visible_a error_n but_o this_o large_a vigilant_a church_n see_v they_o church_n protestant_n make_v themselves_o more_o wise_a vigilant_a and_o zealous_a then_o then_o their_o large_a catholic_n church_n not_o they_o be_v so_o sensible_a of_o the_o honour_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o to_o condemn_v they_o but_o this_o great_a church_n be_v so_o senseless_a as_o to_o dissemble_v all._n they_o now_o separate_a spurn_v and_o kik_n at_o this_o church_n as_o antichristian_a but_o that_o ample_a catholic_n society_n do_v never_o so_o much_o as_o put_v a_o mark_n of_o dishonour_n on_o rome_n for_o want_v of_o true_a doctrine_n if_o ever_o such_o a_o mark_n note_v censure_n private_a or_o public_a act_n issue_v out_o from_o a_o universal_a church_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v they_o speak_v and_o i_o will_v be_v silent_a hereafter_o if_o not_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a boldness_n to_o make_v themselves_o more_o wise_a zealous_n and_o vigilant_a than_o that_o universal_a church_n be_v which_o here_o to_o their_o prejudice_n they_o own_v because_o forsooth_o rome_n must_v loose_a the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a 2._o our_o protestant_n therefore_o must_v grant_v there_o be_v no_o deny_v it_o that_o either_o this_o universal_a church_n have_v lose_v her_o eye_n or_o be_v more_o than_o impious_o negligent_a over_o the_o charge_n commit_v to_o she_o which_o be_v to_o teach_v to_o instruct_v to_o reprehend_v and_o crush_v heresy_n as_o they_o appear_v or_o which_o be_v the_o real_a truth_n that_o they_o find_v fault_n with_o error_n which_o never_o be_v now_o here_o observe_v a_o other_o great_a advantage_n give_v against_o themselves_o and_o how_o they_o honour_n rome_n and_o disgrace_v their_o own_o imagine_a and_o more_o universal_a church_n church_n the_o diligence_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n compare_v with_o the_o negligence_n of_o their_o great_a imagine_a catholic_n church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v vigilant_a and_o as_o the_o world_n know_v ever_o ready_a age_n after_o age_n to_o suppress_v heresy_n as_o they_o rise_v up_o and_o declare_v against_o they_o witness_n the_o condemn_a arian_n nestorian_n monothelit_v &c._n &c._n but_o this_o imagine_v universal_a church_n be_v so_o sleepy_a and_o vnconcerned_a as_o to_o permit_v one_o particular_a church_n for_o rome_n they_o say_v be_v no_o more_o to_o own_o and_o strong_o to_o foment_n those_o very_a error_n and_o this_o without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o word_n of_o reproof_n which_o cause_v our_o conscionable_a and_o tender_a heart_a protestant_n to_o schismatize_v as_o they_o do_v and_o bid_v adieu_n to_o rome_n for_o ever_o a_o strange_a tenderness_n of_o conscience_n protestant_n the_o tender_a conscience_n of_o protestant_n indeed_o which_o to_o take_v of_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n from_o themselves_o do_v not_o only_o cast_v a_o eternal_a ignominy_n upon_o this_o vast_a imagine_a church_n but_o make_v it_o also_o sinful_a and_o damnable_a for_o dissemble_v so_o long_o with_o error_n which_o cause_v at_o last_o our_o protestant_n schism_n 3._o what_o can_v they_o reply_v to_o this_o argument_n will_v they_o say_v this_o great_a society_n of_o christian_n have_v not_o power_n to_o contra_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o a_o part_n and_o rome_n they_o say_v if_o yet_o so_o much_o be_v only_o part_n of_o that_o universal_a society_n however_o if_o power_n be_v want_v where_o be_v church_n a_o vast_a improbability_n that_o one_o luther_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v have_v more_o knowledge_n and_o zeal_n than_o this_o whole_a church_n the_o zeal_n of_o this_o church_n can_v one_o luther_n and_o his_o few_o associate_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v have_v more_o zeal_n then_o flame_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o so_o many_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n for_o ten_o age_n together_o they_o may_v reply_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v ever_o hold_v sound_n in_o fundamental_o though_o not_o every_o way_n right_o in_o faith_n therefore_o this_o great_a church_n think_v it_o better_a patient_o to_o wink_v at_o these_o lesser_a fault_n then_o to_o raise_v a_o tempest_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n not_o reply_n a_o reply_n easy_o calm_v observe_v first_o how_o these_o man_n when_o they_o have_v say_v much_o and_o prove_v nothing_o know_v every_o thing_n without_o new_a revelation_n first_o they_o know_v where_o this_o vast_a church_n be_v though_o no_o body_n ever_o yet_o hear_v of_o it_o 2._o what_o it_o think_v 3._o upon_o what_o motive_n it_o dissemble_v so_o long_o etc._n etc._n but_o let_v all_o this_o pass_n my_o answer_n be_v exit_fw-la ore_fw-la tuo_fw-la te_fw-la judico_fw-la do_v this_o church_n prudent_o wink_v at_o these_o less_o did._n protestant_n ought_v to_o have_v proceed_v as_o their_o imagine_a church_n did._n suppose_a error_n because_o not_o fundamental_a nor_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n why_o do_v not_o our_o good_a protestant_n do_v so_o also_o do_v it_o hold_v it_o safe_a to_o sit_v down_o quiet_o then_o to_o raise_v a_o tempest_n among_o christian_n why_o do_v not_o our_o protestant_n take_v to_o the_o far●e_n cours_n also_o in_o do_v so_o they_o have_v make_v themselves_o as_o well_o inheritor_n of_o their_o forefather_n peace_n and_o wisdom_n as_o they_o now_o be_v of_o their_o land_n but_o to_o disow_v the_o better_a inheritance_n to_o condemn_v their_o ancestor_n and_o a_o whole_a church_n beside_o of_o error_n to_o make_v a_o violent_a bustle_n a_o hideous_a tumult_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n upon_o little_a cause_n be_v in_o a_o undeniable_a their_o open_a injustice_n and_o plain_a rebellion_n be_v undeniable_a word_n open_a injustice_n and_o flat_a rebellion_n i_o say_v upon_o little_a cause_n for_o in_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n where_o the_o law_n be_v without_o exception_n good_a it_o be_v hard_o to_o find_v the_o practical_a government_n so_o free_a from_o all_o misdemeanour_n but_o that_o you_o will_v have_v eye_n enough_o to_o espy_v they_o and_o heart_n ready_a upon_o very_o little_o feel_v to_o clamour_n against_o they_o yet_o licencence_n once_o these_o malcontent_n to_o rebel_n when_o they_o feel_v a_o little_a smart_n and_o adieu_o say_v i_o to_o all_o loyalty_n civil_a government_n destroy_v licence_n malcontent_n to_o rebel_n upon_o little_a aggrievance_n and_o all_o government_n be_v destroy_v be_v destroy_v both_o regal_a and_o other_o admit_v therefore_o that_o there_o have_v be_v abuse_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o also_o which_o be_v falso_n it_o have_v fail_v in_o nonfundamentals_a of_o faith_n yet_o evident_a reason_n show_v the_o schism_n make_v by_o protestant_n to_o be_v unexcusable_a for_o as_o that_o man_n commit_n a_o unexcusable_a crime_n who_o for_o little_a aggrievance_n in_o a_o kingdom_n wherein_o he_o be_v bear_v open_o rebel_n against_o it_o so_o he_o commit_v a_o high_a offence_n if_o for_o petty_a fault_n he_o rebel_n be_v against_o a_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o he_o be_v baptise_a now_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a to_o the_o first_o schismatize_v protestant_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o mother_n church_n that_o give_v they_o baptism_n as_o it_o be_v clear_a to_o any_o subject_a in_o the_o world_n that_o such_o a_o kingdom_n first_o give_v he_o life_n unpardonable_a therefore_o be_v the_o crime_n of_o cause_n schism_n i●_n can_v suppose_v a_o just_a cause_n schism_n in_o every_o one_o which_o can_v never_o suppose_v a_o just_a cause_n and_o thus_o much_o not_o only_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v but_o our_o protestant_n also_o must_v confess_v for_o to_o tell_v i_o on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v all_o it_o a_o paradox_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n want_v nothing_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o leave_v it_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o to_o assert_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o leave_v it_o when_o it_o want_v nothing_o necessary_a be_v implicatory_a in_o term_n yea_o and_o give_v liberty_n to_o protestant_n to_o leave_v their_o own_o
fallible_a man_n may_v speak_v more_o bold_o and_o say_n our_o church_n be_v fallible_a and_o have_v bring_v in_o both_o this_o new_a mention_v and_o many_o other_o innovation_n therefore_o i_o deep_o charge_v their_o conscience_n church_n the_o conscience_n of_o sectary_n be_v press_v to_o prove_v what_o they_o teach_v of_o error_n in_o the_o church_n as_o they_o will_v answer_v it_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n not_o to_o trifle_n in_o a_o most_o serious_a matter_n but_o without_o ambiguity_n plain_o to_o touch_v the_o difficulty_n and_o to_o make_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o that_o own_a principle_n be_v whereon_o this_o their_o proposition_n stand_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v fallible_a and_o have_v introduce_v this_o novelty_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n i_o speak_v principle_n not_o by_o empty_a word_n but_o certain_a principle_n bold_o and_o dare_v say_v it_o be_v a_o flat_a heresy_n and_o therefore_o sectary_n have_v nothing_o like_o a_o principle_n moral_o certain_a whereby_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o contrary_a verity_n mantain_v by_o scripture_n church_n and_o father_n can_v be_v mean_o quarrel_v with_o much_o les_fw-fr solid_o reprove_v unless_o the_o too_o simple_a talk_n of_o a_o few_o novellist_n be_v able_a to_o evert_n and_o overturn_v what_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o a_o whole_a ample_a church_n defend_v upon_o revelation_n 10._o perhaps_o it_o will_v be_v say_v first_o the_o father_n that_o defend_v the_o real_a presence_n be_v fallible_a and_o might_n err._n improbable_a what_o sectary_n may_v plead_v but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o high_o improbable_a i_o answer_v our_o protestant_n who_o deny_v it_o be_v fallible_a also_o and_o may_v err_v more_o by_o what_o undoubted_a principle_n therefore_o can_v they_o convince_v that_o their_o fallible_a reject_v the_o father_n have_v weight_n enough_o to_o make_v null_a the_o testimony_n of_o so_o many_o bless_a saint_n against_o their_o doctrine_n we_o call_v here_o for_o principle_n and_o be_v not_o content_a with_o empty_a word_n they_o may_v reply_v 2._o they_o can_v explicate_v both_o scripture_n and_o father_n contrary_a to_o the_o church_n sense_n and_o so_o ride_v themselves_o of_o that_o burden_n i_o answer_v this_o riddance_n be_v none_o unless_o when_o they_o have_v explicate_v they_o prove_v by_o a_o more_o sure_a principle_n then_o the_o express_a word_n of_o these_o father_n be_v that_o their_o gloss_n hit_v right_a and_o that_o the_o father_n be_v deceive_v which_o shall_v never_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probably_n convince_v if_o they_o last_o talk_v of_o cite_v father_n for_o their_o heresy_n i_o answer_v they_o have_v not_o one_o as_o will_v be_v ample_o prove_v hereafter_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n let_v they_o know_v it_o will_v be_v the_o safe_a cours_n to_o talk_v no_o more_o of_o change_n ad_fw-la novelty_n introduce_v into_o our_o church_n without_o proof_n and_o principle_n to_o uphold_v their_o ill_a suppose_a and_o worse_a prove_v calumny_n but_o enough_o of_o this_o digression_n we_o return_v now_o to_o other_o objection_n 11._o some_o again_o tell_v we_o the_o corruption_n of_o our_o church_n come_v in_o in_o time_n of_o great_a ignorance_n when_o little_a notice_n be_v principle_n still_o empty_a talk_n without_o proof_n or_o principle_n take_v and_o few_o record_n be_v preserve_v of_o they_o here_o be_v more_o talk_n without_o principle_n for_o where_o read_v they_o of_o so_o great_a ignorance_n in_o the_o church_n that_o disenable_v all_o writer_n to_o register_n such_o vast_a change_n or_o where_o find_v they_o record_v of_o those_o lose_v and_o vnpreserve_v record_n this_o be_v only_a proofle_n talk_v if_o they_o have_v record_n let_v they_o be_v produce_v if_o they_o have_v none_o let_v they_o reject_v sectary_n guess_v reject_v hereafter_o wave_v such_o blind_a guess_n whilst_o proof_n be_v expect_v it_o will_v anger_v our_o protestant_n if_o i_o shall_v tell_v they_o without_o proof_n or_o unquestioned_a record_n that_o the_o beard_n of_o their_o religion_n be_v insensible_o grow_v gray_a since_o their_o new_a faith_n come_v in_o or_o that_o tare_n be_v cast_v into_o their_o church_n whilst_o they_o sleep_v etc._n etc._n yet_o they_o it_o seem_v be_v license_v to_o run_v on_o with_o such_o poor_a guess_n and_o no_o body_n must_v check_v them_o 12._o next_o they_o argue_v we_o can_v show_v when_o the_o also_o be_v these_o thing_n unkow_v it_o follow_v not_o that_o other_o of_o great_a monent_fw-la be_v unknown_a also_o necessity_n of_o communicate_v infant_n and_o the_o rebaptise_v of_o heretic_n or_o that_o doctrine_n of_o soul_n not_o see_v god_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n first_o enter_v the_o church_n yet_o these_o be_v error_n and_o their_o beginning_n be_v unknown_a here_o i_o answer_v brief_o the_o communicate_v infant_n be_v only_o tolerate_v for_o a_o time_n but_o never_o be_v hold_v a_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n much_o less_o be_v those_o two_o other_o difficulty_n these_o example_n touch_v not_o the_o difficulty_n point_n condemn_v by_o the_o church_n ever_o own_v as_o her_o doctrine_n such_o example_n therefore_o not_o church-doctrin_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n in_o this_o place_n 13._o last_o they_o tell_v we_o scotus_n think_v transubstantiation_n to_o be_v of_o no_o elder_a date_n than_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n and_o bishop_n fisher_n say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n be_v not_o much_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n i_o will_v willing_o see_v in_o scotus_n his_o own_o work_v the_o distin_n and_o quest_n where_o he_o assert_v what_o these_o man_n say_v some_o protestant_n cite_v he_o in_o 4._o distin_n 11._o q._n 3._o where_o he_o only_o say_v in_o different_a edition_n that_o transubstantiation_n be_v more_o explicit_o define_v in_o the_o lateran_n council_n which_o be_v far_o from_o make_v it_o no_o old_a a_o doctrine_n then_o that_o council_n definition_n be_v but_o admit_v scotus_n say_v so_o and_z bishop_n fisher_n unquote_v worse_a then_o they_o pretend_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n teach_v no_o such_o thing_n yet_o from_o this_o oracle_n of_o truth_n we_o must_v learn_v and_o not_o from_o particular_a doctor_n who_o may_v err_v what_o church_n doctrine_n be_v and_o for_o this_o reason_n i_o tell_v you_o above_o of_o much_o foul_a play_n in_o protestant_n who_o because_o they_o want_v antiquity_n take_v no_o little_a pain_n to_o run_v up_o and_o down_o our_o author_n and_o if_o by_o chance_n a_o word_n be_v find_v less_o wary_o speak_v they_o trifle_v with_o it_o and_o present_o make_v that_o popish_a doctrine_n it_o be_v a_o error_n catholic_n doctrine_n be_v not_o one_o man_n singular_a opinion_n opinion_n catholic_n doctrine_n be_v no_o man_n singular_a opinion_n but_o the_o universal_a receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o thus_o much_o our_o adversary_n must_v assert_v for_o themselves_o otherwise_o when_o one_o of_o great_a renown_n among_o they_o tell_v we_o protestant_n plain_o it_o be_v but_o labour_n in_o vain_a to_o talk_v of_o union_n with_o one_o another_o unless_o they_o join_v again_o to_o that_o moral_a body_n from_o which_o they_o once_o separate_v that_o be_v to_o those_o who_o be_v in_o union_n with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a the_o whole_a english_a church_n must_v here_o subscribe_v and_o say_v it_o be_v protestant_a doctrine_n will_v they_o do_v so_o the_o voice_n therefore_o of_o one_o be_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o all_o nor_o one_o man_n opinion_n more_o man_n opinion_n much_o less_o the_o sentiment_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n 14._o it_o be_v but_o time_n lose_v to_o follow_v these_o man_n whilst_o church_n blind_a guess_v no_o proof_n of_o novelty_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n they_o blindly_n run_v on_o guess_v at_o the_o rise_n and_o origin_n of_o our_o suppose_a error_n and_o tell_v we_o all_o our_o corruption_n come_v not_o in_o on_o a_o sudden_a they_o be_v first_o practise_v free_o and_o then_o urge_v as_o necessary_a person_n of_o great_a esteem_n first_o hold_v they_o and_o other_o soon_o follow_v their_o example_n if_o one_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n and_o trace_v it_o he_o may_v find_v the_o head_n of_o these_o corruption_n at_o last_o etc._n etc._n pitiful_a slight_a talk_n unworthy_a a_o scholar_n and_o vent_v at_o random_n against_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v even_o blemish_v that_o as_o much_o as_o any_o other_o yea_o and_o protestancy_n more_o i_o wave_v such_o stuff_n because_o nothing_o like_o a_o proof_n follow_v it_o 15._o my_o last_o proposition_n be_v though_o protestant_n shall_v convince_v foundation_n though_o error_n be_v false_o suppose_v to_o have_v enter_v the_o church_n yet_o protestant_n can_v prove_v that_o they_o have_v set_v faith_n right_o again_o on_o its_o old_a foundation_n which_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v swerve_v from_o the_o primitive_a doctrine_n yet_o they_o can_v
nor_o protestant_n of_o their_o schism_n on_o we_o be_v vnequitable_a and_o grievous_a we_o therefore_o who_o rebel_n will_v sit_v upon_o the_o bench_n and_o judge_n so_o the_o kingdom_n believe_v it_o be_v to_o decide_v in_o such_o case_n and_o not_o the_o schism_n the_o church_n be_v to_o judge_n in_o this_o cause_n of_o schism_n rebel_n and_o so_o the_o church_n be_v to_o judge_v you_o as_o it_o do_v the_o arian_n and_o not_o you_o the_o church_n your_o complaint_n of_o unequitable_a condition_n impose_v on_o you_o be_v only_o a_o unproved_a fancy_n beget_v in_o your_o nonage_n when_o you_o never_o hear_v good_a word_n of_o rome_n passion_n still_o foment_n it_n sophistry_n advance_v it_o but_o all_o will_v not_o do._n most_o true_o that_o talk_v of_o unjust_a condition_n schism_n the_o plea_n of_o unjust_a condition_n only_o a_o mask_n of_o a_o injustifiable_a schism_n be_v mere_o a_o mask_n to_o cover_v a_o unjustifiable_a schism_n a_o pretence_n to_o defend_v what_o can_v be_v defend_v pull_v the_o wizard_n of_o which_o be_v do_v by_o put_v you_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o your_o talk_n and_o the_o proposition_n appear_v in_o its_o own_o likeness_n ugly_a and_o deform_v 4._o the_o four_o proposition_n where_o there_o be_v sufficient_a evidence_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o tradition_n that_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v impose_v be_v unreasonable_a condition_n of_o christian_a communion_n the_o not_o communicate_v with_o that_o society_n which_o require_v those_o thing_n can_v incur_v the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n here_o want_v a_o minor_a which_o i_o shall_v supply_v with_o a_o contradictory_n proposition_n thus_o but_o there_o be_v no_o sufficient_a evidence_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o tradition_n that_o such_o thing_n impose_v on_o protestant_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v unreasonable_a condition_n of_o christian_a communion_n therefore_o protestant_n not_o proofle_n a_o general_n task_n of_o unreasonable_a condition_n proofle_n communicate_v with_o that_o ancient_a society_n which_o just_o require_v those_o thing_n can_v but_o make_v they_o guilty_a of_o schism_n who_o must_v now_o judge_v between_o we_o or_o final_o say_v whether_o that_o major_a or_o this_o contrary_a minor_n carry_v the_o great_a weight_n of_o truth_n with_o it_o the_o first_o be_v probable_o what_o sectary_n say_v in_o this_o proposition_n any_o heretic_n may_v assert_v and_o as_o probable_o only_o a_o suppose_a and_o a_o unproved_a assertion_n that_o both_o arian_n and_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n may_v vent_v against_o we_o the_o minor_a be_v ground_v upon_o the_o acknowledge_v ancient_a purity_n of_o our_o church_n which_o unless_o clear_a evidence_n overtrow_v it_o can_v but_o defend_v itself_o as_o strong_o against_o such_o calumny_n upon_o its_o own_o prepossess_v right_o and_o innocency_n as_o the_o best_a of_o kingdom_n do_v against_o a_o company_n of_o know_a rebel_n when_o therefore_o these_o novellist_n pretend_v to_o have_v sufficient_a evidence_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o tradition_n only_o what_o sectary_n be_v oblige_v to_o do_v by_o more_o than_o talk_v only_o for_o unreasonable_a condition_n impose_v they_o be_v oblige_v to_o descend_v to_o particular_n and_o make_v the_o charge_n good_a by_o valid_a proof_n reducible_a at_o last_o to_o own_a and_o allow_v of_o principle_n among_o christian_n if_o this_o be_v not_o don_n they_o may_v vapour_n against_o our_o church_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v against_o christ_n but_o shall_v never_o advance_v so_o far_o endless_a they_o make_v controversy_n endless_a as_o to_o a_o weak_a probability_n or_o make_v a_o end_n of_o one_o sole_a controversy_n and_o mark_v what_o do_n we_o have_v here._n they_o will_v have_v no_o judge_n on_o earth_n clear_a principle_n fail_v they_o in_o every_o controversy_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v hear_v and_o only_o in_o a_o general_n way_n of_o sufficient_a evidence_n draw_v from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o tradition_n against_o our_o unreasonable_a condition_n if_o there_o be_v such_o evidence_n show_v it_o and_o let_v we_o see_v the_o own_a principle_n whereon_o it_o last_o rely_v but_o true_o so_o much_o ill_a luck_n follow_v we_o they_o that_o talk_n their_o want_n of_o principle_n only_o cause_v proofle_n talk_n you_o never_o find_v a_o controversy_n solid_o handle_v or_o bring_v when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v their_o own_o doctrine_n positive_o to_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o proof_n or_o principle_n and_o they_o be_v as_o unfortunate_a when_o they_o oppugn_v we_o 5._o the_o five_o proposition_n by_o how_o much_o the_o society_n be_v great_a which_o be_v agree_v in_o not_o communicate_v with_o a_o church_n impose_v such_o condition_n by_o how_o much_o the_o power_n of_o those_o who_o rule_v those_o society_n so_o agree_v be_v large_a by_o so_o much_o reform_v supposition_n without_o proof_n what_o be_v these_o abuse_n who_o be_v to_o reform_v the_o more_o justifiable_a be_v the_o reformation_n of_o any_o church_n from_o those_o abuse_n and_o the_o settle_v the_o bond_n of_o christian_a communion_n without_o they_o here_o be_v the_o thesis_n and_o a_o thing_n like_o a_o hypothesis_n come_v limp_a after_o as_o well_o as_o it_o can_v thus._n on_o these_o ground_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n impose_v unlawful_a condition_n of_o communion_n it_o be_v necessary_a not_o to_o communicate_v with_o she_o and_o on_o the_o church_n of_o england_n power_n to_o reform_v itself_o by_o assistance_n of_o the_o supreme_a power_n it_o be_v lawful_a and_o justifiable_a not_o only_o to_o redress_v those_o abuse_n but_o to_o settle_v the_o church_n upon_o its_o proper_a and_o true_a foundation_n so_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n impose_v unlawful_a condition_n of_o communion_n be_v the_o reason_n why_o we_o on_o they_o pretend_v to_o settle_v and_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o build_v on_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o she_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n power_n to_o govern_v and_o take_v care_n of_o herself_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o our_o join_v together_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o reformation_n do_v you_o ever_o hear_v man_n vapour_n much_o one_o what_o be_v these_o principle_n name_n one_o talk_v much_o suppose_v much_o and_o prove_v just_a nothing_o here_o you_o have_v they_o observe_v it_o we_o hear_v a_o noise_n of_o unlawful_a impose_v condition_n of_o great_a abuse_n in_o our_o church_n of_o the_o english_a church_n power_n to_o redress_v these_o abuse_n yet_o no_o man_n know_v nor_o shall_v ever_o know_v by_o any_o solid_a proof_n what_o these_o condition_n and_o abuse_n be_v much_o less_o that_o a_o few_o protestant_n have_v power_n to_o redress_v they_o be_v there_o abuse_n in_o the_o church_n protestant_n have_v not_o principle_n to_o redress_v they_o they_o be_v there_o any_o such_o in_o the_o church_n whereof_o more_o hereafter_o 6._o at_o present_a to_o answer_v the_o difficulty_n i_o will_v say_v two_o thing_n the_o first_o if_o the_o power_n number_n or_o largeness_n of_o these_o pretend_a reformer_n justify_v their_o reformation_n it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a that_o a_o far_o great_a power_n number_n and_o largeness_n of_o those_o who_o oppose_v it_o make_v it_o more_o oppose_v these_o sectary_n reformation_n then_o approve_v it_o it_o vnjustifiable_a now_o not_o only_a catholic_n but_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n altogether_o more_o powerful_a large_a and_o learnede_a than_o a_o few_o protestant_n stiff_o oppose_v this_o late_a reformation_n as_o a_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a novelty_n therefore_o that_o little_a justification_n which_o their_o own_o power_n and_o largeness_n gain_n be_v to_o protestancy_n be_v not_o only_a much_o weaken_v but_o make_v null_a by_o a_o great_a power_n that_o withstand_v it_o i_o say_v 2._o this_o proposition_n be_v utter_o fall_v and_o because_o falso_n can_v be_v prove_v viz._n that_o by_o how_o much_o society_n be_v great_a justifiable_a it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o by_o how_o much_o sectary_n be_v more_o numerous_a and_o great_a by_o so_o much_o more_o their_o schism_n be_v justifiable_a and_o their_o power_n large_a in_o agree_v not_o to_o communicate_v with_o a_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o they_o be_v baptise_a bianca_n so_o much_o more_o justifiable_a be_v their_o pretended_a reformation_n for_o the_o society_n of_o arian_n which_o agree_v in_o not_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v more_o numerous_a greater_n and_o powerful_a then_o ever_o ptotestants_n be_v in_o england_n they_o have_v their_o emperor_n their_o bishop_n their_o council_n their_o church_n and_o a_o world_n of_o follower_n say_v therefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o do_v their_o arian_n this_o truth_n be_v clear_a in_o the_o arian_n number_n power_n or_o greatness_n justify_v either_o their_o heresy_n or_o schism_n or_o do_v the_o great_a power_n and_o number_n of_o agree_v rebel_n in_o a_o kingdom_n against_o their_o lawful_a sovereign_n justify_v that_o treason_n you_o
unproved_a fancy_n 12._o yet_o more_o and_o this_o be_v to_o show_v you_o the_o strange_a prove_v grant_v what_o sectary_n will_v have_v nothing_o be_v prove_v weakness_n of_o our_o adversary_n whole_a discourse_n let_v we_o suppose_v this_o falsity_n of_o a_o true_a catholic_n church_n in_o luther_n day_n much_o wide_o than_o the_o roman_a withal_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v only_o a_o corrupt_a part_n of_o that_o more_o ample_a church_n believe_v it_o these_o man_n be_v yet_o far_o enough_o from_o prove_v their_o intent_n for_o admit_v upon_o the_o supposition_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n draw_v the_o bound_n of_o catholic_n communion_n within_o herself_o and_o confin_n all_o truth_n within_o her_o own_o community_n this_o be_v only_o her_o own_o particular_a opinion_n which_o draw_v no_o more_o confine_n no_o more_o than_o protestant_n do_v now_o for_o do_v do_v protestant_n pretend_v as_o much_o to_o have_v christ_n verity_n teach_v by_o they_o as_o catholic_n do_v not_o they_o prosess_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v more_o pure_o and_o less_o erroneous_o teach_v in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n then_o in_o any_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o dissent'_v from_o they_o yes_o here_o then_o be_v as_o much_o draw_v of_o truth_n to_o themselves_o and_o this_o draw_v consequent_o imply_v a_o great_a division_n from_o that_o fancy_v church_n and_o consequent_o they_o divide_v themselves_o from_o their_o catholic_n church_n catholic_n church_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a never_o teach_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v preach_v most_o pure_o and_o without_o error_n among_o a_o few_o english_a protestant_n mere_a opinion_n therefore_o of_o particular_a church_n as_o long_o as_o the_o general_n doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n stand_v unshaken_a can_v in_o these_o man_n principle_n vnchurch_n any_o christian_a society_n or_o if_o they_o can_v both_z they_o i_o mean_v our_o protestant_n and_o all_o other_o sectary_n be_v vnchurch_v because_o all_o of_o they_o believe_v more_o than_o the_o general_n essential_o of_o faith_n exact_v of_o any_o christian_a 13._o it_o may_v be_v answer_v though_o they_o believe_v more_o yea_o and_o particular_o hold_v that_o christ_n doctrine_n be_v more_o pure_o teach_v and_o believe_v in_o england_n then_o in_o other_o place_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o a_o necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n with_o they_o no_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v a_o protestancy_n to_o have_v communion_n with_o protestant_n be_v without_o doubt_n necessary_a to_o believe_v something_o of_o pure_a protestancy_n necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n with_o protestant_n though_o unnecessary_a for_o communion_n with_o that_o other_o fancy_v universal_a church_n and_o the_o general_n doctrine_n thereof_o the_o reason_n be_v no_o man_n can_v be_v more_o a_o protestant_n unless_o he_o believe_v all_o particular_a own_a article_n of_o that_o religion_n as_o pure_a and_o orthodox_n then_o a_o good_a papist_n and_o not_o believe_v what_o that_o church_n particular_o teach_v 14._o now_o because_o we_o be_v get_v thus_o far_o into_o a_o matter_n wherein_o i_o hold_v our_o adversary_n much_o oversee_v i_o will_v sectary_n a_o question_n propose_v not_o to_o be_v answer_v by_o sectary_n glad_o have_v a_o clear_a answer_n to_o this_o one_o question_n viz._n whether_o after_o a_o due_a proposal_n it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o communicate_v with_o protestant_n that_o be_v firm_o to_o believe_v any_o one_o article_n of_o our_o protestant_n reform_a faith_n as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n for_o example_n two_o sacrament_n only_o no_o real_a presence_n no_o sacrifice_n or_o what_o else_o you_o will_v if_o they_o answer_v yes_o then_o i_o infer_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o doctrine_n universal_a and_o necessary_a if_o doctrine_n common_a ●●_o all_o be_v not_o sufficient_a something_o of_o protestancy_n must_v be_v own_v necessary_a common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o salvation_n for_o now_o they_o require_v more_o viz_o a_o belief_n of_o some_o doctrine_n peculiar_a to_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v reform_v contrariwise_o if_o they_o grant_v nothing_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o pure_a protestancy_n to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o such_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n it_o follow_v evident_o though_o a_o protestant_n after_o a_o perfect_a knowledge_n have_v of_o his_o religion_n as_o reform_v do_v both_o abjure_v and_o anathematise_v that_o particular_a believer_n if_o nothing_o of_o protestancy_n be_v account_v of_o as_o necessary_a one_o may_v abjure_v all_o that_o religion_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o faithful_a believer_n doctrine_n and_o believ'_v only_o with_o a_o general_n faith_n common_a to_o arian_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n he_o may_v yet_o be_v save_v because_o the_o belief_n of_o no_o one_o article_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o protestancy_n avail_n he_o one_o whit_n to_o salvation_n if_o so_o tell_v i_o i_o beseech_v you_o what_o a_o religion_n have_v we_o here_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o the_o author_n and_o professor_n of_o protestancy_n have_v make_v a_o shameful_a bustle_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o novelty_n which_o must_v be_v call_v the_o true_a reform_a religion_n and_o now_o hear_v the●_n teach_v that_o be_v teach_v nothing_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n grant_v thus_o much_o and_o throw_v protestancy_n salvation_n a_o shameful_a schism_n about_o protestancy_n that_o teach_v nothing_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n out_o of_o the_o world_n man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o 15._o some_o perhaps_o will_v reply_v protestant_n at_o least_o judge_n that_o among_o the_o many_o religion_n which_o now_o swarm_n in_o the_o world_n their_o reform_a novelty_n be_v one_o of_o the_o best_a and_o the_o secure_a way_n to_o heaven_n alas_o we_o judgement_n we_o ask_v not_o what_o protestant_n judge_v but_o demand_v for_o a_o proof_n of_o that_o judgement_n inquire_v not_o what_o they_o mere_a fallible_a man_n judge_v every_o heretic_n speak_v favourable_o in_o his_o own_o cause_n but_o we_o go_v further_o and_o ask_v into_o what_o undoubted_a principle_n that_o judgement_n be_v final_o resolve_v or_o whether_o these_o man_n withal_o the_o judgement_n and_o learning_n they_o have_v be_v able_a solid_o and_o rational_o to_o prove_v that_o their_o particular_a article_n of_o protestancy_n rest_v firm_o and_o rely_v upon_o the_o object_n of_o all_o faith_n which_o be_v god_n certain_a and_o salvation_n if_o protestant_n can_v resolve_v the_o belief_n of_o their_o particular_a article_n into_o divine_a revelation_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n divine_a revelation_n if_o this_o can_v be_v don_n the_o particular_a tenant_n of_o protestancy_n be_v as_o certain_a and_o consequent_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o general_n doctrine_n which_o all_o christian_n own_o the_o reason_n be_v clear_a because_o the_o testimony_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o god_n and_o the_o same_o eternal_a verity_n as_o now_o we_o must_v suppose_v warrant_n be_v as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o again_o if_o they_o say_v and_o they_o must_v say_v it_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n one_o article_n of_o protestancy_n and_o therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o not_o one_o reform_a article_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n it_o follow_v that_o this_o religion_n thus_o separate_v religion_n if_o not_o protestancy_n be_v no_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n from_o the_o true_a centre_n of_o divine_a faith_n god_n infallible_a revelation_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n at_o all_o but_o stand_v totter_v on_o fancy_n and_o fancy_v only_o which_o be_v a_o great_a verity_n 16._o occasional_o i_o here_o answer_v to_o a_o trivial_a objection_n of_o other_o that_o much_o extol_v the_o clemency_n of_o protestant_n who_o like_a papist_n do_v not_o excommunicate_v all_o that_o believe_v not_o as_o they_o believe_v good_a reason_n say_v i_o for_o why_o shall_v they_o excommunicate_v any_o for_o not_o believe_v a_o religion_n which_o be_v build_v on_o fancy_n can_v they_o judge_v in_o conscience_n or_o assure_v we_o that_o what_o they_o hold_v as_o sectary_n be_v reveal_v by_o protestancy_n the_o want_n of_o zeal_n in_o sectary_n for_o protestancy_n god_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o worth_a believe_v they_o shall_v so_o far_o stand_v for_o god_n cause_n and_o set_v so_o great_a a_o value_n on_o it_o as_o to_o induce_v all_o even_o by_o spiritual_a menace_n it_o be_v a_o sweet_a way_n then_o to_o deprive_v man_n of_o their_o life_n and_o fortune_n to_o embrace_v their_o novelty_n but_o alas_o the_o real_a gild_n of_o schism_n which_o lie_v like_o lead_n at_o their_o heart_n make_v they_o most_o frigid_a in_o advance_v a_o religion_n lay_v hold_v on_o by_o mere_a chance_n and_o a_o most_o unfortunate_a casuality_n almighty_a god_n soften_v these_o conceal_a heart_n by_o sorrowful_a repentance_n and_o forgive_v all_o sectary_n their_o double_a great_a sin_n both_o
of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n the_o four_o discourse_n the_o church_n evidence_n of_o the_o improbability_n of_o protestant_a religion_n the_o first_o chapter_n christ_n church_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sectary_n be_v convince_v 1._o we_o have_v often_o make_v a_o just_a exception_n against_o sectary_n in_o the_o foregoing_a discourse_n forth_o a_o just_a exception_n against_o sectary_n mare_n full_o lay_v forth_o and_o you_o shall_v have_v it_o here_o again_o in_o plain_a language_n protestant_n as_o they_o prove_v not_o their_o own_o religion_n of_o protestancy_n so_o they_o never_o impugn_v the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n by_o rational_a argument_n at_o last_o reducible_a to_o undoubted_a principle_n catholic_n contrariwise_o make_v good_a their_o church_n doctrine_n by_o undeniable_a principle_n and_o by_o manifest_a proof_n evidence_n the_o nullity_n of_o protestant_n faith_n though_o both_o these_o assertion_n be_v already_o demonstrate_v in_o the_o precedent_a treatise_n yet_o because_o of_o the_o weightines_n of_o the_o matter_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o epitomise_v some_o point_n large_o declare_v above_o and_o bring_v much_o to_o a_o clear_a view_n and_o a_o more_o compendious_a form_n 2._o to_o do_v this_o we_o may_v suppose_v if_o true_a religion_n we_o god_n establish_v religion_n with_o intention_n to_o have_v it_o know_v not_o to_o hide_v it_o from_o we_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n have_v make_v it_o so_o manifest_a to_o reason_n by_o force_n of_o rational_a motive_n that_o all_o may_v know_v it_o for_o certain_o god_n never_o establish_v religion_n among_o christian_n with_o intention_n to_o hide_v it_o from_o they_o or_o to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n if_o man_n will_v follow_v reason_n proof_n therefore_o for_o it_o can_v no_o more_o fail_v then_o religion_n itself_o unless_o fail_v proof_n therefore_o for_o it_o can_v fail_v a_o infinite_a goodness_n which_o be_v impossible_a oblige_v we_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o embrace_v a_o religion_n which_o no_o man_n after_o a_o diligent_a search_v make_v by_o all_o the_o reason_n he_o have_v can_v find_v out_o 3._o upon_o this_o principle_n let_v i_o tell_v our_o protestant_n controversy_n wordy_a cavil_n end_v no_o controversy_n that_o they_o and_o we_o be_v not_o in_o so_o important_a a_o matter_n to_o misspend_v our_o time_n or_o to_o wrangle_v it_o out_o with_o word_n no._n proof_n must_v enter_v if_o they_o hold_v their_o religion_n true_a and_o we_o fall_v and_o so_o they_o must_v also_o if_o we_o say_v the_o contrary_a again_o neither_o of_o we_o can_v here_o proceed_v as_o schoolman_n do_v when_o they_o oppugn_v one_o a_o other_o conjecture_n solid_n proof_n must_v sway_v here_o and_o not_o weak_a conjecture_n and_o defend_v their_o different_a opinion_n upon_o weak_a and_o doubtful_a ground_n for_o if_o the_o proof_n for_o christ_n religion_n be_v not_o strong_a than_o schoolmen_n often_o be_v for_o mere_a uncertain_a opinion_n we_o may_v as_o well_o and_o without_o offence_n reject_v a_o weak_a prove_v religion_n as_o we_o do_v a_o weak_a prove_v opinion_n the_o argument_n therefore_o for_o religion_n whereon_o salvation_n depend_v be_v to_o stand_v firm_a upon_o vndeniable_a principle_n or_o this_o follow_v that_o though_o god_n have_v most_o clear_o evidence_v religion_n yet_o proof_n be_v want_v to_o make_v it_o know_v and_o this_o whilst_o he_o will_v have_v it_o know_v and_o manifest_v to_o all._n thus_o much_o suppose_v 4._o we_o will_v first_o brief_o touch_v on_o a_o few_o argument_n for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v ample_o lay_v forth_o upon_o several_a occasion_n in_o this_o treatise_n i_o can_v argument_n a_o brief_a repetition_n of_o some_o few_o argument_n repeat_v all_o in_o a_o short_a compendium_n yet_o you_o shall_v have_v enough_o to_o silence_v sectary_n and_o remember_v we_o speak_v now_o of_o the_o antecedent_n evidence_n which_o clear_o show_v we_o christ_n true_a church_n and_o make_v it_o indubitable_o credible_a for_o no_o religion_n as_o i_o note_v above_o be_v exit_fw-la terminis_fw-la without_o convince_a proof_n either_o evident_o credible_a true_a or_o fals._n 5._o i_o say_v then_o first_o a_o church_n or_o religion_n which_o manife_v itself_o and_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n it_o profess_v by_o the_o same_o sign_n note_n and_o character_n of_o truth_n whereby_o the_o be_v the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v evidence_v as_o the_o apostolical_a or_o primitive_a church_n be_v apostolical_a and_o primitive_a church_n be_v mark_v and_o evidence_v be_v undoubted_o true_a or_o if_o this_o proof_n be_v not_o valid_a we_o may_v easy_o deny_v truth_n to_o that_o apostolical_a and_o primitive_a church_n now_o the_o only_a church_n in_o the_o world_n thus_o mark_v and_o evidence_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n throughout_o all_o age_n this_o principle_n be_v undeniable_a deny_v these_o mark_n and_o sign_n to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n you_o deny_v what_o be_v evident_a grant_v they_o and_o you_o admit_v of_o popery_n see_v disc_n 1._o c._n 9_o 10._o 6._o 2._o a_o church_n or_o religion_n which_o in_o every_o age_n after_o church_n miracle_n christ_n own_o mark_n evidence_n the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n christ_n have_v have_v a_o most_o clear_a assure_a and_o vndubitable_a evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n christ_n own_a mark_n and_o cognisance_n make_v know_v the_o absolute_a power_n of_o god_n cooperate_n with_o it_o and_o therefore_o can_v but_o be_v true_a unless_o we_o think_v that_o his_o power_n alone_o divorce_v as_o it_o be_v from_o goodness_n do_v set_v his_o hand_n and_o seal_n to_o mere_a forge_v sign_n and_o wrought_v these_o wonder_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o she_o only_o clear_o demonstrat_n vnparallelled_a miracle_n not_o in_o one_o but_o in_o every_o age_n as_o be_v without_o controversy_n prove_v by_o undoubted_a record_n undeniable_a they_o be_v undeniable_a which_o truth_n i_o engage_v to_o make_v good_a if_o any_o doubt_n of_o it_o therefore_o either_o this_o church_n or_o none_o be_v christ_n true_a church_n i_o call_v miracle_n rhe_n most_o forceable_a and_o persuasive_a argument_n of_o truth_n that_o can_v be_v propose_v all_o other_o convince_v and_o above_o all_o other_o proof_n most_o convince_v proof_n though_o clear_a and_o convince_v to_o disinterest_v judgement_n be_v liable_a to_o cavil_n for_o cite_v scripture_n against_o sectary_n wilful_a misinterpretation_n abuse_v it_o produce_v father_n and_o council_n they_o be_v either_o reject_v cavil_n other_o proof_n more_o liable_a to_o cavil_n by_o these_o man_n as_o fallible_a or_o draw_v to_o a_o sinister_a sense_n as_o fancy_n will_v have_v it_o tell_v they_o of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o our_o church_n they_o answer_v much_o of_o it_o may_v be_v hypocrisy_n insist_v upon_o that_o great_a work_n of_o conversion_n some_o reply_n policy_n and_o humane_a industry_n have_v a_o strong_a hand_n in_o them_o but_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o proof_n and_o plead_v our_o cause_n by_o know_a and_o most_o evidence_v miracle_n all_o mouth_n be_v stop_v envy_n itself_o be_v silence_v and_o can_v speak_v a_o probable_a word_n against_o we_o unless_o miracle_n none_o can_v require_v that_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o this_o church_n work_v miracle_n perhaps_o some_o require_v and_o most_o unreasonable_o that_o every_o one_o within_o this_o moral_a body_n shall_v work_v miracle_n which_o be_v mere_o to_o cavil_v for_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n all_o have_v no_o such_o privilege_n it_o be_v therefore_o sufficient_a that_o there_o be_v some_o choice_n and_o select_v person_n unite_v in_o faith_n with_o this_o church_n to_o who_o god_n communicat_n the_o grace_n and_o do_v these_o wonder_n see_v more_o of_o this_o subject_a disc_n 1._o c._n 10._o n._n 15._o 16._o 17._o 7._o 3._o a_o church_n which_o have_v convert_v whole_a kingdom_n and_o nation_n from_o infidelity_n to_o christ_n and_o draw_v innumerable_a church_n admirable_a conversion_n wrought_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n as_o well_o prove_v it_o orthodox_n as_o the_o primitive_a church_n soul_n from_o a_o tepid_a life_n to_o penance_n and_o austerity_n from_o the_o content_n of_o the_o world_n to_o a_o contempt_n of_o it_o from_o self-love_n to_o a_o perfect_a self-abnegation_a must_v either_o be_v deserve_o name_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o apostolical_a church_n prove_v not_o its_o truth_n by_o such_o admirable_a and_o miraculous_a conversion_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o have_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n don_n these_o wonder_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o there_o be_v never_o any_o true_a upon_o earth_n deny_v these_o conversion_n make_v by_o our_o catholic_n society_n you_o deny_v what_o be_v most_o evident_a grant_v they_o you_o
subscribe_v to_o popery_n see_v world_n the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n oppose_v all_o know_a sectary_n and_o we_o orthodox_n society_n ever_o oppose_v it_o a_o manifest_a proof_n of_o truth_n the_o mark_n of_o truth_n more_o manifest_a in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n then_o in_o any_o other_o society_n can_v not_o be_v permit_v by_o god_n to_o cheat_v the_o world_n discourse_n 1._o c._n 7._o and_o chap._n 9_o n._n 10._o 8._o 4._o a_o church_n which_o oppose_v all_o the_o sectary_n in_o the_o world_n since_o christianity_n begin_v and_o be_v never_o oppose_v by_o any_o author_n of_o credit_n or_o orthodox_n society_n of_o christian_n but_o only_o by_o know_a condemn_a heretic_n most_o evident_o profess_v true_a religion_n the_o roman_a church_n only_o have_v age_n after_o age_n make_v this_o opposition_n against_o sectary_n and_o never_o be_v oppose_v by_o any_o but_o know_v heretic_n this_o be_v a_o vndeniable_a proof_n for_o the_o truth_n it_o mantain_n disc_n 1._o c._n 7._o n._n 5._o 9_o 5._o a_o religion_n which_o have_v have_v in_o all_o age_n most_o indubitable_o more_o illustrious_a mark_n and_o sign_n of_o truth_n accompanying_n it_o then_o all_o the_o other_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n put_v together_o either_o aught_o to_o be_v own_v for_o christ_n sole_a and_o pure_a religion_n or_o we_o must_v say_v that_o god_n can_v make_v a_o fall_v heretical_a sect_n more_o credible_a clear_a and_o evident_a to_o reason_n by_o sign_n of_o truth_n and_o sanctity_n then_o his_o true_a orthodox_n religion_n be_v reflect_v serious_o can_v we_o think_v that_o miracle_n conversion_n of_o soul_n cast_v out_o of_o devil_n great_a austerity_n of_o life_n efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n etc._n etc._n once_o convince_a argument_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o first_o age_n be_v now_o show_v we_o in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n to_o favour_v such_o error_n as_o sectary_n impute_v to_o it_o or_o to_o countenance_v any_o thing_n like_o antichristian_a doctrine_n to_o judge_v so_o be_v a_o improbable_a paradox_n and_o here_o you_o have_v a_o other_o most_o evident_a proof_n and_o principle_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o catholic_n religion_n disc_n 1._o c._n 7._o n._n 8._o 10._o 6._o a_o church_n which_o have_v manifest_o don_n great_a service_n true_a the_o evident_a service_n do_v for_o god_n by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n without_o note_n of_o dishonour_v put_v on_o it_o by_o any_o orthodox_n society_n prove_v it_o pure_a and_o holy_a a_o church_n once_o true_a be_v still_o true_a for_o god_n by_o defeat_v his_o enemy_n and_o gain_v he_o friend_n and_o yet_o labour_n to_o do_v he_o more_o service_n a_o church_n which_o never_o have_v note_n or_o mark_v of_o dishonour_v put_v on_o it_o censure_n private_a or_o public_a issue_v from_o any_o universal_a church_n be_v blameless_a pure_a holy_a and_o uncorrupt_a in_o doctrine_n in_o all_o the_o roman_a catholic_n society_n just_o glory_n which_o no_o other_o sect_n call_v christian_n can_v do._n and_o it_o be_v a_o vndeniable_a proof_n for_o its_o integrity_n disc_n 3._o c._n 8._o n._n 2._o 3._o 11._o 7._o a_o catholic_n church_n establish_v by_o almighty_a god_n and_o therefore_o once_o true_a must_v upon_o the_o same_o ground_n which_o then_o prove_v it_o orthodox_n ever_o after_o be_v acknowledge_v as_o true_a hear_v my_o reason_n 1._o that_o infinite_a wisdom_n which_o found_v this_o once_o true_a church_n make_v it_o a_o school_n not_o to_o teach_v a_o few_o first_o christian_n or_o for_o a_o time_n only_o but_o to_o instruct_v all_o and_o for_o ever_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n remain_v for_o ever_o and_o forth_o it_o teach_v not_o christian_n for_o a_o time_n only_o 〈◊〉_d then_o leave_v of_o to_o be_v true_a reason_n of_o the_o assertion_n lay_v forth_o this_o be_v the_o word_n that_o be_v evangelize_v among_o you_o 1._o pet._n 1._o v._n 25._o that_o word_n then_o which_o those_o primitive_a christian_n learn_v yet_o remain_v and_o be_v now_o teach_v by_o the_o same_o true_a and_o indeficient_a church_n found_v by_o christ_n 2._o the_o gift_n of_o god_n rom._n 11._o 29._o be_v without_o repentance_n that_o be_v unchangeable_a what_o ever_o therefore_o move_v a_o infinite_a wisdom_n to_o make_v a_o church_n once_o true_a or_o for_o a_o time_n evident_o show_v that_o mercy_n far_o extend_v and_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 3._o the_o necessity_n of_o have_v christian_n instruct_v in_o truth_n soul_n be_v now_o as_o dear_a to_o god_n and_o as_o well_o provide_v of_o mean_n to_o attain_v salvation_n as_o the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v require_v the_o continuance_n of_o truth_n in_o that_o church_n which_o christ_n first_o found_v he_o vvill'_v all_o to_o be_v save_v and_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n 1._o tim._n 2._o 3._o if_o all_o none_o at_o this_o very_a day_n be_v exclude_v from_o the_o mean_n of_o learning_n christ_n verity_n teach_v only_o in_o that_o church_n which_o he_o establish_v also_o grace_n remained_n with_o this_o church_n therefore_o truth_n also_o 4._o the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n sectary_n say_v it_o permanent_o remain_n with_o christ_n church_n for_o ever_o therefore_o truth_n also_o be_v as_o permanent_a and_o as_o inseparable_a from_o it_o truth_n be_v as_o necessary_a to_o a_o church_n as_o grace_n be_v 5._o the_o rock_n which_o be_v christ_n stand_v immovable_a and_o unshaken_a therefore_o the_o true_a church_n build_v upon_o this_o rock_n and_o cornerstone_n 1._o cor._n 10._o can_v no_o more_o fail_v or_o fall_v from_o truth_n then_o christ_n can_v leave_v of_o to_o be_v a_o indeficient_a verity_n to_o say_v then_o that_o god_n once_o found_v his_o true_a church_n upon_o the_o rock_n jesus_n christ_n and_o grant_v that_o afterward_o he_o permit_v either_o man_n or_o devil_n to_o pull_v it_o down_o to_o deface_v it_o with_o error_n and_o false_a doctrine_n be_v so_o desperate_a a_o paradox_n that_o i_o think_v no_o christian_a dare_v avouch_v it_o in_o such_o term_n 12._o now_o mark_v my_o inference_n upon_o these_o premise_a consideration_n inference_n upon_o the_o premise_a consideration_n consideration_n the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v once_o the_o true_a church_n sectary_n confess_v it_o once_o it_o be_v build_v on_o christ_n once_o it_o teach_v christian_a verity_n without_o error_n once_o it_o be_v own_v by_o christian_n for_o christ_n school_n once_o it_o euangelize_v the_o word_n of_o god_n pure_o therefore_o if_o god_n be_v yet_o as_o favourable_a unto_o soul_n as_o he_o be_v ancient_o if_o he_o subtract_v not_o mean_n from_o we_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o his_o gift_n be_v unchangeable_a if_o his_o intention_n of_o settle_v truth_n for_o ever_o among_o christian_n alter_v not_o if_o he_o bless_v his_o own_o society_n as_o well_o with_o truth_n as_o with_o the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n this_o catholic_n roman_n church_n and_o no_o other_o once_o true_a be_v be_v and_o shall_v ever_o be_v so_o for_o the_o future_a ecclesia_fw-la invicta_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la they_o be_v know_v word_n of_o a_o great_a doctor_n etsi_fw-la infernus_fw-la ipse_fw-la commoveatur_fw-la the_o church_n be_v invincible_a and_o continue_v the_o same_o although_o hell_n itself_o be_v move_v and_o struggle_v against_o it_o we_o may_v thank_v eternal_o our_o bless_a lord_n for_o that_o great_a verity_n register_v in_o the_o gospel_n porte_fw-fr inferni_fw-la non_fw-la praevalebunt_fw-la adversus_fw-la eam_fw-la upon_o catholic_n no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n this_o we_o ground_n our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o you_o have_v here_o vndeniable_a principle_n disc_n 1._o c._n 3._o n._n 2._o 3._o and_o disc_n 2._o c._n 9_o n._n 8._o now_o if_o to_o weaken_v these_o argument_n sectary_n will_v pretend_v to_o another_o catholic_n church_n more_o ample_a than_o the_o roman_a see_v they_o clear_o charge_n sectary_n can_v probable_o say_v when_o our_o church_n bring_v in_o the_o novelty_n lay_v to_o its_o charge_n confuthe_v disc_n 3._o c._n 1._o per_fw-la totum_fw-la 13._o 8._o a_o church_n or_o religion_n which_o be_v once_o confess_o orthodox_n and_o no_o man_n can_v probable_o say_v when_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v so_o or_o when_o it_o bring_v in_o such_o visible_a and_o perceptible_a novelty_n as_o sectary_n charge_v on_o it_o by_o mere_a vnproved_a calumny_n be_v evident_o a_o true_a church_n still_o the_o sole_a voice_n of_o this_o ample_a learned_a roman_a society_n have_v church_n the_o ancient_a possession_n of_o truth_n allow_v this_o church_n be_v a_o strong_a proof_n then_o sectary_n contrary_a cavil_n antiquity_n own_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n we_o no_o more_o which_o cry_v out_o against_o these_o fancy_v cavil_n and_o the_o ancient_a possession_n of_o truth_n allow_v it_o in_o foregoing_a age_n will_v be_v judge_v in_o any_o tribunal_n of_o the_o world_n a_o more_o convince_a proof_n a_o incomparable_a
great_a testimony_n for_o its_o perseverance_n in_o christ_n doctrine_n then_o a_o few_o blind_a guess_n of_o sectary_n can_v be_v to_o the_o contrary_a which_o when_o they_o be_v resolve_v come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o calumny_n or_o strong_a fancy_n disc_n 3._o c._n 9_o n._n 5._o 14._o 9_o a_o church_n who_o doctrine_n when_o you_o read_v antiquity_n whether_o council_n father_n or_o history_n you_o find_v so_o undeniable_o own_v and_o universal_o profess_v that_o the_o man_n be_v blind_a who_o be_fw-mi not_o popery_n maintain_v all_o along_o those_o learned_a volume_n for_o example_n who_o see_v we_o not_o but_o that_o a_o sacrifice_n daily_o offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n pray_v to_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o real_a presence_n and_o the_o like_a be_v doctrine_n plain_o deliver_v by_o antiquity_n now_o such_o a_o church_n which_o upon_o its_o own_o authority_n also_o defend'_v these_o verity_n it_o be_v the_o great_a on_o earth_n can_v be_v vainquish_v by_o a_o few_o weak_a cavil_n of_o our_o late_o unknown_a and_o vnauthorize_v sectary_n the_o principle_n be_v vndeniable_a disc_n 1._o c._n 6._o 15._o 10._o a_o church_n that_o have_v have_v age_n after_o age_n church_n the_o both_o pass_v and_o present_a witness_n most_o learned_a and_o holy_a a_o most_o strong_a proof_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n whole_a multitude_n of_o wise_a learned_a and_o most_o holy_a professor_n the_o number_n of_o they_o be_v numberless_a that_o without_o fright_a or_o fear_v of_o any_o delusion_n live_v joyful_o and_o die_v happy_o in_o their_o ancient_a profess_a faith_n can_v but_o upon_o the_o very_a testimony_n of_o these_o witness_n so_o many_o and_o so_o rare_o qualify_v be_v judge_v evident_o credible_a true_a pure_a and_o holy_a otherwise_o we_o must_v say_v that_o all_o these_o learned_a man_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o be_v mad_a beseek_v and_o seduce_v with_o foolery_n which_o be_v so_o desperate_a a_o proposition_n that_o none_o shall_v dare_v to_o vent_v it_o and_o speak_v probably_n the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n alone_a produce_v such_o choice_n learned_a and_o continue_a witness_n for_o its_o truth_n no_o other_o sect_n come_v near_o it_o word_n our_o roman_a catholic_n church_n show_v that_o all_o other_o call_v christian_n from_o luther_n to_o the_o four_o or_o five_o age_n be_v both_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n the_o roman_a church_n only_a demonstrat_n with_o antiquity_n a_o lawful_a mission_n of_o pastor_n unity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o pope_n prelate_n and_o innumerable_a professor_n cavil_n can_v overturn_v a_o evident_a verity_n one_o verity_n be_v that_o god_n can_v not_o permit_v so_o learned_a a_o church_n as_o the_o roman_a be_v to_o be_v beguile_v with_o foolery_n for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n another_o verity_n if_o the_o roman_a cath._n church_n be_v false_o suppose_v to_o have_v err_v protestant_n can_v probable_o say_v how_o far_o or_o wherein_o in_o err_v what_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v and_o by_o solid_a principle_n a_o three_o verity_n christ_n promise_v to_o be_v with_o the_o church_n he_o found_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o protestant_n must_v say_v he_o stand_v not_o to_o his_o word_n none_o can_v parallel_v it_o a_o most_o convince_a proof_n a_o undeniable_a principle_n disc_n 1._o c._n 6._o n._n 12._o 16._o 11._o a_o church_n that_o evident_o demonstrat_n all_o other_o call_v christian_n from_o luther_n upward_o to_o have_v be_v schismatic_n heretic_n or_o both_o be_v either_o to_o be_v own_v for_o the_o true_a orthodox_n church_n of_o christ_n or_o we_o must_v grant_v that_o christ_n have_v no_o true_a church_n on_o earth_n for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n demonstrat_n this_o clear_o and_o it_o be_v a_o vndeniable_a principle_n disc_n 3._o c._n 1._o 17._o 12._o a_o church_n which_o confess_o demonstrat_n its_o antiquity_n prove_v its_o mission_n evidence_v its_o unity_n in_o doctrine_n and_o show_v a_o continue_a succession_n of_o pope_n prelate_n pastor_n and_o innumerable_a professor_n ever_o since_o christianity_n begin_v without_o interruption_n have_v so_o great_a evidence_n for_o the_o truth_n it_o teach_v that_o all_o the_o cavil_n of_o sectary_n pretend_v a_o change_n of_o doctrine_n make_v in_o this_o society_n be_v weak_a proofle_n and_o high_o improbable_a the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n prove_v these_o particular_n disc_n 1._o c._n 9_o n._n 8._o 14._o 18._o to_o end_v i_o say_v three_o thing_n 1._o no_o cavil_n can_v evert_n a_o evident_a verity_n but_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a verity_n that_o god_n essential_o goodness_n itself_o can_v not_o permit_v so_o learned_a so_o numerous_a so_o excellent_a and_o precious_a a_o part_n of_o christian_n as_o the_o roman_a pastor_n and_o doctor_n be_v from_o the_o five_o age_n to_o luther_n to_o be_v all_o beguile_v with_o falso_n doctrine_n neither_o can_v he_o suffer_v those_o innumerable_a christian_n who_o be_v teach_v by_o such_o wise_a and_o learned_a pastor_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n to_o be_v all_o mislead_v by_o mean_n of_o their_o false_a doctrine_n or_o cheat_v into_o error_n this_o be_v impossible_a unless_o we_o grant_v which_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n that_o a_o infinite_a goodness_n utter_o deserted_n his_o church_n and_o preserve_v none_o true_a on_o earth_n for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n 19_o 2._o this_o be_v a_o undeniable_a verity_n if_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n err_v as_o sectary_n assert_v these_o man_n can_v by_o their_o own_o discern_v spirit_n much_o less_o by_o a_o own_a principle_n probable_o say_v how_o far_o or_o wherein_o it_o err_v for_o example_n and_o i_o urge_v they_o to_o answer_v the_o difficulty_n why_o say_v they_o that_o our_o church_n more_o err_v in_o believe_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n then_o in_o believe_v a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o essence_n they_o can_v by_o any_o proof_n but_o fancy_n only_o more_o espy_v error_n in_o the_o one_o then_o in_o the_o other_o therefore_o whilst_o they_o believe_v a_o trinity_n and_o other_o doctrine_n common_a with_o this_o suppose_a err_v church_n and_o indeed_o they_o must_v hold_v they_o on_o this_o church_n authority_n only_o or_o can_v believe_v they_o they_o may_v be_v as_o well_o plunge_v into_o error_n by_o own_v a_o trinity_n as_o they_o think_v this_o church_n be_v deceive_v in_o hold_v the_o other_o mystery_n of_o the_o sacrament_n see_v these_o two_o point_n surth_o explicate_v disc_n 1._o c._n 6._o n._n 12._o 13._o 20._o 3._o it_o be_v a_o vndeniable_a verity_n that_o christ_n once_o promise_v to_o be_v with_o the_o church_n he_o found_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n now_o protestant_n must_v say_v that_o christ_n stand_v not_o to_o his_o word_n for_o certain_o when_o he_o make_v this_o promise_n he_o well_o foresee_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n will_v if_o protestant_n speak_v truth_n at_o last_o about_o the_o five_o or_o six_o age_n become_v erroneous_a and_o consequent_o forsake_v the_o good_a master_n that_o found_v it_o with_o this_o church_n then_o which_o abandon_a truth_n christ_n who_o be_v truth_n remain_v not_o nor_o with_o any_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n for_o ten_o whole_a age_n because_o all_o these_o be_v profess_v heretic_n and_o christ_n never_o teach_v heresy_n or_o assist_v heretic_n in_o their_o doctrine_n therefore_o he_o do_v not_o only_o promise_v what_o he_o never_o intend_v to_o perform_v but_o more_o even_o now_o glorious_a as_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n he_o wink'_v at_o improbability_n yea_o and_o now_o wink_v at_o all_o the_o suppose_a error_n of_o he_o once_o own_v found_v catholic_n church_n vast_a improbability_n these_o hideous_a suppose_a error_n of_o his_o once_o own_o found_v catholic_n church_n and_o remedy_n none_o poor_a soul_n be_v beguile_v to_o this_o day_n with_o the_o fall_v doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n which_o he_o establish_v in_o truth_n and_o promise_v to_o assist_v for_o ever_o be_v these_o think_v you_o probability_n no._n they_o be_v the_o most_o pernicious_a doctrine_n that_o ever_o enter_v into_o a_o christian_n hart_n or_o tongue_n express_v 21._o if_o protestant_n shall_v plea_n to_o make_v any_o exception_n against_o these_o proof_n give_v i_o leave_v to_o assure_v they_o first_o i_o will_v not_o take_v their_o bare_a word_n for_o any_o thing_n they_o say_v against_o we_o 2._o to_o fore_o warn_v they_o of_o a_o usual_a fallacy_n and_o it_o be_v that_o they_o run_v not_o here_o into_o tedious_a generality_n and_o talk_v in_o the_o air_n which_o only_a confound_n a_o reader_n and_o leave_v he_o at_o last_o as_o much_o dissatisfy_v as_o when_o he_o first_o begin_v to_o read_v and_o hence_o i_o tell_v they_o 3._o they_o
be_v oblige_v to_o answer_v direct_o without_o ambages_fw-la ay_o or_o no._n let_v they_o say_v plain_o these_o proof_n be_v good_a or_o show_v they_o to_o be_v fallacious_a and_o if_o they_o hold_v they_o fallacy_n let_v this_o be_v evidence_v by_o contrary_a clear_a proof_n ground_v on_o receive_a principle_n thus_o we_o proceed_v parallel_v proof_n and_o principle_n parallel_v 22._o for_o example_n we_o say_v this_o be_v a_o undoubted_a principle_n we_o be_v here_o force_v again_o to_o parallel_v proof_n with_o proof_n and_o principle_n with_o principle_n that_o the_o apostolical_a church_n evidence_v by_o miracle_n great_a sanctity_n of_o life_n efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n admirable_a conversion_n etc._n etc._n prove_v itself_o by_o these_o very_a mark_n and_o sign_n to_o be_v no_o counterfeit_n but_o a_o true_a orthodox_n church_n and_o here_o be_v a_o other_o sure_a principle_n lay_v by_o it_o the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n and_o no_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n have_v age_n after_o age_n evidence_v itself_o by_o the_o very_a like_o sign_n of_o undoubted_a miracle_n of_o admirable_a conversion_n of_o efficacy_n in_o doctrine_n of_o dispossess_v devil_n etc._n etc._n this_o whole_a learned_a society_n own_o be_v these_o wonder_n they_o have_v be_v and_o yet_o be_v manifest_a to_o man_n eye_n and_o sense_n the_o ancient_a miracle_n and_o conversion_n church_n proof_n for_o miracle_n and_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n stand_v upon_o certain_a record_n author_n of_o unquestionable_a fidelity_n recount_v the_o late_a not_o only_o friend_n but_o enemy_n also_o allow_v they_o so_o much_o credit_n that_o they_o just_o deem_v the_o man_n near_o a_o degree_n of_o madness_n that_o shall_v offer_v to_o deny_v all_o that_o be_v on_o record_n therefore_o the_o church_n which_o have_v ever_o manifest_v and_o yet_o do_v manifest_a these_o wonder_n prove_v its_o doctrine_n in_o that_o manner_n as_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a church_n prove_v they_o observe_v now_o well_o if_o sectary_n go_v about_o to_o infringe_v the_o validity_n of_o this_o one_o proof_n or_o will_v proof_n what_o sectary_n be_v oblige_v to_o ●o_o if_o they_o deny_v these_o proof_n yet_o deny_v these_o miracle_n and_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o our_o church_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o ground_n that_o denial_n on_o a_o proof_n as_o strong_a if_o not_o strong_a as_o be_v this_o cloud_n of_o witness_n produce_v by_o catholic_n for_o the_o contrary_a affirmative_a and_o this_o be_v not_o only_o improbable_a but_o whole_o impossible_a it_o be_v therefore_o mere_a talk_n at_o random_n to_o tell_v we_o as_o they_o be_v wont_v many_o miracle_n have_v be_v feign_a sense_n may_v be_v deceive_v papist_n be_v too_o credulous_a historian_n sometime_o recount_v thing_n upon_o too_o slight_a credit_n all_o be_v weightles_a word_n unproved_a guess_n thought_n of_o fancy_n and_o fancy_n only_o as_o proof_n vnproved_a guess_v no_o proof_n wide_o from_o proof_n and_o principle_n as_o truth_n be_v from_o heresy_n disc_n 1._o c._n 9_o 23._o again_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a truth_n that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n sectary_n without_o proof_n censure_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n never_o censure_v by_o any_o universal_a church_n church_n have_v don_n god_n great_a service_n and_o never_o be_v censure_v by_o any_o universal_a church_n say_v therefore_o upon_o what_o own_a principle_n can_v protestant_n deny_v this_o good_a service_n don_n for_o god_n upon_o what_o undoubted_a proof_n dare_v they_o so_o free_o censure_n and_o condemn_v it_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o their_o own_o say_v do_v all_o they_o have_v no_o better_a proof_n 24._o 3._o it_o be_v a_o most_o evident_a truth_n that_o all_o those_o wise_a and_o learned_a doctor_n that_o teach_v christian_n popery_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o be_v neither_o fool_n nor_o mad_a man_n nor_o truth_n two_o other_o most_o certain_a truth_n universal_o blind_v with_o error_n if_o this_o be_v not_o evident_a thus_o much_o certain_o be_v the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n never_o suffer_v those_o whole_a million_o of_o christian_n instruct_v by_o these_o teacher_n to_o be_v cheat_v so_o long_o and_o abuse_v with_o foolery_n now_o my_o hearty_a wish_n be_v that_o our_o adversary_n will_v once_o plain_o tell_v we_o by_o what_o proof_n or_o receive_a principle_n they_o be_v sectary_n a_o unanswerable_a difficulty_n propose_v to_o sectary_n able_a to_o convince_v that_o all_o these_o learned_a doctor_n no_o less_o wise_a than_o they_o be_v beseek_v so_o long_o or_o that_o god_n for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n owe_v so_o much_o ill_a will_n to_o innumerable_a poor_a christian_n as_o not_o only_o to_o see_v they_o cheat_v and_o mislead_v but_o foundation_n they_o be_v to_o prove_v not_o by_o talk_n but_o sure_a principle_n first_o that_o all_o the_o learned_a doctor_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v besot_v with_o foolery_n for_o ten_o age_n second_o that_o god_n permit_v innumerable_a christian_n to_o be_v cheat_v for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n three_o that_o protestant_n have_v exact_o settle_v christianity_n right_o on_o its_o ancient_a foundation_n more_o utter_o to_o withdraw_v his_o providence_n and_o suffer_v they_o to_o grow_v under_o so_o last_v a_o misery_n of_o falsehood_n and_o this_o which_o be_v ever_o to_o be_v note_a whilst_o there_o be_v no_o other_o christian_a society_n in_o the_o world_n to_o afford_v they_o true_a instruction_n in_o the_o pure_a christian_n faith_n may_v it_o please_v sectary_n candid_o to_o clear_v this_o one_o difficulty_n upon_o a_o rational_a principle_n they_o will_v much_o oblige_v i_o this_o don_n let_v they_o also_o vouchsafe_v to_o add_v a_o word_n more_o for_o my_o satisfaction_n it_o be_v if_o they_o digest_v these_o harsh_a proposition_n all_o those_o doctor_n be_v fool_v god_n deserted_n his_o church_n for_o so_o long_a a_o time_n that_o they_o next_o come_v to_o a_o solid_a principle_n and_o prove_v that_o protestant_n among_o so_o many_o other_o sectary_n be_v the_o only_o elect_a people_n appoint_v by_o providence_n to_o mend_n what_o they_o conceive_v amiss_o in_o a_o old_a decay_a church_n and_o they_o must_v show_v this_o don_n without_o mixture_n of_o error_n in_o their_o reformation_n yea_o and_o without_o danger_n of_o mar_v more_o than_o they_o go_v about_o to_o mend._n they_o tell_v we_o of_o their_o settle_v christianity_n right_o again_o on_o its_o ancient_a foundation_n here_o be_v place_n to_o make_v that_o talk_v good_a let_v we_o have_v a_o strenuous_a proof_n for_o it_o if_o they_o say_v they_o do_v it_o by_o scripture_n not_o one_o clear_a text_n can_v be_v quote_v without_o twenty_o gloss_n and_o fancy_n add_v to_o it_o and_o yet_o all_o will_v not_o do._n if_o again_o they_o will_v need_n be_v shake_v hand_n with_o we_o and_o say_v we_o and_o they_o be_v all_o one_o and_o right_a in_o fundamental_o it_o be_v a_o unproved_a assertion_n but_o may_v it_o pass_v no_o assurance_n can_v be_v give_v that_o they_o have_v settle_v all_o straight_a in_o nonfundamentals_a see_v disc_n 3._o c._n 10._o n._n 2._o and_o c._n 9_o n._n 3._o 2._o 25._o 4._o among_o the_o many_o other_o evidence_n of_o our_o providence_n a_o four_o evidence_n of_o catholic_n religion_n draw_v from_o god_n special_a providence_n our_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n this_o be_v none_o of_o the_o least_o that_o god_n by_o special_a providence_n have_v preserve_v it_o both_o in_o be_v and_o honour_n for_o 16._o whole_a age_n this_o church_n have_v stand_v so_o long_o invincible_a and_o glorious_a in_o the_o heat_n of_o all_o persecution_n it_o resist_v the_o violence_n of_o jew_n and_o heathen_a prince_n it_o encounter_v know_v heretic_n and_o defeat_v they_o no_o counsel_n or_o wit_n of_o man_n nor_o power_n of_o devil_n have_v be_v hitherto_o able_a to_o dissolve_v it_o whilst_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n lose_v their_o ancient_a glory_n and_o be_v subvert_v whence_o i_o argue_v as_o the_o learned_a gamaliel_n once_o do_v act._n 5._o 39_o if_o this_o counsel_n and_o work_n be_v of_o man_n it_o will_v be_v dissolve_v but_o if_o it_o be_v of_o god_n you_o sectary_n who_o so_o vigorous_o oppose_v it_o can_v dissolve_v it_o now_o here_o be_v argument_n a_o convince_v argument_n my_o dilemma_n either_o this_o church_n subsist_v for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n by_o mere_a cheat_n and_o humane_a policy_n or_o be_v and_o be_v protect_v by_o god_n special_a providence_n if_o the_o first_o be_v grant_v it_o will_v have_v perish_v long_o ago_o and_o come_v to_o nothing_o and_o if_o god_n by_o special_a providence_n preserve_v it_o in_o be_v it_o be_v vndubitable_o the_o orthodox_n church_n of_o christ_n and_o can_v be_v argue_v of_o disloyalty_n to_o confirm_v this_o truth_n i_o ask_v whether_o the_o reason_n now_o allege_v reason_n whatever_o argument_n prove_v christian_a religion_n in_o general_n
answer_v thus_o first_o protestant_n religion_n come_v to_o nothing_o for_o all_o or_o the_o most_o pair_v of_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o these_o negative_n 2._o this_o reform_a part_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n religion_n if_o sectary_n make_v their_o negative_n not_o essential_a to_o protestancy_n their_o reform_a religion_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n for_o christian_a religion_n at_o last_o resolvable_a into_o god_n certain_a revelation_n can_v be_v yield_v to_o and_o deny_v as_o man_n plea_n unless_o we_o grant_v that_o that_o may_v be_v deny_v which_o god_n say_v be_v true_a 3._o it_o follow_v though_o a_o protestant_a curse_n and_o anathematise_v the_o specifical_a article_n of_o his_o reform_a religion_n as_o reform_v he_o may_v yet_o be_v a_o good_a protestant_n and_o gain_v salvation_n by_o the_o general_n faith_n common_a to_o arian_n and_o other_o heteredox_n christian_n i_o will_v glad_o hear_v of_o a_o good_a solution_n to_o these_o difficulty_n more_o large_o lay_v forth_o disc_n 3._o c._n 11._o n._n 13._o 14._o in_o the_o mean_a while_n you_o see_v how_o vnevidence_v a_o thing_n protestant_n religion_n be_v which_o have_v neither_o rational_a motive_n to_o make_v it_o credible_a nor_o probable_a protestancy_n have_v neither_o motive_n to_o make_v it_o credible_a nor_o a_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v it_o probable_a so_o much_o as_o one_o favourable_a word_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v it_o probable_a you_o see_v moreover_o how_o scripture_n alone_o without_o a_o church_n and_o a_o naked_a church_n not_o manifest_v by_o prudent_a motive_n leave_v we_o in_o darkness_n lead_v into_o labyrinth_n yea_o and_o utter_o impossibilitat_n not_o less_o the_o search_n then_o the_o find_v out_o of_o true_a religion_n 5._o from_o the_o evident_a vnevidence_n of_o this_o new_a religion_n the_o follow_v from_o the_o unevidence_n of_o protestancy_n the_o improbability_n of_o it_o follow_v improbability_n of_o it_o follow_v as_o a_o property_n do_v to_o its_o essence_n for_o a_o vnproved_a religion_n be_v improbable_a and_o a_o improbable_a religion_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n pray_v you_o tell_v i_o if_o one_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o wise_a man_n and_o never_o give_v sign_n or_o proof_n of_o his_o wisdom_n to_o be_v learned_a and_o show_v himself_o a_o dunce_n in_o all_o company_n to_o be_v liberal_a and_o instance_n a_o instance_n relieve_v none_o in_o necessity_n will_v you_o admit_v of_o all_o without_o proof_n upon_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o he_o who_o say_v he_o be_v wise_a learned_a and_o liberal_a no_o you_o will_v slight_v such_o talk_n as_o vnworthly_a of_o credit_n and_o hold_v it_o improbable_a this_o be_v the_o real_a case_n of_o protestant_n who_o vapour_n much_o talk_v much_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o pure_a reform_a gospel_n but_o when_o thing_n come_v to_o the_o test_n and_o proof_n be_v just_o call_v probable_a no_o principle_n whereby_o to_o prove_v protestancy_n probable_a for_o to_o make_v word_n good_a they_o can_v neither_o say_v by_o force_n of_o any_o receive_a principle_n why_o they_o believe_v protestancy_n in_o general_n to_o be_v christ_n true_a religion_n nor_o why_o they_o give_v assent_v by_o divine_a faith_n to_o so_o much_o as_o to_o one_o article_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v reform_v improbable_a the_o doctrine_n assert_v the_o proof_n of_o it_o the_o opposition_n make_v against_o catholic_n and_o the_o method_n hold_v in_o arguin_n 〈…〉_o g_o improbable_a 6._o you_o will_v say_v this_o charge_n go_v high_a and_o therefore_o just_o require_v of_o i_o to_o declare_v further_o wherein_o chief_o our_o adversary_n speak_v so_o improbable_o i_o answer_v they_o do_v it_o not_o in_o one_o particular_a only_o but_o in_o every_o thing_n they_o say_n the_o doctrine_n assert_v by_o they_o be_v improbable_a the_o proof_n of_o their_o new_a religion_n be_v improbable_a the_o oppositi_fw-la make_v against_o our_o roman_a catholic_n faith_n be_v improbable_a the_o very_a method_n hold_v in_o argue_v against_o we_o be_v improbable_a all_o fall_v all_o be_v deficient_a and_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o for_o who_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v himself_o without_o assent_v to_o a_o most_o desperate_a improbability_n that_o in_o this_o old_a age_n of_o the_o world_n when_o all_o rather_o expect_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o a_o settlement_n of_o a_o new_a religion_n a_o little_a knot_n of_o man_n whole_o unknown_a a_o hundred_o year_n agon_n shall_v now_o start_v up_o and_o speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n when_o they_o go_v about_o not_o only_o to_o cast_v down_o a_o long_o stand_v church_n but_o more_o to_o make_v a_o novelty_n credible_a whereof_o the_o world_n have_v no_o knowledge_n at_o all_o for_o fiften_v age_n before_o this_o i_o say_v be_v high_o improbable_a but_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la 7._o i_o say_v first_o their_o doctrine_n be_v improbable_a and_o prove_v it_o arian_n protestancy_n not_o resolvable_a into_o god_n revelation_n stand_v on_o fancy_n and_o therefore_o improbable_a protestant_n gloss_n as_o improbable_a as_o the_o arian_n no_o doctrine_n fallible_o teach_v can_v be_v vltimat_o resolve_v into_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n but_o into_o fallible_a guess_n or_o fancy_n only_o the_o profess_a doctrine_n of_o protestancy_n as_o reform_v be_v fallible_o teach_v and_o can_v be_v resolve_v into_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n therefore_o it_o final_o rest_v on_o mere_a guess_n or_o fancy_n and_o consequent_o be_v improbable_a see_v disc_n 1._o c._n 1._o n._n 6._o 8._o 2._o it_o be_v improbable_a to_o say_v that_o scripture_n alone_o without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n make_v any_o man_n certain_a in_o what_o he_o gloss_n or_o at_o all_o infallible_a for_o both_o arian_n and_o pelagian_o read_v it_o and_o gloss_n it_o yet_o err_v gross_o in_o point_n most_o essential_a protestant_n who_o own_o no_o infallible_a interpreter_n both_z read_z and_o gloss_n as_o these_o do_v by_o their_o own_o uncertain_a guess_n and_o therefore_o gloss_n as_o improbably_n disc_n 1._o c._n 4._o n._n 7._o 8._o improbable_a universal_a opposition_n make_v protestancy_n improbable_a 9_o 3._o a_o doctrine_n which_o at_o its_o first_o rise_n and_o after_o also_o be_v and_o be_v still_o as_o much_o oppose_v by_o other_o christian_n the_o whole_a world_n over_o as_o ever_o arianism_n be_v and_o be_v improbable_a protestancy_n have_v and_o have_v still_o this_o universal_a opposition_n make_v against_o it_o and_o therefore_o upon_o that_o sole_a acount_n be_v improbable_a disc_n 1._o c._n 6._o n._n 3._o 10._o 4._o to_o say_v on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o protestancy_n be_v the_o true_a improbable_a protestancy_n dishonour_v christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v improbable_a orthodox_n religion_n and_o on_o the_o other_o to_o grant_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n which_o sectary_n condemn_v of_o error_n have_v infinite_o obscure_v protestancy_n with_o the_o splendour_n of_o most_o glorious_a mark_n of_o truth_n manifest_o know_v to_o the_o world_n as_o miracle_n conversion_n etc._n etc._n be_v high_o improbable_a because_o dishonourable_a to_o christ_n and_o injurious_a to_o god_n who_o can_v make_v a_o fall_v religion_n more_o clear_a to_o reason_n or_o more_o prudent_o credible_a than_o his_o own_o truth_n and_o verity_n be_v disc_n 1._o c._n 12._o n._n 1._o 2._o protestancy_n a_o new_a coin_a heresy_n may_v be_v better_a defend_v then_o protestancy_n 11._o 5._o a_o new_a coin_v heresy_n without_o motive_n of_o credibility_n may_v as_o well_o be_v invent_v and_o better_a defend_v by_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o scripture_n then_o protestancy_n can_v be_v defend_v but_o such_o a_o heresy_n be_v improbable_a therefore_o protestancy_n upon_o that_o account_n be_v much_o more_o improbable_a disc_n 1._o c._n 12._o n._n 3._o 4._o 5._o providence_n sectary_n improbable_o allow_v god_n no_o more_o but_o a_o lame_a and_o half_a providence_n 12._o 6._o to_o say_v that_o god_n have_v only_o care_n of_o a_o bible_n and_o preserve_v that_o free_a from_o corruption_n but_o withal_o permit_v his_o own_o immaculate_a spouse_n the_o church_n which_o he_o found_v pure_a to_o play_v the_o harlot_n and_o afterward_o to_o deceive_v christian_n with_o damnable_a error_n be_v not_o only_o to_o allow_v he_o a_o lame_a and_o half_a providence_n but_o also_o to_o vent_v a_o doctrine_n more_o than_o improbable_a improbable_a they_o must_v say_v that_o a_o church_n essential_o errable_a may_v as_o easy_o lose_v the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n at_o truth_n both_o be_v improbable_a that_o be_v enormous_o impious_a sectary_n say_v so_o and_o therefore_o speak_v improbable_o disc_n 2._o c._n 2._o n._n 7._o 13._o 7._o a_o church_n essential_o errable_a may_v loose_v all_o truth_n and_o consequent_o as_o easy_o all_o consolation_n of_o grace_n and_o so_o become_v whole_o divorce_v from_o christ_n the_o first_o protestant_n assert_v and_o therefore_o must_v maintain_v the_o other_o which_o be_v heretical_a and_o more_o than_o improbable_a
consequently_n a_o improbable_a religion_n 23._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v mark_v it_o you_o will_v find_v what_o i_o say_v religion_n sectary_n thoughtless_o of_o prove_v protestancy_n make_v it_o their_o chief_a work_n to_o cavil_v at_o our_o religion_n most_o true_a that_o sectary_n chief_o busy_a themselves_o in_o find_v fault_n and_o carp_n at_o catholic_n religion_n as_o if_o forsooth_o they_o be_v make_v good_a because_o they_o cavil_v at_o we_o but_o think_v not_o of_o a_o other_o task_n which_o most_o of_o all_o concern_v they_o and_o it_o be_v positive_o to_o prove_v that_o protestancy_n ought_v to_o be_v own_v as_o christ_n only_a true_a and_o orthodox_n religion_n this_o they_o whole_o wave_v and_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o a_o improbability_n can_v be_v prove_v 24._o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o do_v you_o ever_o yet_o hear_v religion_n protestant_n prove_v not_o their_o own_o religion_n from_o protestant_n any_o thing_n like_o a_o convince_a principle_n when_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v two_o sacrament_n and_o no_o more_o or_o that_o faith_n only_o justify_v without_o charity_n or_o to_o be_v brief_a that_o protestancy_n ought_v to_o be_v value_v of_o as_o the_o only_a pure_a and_o orthodox_n religion_n of_o christianity_n no._n i_o have_v peruse_v some_o of_o their_o author_n and_o find_v these_o and_o their_o other_o novelty_n either_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n or_o so_o slight_o handle_v that_o they_o seem_v afraid_a to_o meddle_v with_o such_o difficulty_n what_o do_v they_o therefore_o we_o but_o think_v it_o enough_o to_o cavil_v at_o we_o their_o whole_a strain_n be_v to_o find_v fault_n this_o in_o our_o religion_n be_v not_o right_o that_o be_v not_o well_o prove_v a_o three_o thing_n please_v not_o here_o we_o have_v a_o novelty_n introduce_v there_o be_v a_o ceremony_n blamable_a etc._n etc._n then_o a_o jeer_n follow_v in_o handsome_a language_n and_o their_o work_n be_v don._n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o main_a point_n in_o controversy_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v by_o undeniable_a ground_n their_o right_a settlement_n in_o faith_n without_o novelty_n be_v no_o more_o touch_v on_o then_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o be_v 25._o in_o case_n they_o reply_v to_o prove_v our_o religion_n fall_v sectary_n a_o inconsequence_n of_o sectary_n in_o some_o particular_n be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v they_o true_a in_o all_o i_o have_v answer_v can_v this_o be_v do_v the_o inference_n be_v yet_o worse_a than_o nonsense_n for_o suppose_v a_o arian_n do_v convince_v protestant_n of_o much_o falsity_n do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o all_o he_o say_v be_v true_a no._n what_o then_o do_v the_o protestant_n speak_v here_o to_o the_o purpose_n 2._o it_o be_v more_o than_o improbable_a to_o prove_v any_o one_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n fals._n the_o reason_n i_o give_v in_o fals._n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o prove_v the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n fals._n this_o place_n to_o omit_v other_o be_v because_o a_o undubitable_a principle_n which_o can_v be_v shake_v stand_v firm_o against_o these_o suppose_a proof_n and_o be_v thus_o hint_v at_o already_o christ_n jesus_n found_v a_o catholic_n church_n which_o shall_v never_o fail_v and_o therefore_o can_v never_o be_v desert_v by_o he_o for_o no_o monarch_n that_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o oblige_v reason_n the_o reason_n himself_o to_o take_v care_n of_o it_o can_v without_o injustice_n abandon_v it_o unless_o a_o contrary_a power_n or_o great_a negligence_n deprive_v he_o of_o his_o right_n now_o none_o can_v be_v more_o powerful_a than_o christ_n and_o i_o hope_v our_o adversary_n will_v not_o make_v he_o guilty_a of_o negligence_n or_o injustice_n therefore_o he_o still_o defend_v the_o militant_a church_n a_o most_o dear_a kingdom_n which_o he_o establish_v perhaps_o some_o less_o considerate_a will_v say_v we_o here_o tacit_o suppose_v christ_n to_o have_v found_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n verity_n we_o suppose_v nothing_o but_o a_o most_o certain_a verity_n only_a i_o answer_v first_o if_o this_o be_v suppose_v we_o suppose_v no_o more_o but_o truth_n when_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n before_o luther_n there_o be_v no_o other_o orthodox_n church_n in_o the_o world_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n as_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o second_o discourse_n i_o answer_v 2._o we_o suppose_v nothing_o but_o a_o evident_a verity_n viz._n that_o christ_n found_v a_o church_n which_o deserted_n that_o christ_n jesus_n found_v a_o church_n which_o he_o never_o deserted_n be_v permanent_o to_o continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n but_o this_o church_n find_v it_o where_o you_o will_v protestant_n say_n christ_n abandon_v because_o before_o luther_n day_n there_o be_v no_o true_a church_n on_o earth_n for_o ten_o whole_a age_n or_o if_o they_o admit_v of_o such_o a_o church_n let_v they_o please_v to_o name_v it_o but_o this_o will_v be_v impossible_a if_o they_o exclude_v the_o roman_a you_o see_v therefore_o how_o pitiful_o weightles_a protestant_n proof_n must_v needs_o be_v when_o they_o talk_v of_o a_o universal_a deluge_n of_o error_n overrun_v the_o roman_a church_n yea_o and_o all_o other_o church_n consideration_n what_o sentence_n reason_n give_v upon_o these_o consideration_n before_o luther_n you_o see_v also_o may_o reason_n have_v place_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o much_o more_o prudent_a to_o hold_v all_o those_o petty_a cavil_n of_o sectary_n to_o be_v as_o they_o real_o be_v most_o prodigious_o forceles_a then_o to_o be_v wrought_v in_o this_o perverse_a persuasion_n that_o christ_n jesus_n deserted_n the_o church_n he_o found_v and_o permit_v not_o only_o the_o roman_a but_o all_o other_o church_n with_o it_o to_o be_v mislead_v error_n nothing_o less_o than_o a_o evident_a demonstration_n can_v prove_v our_o church_n guilty_a of_o error_n into_o hideous_a error_n can_v sectary_n give_v demonstration_n of_o our_o error_n in_o good_a form_n and_o believe_v it_o nothing_o less_o than_o a_o demonstration_n will_v do_v the_o deed_n they_o may_v look_v big_a on_o it_o and_o hope_v to_o fright_v we_o but_o when_o we_o evident_o see_v their_o proof_n so_o droop_v and_o faint_a that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o stand_v upon_o a_o sure_a principle_n we_o may_v well_o say_v it_o will_v be_v best_a for_o they_o hereafter_o either_o to_o hold_v their_o peace_n of_o our_o church_n error_n or_o learn_v to_o speak_v more_o to_o the_o purpose_n 26._o i_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o beginning_n how_o these_o man_n prove_v what_o sectary_n ought_v to_o prove_v shall_v handle_v we_o have_v they_o a_o likelihood_n of_o truth_n on_o their_o side_n they_o shall_v silence_v we_o with_o undeniable_a proof_n draw_v from_o scripture_n from_o council_n and_o the_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n they_o shall_v show_v we_o precise_o when_o our_o error_n first_o begin_v whereof_o they_o talk_v but_o prove_v nothing_o they_o shall_v plain_o point_v out_o that_o orthodox_n and_o universal_a church_n which_o as_o strenuous_o defend_v pure_a protestancy_n six_o hundred_o year_n ago_o as_o we_o now_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n do_v oppose_v it_o they_o shall_v also_o tell_v we_o what_o orthodox_n church_n six_o or_o seven_o age_n since_o there_o be_v then_o most_o sure_o a_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n condemn_v those_o very_a doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n that_o sectary_n now_o condemn_v and_o cavil_v at_o such_o argument_n can_v they_o be_v hear_v of_o be_v to_o the_o purpose_n but_o to_o have_v nothing_o from_o these_o ●risk_a antagonist_n but_o trifle_n and_o mere_a slight_a stuff_n be_v lamentable_a now_o we_o be_v tell_v scripture_n may_v be_v interpret_v this_o way_n now_o a_o other_o now_o our_o modern_a author_n say_v this_o now_o that_o now_o council_n seem_v to_o contradict_v council_n now_o mere_a patch_n and_o fragment_n of_o father_n pitiful_o abuse_v and_o weigh_v out_o of_o their_o circumstance_n be_v produce_v against_o we_o now_o they_o be_v their_o way_n of_o argue_v insipid_a and_o weightles_a the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n have_v withstand_v strong_a heretic_n than_o protestant_n be_v jeer_v at_o our_o pope_n now_o at_o our_o prelate_n now_o at_o our_o ceremony_n and_o thus_o they_o hold_v on_o in_o a_o slight_a way_n of_o skirmish_v unable_a god_fw-we know_n to_o do_v more_o against_o a_o church_n which_o divine_a providence_n vphold_n and_o therefore_o it_o have_v not_o only_o withstand_v hard_a shock_n from_o former_a heretic_n than_o now_o be_v in_o be_v but_o also_o defeat_v them_o so_o it_o be_v ecclesia_fw-la in_o victa_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o ancient_a church_n be_v and_o will_v be_v conquerant_fw-la though_o hell_n and_o heresy_n band_n against_o it_o chap._n iii_o a_o word_n more_o of_o sectary_n new_a mode_n of_o argue_v best_o lay_v forth_o by_o touch_v brief_o on_o one_o controversy_n
purpose_n for_o to_o say_v that_o some_o few_o here_o and_o there_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n be_v no_o advantage_n to_o your_o cause_n now_o to_o show_v you_o how_o untrue_a this_o part_n of_o your_o assertion_n advantage_n a_o few_o of_o that_o opinion_n be_v no_o advantage_n be_v as_o also_o the_o rest_n that_o follow_v withal_o to_o confirm_v what_o be_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n ill_n give_v you_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o most_o erudite_fw-la author_n leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la a_o grecian_a bear_v and_o one_o better_a verse_v in_o author_n leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la a_o most_o learned_a author_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n than_o we_o islander_n can_v be_v so_o remote_a from_o it_o sir_n believe_v it_o have_v you_o red_a one_o only_a book_n of_o this_o author_n i_o will_v now_o quote_v it_o to_o say_v nothing_o of_o his_o other_o work_n chief_o contra_fw-la hottingerum_fw-la you_o will_v never_o have_v write_v this_o 6._o chapter_n against_o purgatory_n for_o he_o do_v not_o only_o ride_v out_o of_o the_o way_n those_o vulgar_a objection_n you_o propose_v not_o one_o i_o be_o sure_a be_v omit_v but_o also_o acquit_n himself_o of_o far_o great_a and_o as_o behoove_v a_o scholar_n so_o strong_o maintain_v our_o catholic_n verity_n by_o undeniable_a principle_n that_o none_o shall_v hereafter_o speak_v probable_o against_o it_o 7._o to_o the_o matter_n therefore_o now_o in_o hand_n leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la in_o his_o book_n entitle_v de_n utriusque_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la occidentalis_fw-la &_o orientalis_n perpetuâ_fw-la in_o dogmate_fw-it de_fw-fr purgatorio_fw-la consensione_n print_v at_o rome_n anno_fw-la 1655._o and_o dedicate_v to_o pope_n alexander_n the_o vii_o page_n 243._o n._n 34._o which_o begin_v hic_fw-la vero_fw-la paululum_fw-la immorandum_fw-la declare_v out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n what_o the_o greek_n think_v of_o purgatory_n latin_n the_o dispute_n concern_v purgatory_n fire_n between_o the_o greek_n and_o the_o latin_n fire_n what_o persuasion_n they_o be_v wrought_v into_o after_o much_o dispute_v have_v with_o the_o latin_n and_o final_o with_o what_o judgement_n they_o return_v into_o greece_n cum_fw-la ferrarae_n say_v he_o adhuc_fw-la synodus_fw-la esset_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o the_o synod_n be_v yet_o at_o ferrara_n the_o 4._o of_o june_n the_o question_n of_o purgatory_n fire_n be_v propound_v the_o latin_n show_v first_o that_o such_o soul_n as_o have_v venial_a sin_n be_v purge_v by_o a_o purgatory_n fire_n receive_v help_n and_o be_v free_v from_o those_o pain_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o priest_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n assert_v what_o the_o latin_n assert_v of_o the_o mass_n alm_n give_v and_o other_o pious_a work_n 2._o that_o the_o soul_n of_o saint_n be_v in_o heaven_n present_a to_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o there_o enjoy_v all_o happiness_n therefore_o they_o distinguish_v three_o different_a place_n of_o the_o just_a in_o heaven_n of_o the_o damn_a in_o hell_n and_o of_o a_o three_o sort_n suffer_v in_o purgatory_n till_o all_o be_v satisfy_v for_o the_o greek_n say_v alatius_fw-la hear_v what_o be_v allege_v by_o the_o latin_n out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o father_n say_v they_o will_v return_v a_o answer_n to_o every_o particular_a therefore_o on_o the_o 14._o of_o june_n bessario_n the_o nicene_n metropolitan_a give_v in_o write_v the_o greek_n answer_v what_o the_o greek_n answer_v opinion_n and_o expound_v that_o passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n contrary_a to_o the_o sentiment_n of_o the_o latin_n yet_o confess_v the_o greek_n hold_v a_o temporal_a punishment_n due_a to_o soul_n not_o perfect_o purge_v and_o that_o these_o go_v in_o locum_fw-la tenebricosum_fw-la fire_n the_o greek_n acknowledge_v a_o place_n of_o punishment_n though_o not_o by_o fire_n locum_fw-la moeroris_fw-la into_o a_o dark_a place_n of_o grief_n of_o sorrow_n and_o pain_n yea_o and_o be_v free_v from_o that_o torment_n by_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o priest_n and_o charitable_a alm_n deed_n but_o still_o he_o say_v the_o torment_n be_v not_o by_o fire_n the_o difference_n therefore_o between_o the_o greek_n and_o latin_n be_v that_o those_o confess_v a_o place_n of_o pain_n and_o sorrow_n sed_fw-la non_fw-la per_fw-la ignem_fw-la not_o by_o fire_n the_o latin_n contrary_a stand_v for_o a_o purgatory_n by_o fire_n all_o this_o pass_v before_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n and_o therefore_o you_o see_v how_o untrue_a your_o assertion_n be_v viz._n that_o the_o greek_n allow_v not_o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a with_o any_o respect_n to_o a_o deliverance_n of_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n pain_n for_o here_o the_o contrary_n be_v profess_v by_o they_o again_o whereas_o you_o say_v the_o greek_n believe_v not_o that_o any_o greek_n more_o mistake_v concern_v the_o greek_n soul_n enjoy_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n in_o heaven_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n alatius_fw-la page_n 245._o fine_a plain_o contradict'_v you_o affirm_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n believe_v the_o contrary_a although_o he_o add_v nonnulle_v esse_fw-la there_o be_v some_o church_n the_o opinion_n of_o some_o be_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n of_o that_o opinion_n but_o the_o voice_n of_o some_o few_o i_o hope_v give_v we_o not_o the_o sentiment_n of_o their_o whole_a church_n at_o last_o say_v my_o author_n page_n 246._o after_o much_o contention_n and_o delay_v make_v by_o the_o greek_n a_o whole_a day_n long_o from_o morning_n till_o six_o at_o night_n they_o meet_v again_o the_o 27._o of_o julij_fw-la and_o debate_v be_v end_v firmarunt_fw-la they_o establish_v this_o truth_n sanctorum_fw-la animas_fw-la ut_fw-la animas_fw-la judgement_n the_o greek_n grant_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n to_o soul_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n ad_fw-la perfectam_fw-la pervenisse_fw-la beatitudinem_fw-la in_o resurrectione_n tamen_fw-la perfectiorem_fw-la consecuturas_fw-la cum_fw-la propriis_fw-la corporibus_fw-la fulgebunt_fw-la ut_fw-la sol_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o the_o soul_n of_o saint_n come_v to_o perfect_a happiness_n yet_o in_o the_o resurrection_n they_o be_v to_o enjoy_v a_o more_o perfect_a felicity_n because_o of_o their_o body_n when_o these_o shall_v shine_v like_o the_o sun_n etc._n etc._n final_o in_o the_o 25._o and_o last_o session_n three_o thing_n be_v conclude_v the_o first_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o saint_n be_v perfect_o happy_a quoad_fw-la animas_fw-la the_o second_o soul_n of_o great_a sinner_n be_v endless_o miserable_a now_o for_o the_o three_o state_n of_o soul_n which_o they_o call_v medea_n they_o vote_v difficulty_n the_o last_o decision_n of_o both_o difficulty_n such_o to_o be_v in_o a_o place_n of_o torment_n but_o contend_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v fire_n darkness_n or_o any_o like_a grievous_a torment_n and_o these_o they_o say_v after_o a_o perfect_a purgation_n be_v to_o enter_v in_o the_o society_n of_o the_o bless_a and_o see_v the_o very_a essence_n of_o god_n sine_fw-la ullo_fw-la medio_fw-la that_o be_v immediate_o to_o confirm_v both_o these_o verity_n he_o produce_v the_o last_o profession_n of_o faith_n which_o joseph_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n constantinople_n the_o profession_n of_o faith_n make_v by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n make_v of_o this_o subject_n in_o these_o few_o but_o pithy_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o confess_v a_o a_o purgatory_n of_o soul_n and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n be_v not_o divide_v upon_o any_o account_n of_o purgatory_n final_o page_n 249._o alatius_fw-la recount_v with_o what_o judgement_n the_o greek_n return_v concern_v home_o with_o what_o judgement_n the_o greek_n return_v home_o purgatory_n which_o appear_v say_v he_o by_o their_o ritual_n it_o be_v that_o soul_n not_o perfect_o cleanse_v be_v purge_v in_o a_o place_n of_o torment_n and_o receive_v benefit_n by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n as_o be_v now_o declare_v 8._o it_o will_v be_v a_o long_a work_n to_o prosecute_v all_o that_o our_o learned_a author_n have_v of_o this_o subject_a whoever_o desire_v more_o may_v read_v he_o chief_o from_o the_o first_o page_n to_o the_o 42._o where_o he_o show_v first_o the_o mistake_v of_o some_o writer_n that_o think_v the_o greek_n absolute_o deny_v purgatory_n and_o with_o these_o sir_n you_o may_v rank_n purgatory_n how_o some_o latin_n be_v beguile_v that_o say_v the_o greek_n absolute_o deny_v purgatory_n your_o unquoted_a author_n pag._n 640._o but_o alatius_fw-la disrank_n they_o all_o declare_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o error_n and_o show_v how_o they_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o write_n of_o some_o schismatical_a grecian_n who_o authority_n say_v he_o avail_n as_o little_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n deny_v purgatory_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v now_o cite_v luther_n calvin_n or_o ochinus_n and_o believe_v they_o when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o recount_v the_o suppose_a error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n stulte_fw-la enim_fw-la
ancient_a orthodox_n church_n of_o the_o jew_n undeniable_o profess_v and_o believe_v this_o doctrine_n none_o can_v gainsay_v the_o proposition_n principle_n the_o consent_n of_o act_n church_n a_o strong_a principle_n the_o minor_a be_v as_o certain_a for_o no_o authority_n under_o heaven_n plain_a scripture_n except_v can_v be_v great_a than_o the_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o curche_n no_o contrary_a judgement_n be_v able_a to_o struggle_v with_o so_o much_o strength_n therefore_o put_v the_o case_n first_o you_o will_v so_o the_o supposition_n hold_v not_o the_o facto_fw-la for_o no_o father_n teach_v so_o have_v what_o i_o will_v say_v better_o evidence_v upon_o a_o supposition_n that_o more_o than_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n shall_v express_o deny_v a_o purgatory_n whilst_o all_o church_n teach_v the_o contrary_n suppose_v second_o that_o god_n shall_v command_v i_o to_o believe_v the_o one_o or_o other_o and_o that_o which_o prudence_n evident_o tell_v we_o i_o be_v the_o most_o supposition_n what_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o upon_o the_o supposition_n credible_a i_o be_o oblige_v if_o i_o proceed_v rational_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o church_n because_o it_o be_v evident_o the_o strong_a proof_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o father_n authority_n therefore_o i_o be_o bind_v much_o more_o to_o yield_v my_o assent_n now_o when_o all_o church_n affirm_v the_o doctrine_n and_o not_o one_o father_n deny_v it_o and_o our_o very_a adversary_n must_v say_v as_o much_o as_o i_o prove_v for_o do_v not_o they_o own_o the_o holy_a book_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n how_o consequent_o assert_v sect_n 〈…〉_o es_fw-ge must_v grant_v what_o be_v now_o assert_v they_o proceed_v i_o dispute_v not_o because_o all_o christian_a church_n in_o the_o world_n do_v so_o if_o therefore_o that_o authority_n be_v warrant_n enough_o for_o a_o bible_n it_o be_v as_o weighty_a for_o the_o doctrine_n we_o stand_v for_o and_o this_o be_v my_o conclusion_n perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v very_o objection_n a_o objection_n many_o among_o the_o schismatical_a church_n deny_v a_o purgatory_n contra._n and_o very_o many_o also_o deny_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n you_o admit_v of_o do_v this_o make_v the_o bible_n of_o less_o esteem_n among_o you_o know_v therefore_o we_o speak_v here_o of_o church_n authority_n and_o not_o of_o doctrine_n schismatic_n recede_v from_o a_o church_n weaken_v not_o the_o church_n doctrine_n schismatical_a party_n recede_v from_o those_o respective_a church_n whereof_o they_o be_v once_o member_n know_v also_o that_o the_o self-opinion_n of_o such_o partisan_n be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o the_o sentiment_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n against_o they_o you_o may_v reply_v again_o we_o be_v now_o force_v to_o make_v use_n of_o schismatical_a church_n to_o defend_v our_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n answer_n no_o such_o matter_n we_o need_v not_o their_o help_n but_o say_v salutem_fw-la ex_fw-la inimicis_fw-la nostris_fw-la when_o adversary_n agree_v with_o we_o in_o a_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o advantage_n to_o our_o cause_n witness_n upon_o this_o account_n be_v multiply_v et_fw-la vox_fw-la populi_fw-la vox_fw-la dei_fw-la if_o advantage_n the_o number_n of_o withness_n for_o a_o truth_n give_v some_o advantage_n all_o teach_v as_o we_o do_v it_o be_v certain_a we_o profess_v no_o erroneous_a doctrine_n at_o least_o the_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o sectary_n have_v place_n who_o value_n so_o much_o of_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o heterodox_n christian_n we_o care_v not_o for_o more_o beside_o the_o greek_a church_n when_o it_o be_v most_o orthodox_n pray_v for_o the_o dead_a in_o a_o state_n of_o sufferance_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v 3._o weigh_v now_o well_o the_o reason_n pro_fw-la and_o con._n weigh_v reason_n pro_fw-la and_o con_v be_v weigh_v all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n defend_v a_o purgatory_n that_o be_v a_o place_n wherein_o soul_n be_v temporal_o punish_v no_o church_n repute_v orthodox_n ever_o deny_v it_o i_o say_v more_o no_o schismatical_a church_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o church_n contradict_v that_o doctrine_n therefore_o our_o profess_a faith_n be_v undoubted_o certain_a upon_o this_o very_a ground_n or_o if_o it_o be_v not_o one_o may_v call_v the_o primary_n article_n of_o our_o faith_n into_o question_n and_o principle_n the_o parallel_n all_o and_o none_o a_o clear_a conviction_n the_o second_o principle_n thus_o you_o have_v the_o first_o parallel_n all_o church_n stand_v for_o our_o affirmative_a no_o church_n defend'_v the_o contrary_a negative_a of_o sectary_n a_o most_o evident_a conviction_n a_o powerful_a proof_n against_o this_o heresy_n 4._o the_o second_o principle_n be_v s._n augustine_n know_v doctrine_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la contra_fw-la donatistas_n lib._n 4._o c._n 24._o quod_fw-la universa_fw-la tenet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la nec_fw-la consiliis_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n hold_v and_o be_v not_o first_o institute_v by_o council_n tradition_n what_o all_o believe_v be_v apostolical_a tradition_n but_o ever_o in_o use_n and_o retain_v recte_fw-la creditur_fw-la be_v right_o believe_v to_o be_v no_o other_o but_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n pray_v for_o soul_n depart_v with_o intention_n to_o free_v they_o from_o a_o temporal_a punishment_n the_o greek_n the_o latin_n and_o the_o ancient_a hebrew_n pray_v so_o as_o be_v already_o prove_v and_o this_o have_v no_o first_o rise_v from_o any_o decree_n terment_n no_o sectary_n can_v say_v when_o the_o church_n first_o begin_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a suffer_v terment_n of_o council_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o truth_n alatius_fw-la further_o demonstrat'_v upon_o several_a occasion_n ponder_v therefore_o thing_n impartial_o and_o ask_v now_o what_o tradition_n have_v sectary_n for_o their_o negative_a the_o dead_a be_v not_o assist_v by_o prayer_n they_o have_v none_o they_o be_v here_o put_v to_o silence_n for_o neither_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o of_o any_o part_n of_o it_o repute_a orthodox_n ever_o favour_v their_o opinion_n or_o deliver_v what_o they_o teach_v make_v then_o the_o comparison_n all_o tradition_n be_v for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n parallel_n the_o parallel_n and_o nothing_o like_o tradition_n for_o the_o contrary_a heresy_n all_o and_o nothing_o make_v a_o strange_a parallel_n and_o so_o it_o be_v at_o present_a 5._o the_o three_o principle_n many_o ancient_a and_o learned_a father_n so_o interpret_v those_o know_a passage_n of_o holy_a principle_n scripture_n interprrt_v by_o father_n a_o three_o principle_n scripture_n usual_o allege_v for_o a_o proof_n of_o purgatory_n that_o scripture_n itself_o speak_v what_o the_o church_n teach_v not_o one_o father_n give_v such_o a_o sense_n to_o scripture_n as_o may_v ground_n a_o positive_a or_o absolute_a denial_n of_o purgatory_n i_o can_v insist_v upon_o all_o take_v for_o a_o instance_n that_o one_o passage_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o he_o shall_v so_o yet_o be_v save_v as_o by_o fire_n and_o know_v that_o beside_o those_o learned_a note_n of_o bellarmin_n upon_o the_o text_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr purg._n cap._n 5._o and_o the_o bellarmin_n bellarmin_n father_n there_o quote_v most_o significant_o express_v the_o catholic_n sense_n leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la produce_v other_o and_z page_z alatius_fw-la leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la 311._o cites_n manuel_n caleca_n a_o more_o modern_a author_n lib._n 4._o contra_fw-la graecos_n who_o say_v the_o place_n can_v be_v understand_v of_o hell_n fire_n for_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o a_o fire_n whereby_o soul_n be_v save_v which_o be_v not_o the_o fire_n of_o hell_n but_o a_o purge_v reason_n manuel_n caleca_n his_o reason_n fire_n and_o by_o this_o they_o be_v to_o pass_v to_o happiness_n and_o so_o much_o the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o per_n which_o insinuate_v a_o pass_o strong_o signify_v thus_o caleca_n who_o have_v much_o more_o to_o our_o purpose_n it_o be_v true_a some_o author_n think_v the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o fire_n of_o tribulation_n other_o though_o less_o probable_o of_o the_o last_o burn_v of_o the_o purgatory_n no_o father_n make_v scripture_n to_o deny_v a_o purgatory_n world_n but_o no_o father_n make_v the_o text_n or_o any_o other_o of_o scripture_n positive_o exclusive_a of_o purgatory_n for_o this_o be_v no_o consequence_n we_o be_v to_o pass_v through_o tribulation_n and_o the_o fire_n also_o at_o the_o judgement_n day_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v no_o penalty_n to_o be_v endure_v in_o a_o three_o place_n here_o you_o have_v a_o other_o parallel_n most_o learned_a father_n interpret_v parallele_v the_o parallele_v scripture_n conformable_o to_o the_o church_n doctrine_n not_o one_o positive_o favour_v the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o sectary_n judge_v you_o therefore_o and_o cast_v as_o it_o be_v into_o a_o balance_n the_o express_a sentiment_n of_o many_o against_o
none_o and_o see_v where_o the_o great_a weight_n lie_v 6._o the_o four_o principle_n be_v the_o express_a doctrine_n of_o principle_n the_o four_o principle_n father_n themselves_o as_o well_o greek_n as_o latin_a whether_o it_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n on_o tradition_n or_o both_o matter_n not_o at_o present_a here_o we_o only_o appeal_v to_o the_o their_o positive_a doctrine_n to_o transcribe_v all_o they_o have_v say_v on_o this_o subject_n will_v be_v a_o long_a work_n bellarmin_n now_o cite_v cap._n 10._o have_v many_o leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la add_v other_o doctrine_n greek_n author_n favour_v the_o church_n doctrine_n greek_a author_n as_o well_o orthodox_n as_o of_o schismatical_a from_o his_o 57_o page_n there_o you_o have_v gennadius_n the_o patriarch_n st._n epiphanius_n express_v to_o our_o purpose_n s._n chrysostom_n hom._n 69._o ad_fw-la populum_fw-la and_o s._n damascen_n both_o approve_v and_o praise_v s._n chrysostoms_n doctrine_n eustrati●s_v priest_n of_o constantinople_n michaël_n glycas_n a_o schismatic_a eugenicus_n nomophilax_n adversus_fw-la synodum_fw-la florentinam_fw-la meletius_n alexandrinus_n epistolâ_fw-la ad_fw-la chios_n who_o say_v express_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o ground_v also_o in_o scripture_n to_o hold_v that_o the_o dead_a have_v great_a assistance_n by_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o live_n but_o let_v we_o return_v to_o the_o more_o know_a authority_n of_o father_n s._n denis_n or_o some_o other_o grave_a author_n eccles_n hierarch_n cap_n 7._o part_n 3._o say_v that_o chrysostom_n dionysius_n s._n cyril_n of_o hi●r_n s._n chrysostom_n the_o venerable_a prelate_n pray_v over_o the_o dead_a to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o his_o have_v commit_v through_o human_a frailty_n may_v be_v forgive_v he_o say_v i_o beseech_v you_o what_o signify_v this_o remission_n of_o sin_n obtainable_a by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o prelate_n s._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n mystag_n 5._o we_o make_v prayer_n and_o offer_v up_o the_o dreadful_a sacrifice_n on_o the_o altar_n for_o the_o dead_a believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mighty_a help_n for_o their_o soul_n what_o can_v be_v more_o plain_a popery_n s._n chrysostom_n hom._n 21._o in_o acta_fw-la alatius_fw-la quote_v the_o word_n in_o his_o own_o language_n which_o begin_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n god_n say_v he_o have_v lay_v open_a to_o we_o many_o way_n to_o salvation_n oblation_n dead_a oblation_n and_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a prayer_n and_o alm_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o thing_n vain_o do_v in_o their_o behalf_n no_o they_o be_v institute_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o will_n be_v that_o we_o endeavour_v to_o help_v one_o a_o other_o be_v most_o assure_v the_o dead_a have_v much_o profit_n by_o our_o orison_n the_o saint_n have_v more_o to_o this_o purpose_n in_o his_o 41._o hom._n upon_o the_o first_o of_o the_o corr._n theodoret_n cite_v by_o alatius_fw-la page_n 71._o lib._n 5._o histor_n cap._n 36._o tell_v we_o us_o that_o theodosius_n the_o young_a lay_v prostrate_a at_o the_o relic_n of_o s._n chrysostom_n pra_v for_o the_o soul_n of_o his_o decease_a parent_n arcadius_n and_o eudoxi●_n that_o god_n will_v grant_v they_o pardon_v for_o their_o offence_n etc._n etc._n alatius_fw-la beside_o these_o cite_v theophylact_v s._n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n metaphrastes_n and_o other_o greek_a author_n you_o have_v the_o latin_a father_n large_o quote_v by_o bellarmin_n supra_fw-la cap._n 10._o and_o their_o word_n be_v so_o plain_a for_o our_o doctrine_n also_o the_o latin_a father_n accord_n also_o special_o s._n augustine_n that_o none_o without_o violence_n can_v draw_v they_o to_o any_o other_o sense_n then_o what_o the_o church_n teach_v most_o sure_o you_o will_v now_o expect_v that_o sectary_n answer_v we_o with_o like_a measure_n and_o give_v in_o lieu_n of_o these_o testimony_n brief_o hint_v at_o other_o as_o clear_a and_o significant_a for_o their_o opinion_n and_o this_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o when_o beside_o the_o allege_a authority_n we_o have_v a_o ample_n ancient_a and_o learned_a church_n that_o speak_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o father_n and_o teach_v the_o very_a doctrine_n they_o deliver_v but_o all_o be_v contrary_a 7._o i_o will_v tell_v you_o a_o great_a truth_n and_o it_o be_v worth_a a_o serious_a reflection_n sectary_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o ancient_a father_n greek_a or_o latin_a not_o one_o ancient_a writer_n author_n sectary_n want_v of_o author_n repute_v orthodox_n not_o one_o council_n new_a or_o old_a not_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n that_o either_o positive_o and_o express_o deny_v a_o purgatory_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a or_o the_o relief_n we_o now_o plead_v for_o afford_v they_o in_o a_o place_n of_o punishment_n what_o not_o one_o no._n parallel_n parallel_n the_o parallel_n therefore_o many_o with_o none_o and_o you_o will_v se_fw-mi what_o foundation_n our_o adversary_n novelty_n stand_v on_o i_o say_v express_o and_o positive_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o sectary_n procede_v as_o well_o in_o this_o as_o in_o other_o controversy_n argue_v sectary_n way_n of_o argue_v here_o they_o will_v first_o be_v upon_o you_o with_o their_o negative_a way_n of_o argue_v we_o read_v no_o such_o word_n as_o purgatory_n in_o the_o ancient_a father_n 2._o you_o may_v have_v a_o company_n of_o blind_a inference_n draw_v from_o scripture_n and_o father_n before_o the_o sense_n of_o either_o be_v agree_v know_v they_o make_v deduction_n from_o scripture_n before_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v know_v on_o 3._o as_o far_o as_o conjecture_n can_v reach_v they_o will_v set_v gloss_n enough_o upon_o the_o best_a testimony_n allegeable_a out_o of_o scripture_n or_o father_n etc._n etc._n but_o mark_v it_o all_o this_o while_o you_o have_v nothing_o express_v nothing_o positive_a and_o significant_a against_o we_o and_o do_v they_o think_v that_o a_o mere_a negative_a argument_n have_v force_n enough_o to_o overthrow_v a_o doctrine_n positive_o profess_v by_o a_o whole_a church_n and_o so_o many_o learned_a father_n can_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o their_o inference_n force_v from_o scripture_n or_o father_n be_v of_o any_o validity_n whilst_o the_o very_a sense_n of_o both_o lie_n under_o dispute_n take_v for_o a_o instance_n instance_n a_o instance_n that_o of_o s._n john_n apocal._n 14._o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a that_o dye_n in_o our_o lord_n amodo_fw-la from_o hence_o forth_o they_o rest_v from_o their_o labour_n the_o question_n be_v what_o amodo_fw-la relate_v to_o whether_o to_o the_o day_n of_o every_o man_n death_n or_o to_o the_o last_o judgement_n day_n whether_o the_o scripture_n speak_v there_o of_o perfect_a soul_n only_o or_o of_o other_o what_o be_v mean_v by_o that_o word_n labour_v for_o if_o it_o signify_v the_o sufferance_n and_o persecution_n of_o this_o present_a life_n the_o text_n prove_v nothing_o for_o our_o adversary_n notwithstanding_o all_o these_o doubt_n undecided_a their_o inference_n go_v on_o and_o it_o be_v that_o s._n john_n here_o exclude_v all_o sufferance_n in_o purgatory_n alas_o such_o deduction_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o oppose_v deduction_n weak_a deduction_n a_o express_a own_a doctrine_n all_o over_o the_o world_n as_o be_v now_o prove_v yet_o you_o have_v no_o better_o from_o these_o man_n nothing_o express_v nothing_o open_o significant_a against_o we_o 8._o i_o touch_v in_o the_o last_o place_n on_o sectary_n gloss_n and_o interpretation_n force_v on_o such_o testimony_n as_o be_v usual_o cite_v for_o our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o here_o proceed_v how_o different_o catholic_n and_o sectary_n proceed_v i_o will_v brief_o discover_v not_o only_o their_o cheat_n but_o moreover_o show_v you_o how_o different_o we_o and_o they_o proceed_v as_o well_o in_o this_o present_a controversy_n as_o in_o all_o other_o dispute_v between_o we_o observe_v well_o the_o truth_n be_v thus_o when_o we_o produce_v scripture_n council_n or_o father_n against_o their_o novelty_n they_o make_v their_o own_o interpretation_n to_o be_v the_o last_o and_o sure_a ground_n whereon_o explicate_v the_o sectary_n make_v the_o last_o ground_n of_o his_o opinion_n to_o be_v his_o own_o explication_n the_o catholic_n have_v his_o religion_n prove_v before_o he_o explicate_v their_o maintain_v opinion_n ultimate_o rely_v contrariwise_o the_o catholic_n never_o interpret_n scripture_n or_o father_n allege_v by_o sectary_n but_o he_o ground_n his_o gloss_n on_o a_o sure_a principle_n than_o his_o sole_a explication_n reach_v to_o i_o will_v explicate_v myself_o more_o clear_o by_o one_o instance_n beside_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o church_n and_o all_o other_o society_n call_v christian_n we_o allege_v for_o example_n st._n denis_n his_o testimony_n st._n chrysostoms_n or_o any_o other_o to_o prove_v that_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a avail_n much_o for_o their_o comfort_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n that_o be_v for_o the_o lessen_v of_o the_o pain_n due_a to_o sin_n
retort_v can_v you_o assert_v that_o he_o rather_o make_v it_o a_o thought_n of_o his_o own_o fancy_n than_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n all_o you_o say_v be_v he_o declare_v it_o not_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o i_o answer_v he_o declare_v it_o not_o to_o be_v a_o thought_n of_o his_o own_o fancy_n if_o then_o you_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v his_o fancy_n because_o he_o declare_v it_o not_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n i_o may_v as_o lawful_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n mistake_n the_o mistake_n because_o he_o declare_v it_o not_o to_o be_v his_o own_o fancy_n in_o a_o word_n your_o principle_n be_v a_o mistake_n for_o the_o father_n in_o their_o learned_a volume_n often_o speak_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o ever_o say_v not_o express_o it_o be_v so_o and_o they_o often_o also_o touch_v on_o opinative_a doctrine_n yet_o cry_v not_o always_o out_o this_o be_v opinion_n only_o no_o but_o suppose_v both_o know_v by_o other_o principle_n without_o their_o express_a declaration_n you_o cite_v st._n austin_n in_o the_o next_o page_n assert_v in_o several_a place_n that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n i_o doubt_v much_o of_o that_o word_n clear_o and_o of_o the_o several_a place_n too_o but_o this_o be_v not_o objection_n st._n austin_n say_v express_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n very_a difficil_n to_o be_v understand_v in_o scripture_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o oper_n c._n 15._o the_o doubt_v it_o of_o st._n augustine_n assertion_n not_o of_o scripture_n itself_o a_o better_a rule_n a_o second_o objection_n what_o i_o aim_n at_o my_o question_n be_v whether_o st._n austin_n declare_v himself_o plain_o in_o those_o several_a place_n that_o his_o assertion_n be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n if_o he_o do_v not_o according_a to_o your_o rule_n it_o be_v a_o thought_n of_o his_o fancy_n only_o and_o therefore_o make_v nothing_o for_o your_o purpose_n well_o after_o all_o here_o be_v a_o better_a rule_n when_o the_o father_n deliver_v a_o doctrine_n conformable_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n you_o may_v right_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n though_o they_o express_o declare_v not_o so_o much_o in_o their_o writing_n 13._o you_o say_v 2._o that_o can_v be_v look_v on_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o such_o person_n who_o express_v their_o doubt_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o but_o upon_o our_o enquiry_n into_o the_o father_n we_o shall_v find_v say_v you_o the_o first_o person_n who_o seem_v to_o assert_v that_o any_o faithful_a soul_n pass_v through_o a_o fire_n of_o purgation_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n be_v st._n austin_n but_o he_o deliver_v his_o judgement_n with_o so_o much_o fear_n and_o hesitancy_n that_o any_o one_o may_v see_v he_o be_v far_o from_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o prove_v this_o hesitancy_n you_o quote_v two_o place_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la c._n 16._o purgatory_n st._n austin_n be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o hold_v purgatory_n and_o enchir._n c._n 69._o i_o answer_v first_o you_o have_v not_o make_v a_o diligent_a enquiry_n into_o the_o father_n if_o you_o think_v st._n austin_n be_v the_o first_o that_o hold_v a_o fire_n of_o purgation_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o contrary_n be_v manifest_a by_o the_o authority_n cite_v above_o i_o say_v 2._o this_o learned_a purgatory_n he_o deliver_v no_o doubtful_a doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n father_n deliver_v no_o doubtful_a judgement_n of_o purgatory_n but_o plain_o assert_v it_o i_o say_v 3._o your_o two_o place_n prove_v not_o that_o he_o doubt_v of_o it_o and_o to_o make_v this_o clear_a you_o know_v the_o whole_a drift_n of_o st._n austin_n both_o in_o this_o 16._o chapter_n and_o the_o precedent_n be_v only_o to_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n dark_a explicate_v st._n augustine_n drift_n explicate_v word_n 1._o cor._n 3._o and_o not_o to_o define_v whether_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n or_o no._n this_o therefore_o be_v his_o main_a intent_n he_o first_o reject_n the_o opinion_n of_o other_o and_o incline_v much_o to_o the_o affirmative_a viz._n that_o the_o place_n prove_v purgatory_n but_o not_o certain_o hereupon_o follow_v what_o you_o cite_v sive_fw-la ergo_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la vita_fw-la tantum_fw-la homines_fw-la word_n his_o word_n ista_fw-la patiuntur_fw-la etc._n etc._n whether_o therefore_o man_n suffer_v these_o thing_n in_o this_o life_n or_o such_o judgement_n follow_v they_o after_o this_o life_n non_fw-la abhorret_fw-la quantum_fw-la arbitror_fw-la à_fw-la ratione_fw-la veritatis_fw-la iste_fw-la intellectus_fw-la huius_fw-la sententiae_fw-la that_o be_v in_o plain_a english_a such_o a_o understanding_n of_o this_o passage_n be_v no_o way_n text._n he_o think_v such_o a_o punishment_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o text._n as_o i_o conceive_v contrary_a to_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o s._n paul_n word_n which_o be_v to_o say_v i_o think_v a_o punishment_n be_v prove_v by_o this_o scripture_n either_o now_o or_o hereafter_o yet_o be_o not_o certain_a and_o therefore_o those_o next_o word_n follow_v verumt_a amen_o etiamsi_fw-la est_fw-la alius_fw-la qui_fw-la mihi_fw-la non_fw-la occurrit_fw-la yet_o there_o may_v perhaps_o be_v another_o sense_n of_o they_o which_o now_o occurr'_v not_o to_o i_o different_a to_o doubt_v of_o purgatory_n and_o to_o doubt_v whether_o such_o a_o scripture_n prove_v it_o be_v different_a etc._n etc._n now_o sir_n be_v please_v to_o reflect_v it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o doubt_v of_o a_o purgatory_n in_o itself_o and_o another_o to_o doubt_v whether_o it_o can_v be_v well_o prove_v out_o of_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n st._n augustine_n quantum_fw-la arbitror_fw-la or_o hesitancy_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o word_n iste_fw-la intellectus_fw-la huius_fw-la sententiae_fw-la and_o etiamsi_fw-la sit_fw-la alius_fw-la etc._n etc._n make_v only_o his_o proof_n doubtful_a without_o give_v the_o least_o hint_n of_o any_o doubt_n relate_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n itself_o it_o often_o fall_v out_o in_o philosophy_n and_o divinity_n that_o a_o doctrine_n be_v certain_a yet_o some_o argument_n whereby_o it_o be_v prove_v be_v except_v against_o as_o proofle_n or_o less_o valid_a 14._o to_o solve_v the_o other_o place_n enchir_n c._n 69._o note_n first_o note_v a_o principle_n of_o st._n austin_n to_o be_v note_v a_o principle_n of_o st._n austin_n who_o as_o we_o read_v tom._n 10._o serm_n 41._o de_fw-la sanctis_fw-la thought_n that_o some_o lesser_a sin_n as_o too_o much_o love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o such_o like_a be_v so_o usual_o purge_v by_o tribulation_n in_o this_o world_n ut_fw-la in_o futuro_fw-la ille_fw-la ignis_fw-la purgatorius_fw-la aut_fw-la non_fw-la inveniat_fw-la aut_fw-la certè_fw-la parum_fw-la inveniat_fw-la quod_fw-la exurat_fw-la that_o in_o the_o next_o life_n the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n will_v find_v either_o nothing_o or_o very_o little_a to_o punish_v but_o say_v the_o saint_n si_fw-mi nec_fw-la in_o tribulatione_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o in_o our_o tribulation_n we_o neither_o give_v god_n thanks_o nor_o redeem_v our_o sin_n by_o good_a work_n ipsi_fw-la tamdiu_fw-la in_o illo_fw-la igne_fw-la purgatorio_fw-la moras_fw-la habebimus_fw-la we_o shall_v stay_v in_o purgatory_n till_o those_o lesser_a sin_n be_v consume_v like_o hay_n and_o stubble_n and_o by_o the_o way_n note_v here_o also_o what_o judgement_n st._n austin_n have_v of_o purgatory_n word_n the_o connexion_n of_o st._n augustine_n word_n in_o the_o second_o place_n consider_v well_o the_o connexion_n of_o st._n augustine_n word_n in_o the_o precedent_n chap._n 68_o quia_fw-la urit_fw-la eum_fw-la rerum_fw-la dolour_n etc._n etc._n because_o the_o grief_n he_o have_v for_o the_o thing_n he_o love_v torment_v he_o and_o what_o follow_v cap._n 69._o tale_n aliquid_fw-la etiam_fw-la fieri_fw-la post_fw-la hanc_fw-la vitam_fw-la incredibile_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v not_o incredible_a that_o such_o alike_a punishment_n be_v after_o this_o life_n what_o be_v not_o incredible_a thus_o much_o difficulty_n solve_v the_o difficulty_n that_o as_o some_o be_v punish_v in_o this_o life_n by_o a_o present_a grief_n for_o their_o too_o much_o affection_n to_o worldly_a commodity_n so_o it_o be_v not_o incredible_a that_o some_o also_o suffer_v a_o torment_n in_o the_o future_a purge_a flame_n upon_o that_o account_n et_fw-la utrum_fw-la ita_fw-la sit_fw-la quaeri_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o we_o may_v inquire_v say_v he_o whether_o such_o a_o particular_a punishment_n be_v find_v in_o purgatory_n viz._n that_o by_o how_o much_o more_o or_o less_o man_n love_v these_o transitory_a good_n of_o the_o world_n tanto_fw-la tardius_fw-la citiusque_fw-la saluari_fw-la so_o much_o soon_o or_o late_a they_o come_v to_o heaven_n which_o last_o word_n plain_o give_v we_o st._n augustine_n meaning_n and_o prove_v that_o he_o doubt_v not_o of_o purgatory_n for_o he_o suppose_v
will_v not_o insist_v much_o on_o their_o high_a contempt_n of_o these_o sacred_a word_n which_o in_o a_o vulgar_a and_o obvious_a sense_n be_v as_o fall_v as_o if_o i_o shall_v now_o say_v hold_v a_o paper_n in_o my_o hand_n this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o this_o i_o must_v urge_v to_o their_o confusion_n and_o wish_v all_o to_o tak●_n notice_n of_o it_o if_o the_o interpretation_n now_o make_v of_o the_o proposition_n be_v true_a doctrine_n it_o evident_o follow_v that_o christ_n speak_v so_o contrary_a to_o his_o speak_v sectary_n must_v say_v that_o christ_n beguile_v the_o whole_a orthodox_n christian_n world_n by_o the_o most_o serious_a word_n he_o ever_o speak_v mind_n that_o he_o have_v beguile_v the_o whole_a orthodox_n christian_n world_n by_o the_o most_o serious_a word_n he_o ever_o utter_v in_o this_o mortal_a life_n i_o will_v show_v you_o how_o christ_n say_v sectary_n before_o he_o speak_v those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n have_v only_o this_o internal_a act_n or_o judgement_n in_o his_o mind_n that_o which_o i_o will_v now_o give_v to_o my_o disciple_n shall_v be_v nothing_o but_o bread_n only_o or_o a_o bare_a sign_n and_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n for_o sectary_n suppose_v he_o never_o intend_v to_o make_v bread_n his_o body_n yet_o hear_v how_o they_o make_v christ_n to_o speak_v as_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o thought_n i_o will_v say_v eternal_a truth_n though_o i_o know_v that_o that_o shall_v be_v bread_n only_o which_o i_o be_o to_o give_v my_o disciple_n presence_n mark_v the_o injury_n they_o make_v christ_n to_o say_v that_o be_v his_o body_n which_o real_o be_v not_o three_o thing_n evident_a in_o the_o principle_n of_o sectary_n the_o first_o that_o christ_n speak_v improper_o the_o second_o that_o in_o the_o moment_n he_o speak_v he_o foresee_v a_o universal_a pretend_a error_n will_v follow_v in_o all_o orthodox_n church_n the_o three_o that_o this_o universal_a pretend_a error_n will_v proceed_v from_o no_o other_o cause_o but_o from_o his_o improper_a speak_n all_o church_n orthodox_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n so_o unlucky_o express_v myself_o by_o outward_a word_n as_o to_o miscall_v the_o sign_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o avouch_v that_o to_o be_v my_o body_n which_o real_o shall_v not_o be_v my_o body_n but_o be_v here_o all_o no._n christ_n intend_v more_o in_o these_o man_n opinion_n and_o say_v in_o effect_n thus_o much_o though_o i_o now_o foresee_v that_o a_o universal_a error_n will_v follow_v through_o all_o the_o repute_a orthodox_n church_n of_o christendom_n upon_o my_o dark_a and_o improper_a language_n yet_o i_o will_v speak_v as_o i_o do_v obscure_o and_o beguile_v they_o i_o know_v all_o will_v be_v beguile_v because_o all_o will_v mistake_v my_o mean_v and_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v my_o body_n which_o real_o be_v not_o thus_o i_o foresee_v they_o will_v err_v and_o the_o very_a emphasis_n of_o my_o word_n will_v cause_n this_o now_o pretend_v universal_a error_n among_o them_o therefore_o they_o can_v but_o leave_v off_o to_o be_v orthodox_n for_o a_o church_n err_v in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n or_o that_o adore_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n for_o god_n be_v absolute_o vnorthodox_n and_o hideous_o fals._n sectary_n you_o see_v grant_v that_o christ_n speak_v thus_o dark_o and_o that_o by_o do_v so_o he_o have_v draw_v all_o the_o repute_a true_a church_n on_o earth_n into_o this_o persuasion_n be_v a_o most_o evident_a truth_n for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o church_n acknowledge_v true_a in_o the_o world_n but_o such_o as_o literal_o understand_v his_o proposition_n in_o its_o plain_n and_o obvious_a sense_n and_o consequent_o all_o church_n believe_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o his_o sacred_a body_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n though_o sectary_n say_v all_o err_v in_o that_o belief_n i_o say_v all_o for_o so_o lanfrancus_fw-la speak_v in_o his_o last_o book_n against_o berengarius_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-fr christianos_n se_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la &_o dici_fw-la laetantur_fw-la all_o who_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o reality_n and_o name_n of_o christian_n glory_n in_o this_o that_o they_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o true_a flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n ask_v of_o all_o whether_o grecian_n armenian_n or_o of_o what_o other_o nation_n soever_o vno_fw-la ore_fw-la hanc_fw-la fidem_fw-la se_fw-la testantur_fw-la babere_fw-la all_o of_o they_o with_o vnanimous_a consent_n open_o witness_n that_o they_o have_v this_o faith_n now_o if_o our_o adversary_n slight_v so_o worthy_a a_o author_n let_v they_o produce_v but_o one_o as_o ancient_n and_o learned_a as_o lanfrancus_fw-la be_v that_o say_v as_o much_o for_o the_o own_n of_o their_o novelty_n of_o a_o trope_n sign_n figure_n only_o etc._n etc._n and_o i_o will_v be_v satisfy_v 11._o and_o here_o we_o come_v to_o the_o last_o trial_n of_o our_o sectary_n cause_v which_o be_v to_o show_v you_o the_o high_a improbability_n of_o their_o new_a fancy_v opinion_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o drive_v they_o of_o all_o possible_a ground_n to_o stand_v on_o and_o demonstrate_v that_o opinion_n the_o last_o trial_n of_o our_o sectary_n cause_n which_o be_v to_o lay_v forth_o the_o improbability_n of_o their_o new_a opinion_n they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o likelihood_n of_o any_o undoubted_a principle_n whereby_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n speak_v improper_o in_o the_o passage_n now_o quote_v or_o that_o his_o word_n have_v any_o other_o sense_n then_o what_o they_o express_o signify_v which_o be_v our_o catholic_n doctrine_n chap._n vi_o sectary_n without_o either_o proof_n or_o principle_n wrest_v christ_n word_n to_o a_o improper_a sense_n and_o vent_v a_o heresy_n upon_o mere_a fancy_n 1._o note_n first_o when_o christ_n our_o lord_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n and_o use_v the_o like_a or_o more_o significant_a expression_n register_v by_o the_o other_o evangelist_n he_o do_v not_o only_a institute_n the_o noble_a of_o sacrament_n but_o make_v also_o his_o will_n and_o testament_n he_o publish_v a_o law_n verity_n the_o nature_n of_o a_o noble_a sacrament_n christ_n own_o will_n a_o dogmatical_a verity_n give_v a_o command_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la do_v this_o at_o least_o all_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o deliver_v a_o dogmatical_a verity_n concern_v our_o christian_a faith_n and_o do_v this_o in_o such_o grave_a circumstance_n and_o to_o such_o person_n his_o own_o dear_a disciple_n that_o the_o time_n place_n and_o person_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v require_v no_o dark_a but_o most_o plain_a and_o proper_a language_n as_o therefore_o no_o man_n make_v his_o last_o language_n and_o other_o grave_a circumstance_n require_v plain_a and_o proper_a language_n will_n publish_v a_o law_n lay_v a_o express_a command_n on_o any_o or_o deliver_v a_o truth_n which_o all_o be_v to_o learn_v under_o trope_n figure_n metonymy_n or_o such_o obscurity_n thief_n have_v place_n in_o the_o dark_a speak_v of_o prophet_n and_o serve_v well_o to_o set_v forth_o a_o oration_n but_o contrariwise_o in_o obvious_a vulgar_a and_o intelligible_a word_n so_o much_o less_o can_v it_o be_v suppose_v when_o christ_n our_o lord_n speak_v of_o these_o serious_a matter_n that_o he_o deliver_v his_o mind_n in_o obscure_a metaphor_n trope_n or_o any_o such_o expression_n unless_o as_o i_o note_v above_o we_o certain_o know_v by_o more_o writ_n christ_n can_v not_o speak_v so_o obscure_o of_o this_o mystery_n without_o clear_v all_o in_o other_o passage_n of_o holy_a writ_n plain_a scripture_n then_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v now_o cite_v that_o though_o he_o beguile_v we_o here_o with_o trope_n and_o metaphor_n yet_o in_o other_o passage_n of_o holy_a writ_n he_o clear'_v all_o these_o dark_a expression_n by_o a_o contrary_a language_n and_o speak_v more_o significant_o for_o these_o sign_n of_o sectary_n than_o he_o do_v for_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n unless_o i_o say_v such_o text_n be_v at_o hand_n nothing_o can_v force_v we_o from_o that_o express_a sense_n which_o the_o gospel_n most_o significant_o deliver_n concern_v this_o mystery_n 2._o note_v 2._o sectary_n advance_v their_o cause_n nothing_o at_o all_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o word_n est_fw-la sometime_o signify_v though_o the_o particle_n est_fw-fr in_o some_o proposition_n may_v be_v interpret_v it_o signify_v import_v as_o much_o as_o if_o we_o say_v signify_v as_o when_o you_o see_v a_o picture_n of_o caesar_n on_o a_o wall_n and_o say_v this_o be_v caesar_n the_o seed_n be_v signify_v the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n can_v this_o be_v prove_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o more_o be_v require_v for_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v and_o by_o a_o vndeniable_a principle_n if_o my_o faith_n rely_v on_o their_o gloss_n
change_n wherefore_o with_o all_o certainty_n let_v we_o take_v this_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o his_o body_n be_v give_v thou_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o his_o blood_n be_v give_v thou_o under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n although_o sense_n tell_v thou_o otherwise_o yet_o let_v faith_n confirm_v thou_o in_o this_o truth_n above_o you_o have_v the_o most_o of_o they_o in_o bellarmin_n and_o the_o other_o author_n name_v above_o that_o which_o appear_v bread_n be_v not_o bread_n though_o it_o seem_v so_o to_o the_o taste_n but_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o which_o appear_v wine_n be_v not_o wine_n as_o the_o taste_n judge_n it_o to_o be_v but_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o consecrate_a bread_n be_v not_o a_o figure_n only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o very_a deify_v body_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v supernatural_o change_v or_o transmade_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n christ_n be_v carry_v in_o his_o own_o hand_n to_o the_o exterior_a sense_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v bread_n but_o know_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o your_o understanding_n that_o it_o be_v my_o body_n not_o a_o other_o but_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o death_n for_o you_o other_o father_n say_v the_o same_o body_n be_v on_o the_o altar_n know_v if_o any_o doubt_n of_o these_o authority_n i_o oblige_v myself_o to_o quot●_n the_o place_n exact_o now_o only_o omit_v because_o they_o be_v vulgar_o know_v which_o be_v in_o heaven_n the_o same_o blood_n be_v in_o the_o chalice_n which_o issue_v out_o of_o our_o saviour_n side_n he_o give_v we_o that_o very_a flesh_n wherein_o he_o walk_v here_o to_o be_v eat_v to_o salvation_n it_o be_v the_o same_o flesh_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o suffer_v for_o our_o sin_n which_o be_v on_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n this_o body_n we_o receive_v and_o eat_v with_o our_o mouth_n and_o have_v it_o mingle_v with_o our_o body_n 9_o thus_o the_o worthy_a father_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n speak_v and_o as_o i_o say_v just_a now_o neither_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n nor_o any_o modern_a catholic_n can_v speak_v more_o significant_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o doctrine_n we_o all_o profess_v i_o say_v also_o no_o ancient_a father_n ever_o express_v trinity_n the_o expression_n of_o father_n as_o significant_a for_o this_o mystery_n as_o for_o a_o trinity_n themselves_o with_o great_a energy_n when_o they_o treat_v of_o that_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o sacred_a trinity_n which_o sectary_n joint_o believe_v with_o we_o then_o these_o have_v don_n in_o the_o present_a mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n i_o appeal_v to_o our_o adversary_n own_o conscience_n and_o ask_v whether_o they_o can_v contradict_v i_o if_o they_o do_v i_o must_v tell_v they_o they_o can_v think_v it_o or_o if_o they_o serious_o judge_v so_o their_o judgement_n because_o contrary_a to_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v weightles_a and_o final_o resolve_v come_v to_o no_o declare_v sectary_n may_v with_o great_a ease_n deny_v any_o christian_a verity_n than_o this_o mystery_n they_o be_v at_o least_o oblige_v to_o match_v we_o with_o equal_a proof_n the_o catholic_n principle_n brief_o declare_v more_o but_o fancy_n i_o have_v tell_v they_o often_o in_o this_o treatis_fw-la that_o any_o heterodox_n may_v with_o great_a ease_n and_o lesser_a violence_n offer_v either_o to_o scripture_n or_o the_o most_o primitive_a father_n turn_v off_o all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v for_o the_o proof_n of_o any_o christian_a verity_n than_o they_o be_v able_a to_o enervate_v the_o plain_a word_n of_o christ_n and_o father_n now_o allege_v for_o this_o mystery_n 10._o be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v our_o adversary_n if_o they_o will_v yet_o wilful_o run_v on_o in_o a_o heresy_n be_v at_o least_o oblige_v to_o stand_v on_o equal_a term_n with_o we_o to_o give_v we_o proof_n for_o proof_n weight_n for_o weight_n measure_v for_o measure_n here_o be_v our_o principle_n we_o have_v plain_a and_o express_a scripture_n for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n they_o have_v not_o a_o word_n we_o plead_v our_o cause_n by_o a_o constant_a and_o never_o interrupt_v tradition_n they_o have_v none_o we_o have_v a_o renown_a ample_n and_o most_o learned_a catholic_n church_n which_o both_o believe_v and_o teach_v this_o catholic_n doctrine_n they_o have_v neither_o orthodox_n church_n nor_o chapel_n that_o teach_v or_o talk_v seven_o hundred_o year_n ago_o of_o their_o trope_n and_o figure_n only_o we_o have_v the_o general_n consent_v of_o father_n they_o have_v only_a patch_n and_o fragment_n weigh_v out_o of_o their_o circumstance_n for_o their_o condemn_a opinion_n we_o have_v miracle_n clear_a and_o vndeniable_a miracle_n which_o confirm_v our_o doctrine_n principle_n sectary_n want_v all_o these_o proof_n and_o principle_n both_o ancient_a father_n and_o modern_a doctor_n recount_v they_o who_o can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v wilful_o damn_v their_o soul_n by_o oblige_a posterity_n to_o believe_v imposture_n upon_o misinformation_n they_o have_v neither_o miracle_n nor_o sign_n but_o the_o empty_a sign_n of_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n for_o their_o too_o long_o know_v and_o as_o long_o since_o decry_v heresy_n final_o and_o here_o be_v a_o sad_a thought_n for_o sectary_n if_o ever_o heresy_n be_v in_o the_o sectary_n a_o sad_a thought_n f●r_a sectary_n world_n this_o of_o they_o be_v or_o never_o any_o deserve_v that_o name_n at_o least_o all_z the_o mark_n all_o the_o sign_n all_o the_o character_n of_o heresy_n follow_v it_o that_o can_v be_v imagine_v it_o be_v a_o late_o find_v out_o and_o a_o new_a invent_v heresy_n what_o mark_v and_o sign_n accompany_v this_o heresy_n opinion_n the_o chief_a author_n of_o it_o berengarius_fw-la no_o saint_n i_o will_v promise_n you_o be_v know_v the_o time_n when_o and_o the_o place_n where_o it_o begin_v the_o few_o follower_n it_o then_o have_v the_o trouble_v it_o cause_v among_o orthodox_n believer_n the_o opposition_n make_v against_o it_o the_o trial_n the_o examination_n the_o sentence_n and_o condemnation_n of_o it_o be_v know_v and_o all_o upon_o record_n almost_o every_o catholic_n author_n that_o handle_v this_o subject_a assert_n and_o prove_v what_o i_o say_v by_o vndeniable_a history_n can_v our_o new_a man_n allege_v but_o half_a as_o much_o against_o our_o catholic_n proof_n can_v sectary_n say_v but_o half_a as_o much_o against_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n can_v they_o weaken_v it_o by_o one_o of_o these_o proof_n doctrine_n can_v they_o point_v out_o the_o first_o broacher_n of_o this_o popery_n can_v they_o name_v the_o place_n the_o time_n of_o its_o first_o rise_n or_o tell_v we_o what_o orthodox_n church_n after_o a_o severe_a examination_n condemn_v it_o they_o may_v take_v courage_n speak_v bold_o and_o well_o hope_v to_o drive_a we_o of_o our_o principle_n but_o when_o we_o find_v they_o vnaccountable_a in_o these_o particular_n and_o see_v evident_o they_o can_v look_v one_o of_o these_o difficulty_n in_o the_o face_n nor_o hint_n probably_n at_o the_o least_o sign_n of_o any_o novelty_n in_o our_o doctrine_n when_o again_o we_o reflect_v how_o easy_a just_o they_o may_v cavil_v more_o just_o their_o tenent_n be_v to_o sense_n and_o we_o contrary_a very_a difficil_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o hidden_o creep_v into_o the_o world_n without_o clamour_n against_o it_o when_o we_o serious_o consider_v that_o both_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a church_n though_o now_o at_o variance_n in_o other_o point_n yet_o well_o agree_v probable_o but_o nothing_o be_v speak_v probable_o in_o one_o profession_n of_o faith_n concern_v this_o mystery_n final_o when_o we_o know_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n whereof_o many_o be_v and_o be_v no_o less_o profound_o learned_a then_o eminent_a in_o sanctity_n have_v notwithstanding_o the_o opposition_n make_v by_o sectary_n believe_v as_o we_o do_v to_o this_o day_n and_o die_v in_o verity_n other_o confirmation_n of_o our_o catholic_n verity_n that_o belief_n we_o may_v hope_v to_o silence_n these_o man_n hereafter_o and_o well_o conclude_v that_o our_o doctrine_n which_o stand_v sure_a on_o christ_n plain_a word_n which_o the_o strong_a pillar_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n uphold_v which_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n yet_o defend_v and_o no_o orthodox_n church_n ever_o oppose_v which_o indubitable_a miracle_n have_v confirm_v and_o none_o deny_v but_o know_v and_o profess_a enemy_n of_o truth_n we_o may_v i_o say_v right_o conclude_v that_o our_o faith_n be_v ancient_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o true_a and_o that_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o sectary_n be_v a_o mere_a fancy_v novelty_n and_o therefore_o fall_v and_o heretical_a 11._o we_o
be_v give_v for_o you_o they_o answer_v no._n it_o be_v not_o his_o body_n but_o a_o sign_n only_o of_o his_o body_n give_v for_o we_o observe_v well_o this_o interpretation_n of_o a_o sign_n only_o be_v a_o gloss_n of_o fancy_n for_o neither_o the_o word_n sign_n be_v in_o scripture_n nor_o a_o sign_n only_o be_v any_o ancient_a father_n we_o cite_v again_o that_o unanswerable_a text_n of_o st._n luke_n this_o be_v the_o chalice_n the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o chalice_n be_v shed_v for_o you_o and_o mark_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o relate_v to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o case_n and_o not_o to_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o a_o different_a case_n what_o answer_v our_o sectary_n marry_o beza_n tell_v we_o we_o st._n luke_n here_o either_o speak_v a_o solacism_n or_o a_o marginal_a note_n cre'pt_v by_o chance_n into_o the_o text_n here_o be_v his_o best_a solution_n and_o who_o tell_v we_o mr._n beza_n so_o but_o his_o own_o fancy_n we_o produce_v moreover_o those_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n brief_o hint_v at_o above_o and_o say_v no_o wit_n of_o man_n can_v solve_v they_o chief_o that_o authority_n of_o st._n cyril_n of_o wine_n change_v into_o blood_n as_o water_n be_v once_o change_v into_o wine_n they_o answer_v the_o change_n be_v only_o moral_a of_o wine_n depute_a to_o a_o holy_a use_n which_o be_v against_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o instance_n and_o consequent_o a_o strong_a thought_n of_o fancy_n we_o say_v no_o universal_a tradition_n no_o ancient_a church_n ever_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n concern_v this_o mystery_n herein_o our_o ad_fw-la 〈…〉_o rsary_n be_v silence_v and_o can_v design_n the_o orthodox_n church_n that_o oppose_v our_o doctrine_n as_o both_o we_o and_o the_o whole_a world_n beside_o now_o oppose_v their_o novelty_n parallel_v therefore_o the_o proceed_n of_o sectary_n against_o we_o authority_n a_o parallel_n between_o their_o proceed_v and_o we_o sectary_n mangle_v and_o pervert_v most_o clear_a authority_n with_o we_o against_o they_o and_o you_o will_v find_v they_o to_o stand_v upon_o quicksand_n without_o principle_n the_o very_a strait_n they_o be_v put_v to_o demonstrat_n this_o evident_o whilst_o as_o you_o have_v see_v they_o mangle_v pervert_v misconstrue_v and_o gloss_n every_o clear_a authority_n cite_v against_o they_o and_o we_o on_o the_o other_o side_n candid_o admit_v both_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n quote_v by_o they_o without_o any_o other_o gloss_n but_o what_o the_o very_a text_n and_o context_n of_o the_o testimony_n allow_v of_o 5._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o you_o always_o have_v our_o adversary_n proof_n sectary_n bold_a in_o assert_v but_o weak_a at_o their_o proof_n bold_a in_o assert_v but_o cold_a unmanly_a and_o weak_a at_o their_o proof_n beside_o what_o be_v now_o say_v the_o true_a reason_n be_v no_o proof_n can_v touch_v much_o less_o vainquish_v a_o verity_n that_o stand_v firm_a upon_o undeniable_a principle_n plain_a scripture_n the_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n undeniable_a be_v what_o our_o catholic_n proof_n be_v tradition_n the_o authority_n of_o a_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n and_o this_o negative_a no_o church_n ever_o blame_v our_o doctrine_n be_v strong_a support_v for_o the_o faith_n we_o profess_v and_o can_v our_o sectary_n who_o be_v as_o scriptureles_a as_o fatherless_a as_o fatherless_a as_o churchles_a and_o final_o destitute_a of_o all_o other_o principle_n think_v to_o dant_fw-la u_fw-mi with_o a_o few_o gleancing_n gather_v them_o sectary_n can_v deny_v them_o now_o out_o of_o this_o now_o out_o of_o that_o ancient_a writter_n when_o they_o evident_o see_v with_o their_o eye_n the_o whole_a torrent_n of_o antiquity_n contrary_n to_o they_o can_v they_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o because_o one_o theodoret_n for_o example_n authority_n of_o theodoret_n authority_n say_v the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o the_o sanctification_n recede_v not_o from_o their_o nature_n but_o remain_v in_o their_o first_o substance_n figure_n and_o form_n be_v see_v and_o touch_v as_o before_o which_o word_n be_v literal_o true_a if_o we_o speak_v as_o word_n we_o admit_v of_o his_o word_n this_o author_n do_v of_o the_o visible_a accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n can_v we_o i_o say_v think_v that_o this_o one_o authority_n though_o it_o be_v a_o hundred_o time_n more_o difficil_n have_v weight_n enough_o to_o turn_v the_o scale_n force_v enough_o to_o drive_v we_o from_o the_o faith_n which_o scripture_n church_n and_o father_n most_o manifest_o deliver_v it_o be_v impossible_a clear_a the_o obscure_a place_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n be_v to_o be_v interpret_v by_o the_o clear_a all_o know_v when_o divine_n explicate_v scripture_n or_o father_n they_o interpret_v the_o obscure_a passage_n by_o the_o clear_a and_o never_o make_v the_o dark_a place_n to_o give_v light_n to_o the_o more_o evident_a observe_v now._n theodoret_n say_v the_o mystical_a sign_n recede_v not_o from_o their_o nature_n but_o remain_v as_o before_o i_o say_v so_o too_o the_o only_a difficulty_n be_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o the_o word_n sign_n and_o father_n sectary_n gloss_n without_o proof_n theodoret_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o contradict_v other_o most_o learned_a father_n he_o be_v to_o be_v explicate_v be_v he_o obscure_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o other_o father_n nature_n sectary_n tell_v we_o the_o sense_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n recede_v not_o from_o their_o true_a substance_n first_o this_o be_v their_o gloss_n without_o proof_n for_o the_o visible_a sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o the_o invisible_a substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 2._o theodoret_n in_o all_o law_n of_o argue_v when_o his_o plain_a word_n force_v not_o on_o we_o this_o sense_n of_o sectary_n aught_o to_o be_v catholick_o interpret_v and_o have_v we_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o this_o that_o it_o can_v be_v reason_n to_o make_v so_o learned_a a_o father_n though_o once_o he_o stray_v a_o little_a to_o clash_n with_o all_o antiquity_n it_o be_v enough_o at_o most_o his_o word_n be_v doubtful_a and_o upon_o that_o account_n capable_a of_o explication_n be_v it_o not_o therefore_o more_o just_a to_o explicate_v they_o by_o the_o clear_a and_o vndeniable_a doctrine_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n and_o other_o father_n then_o to_o draw_v these_o father_n from_o their_o open_a and_o manifest_a sense_n to_o his_o if_o it_o be_v suppose_v obscure_a as_o in_o truth_n well_o ponder_v it_o be_v not_o let_v reason_n judge_n here._n 6._o by_o what_o be_v say_v already_o we_o may_v well_o pity_v the_o desperate_a condition_n of_o sectary_n who_o pertinacious_o defend_v a_o heresy_n without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o colour_n of_o principle_n sectary_n want_v principle_n scripture_n church_n or_o the_o general_n consent_v of_o father_n for_o these_o principle_n and_o none_o can_v parallel_v they_o most_o evident_o fail_v our_o adversary_n urge_v they_o again_o and_o again_o to_o speak_v more_o pertinent_o to_o their_o cause_n then_o be_v don_n hitherto_o you_o get_v nothing_o but_o the_o old_a story_n tell_v over_o again_o and_o it_o will_v never_o be_v better_o for_o i_o se_fw-mi too_o plain_o their_o humour_n it_o be_v god_n know_v appear_v sectary_n tri_n and_o wherein_o it_o appear_v to_o spend_v or_o rather_o to_o misspend_v their_o whole_a life_n and_o labour_n in_o trifle_n they_o think_v to_o cavil_v at_o the_o proof_n of_o our_o doctrine_n establish_v they_o as_o if_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v their_o novelty_n good_a because_o they_o can_v talk_v against_o our_o ancient_a faith_n just_a as_o if_o one_o to_o prove_v himself_o a_o honest_a man_n may_v do_v it_o pithy_o by_o call_v his_o neighbour_n a_o knave_n 7._o i_o must_v yet_o add_v one_o significant_a word_n more_o and_o it_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o lay_v forth_o our_o adversary_n weakness_n as_o well_o in_o this_o as_o in_o all_o other_o controversy_n observe_v opponent_n solid_n proof_n for_o a_o doctrine_n stand_v firm_a and_o unshaken_a against_o all_o opponent_n it_o when_o proof_n of_o a_o doctrine_n stand_v on_o solid_a ground_n and_o principle_n the_o objection_n against_o it_o be_v like_o father_n cast_v against_o the_o wind_n forceles_a and_o return_v upon_o the_o opponent_n to_o their_o confusion_n whereof_o i_o think_v you_o have_v already_o see_v enough_o in_o this_o present_a controversy_n but_o contrariwise_o when_o the_o proof_n be_v meager_a barren_a and_o void_a of_o strength_n they_o be_v ever_o so_o with_o sectary_n the_o very_o opposite_a principle_n for_o truth_n dash_v all_o discountenance_n all_o and_o evident_o show_v those_o argument_n to_o be_v feeble_a and_o true_o will_v our_o convince_v do_v sectary_n proceed_v candid_o they_o will_v see_v themselves_o convince_v adversary_n once_o deal_v ingenious_o candour_n will_v
force_v they_o to_o acknowledge_v what_o i_o say_v to_o be_v most_o true_a when_o they_o can_v allege_v nothing_o probable_o for_o their_o novelty_n against_o our_o plain_a scripture_n against_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o a_o universal_a learned_a church_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o so_o many_o father_n now_o cite_v 8._o we_o may_v yet_o entertain_v you_o with_o one_o or_o two_o solve_v difficult_a ●_o draw_v from_o the_o weak_a reason_n of_o sectary_n solve_v difficulty_n more_o draw_v from_o reason_n whereat_o our_o adversary_n measure_v god_n power_n by_o their_o own_o wit_n or_o fancy_n stumble_v not_o a_o little_a one_o be_v a_o body_n can_v be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o just_o so_o the_o peasant_n think_v the_o sun_n can_v be_v big_a than_o a_o broad_a sieve_n because_o never_o learn_v mathematik_n he_o measure_v all_o by_o his_o silly_a imagination_n and_o so_o the_o sectary_n do_v here_o because_o he_o be_v no_o scholar_n in_o christ_n school_n but_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la who_o tell_v we_o he_o that_o a_o body_n can_v be_v in_o two_o place_n at_o once_o have_v god_n reveal_v this_o in_o scripture_n place_n nit●her_n faith_n nor_o philosophy_n against_o the_o be_v of_o a_o body_n in_o two_o place_n no_o but_o philosophy_n teach_v it_o what_o philosophy_n aristotle_n no_o for_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o his_o school_n be_v that_o a_o body_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o a_o soul_n that_o be_v in_o two_o place_n head_n and_o foot_n at_o once_o individual_o consider_v by_o itself_o be_v no_o more_o actual_o it_o be_v own_o local_a presence_n or_o place_n then_o the_o organ_n of_o the_o eye_n be_v of_o itself_o its_o own_o actual_a vision_n or_o fire_n ungrounded_a a_o body_n be_v not_o by_o itself_o it_o be_v own_o local_a presence_n an_o other_o argument_n of_o sectary_n ungrounded_a by_o itself_o actual_o heat_n this_o be_v common_a philosophy_n if_o that_o of_o sectary_n be_v better_a let_v they_o vouchsafe_v to_o learn_v we_o otherwise_o not_o by_o say_v it_o be_v better_a but_o by_o some_o clear_a and_o vndeniable_a principle_n 9_o an_o other_o argument_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o great_a indignity_n whereunto_o christ_n sacred_a body_n be_v liable_a if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n as_o that_o a_o mouse_n or_o worse_a creature_n may_v eat_v it_o up_o etc._n etc._n here_o we_o may_v just_o exclaim_v with_o st._n austin_n upon_o another_o occasion_n lib._n 22._o de_fw-la civit._fw-la c._n 11._o ecce_fw-la qualibus_fw-la argumentis_fw-la omnipotentiae_fw-la dei_fw-la humana_fw-la contradicit_fw-la infirmitas_fw-la etc._n etc._n se_fw-la with_o what_o slight_a argument_n man_n weak_a wit_n oppose_v god_n omnipotency_n speak_v therefore_o truth_n be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a frivolous_a the_o pretend_a indignity_n of_o sectary_n show_v frivolous_a indignity_n that_o christ_n permitt'_v a_o sinner_n to_o receive_v he_o with_o a_o filthy_a conscience_n then_o that_o he_o lic_v in_o the_o stomach_n of_o a_o rat_n or_o mouse_n say_v yet_o have_v a_o worm_n suke_v his_o precious_a blood_n when_o it_o be_v shed_v on_o the_o ground_n in_o his_o passion_n or_o a_o spider_n bite_v his_o sacred_a flesh_n in_o the_o crib_n of_o bethlem_n will_v that_o indignity_n think_v you_o have_v force_v man_n from_o a_o belief_n of_o his_o real_a true_a body_n these_o be_v childish_a argument_n not_o worth_a the_o answer_v and_o here_o you_o have_v almost_o a_o end_n of_o a_o digression_n which_o i_o think_v can_v be_v well_o answer_v 10._o i_o exceed_v not_o in_o say_v it_o can_v be_v answer_v answer_n some_o point_n brief_o touch_v on_o whereunto_o sectary_n be_v desire_v to_o answer_n and_o therefore_o tell_v our_o adversary_n if_o it_o shall_v please_v they_o to_o reply_n they_o be_v first_o to_o prove_v and_o by_o certain_a principle_n that_o christ_n sacred_a word_n now_o allege_v for_o our_o catholic_n verity_n be_v misunderstand_v by_o we_o and_o aught_o to_o have_v their_o determinate_a sense_n of_o a_o sign_n figure_n metonymy_n and_o no_o other_o what_o we_o here_o require_v be_v most_o reasonable_a for_o if_o my_o faith_n fall_v upon_o their_o sense_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v it_o reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n otherwise_o principle_n upon_o sound_a principle_n contrary_a to_o all_o reason_n they_o will_v urge_v i_o to_o believe_v what_o a_o infinite_a verity_n never_o speak_v 2._o they_o be_v to_o prove_v and_o by_o a_o clear_a principle_n also_o that_o in_o such_o a_o age_n after_o christ_n there_o be_v a_o orthodox_n church_n that_o believe_v their_o doctrine_n of_o a_o sign_n figure_n metonymy_a only_a etc._n etc._n and_o public_o oppose_v we_o of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o do_v this_o more_o be_v require_v then_o to_o cite_v a_o few_o break_a sentence_n of_o father_n half_o abuse_v and_o whole_o proofle_n maim_a sentence_n of_o father_n proofle_n weigh_v out_o of_o their_o circumstance_n all_o which_o put_v together_o come_v not_o near_o to_o a_o probable_a much_o less_o to_o a_o certain_a principle_n that_o be_v able_a to_o evert_n the_o undeniable_a clear_a catholic_n doctrine_n of_o other_o father_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o our_o whole_a learned_a church_n with_o them_o 3._o they_o be_v not_o only_o to_o interpret_v the_o father_n now_o allege_v for_o fancy_n without_o proof_n may_v pervert_v the_o clear_a word_n god_n ever_o speak_v but_o when_o their_o interpretation_n interpretation_n when_o sectary_n interpret_v the_o father_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v their_o interpretation_n be_v make_v they_o must_v show_v it_o ground_v upon_o a_o contrary_a receive_a principle_n as_o strong_a as_o the_o express_a word_n of_o those_o father_n be_v 4._o they_o be_v to_o show_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n when_o he_o utter_v those_o sacred_a word_n to_o his_o disciple_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o then_o foresee_v the_o universal_a suppose_a error_n of_o believe_v his_o real_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n will_v follow_v in_o all_o orthodox_n church_n and_o from_o no_o other_o cause_n but_o his_o own_o express_a and_o significant_a speak_v they_o be_v i_o say_v oblige_v to_o prove_v and_o by_o a_o undeniable_a principle_n that_o he_o shut_v up_o in_o the_o clear_a proposition_n he_o ever_o utter_v that_o dark_a sense_n which_o they_o draw_v from_o it_o and_o that_o he_o do_v so_o to_o deceive_v the_o world_n sectary_n grant_v christian_n to_o have_v be_v universal_o deceive_v grant_n what_o sectary_n grant_n in_o their_o belief_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o that_o the_o suppose_a error_n arise_v from_o christ_n plain_a word_n be_v evident_a for_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n that_o believe_v this_o mystery_n do_v so_o because_o truth_n itself_o say_v plain_o without_o reserve_n this_o be_v my_o body_n final_o that_o christ_n our_o lord_n will_v speak_v as_o he_o do_v be_v manifest_a by_o the_o gospel_n and_o that_o he_o then_o foresee_v the_o suppose_a universal_a error_n will_v be_v also_o believe_v by_o force_n of_o his_o word_n in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n be_v most_o vndubitable_a because_o of_o the_o perfect_a knowledge_n he_o have_v of_o future_a thing_n 5._o may_v it_o please_v sectary_n to_o proceed_v candid_o they_o be_v to_o cast_v a_o serious_a reflection_n on_o passed_a age_n and_o ponder_v well_o who_o those_o be_v that_o patronize_v their_o doctrine_n and_o oppose_v we_o they_o be_v to_o compare_v and_o just_o to_o balance_n their_o obscure_a scripture_n with_o our_o clear_a text_n the_o weak_a testimony_n of_o their_o misconstrue_v father_n with_o our_o contrary_n now_o quote_v authority_n their_o novelty_n with_o our_o ancient_n believe_v faith_n the_o sentiment_n of_o their_o little_a late_a congregation_n concern_v this_o mystery_n with_o the_o judgement_n and_o belief_n of_o our_o long_a stand_a roman_a church_n etc._n etc._n and_o if_o when_o all_o be_v don_n they_o can_v come_v to_o a_o sound_a principle_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v to_o every_o rational_a man_n that_o their_o scripture_n father_n and_o church_n authority_n outweigh_v as_o it_o be_v we_o or_o have_v more_o force_n to_o establish_v their_o novelty_n than_o what_o be_v now_o allege_v to_o make_v our_o catholic_n doctrine_n most_o stable_o sure_a we_o will_v begin_v to_o think_v they_o may_v more_o laudable_o write_v controversy_n hereafter_o but_o if_o contrariwise_o you_o find_v they_o gravel_v at_o every_o difficulty_n now_o propose_v and_o hear_v nothing_o distinct_o reply_v to_o upon_o undoubted_a principle_n or_o further_o confute_v than_o a_o loose_a wander_a discourse_n will_v carry_v on_o a_o weak_a cause_n i_o will_v once_o more_o crave_v their_o pardon_n and_o plain_o say_v our_o argument_n and_o reason_n can_v be_v answer_v chap._n viii_o the_o conclusion_n the_o church_n evidence_n 1._o we_o have_v see_v enough_o in_o the_o precedent_n discourse_v that_o true_a religion_n be_v not_o as_o sectary_n make_v protestancy_n
like_o a_o dark_a lantern_n but_o one_o of_o the_o most_o moral_o manifest_v and_o evidence_v thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o reason_n teach_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o for_o if_o true_a worth_n ever_o show_v itself_o by_o real_a effect_n true_a worth_n be_v know_v by_o real_a effect_n sign_n and_o know_a effect_n so_o faith_n be_v discover_v by_o good_a work_n life_n by_o its_o vital_a operation_n the_o existency_n of_o a_o deity_n by_o the_o emanation_n of_o creature_n none_n can_v doubt_v but_o that_o god_n who_o desire_v all_o to_o be_v save_v have_v make_v that_o religion_n wherein_o salvation_n be_v have_v doctrine_n proof_n can_v be_v want_v to_o manifest_v the_o church_n wherein_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v st._n austin_n confirm's_n this_o doctrine_n most_o know_a and_o discernible_a by_o outward_a sign_n and_o vndubitable_a mark_n of_o truth_n therefore_o as_o we_o say_v above_o clear_a proof_n can_v be_v want_v whereby_o that_o be_v manifest_v which_o god_n will_v have_v know_v audistis_fw-la ejus_fw-la vocem_fw-la manifestissimam_fw-la they_o be_v word_n of_o st._n austin_n de_fw-fr vnit._fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la cap._n 25._o you_o have_v hear_v the_o most_o manifest_a voice_n of_o god_n not_o only_o by_o the_o law_n prophet_n and_o psalm_n but_o by_o his_o own_o sacred_a mouth_n commendantis_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la futuram_fw-la commend_v his_o future_a church_n to_o we_o all._n this_o church_n you_o have_v diffuse_v every_o where_o you_o see_v it_o like_o a_o city_n whereof_o he_o who_o build_v it_o say_v a_o city_n upon_o a_o mountain_n can_v be_v hid._n this_o be_v the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o in_o one_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o the_o donatist_n be_v in_o the_o south_n and_n our_o sectary_n now_o be_v in_o these_o northern_a climate_n sed_fw-la ubique_fw-la est_fw-la notissima_fw-la but_o it_o be_v manifest_a every_o where_n and_o if_o you_o ask_v by_o what_o sign_n evidence_v and_o show_v by_o what_o mark_v christ_n church_n be_v evidence_v it_o be_v know_v the_o saint_n answer_v lib._n de_fw-fr vtilit_fw-la cred._n c._n 17._o hoc_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la divina_fw-la providentiâ_fw-la this_o be_v don_n by_o providence_n by_o the_o oracle_n and_o before_o tell_v of_o prophet_n by_o the_o humanity_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o wearisome_a travail_n of_o his_o apostle_n by_o the_o reproach_n and_o contumely_n of_o martyr_n by_o their_o gibbet_n blood_n shed_v and_o bless_a death_n by_o the_o famous_a credibility_n st._n augustine_n motive_n of_o credibility_n know_a live_v of_o saint_n and_o among_o these_o so_o universal_a great_a virtue_n by_o most_o worthy_a miracle_n meet_o and_o upon_o fit_a occasion_n show_v we_o mark_v the_o sign_n he_o go_v on_o cum_fw-la igitur_fw-la tantum_fw-la auxilium_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o therefore_o we_o see_v so_o great_a aid_n and_o help_n afford_v by_o almighty_a god_n so_o much_o fruit_n and_o increase_n dubitamus_fw-la nos_fw-la ejus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gremio_fw-la christian_n they_o force_v reason_n to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o that_o church_n which_o show_v they_o it_o be_v pride_n and_o impiety_n not_o to_o give_v preeminence_n to_o such_o a_o church_n before_o other_o st._n austin_n defend_v not_o a_o religion_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n condere_fw-la etc._n etc._n shall_v we_o doubt_v to_o hide_v ourselves_o in_o the_o lap_n of_o that_o church_n which_o from_o the_o apostolical_a sea_n even_o to_o this_o public_a confession_n of_o mankind_n have_v get_v to_o such_o a_o height_n of_o authority_n by_o a_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n condemn_v heretic_n vain_o snarl_v at_o it_o partly_o also_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o people_n partly_o by_o the_o gravity_n and_o weight_n of_o council_n partly_o by_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o miracle_n cui_fw-la nolle_fw-la primas_fw-la dare_v vel_fw-la summae_fw-la profecto_fw-la impietatis_fw-la est_fw-la vel_fw-la praecipitis_fw-la arrogantiae_fw-la and_o not_o to_o give_v to_o this_o church_n the_o chief_a preeminence_n be_v in_o good_a earnest_a either_o a_o mighty_a wickedness_n or_o a_o stubborn_a and_o headstrong_a pride_n ponder_v these_o word_n well_o with_o the_o follow_v also_o and_o ask_v your_o own_o conscience_n what_o church_n that_o be_v for_o which_o st._n austin_n plead_v so_o strong_o do_v he_o speak_v for_o all_o who_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n no_o the_o impugn_a manichy_n be_v such_o and_o so_o be_v also_o the_o arian_n pelagian_o and_o other_o but_o these_o because_o of_o their_o vnevidence_v religion_n utter_o destitute_a of_o mark_n and_o motive_n he_o reject_v as_o schismatic_n protestant_n much_o less_o the_o then_o unknown_a novelty_n of_o protestant_n and_o heretic_n do_v he_o argue_v think_v you_o for_o our_o little_a late_a rise_v congregation_n of_o protestant_n no_o god_n know_v they_o have_v less_o of_o this_o evidence_n then_o the_o very_a arian_n have_v and_o beside_o be_v never_o think_v of_o in_o st._n augustine_n day_n 2._o the_o church_n therefore_o for_o which_o our_o profound_a church_n the_o saint_n plead_v for_o no_o other_o then_o for_o the_o ever_o visible_a holy_a and_o catholic_n roman_n church_n doctor_n speak_v and_o plead_v be_v a_o other_o society_n know_v to_o the_o world_n before_o heresy_n begin_v i_o mean_v the_o ever_o visible_a holy_a continue_a and_o catholic_n roman_n church_n wherinto_fw-la heresy_n just_o condemn_v never_o enter_v august_n tract_n 18._o in_o joannem_fw-la and_o whereof_o the_o prophet_n speak_v more_o fignificant_o then_o of_o christ_n himself_o aug._n in_o psal_n 30._o this_o church_n and_o this_o only_a have_v be_v manifest_v age_n after_o age_n by_o eminent_a sanctity_n by_o glorious_a miracle_n sign_n make_a evident_o credible_a by_o undoubted_a mark_n and_o sign_n by_o the_o bloodshede_v of_o martyr_n by_o a_o never_o interrupt_v succession_n of_o prelate_n pastor_n and_o people_n from_o st._n peter_n day_n to_o we_o and_o final_o by_o most_o learned_a and_o approve_v council_n this_o and_o this_o only_o be_v the_o church_n diffuse_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o which_o keep_v perfect_a unity_n in_o faith_n with_o one_o supreme_a head_n and_o so_o demonstrative_o evidence_v its_o antiquity_n that_o the_o worst_a of_o sectary_n be_v silence_v when_o they_o offer_v to_o cavil_v at_o it_o 3._o if_o you_o ponder_v well_o these_o vndeniable_a truth_n you_o sectary_n a_o conclusion_n against_o sectary_n must_v needs_o conclude_v against_o sectary_n as_o bless_v st._n austin_n once_o do_v against_o the_o manichean_o read_v he_o lib._n the_o util_a creden_fw-mi cap._n 14._o vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la tam_fw-la pauci_fw-la et_fw-la tam_fw-la turbulenti_fw-la et_fw-la tam_fw-la novi_fw-la nemini_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la quin_fw-la nihil_fw-la dignum_fw-la authoritate_fw-la praeferatis_fw-la there_o be_v no_o doubt_n say_v the_o saint_n but_o that_o you_o sectary_n so_o few_o st._n augustine_n pithy_a expression_n just_o agree_v to_o sectary_n th●y_v be_v few_o in_o number_n fearful_o divide_v and_o of_o a_o new_a faith_n st_o augustine_n word_n ponder_v with_o reflection_n on_o sectary_n innumerable_a witness_n against_o a_o few_o mean_o few_o who_o evidence_n nothing_o credible_a in_o your_o religion_n you_o so_o turbulent_a and_o consuse_v in_o your_o opinion_n concern_v faith_n you_o so_o new_o stranger_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n there_o be_v i_o say_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o you_o of_o so_o small_a authority_n can_v allege_v nothing_o worth_a the_o hear_n or_o worthy_a of_o credit_n when_o you_o oppugn_v our_o ancient_a church_n or_o defend_v your_o own_o so_o late_o invent_v novelty_n consider_v every_o word_n serious_o vos_fw-fr tam_fw-la pauci_fw-la what_o you_o so_o few_o you_o who_o see_v to_o your_o eternal_a discomfort_n so_o many_o nation_n so_o many_o people_n so_o many_o worthy_a prelate_n so_o many_o glorious_a martyr_n so_o many_o penitent_a sinner_n believe_v our_o ancient_a faith_n die_v in_o it_o and_o for_o it_o you_o who_o see_v so_o many_o miracle_n confirm_v it_o so_o many_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o it_o so_o many_o church_n erect_v so_o many_o university_n found_v so_o many_o prison_n sanctify_v so_o many_o danger_n run_v through_o so_o many_o work_v of_o piety_n don_n by_o the_o professor_n of_o this_o ancient_a church_n all_o be_v evident_a to_o your_o eye_n and_o sense_n vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la tam_fw-la pauci_fw-la and_o what_o can_v you_o so_o inconsiderable_o few_o not_o the_o hundred_o part_n in_o number_n who_o have_v don_n nothing_o like_o these_o zealous_a christian_n say_v for_o a_o novelty_n or_o probably_n plead_v against_o so_o learned_a so_o holy_a and_o so_o diffuse_v a_o christian_a society_n moreover_n vos_fw-fr tam_fw-la turbulenti_fw-la you_o so_o turbulent_a see_v in_o this_o ample_a moral_a catholic_n body_n innumerable_a secular_o though_o of_o different_a nation_n of_o different_a temper_n and_o education_n knit_v together_o in_o one_o ancient_a belief_n you_o see_v innumerable_a division_n unity_n stand_v against_o division_n profound_a doctor_n all_o
over_o christianity_n innumerable_a learned_a religious_a though_o various_a in_o matter_n mere_o opinative_a yet_o so_o high_o tender_a of_o the_o church_n unity_n that_o they_o will_v rather_o die_v than_o break_v or_o blemish_v it_o all_o these_o well_o agree_v heart_n in_o one_o faith_n evidence_n that_o this_o church_n be_v make_v up_o of_o member_n who_o glory_n in_o union_n among_o themselves_o and_o testify_v it_o by_o a_o due_a submission_n to_o one_o supreme_a head_n set_v over_o this_o bless_a society_n vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la tam_fw-la turbulenti_fw-la and_o what_o can_v you_o late_o troublesome_a people_n who_o yield_v submission_n to_o none_o but_o to_o your_o own_o fancy_n you_o who_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o narrow_a kingdom_n be_v so_o turbulent_o divide_v in_o faith_n so_o horrid_o rend_v and_o tear_v a_o piece_n with_o schism_n what_o can_v you_o i_o say_v allege_v for_o your_o breach_n of_o union_n or_o rational_o pretend_v against_o this_o long_a stand_v and_o ancient_a agree_v body_n of_o catholic_n 4._o final_o you_o so_o new_a men_n behold_v and_o it_o may_v lay_v sorrow_n at_o your_o heart_n innumerable_a of_o your_o own_o long_a since_o decease_a ancestor_n profess_a child_n of_o this_o mother_n church_n their_o monument_n even_o in_o novelty_n antiquity_n against_o novelty_n england_n sad_a spectacle_n it_o be_v true_a but_o visible_a enough_o to_o your_o eye_n plead_v strong_o for_o the_o ancient_a faith_n which_o you_o now_o unfortunate_o reject_v you_o see_v the_o very_a church_n build_v by_o those_o your_o forefather_n though_o in_o part_n deface_v be_v not_o yet_o so_o much_o spoil_a but_o that_o still_o a_o memory_n be_v preserve_v of_o catholic_n religion_n in_o the_o very_a altar_n half_o pull_v down_o in_o the_o cross_n and_o other_o remembrance_n of_o their_o ancient_a renown_a piety_n you_o see_v withal_o whole_a volume_n write_v in_o defense_n of_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n the_o very_a velume_v and_o character_n whereof_o much_o elder_a than_o your_o faith_n lament_v your_o late_a change_n and_o tell_v many_o a_o sad_a story_n of_o your_o new_a rise_v gospel_n vos_fw-fr ergo_fw-la tam_fw-la novi_fw-la and_o how_o dare_v you_o so_o late_a master_n without_o confusion_n and_o torment_n of_o conscience_n reflect_v on_o these_o ancestor_n look_v on_o these_o monument_n read_v these_o write_n and_o after_o all_o speak_v as_o you_o do_v irreverent_o of_o a_o ancient_a faith_n mere_o to_o countenance_v a_o novelty_n whereof_o the_o world_n never_o hear_v before_o you_o preach_v it_o say_v once_o plain_o it_o be_v high_a time_n to_o speak_v what_o have_v you_o for_o this_o protestancy_n any_o prudent_a motive_n that_o make_v it_o credible_a not_o one._n have_v you_o scripture_n not_o a_o word_n do_v ancient_a council_n or_o the_o vnanimous_a consent_n fancy_n nothing_o can_v defend_v protestancy_n but_o fancy_n of_o father_n favour_v it_o no._n all_o band_n against_o it_o and_o leave_v both_o you_o and_o the_o novelty_n profess_v by_o you_o to_o no_o better_a a_o ground_n than_o what_o vphold_n all_o heresy_n which_o be_v fancy_n or_o some_o thing_n worse_a than_o fancy_n therefore_o nemini_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la quin_fw-la nihil_fw-la dignum_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la praeferatis_fw-la 5._o some_o perhaps_o will_v say_v if_o protestancy_n be_v thus_o high_o improbable_a and_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n so_o manifest_o credible_a as_o be_v now_o declare_v from_o all_o why_o sectary_n stay_v so_o long_o in_o heresy_n whilst_o the_o church_n be_v so_o manifest_a to_o all_o whence_o be_v it_o that_o sectary_n stay_v so_o long_o in_o heresy_n and_o embrace_v not_o a_o faith_n which_o be_v without_o dispute_n undoubted_o clear_a to_o all_o to_o answer_v the_o question_n it_o will_v be_v enough_o to_o propose_v a_o other_o and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o ask_v why_o all_o embrace_v not_o protestancy_n that_o have_v nothing_o to_o induce_v man_n to_o it_o but_o why_o after_o give_v it_o be_v answer_v first_o by_o a_o instance_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n not_o convert_v all_o a_o further_a reason_n be_v give_v all_o those_o most_o signal_n manifest_a miracle_n and_o conversion_n wrought_v by_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o whole_a world_n both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n come_v not_o then_o in_o upon_o such_o evident_a motive_n why_o do_v they_o not_o forthwith_o profess_v christianity_n most_o certain_o the_o attraction_n be_v forceable_a they_o want_v no_o inducement_n but_o education_n and_o a_o contrary_a custom_n of_o live_v hinder_v much_o and_o sense_n too_o strong_a with_o the_o most_o of_o man_n perhaps_o more_o for_o as_o sense_n and_o sensual_a pleasure_n ever_o make_v virtue_n insipid_a to_o the_o will_n so_o they_o often_o dull_a the_o eye_n of_o reason_n also_o in_o order_n to_o truth_n and_o either_o withdraw_v the_o attention_n from_o a_o serious_a hinder_v contrary_n on_o educati_fw-la s●n●iberty_n se_z and_o sensual_a pleasure_n hinder_v consideration_n of_o what_o most_o concern_v our_o good_a or_o which_o be_v worse_n total_o avert_v the_o mind_n from_o it_o we_o see_v this_o misery_n daily_o for_o the_o more_o that_o man_n be_v lull_v a_o sleep_n in_o sense_n and_o worldly_a delight_n the_o less_o they_o listen_v to_o what_o god_n speak_v though_o he_o call_v loud_o on_o they_o and_o use_v a_o language_n as_o he_o do_v by_o his_o church_n most_o clear_a audible_a and_o significant_a 6._o add_v hereunto_o a_o other_o verity_n deliver_v by_o one_o that_o can_v not_o but_o speak_v truth_n 1._o cor._n 15._o 19_o oportet_fw-la be_v heresy_n must_v be_v haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la there_o must_v be_v heresy_n and_o the_o reason_n follow_v in_o the_o text._n that_o those_o who_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a among_o you_o manifest_a how_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o it_o be_v heresy_n that_o have_v bring_v thousand_o reason_n the_o reason_n of_o martyr_n and_o this_o in_o the_o open_a view_n of_o the_o world_n to_o their_o gibbet_n and_o torment_n without_o it_o heresy_n much_o good_a follow_v the_o permission_n of_o heresy_n they_o have_v not_o dye_v for_o christ_n nor_o manifest_v so_o clear_o their_o renown_a constancy_n it_o be_v heresy_n that_o have_v evidence_v the_o suffer_a patience_n of_o innumerable_a confessor_n who_o though_o shut_v up_o in_o prison_n and_o dungeon_n for_o their_o faith_n have_v yet_o their_o memory_n live_v and_o it_o will_v remain_v upon_o record_n to_o future_a age_n it_o be_v heresy_n that_o both_o prove_v and_o show_v you_o where_o true_a faith_n much_o more_o precious_a than_o gold_n try_v by_o the_o fire_n be_v find_v unto_o particular_a show_v in_o particular_a praise_n and_o glory_n it_o be_v heresy_n that_o bring_v to_o light_a god_n pure_a reveal_v verity_n never_o more_o spread_v abroad_o nor_o better_a know_v then_o when_o novellist_n endeavon_n to_o suppress_v them_o it_o be_v heresy_n that_o have_v set_v forth_o so_o many_o learned_a volume_n of_o ancient_a father_n send_v innumerable_a missioner_n up_o and_o down_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o give_v you_o plenty_n of_o painful_a preacher_n in_o the_o church_n who_o cease_v not_o to_o speak_v in_o god_n cause_n it_o omne_fw-la os_fw-la obstruatur_fw-la that_o the_o mouth_n of_o sectary_n be_v stop_v all_o may_v love_v truth_n and_o yield_v a_o due_a submission_n to_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n you_o see_v therefore_o how_o heresy_n though_o it_o poison_n he_o that_o feed'_v on_o it_o yet_o it_o cause_v more_o good_a among_o christian_n then_o our_o vulgar_a conceive_v and_o more_o then_o be_v vulgar_o conceive_v thought_n easy_o reach_v to_o se●_n tertullian_n lib_n de_fw-fr praesc_fw-la c._n 1._o and_o s._n austin_n de_fw-mi verd_fw-mi relig._n c._n 8._o 7._o grow_v not_o therefore_o angry_a with_o god_n it_o be_v tertullia_n advice_n for_o permit_v sin_n and_o heresy_n a_o serve_v god_n that_o permitt'_v sin_n and_o heresy_n know_v best_a for_o what_o use_n they_o serve_v infinite_a wisdom_n know_v best_a for_o what_o use_v they_o serve_v you_o remember_v when_o those_o servant_n in_o the_o gospel_n matth._n 13._o 26._o see_v cockle_n appear_v among_o the_o wheat_n they_o ready_o offer_v their_o service_n to_o pluck_v it_o up_o but_o the_o wise_a housholder_n say_v no._n sinite_fw-la utraque_fw-la crescere_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la messem_fw-la suffer_v both_o to_o grow_v until_o the_o harvest_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o harvest_n i_o will_v say_v to_o the_o reaper_n gather_v up_o first_o the_o cockle_n etc._n etc._n they_o press_v not_o further_o but_o remain_v well_o satisfy_v with_o christ_n answer_n answer_n christ_n answer_n lest_o whilst_o you_o gather_v up_o the_o tare_n you_o root_n up_o also_o the_o wheat_n with_o them_o now_o if_o you_o understand_v not_o the_o deep_a sense_n of_o these_o sacred_a word_n exclaim_v with_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 11._o 33._o o_o altitudo_fw-la o_o depth_n of_o the_o riches_n of_o syrach_n the_o apostle_n pious_a
to_o we_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n in_o this_o sectary_n always_o fail_v the_o new_a mode_n of_o sectary_n interpret_n scripture_n destroy_v protestant_n religion_n here_o be_v the_o sequel_n of_o sectary_n we_o catholic_n prove_v not_o what_o we_o assert_v therefore_o they_o make_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n a_o article_n of_o their_o new_a faith_n faith_n can_v rely_v on_o such_o negative_n of_o the_o mean_n leave_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o speak_v by_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o church_n interpret_n scripture_n infallible_o in_o those_o matter_n which_o concern_v the_o general_a belief_n of_o all_o protestant_n who_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v fallible_a in_o what_o ever_o they_o teach_v be_v no_o instrument_n assume_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o teach_v and_o interpret_v infallible_o god_n word_n no_o sectary_n can_v judge_v the_o church_n but_o the_o church_n be_v to_o judge_v all_o sectary_n the_o third_z discourse_n of_o the_o unreasonable_a proceed_n of_o protestant_n in_o some_o chief_a matter_n of_o controversy_n protestant's_n who_o seem_o hold_v a_o catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n large_a than_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o can_v design_v it_o proceed_v unreasonable_o and_o must_v falsify_v that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n there_o be_v no_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n at_o least_o but_o roman_a catholic_n and_o know_v heretic_n neither_o those_o catholic_n alone_o as_o protestant_n say_v nor_o the_o know_a heretic_n nor_o both_o together_o constitute_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o true_a catholic_n church_n on_o earth_n for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n no_o abstract_a doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o who_o be_v name_v christian_n be_v sufficient_a to_o constitute_v catholic_n doctrine_n mr._n stillingfleet_n be_v confute_v and_o his_o doctrine_n show_v improbable_a faith_n in_o christ_n only_o as_o a_o redeemer_n be_v insufficient_a to_o salvation_n a_o more_o explicit_a faith_n of_o other_o particular_n be_v prove_v necessary_a if_o catholic_n and_o sectary_n be_v right_a in_o the_o fundamental_o of_o faith_n all_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o protestant_n come_v to_o a_o slight_a work_n about_o non_fw-la essential_o which_o may_v have_v make_v thing_n worse_a than_o before_o it_o be_v not_o the_o less_o or_o more_o weight_n of_o thing_n reveal_v that_o make_v faith_n less_o or_o more_o value_v of_o but_o the_o submission_n we_o yield_v to_o god_n veracity_n which_o be_v one_o and_o of_o equal_a authority_n in_o what_o ever_o he_o reveal_n though_o a_o distinction_n be_v grant_v between_o fundamental_o and_o not_o fundamental_o yet_o protestant_n can_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o sever_v the_o fundamental_o from_o the_o other_o by_o any_o know_a principle_n if_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_n church_n own_v at_o least_o infallible_a in_o fundamental_o all_o faith_n both_o of_o christ_n and_o creed_n may_v perish_v before_o the_o world_n end_n be_v and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o infallible_a church_n in_o fundamental_o sectary_n ought_v to_o design_n it_o and_o say_v to_o who_o that_o spirit_n be_v grant_v in_o what_o subject_n it_o reside_v etc._n etc._n a_o protestant_n who_o so_o far_o deny_v christ_n true_a church_n that_o he_o can_v say_v where_o it_o be_v and_o endeavor_n to_o reform_v other_o before_o he_o have_v certainty_n of_o his_o own_o half_a well_o make_v reformation_n can_v probable_o go_v about_o to_o withdraw_v a_o prudent_a catholic_n from_o his_o religion_n some_o proposition_n of_o mr._n stillingfleet_n be_v examine_v his_o discourse_n of_o fundamental_o destroy_n protestant_n religion_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o say_v not_o precise_o how_o much_o doctrine_n constitute_v that_o be_v he_o can_v name_v any_o orthodox_n church_n that_o ever_o except_v against_o the_o article_n believe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o make_v the_o negative_a article_n of_o the_o english_a church_n not_o to_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o inferior_a truth_n hold_v only_o in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n his_o church_n therefore_o be_v essential_o hypocritical_a which_o may_v believe_v one_o thing_n and_o must_v profess_v a_o other_o though_o protestant_n be_v very_a papist_n in_o hart_n yea_o and_o anathematise_v all_o these_o negative_a article_n they_o may_v be_v look_v on_o as_o bless_a child_n of_o this_o new_a negative_a church_n if_o their_o exterior_a be_v fair_o protestantlike_a he_o make_v his_o church_n no_o more_o a_o english_a church_n then_o a_o church_n of_o arian_n and_o of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n he_o say_v the_o english_a church_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o of_o rome_n itself_o the_o assertion_n be_v evident_o untrue_a for_o no_o orthodox_n church_n no_o heretical_a society_n no_o consent_n ●f_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n ever_o teach_v that_o a_o doctrine_n wherein_o all_o christian_n agree_v be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n when_o sectary_n say_n christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n a_o sign_n only_o of_o his_o body_n this_o very_a doctrine_n be_v either_o a_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o one_o of_o their_o inferior_a truth_n if_o the_o first_o they_o believe_v that_o which_o never_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n much_o less_o of_o rome_n itself_o if_o the_o second_o be_v grant_v they_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n at_o all_o of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n the_o nullity_n of_o our_o adversary_n ground_n be_v be_v declare_v though_o the_o church_n make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n if_o we_o speak_v rigorous_o the_o church_n make_v no_o new_a article_n but_o only_o declare_v more_o explicit_o what_o be_v ancient_o believe_v the_o father_n call_v the_o church_n a_o rich_a treasury_n wherein_o the_o depositum_fw-la of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v secure_o preserve_v the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n be_v explicate_v there_o be_v a_o platform_n of_o christian_a religion_n before_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o the_o apostle_n separate_v themselves_o and_o preach_v to_o several_a nation_n sectary_n who_o seem_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o one_o or_o two_o ancient_a father_n most_o inconsequent_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o learned_a general_n council_n that_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o estimation_n if_o the_o church_n definition_n be_v therefore_o to_o be_v think_v fallible_a because_o man_n declare_v they_o and_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n much_o more_o be_v our_o sectary_n novelty_n and_o gloss_n on_o scripture_n to_o be_v value_v of_o as_o fallible_a upon_o the_o same_o ground_n these_o fallible_a man_n tell_v i_o my_o church_n doctrine_n be_v fallible_a suppose_v false_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v altogether_o as_o good_a as_o this_o very_a fallible_a proposition_n be_v that_o say_v it_o be_v fallible_a and_o if_o which_o be_v true_a it_o be_v infallible_a it_o be_v much_o better_a no_o man_n that_o hold_v his_o religion_n fallible_a can_v probable_o endeavour_v to_o convert_v a_o other_o though_o the_o contrary_a religion_n profess_v by_o this_o other_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v no_o more_o but_o fallible_a much_o less_o can_v he_o persecute_v he_o for_o not_o yield_v assent_n to_o a_o fallible_a religion_n all_o the_o storm_n of_o persecution_n raise_v against_o catholic_n be_v not_o upon_o any_o account_n of_o want_n of_o faith_n but_o for_o this_o sole_a cause_n that_o we_o will_v not_o believe_v one_o thing_n and_o force_v our_o conscience_n to_o profess_v a_o other_o which_o be_v to_o say_v we_o be_v persecute_v because_o we_o will_v not_o be_v hypocrite_n the_o unreasonableness_n of_o protestant_n schism_n lay_v forth_o from_o the_o viii_o chap._n of_o the_o three_o discourse_n to_o the_o xv._o the_o separation_n of_o protestant_n from_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v as_o plain_a and_o manifest_v a_o sinful_a schism_n as_o ever_o be_v decry_v rebellion_n in_o a_o kingdom_n or_o any_o violation_n of_o a_o country_n right_o the_o formal_a schism_n of_o sectary_n be_v evident_a but_o the_o causal_n charge_v on_o catholic_n be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o unproved_a calumny_n proof_n bring_v to_o receive_a principle_n fail_v sectary_n whilst_o they_o make_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o formal_a schism_n the_o suppose_a error_n charge_v on_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n by_o sectary_n be_v not_o like_o the_o first_o principle_n in_o nature_n evident_a ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la and_o therefore_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o a_o discourse_n ground_v on_o certain_a principle_n we_o licence_n sectary_n in_o their_o discourse_n against_o we_o to_o make_v use_n of_o all_o imaginable_a sound_a principle_n scripture_n father_n tradition_n or_o what_o they_o plea_n and_o only_o exclude_v
their_o own_o self-voting_a from_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o rational_a proof_n and_o principle_n when_o a_o rebellion_n be_v manifest_a in_o a_o kingdom_n the_o sole_a authority_n of_o they_o who_o begin_v it_o be_v insufficient_a to_o make_v it_o justifiable_a and_o the_o authority_n of_o sectary_n be_v as_o forceles_a to_o justify_v their_o evident_a schism_n against_o the_o church_n whilst_o evidence_n come_v not_o against_o our_o church_n it_o stand_v most_o firm_a upon_o its_o ancient_a possess_v right_o this_o long_a possession_n prove_v our_o church_n orthodox_n example_n hereof_o mr._n stillingfleet_v exception_n against_o our_o plead_a possession_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v weak_a forceles_a and_o mere_a ungrounded_a supposition_n though_o the_o obligation_n of_o prove_v evident_o lie_v on_o our_o adversary_n who_o be_v the_o aggressor_n yet_o we_o prove_v not_o only_o a_o personal_a succession_n of_o our_o pope_n and_o prelate_n in_o forego_v age_n but_o also_o manifest_a a_o quiet_a possession_n of_o truth_n that_o descend_v with_o these_o continue_a pope_n and_o bishop_n from_o the_o day_n of_o s._n peter_n to_o this_o very_a age._n no_o just_a exception_n can_v be_v make_v against_o our_o tradition_n which_o be_v evident_o its_o one_o proof_n for_o there_o can_v be_v a_o clear_a mr._n stillingfleet_n suppose_v that_o our_o right_n of_o plead_v truth_n be_v a_o mere_a occupancy_n he_o be_v to_o prove_v this_o because_o he_o be_v the_o accuser_n no_o antecedent_n law_n have_v determine_v contrary_a to_o what_o we_o challenge_v by_o virtue_n of_o our_o possession_n we_o have_v both_o the_o law_n for_o we_o and_o ancient_a possession_n beside_o and_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n when_o we_o allege_v two_o proof_n law_n and_o possession_n that_o we_o quite_o the_o one_o which_o be_v possession_n as_o mr._n stillingfleet_n pretend'_v we_o shall_v do_v which_o be_v against_o all_o rational_a discourse_n of_o this_o subject_n it_o be_v improbable_a to_o say_v that_o protestant_n first_o see_v these_o suppose_a error_n impute_v to_o our_o church_n when_o other_o as_o quicksighted_n more_o numerour_n and_o learned_a than_o they_o see_v they_o not_o for_o ten_o whole_a age_n before_o luther_n it_o be_v a_o degree_n of_o madness_n to_o suppose_v that_o all_o those_o worthy_a and_o learned_a professor_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v either_o so_o stupid_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o have_v see_v such_o suppose_a error_n or_o so_o wicked_o hypocritical_a as_o to_o have_v wink_v at_o they_o after_o their_o plain_a discovery_n it_o be_v a_o paradox_n to_o say_v that_o our_o new_a man_n see_v these_o too_o plain_a and_o visible_a error_n when_o that_o great_a catholic_n church_n which_o sectary_n make_v more_o large_a than_o the_o roman_a see_v they_o not_o but_o permit_v rome_n to_o countenance_v these_o suppose_a error_n without_o check_n or_o reprehension_n of_o the_o impossibility_n of_o error_n enter_v the_o church_n after_o the_o first_o 4._o or_o 5._o hundred_o year_n though_o sectary_n shall_v convince_v which_o be_v impossible_a the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n to_o be_v guilty_a of_o error_n yet_o they_o can_v show_v that_o they_o have_v set_v christian_n faith_n right_a again_o on_o its_o old_a foundation_n as_o it_o once_o stand_v pure_a all_o principle_n fail_v they_o in_o this_o particular_a fancy_n only_o and_o nothing_o like_o a_o rational_a proof_n uphold_n this_o charge_n of_o error_n against_o our_o church_n mr_n stillingfleet_v assertion_n be_v refute_v if_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v err_v by_o impose_v unreasonable_a condition_n sectary_n who_o profess_v themselves_o fallible_a in_o all_o they_o say_v may_v have_v err_v more_o and_o spoil_v all_o they_o go_v about_o to_o mend_v nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a then_o to_o make_v a_o few_o rebellious_a people_n recede_v from_o a_o ancient_a church_n first_o to_o accuse_v it_o and_o then_o to_o sit_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o condemn_v it_o none_o can_v probable_o show_v that_o these_o late_a reformer_n of_o protestant_n who_o oppose_v all_o other_o religion_n be_v untainted_a or_o pure_o orthodox_n as_o no_o man_n before_o the_o donatist_n make_v the_o church_n so_o straight_o as_o they_o do_v so_o never_o christian_n before_o these_o late_a sectary_n make_v it_o so_o wide_a as_o to_o hold_v in_o it_o all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n at_o all_o if_o the_o belief_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v ample_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n protestant_n may_v anathematise_v all_o the_o doctrine_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o reform_a religion_n and_o yet_o be_v save_v the_o four_o discourse_n of_o the_o church_n evidence_n and_o improbability_n of_o protestant_a religion_n protestant's_n as_o they_o make_v not_o good_a their_o own_o doctrine_n by_o proof_n ground_v on_o certain_a principle_n so_o they_o never_o impugn_v the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n by_o rational_a argument_n catholic_n contrariwise_o prove_v their_o church_n doctrine_n by_o undeniable_a principle_n the_o ground_n of_o catholic_n religion_n be_v brief_o lay_v forth_o as_o it_o be_v a_o evident_a principle_n that_o all_o those_o wife_n and_o learned_a doctor_n who_o teach_v christian_n popery_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n be_v neither_o fool_n nor_o perverse_o blind_a so_o it_o be_v more_o evident_a that_o god_n suffer_v not_o those_o million_o of_o christian_n instruct_v by_o these_o teacher_n to_o be_v gross_o abuse_v with_o false_a doctrine_n whilst_o there_o be_v no_o other_o catholic_n society_n in_o the_o world_n ●o_o unbeguile_v they_o all_o other_o sectary_n who_o desert_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n err_v gross_o and_o it_o be_v improbable_a to_o think_v that_o protestant_n only_a among_o so_o many_o stray_a teacher_n be_v the_o only_o privilege_a people_n elect_v by_o god_n to_o mend_v have_v any_o thing_n be_v amiss_o in_o a_o old_a decay_a church_n without_o mixture_n of_o error_n or_o mar_v more_o than_o they_o mend_v protestancy_n be_v unevidence_v and_o a_o improbable_a religion_n that_o be_v no_o religion_n but_o a_o fancy_a opinion_n no_o doctrine_n fallible_o teach_v as_o protestancy_n be_v can_v be_v ultimate_o resolve_v into_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n scripture_n alone_a without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n make_v no_o man_n infallible_a a_o doctrine_n which_o at_o its_o first_o rise_n be_v and_o be_v still_o oppose_v by_o all_o christian_n except_v the_o sectary_n who_o broach_v it_o be_v as_o improbable_a as_o arianism_n a_o church_n essential_o errable_a may_v lo●s_v all_o truth_n and_o consequent_o all_o grace_n and_o so_o become_v divorce_v from_o christ._n a_o doctrine_n prove_v improbable_a by_o undoubted_a principle_n can_v be_v make_v credible_a by_o rational_a argument_n unless_o truth_n be_v contrary_a to_o truth_n of_o the_o slight_a way_n of_o sectary_n argue_v against_o catholic_n doctrine_n mr._n stillingfleet_n like_o his_o other_o brethren_n in_o a_o discourse_n of_o purgatory_n begin_v with_o jeer_n with_o mistake_v and_o dissemble_v of_o difficulty_n he_o state_v not_o the_o question_n right_o between_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_n the_o dispute_n between_o the_o latin_n and_o greek_n be_v clear_o lay_v forth_o by_o leo_fw-la alatius_fw-la a_o grecian_a what_o pass_v in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n concern_v this_o dispute_n the_o greek_n most_o certain_o both_o before_o and_o after_o the_o council_n hold_v a_o place_n of_o punishment_n for_o soul_n depart_v from_o which_o place_n they_o be_v free_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n they_o also_o hold_v that_o soul_n enjoy_v the_o beatifical_a vision_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o weakness_n of_o our_o adversary_n cause_n be_v best_a see_v by_o a_o parallel_n of_o proof_n for_o purgatory_n and_o against_o it_o the_o catholic_n principle_n for_o purgatory_n s._n augustine_n be_v not_o the_o first_o that_o hold_v purgatory_n mr._n stillingfleet_n misunderstand_v two_o passage_n in_o s._n austin_n the_o sectary_n when_o he_o explicate_v scripture_n or_o father_n make_v his_o own_o gloss_n the_o sure_a ground_n of_o his_o interpretation_n when_o the_o catholic_n explicate_v a_o dubious_a passage_n he_o rely_v on_o a_o sure_a principle_n distinct_a from_o his_o interpretation_n objection_n be_v answer_v how_o the_o supplication_n of_o the_o church_n respect_v mercy_n and_o forgiveness_n to_o be_v show_v the_o just_a at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n a_o objection_n be_v propose_v in_o behalf_n of_o sectary_n and_o solve_v in_o another_o discourse_n concern_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n for_o the_o real_a presence_n the_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o sectary_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v mere_a fancy_n sectary_n can_v by_o virtue_n of_o any_o one_o receive_v principle_n remove_v the_o catholic_n from_o the_o plain_a and_o obvious_a senfe_fw-mi of_o christ_n most_o significant_a word_n the_o
themselves_o and_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o former_a that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n not_o only_o deny_v and_o dispute_v down_o by_o protestant_n but_o also_o question_v by_o their_o own_o author_n you_o end_n this_o question_n i_o challenge_v the_o whole_a club_n of_o jesuit_n solid_o to_o answer_n i_o answer_v very_o catagorical_o without_o club_a it_o and_o say_v first_o the_o catholic_n have_v more_o than_o mere_a probable_a evidence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o curches_n infallibility_n the_o sectary_n by_o his_o own_o principle_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o probable_a evidence_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n infallibility_n independent_a of_o the_o church_n i_o say_v 2._o though_o the_o sectary_n have_v probable_a evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n infallibility_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o useless_a book_n in_o his_o hand_n 13._o the_o first_o assertion_n contain_n two_o part_n i_o prove_v the_o first_o the_o catholic_n have_v a_o church_n evidence_v by_o unparalleled_a miracle_n by_o conversion_n of_o whole_a nation_n from_o infidelity_n to_o our_o christian_a verity_n he_o have_v a_o church_n manifest_v by_o all_o those_o other_o glorious_a cognisance_n of_o truth_n which_o the_o apostolical_a church_n show_v to_o the_o world_n not_o one_o be_v except_v as_o be_v prove_v disc_n 1._o c._n 9_o 10._o if_o therefore_o that_o apostolical_a church_n be_v prudent_o believe_v to_o deliver_v infallible_a doctrine_n and_o this_o before_o scripture_n be_v write_v by_o the_o inducement_n of_o those_o illustrious_a mark_n and_o character_n of_o truth_n wherewith_o it_o be_v adorn_v our_o roman_a catholic_n church_n that_o undeniable_o evidence_v the_o very_a like_o sign_n be_v prove_v upon_o that_o reason_n to_o deliver_v also_o infallible_a doctrine_n for_o where_o there_o be_v the_o same_o effect_n and_o sign_n of_o infallible_a doctrine_n the_o infallibility_n of_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v witness_v by_o they_o otherwise_o such_o motive_n will_v be_v both_o inefficacious_a and_o useless_a whilst_o god_n show_v they_o for_o this_o end_n that_o all_o may_v give_v assent_n to_o his_o infallible_a verity_n teach_v by_o that_o oracle_n where_o they_o evident_o appear_v and_o i_o believe_v lead_v on_o by_o the_o inducement_n yet_o mun_o forsooth_o only_o believe_v uncertainty_n or_o fallible_a doctrine_n that_o may_v be_v fall_v 14._o the_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v now_o as_o well_o make_v immediate_o credible_a by_o virtue_n of_o these_o motive_n as_o the_o apostolical_a church_n be_v before_o the_o write_n of_o scripture_n and_o these_o motive_n in_o order_n to_o the_o learned_a and_o those_o who_o prudent_o seek_v for_o truth_n first_o and_o most_o immediate_o demonstrate_v the_o church_n or_o those_o person_n that_o teach_v infallible_a doctrine_n by_o who_o authority_n we_o learn_v what_o and_o where_o infallible_a truth_n be_v profess_v that_o these_o mark_n and_o sign_n immediate_o belong_v to_o the_o person_n that_o teach_v infallible_o and_o not_o to_o scripture_n be_v undoubted_a mark_v 16._o 17._o these_o sign_n shall_v follow_v in_o my_o name_n they_o shall_v cast_v out_o devil_n etc._n etc._n again_o not_o only_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n 2._o cor._n 12._o 12._o call_v the_o wonder_n he_o wrought_v signa_fw-la apostolatus_fw-la svi_fw-la the_o mark_n of_o his_o apostleship_n but_o a_o great_a doctor_n also_o truth_n itself_o john_n 10._o 25._o when_o the_o jew_n will_v not_o believe_v he_o remit_v they_o to_o the_o evidence_n of_o his_o miracle_n the_o work_n which_o i_o do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o my_o father_n these_o give_v testimony_n of_o i_o and_o vers_fw-la 38._o if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o believe_v the_o work_n work_v therefore_o and_o wonder_v annex_v to_o the_o person_n or_o church_n that_o teach_v forcible_o induce_v prudent_a man_n to_o believe_v the_o certain_a doctrine_n deliver_v by_o they_o who_o show_v such_o wonder_n in_o a_o word_n here_o be_v all_o i_o will_v say_v no_o religion_n be_v evident_o true_a or_o false_o ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la upon_o the_o bare_a affirmation_n of_o he_o that_o say_v its_o true_a or_o false_o therefore_o it_o must_v have_v the_o evidence_n of_o its_o credibility_n manifest_v before_o christian_n admit_v of_o the_o doctrine_n but_o this_o evidence_n be_v first_o manifest_v by_o such_o sign_n and_o miracle_n as_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n personal_o show_v to_o the_o world_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o they_o induce_v alien_n from_o truth_n to_o believe_v it_o as_o infallible_a doctrine_n therefore_o whatever_o church_n show_v such_o miracle_n the_o like_a sign_n and_o wonder_n as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n manifest_v plead_v as_o well_o for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o its_o doctrine_n witness_v by_o such_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostolical_a church_n did._n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n only_a and_o no_o other_o show_v these_o miracle_n efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n universality_n strange_a conversion_n and_o other_o most_o convince_v motive_n therefore_o if_o the_o first_o christian_n induce_v by_o such_o evidence_n firm_o believe_v the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n to_o be_v infallible_a which_o be_v not_o ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la evident_o infallible_a we_o may_v now_o upon_o the_o very_a like_o inducement_n not_o for_o the_o inducement_n as_o the_o last_o motive_n believe_v as_o secure_o upon_o our_o church_n authority_n the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o it_o to_o be_v infallible_a deny_v this_o evidence_n of_o our_o motive_n and_o we_o force_v sectary_n to_o prove_v the_o denial_n by_o as_o sure_a principle_n as_o we_o assert_v they_o grant_v they_o and_o our_o argument_n be_v conclude_v and_o here_o you_o have_v more_fw-mi they_o a_o mere_a probable_a evidence_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n 15._o an_o other_o argument_n for_o it_o beside_o those_o scripture_n cite_v disc_n 2._o c._n 6._o n._n ●_o be_v not_o only_o probable_a but_o unanswerable_o convince_v hint_v at_o disc_n 1._o c._n 2._o n._n 9_o christ_n as_o be_v confess_o grant_v both_o by_o catholic_n and_o sectary_n send_v pastor_n up_o and_o down_o the_o world_n to_o teach_v christian_a doctrine_n but_o he_o never_o send_v any_o to_o teach_v fallible_a doctrine_n which_o may_v be_v fall_v ergo_fw-la he_o send_v they_o to_o teach_v his_o own_o infallible_a doctrine_n and_o infallible_o i_o prove_v it_o he_o send_v none_o to_o teach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n then_o that_o which_o may_v be_v ultimate_o resolve_v into_o god_n infallible_a veracity_n reveal_v truth_n but_o that_o which_o be_v ultimate_o resolve_v into_o a_o infallible_a veracity_n can_v neither_o be_v fall_v nor_o fallible_a doctrine_n because_o god_n as_o i_o now_o say_v own_v no_o fallible_a doctrine_n that_o may_v be_v fall_v therefore_o this_o resolution_n of_o a_o act_n tend_v fallible_o into_o divine_a revelation_n be_v rather_o nonsense_n then_o faith_n i_o infallible_a believe_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n and_o man_n because_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n will_v have_v i_o to_o believe_v so_o for_o no_o infallible_a motive_n apply_v to_o my_o understanding_n as_o it_o be_v infallible_a can_v draw_v from_o i_o a_o fallible_a belief_n of_o a_o doctrine_n that_o be_v mere_o fallible_a but_o all_o sectary_n whether_o arian_n donatist_n or_o protestant_n teach_v only_o fallible_a doctrine_n and_o fallible_o exit_fw-la parte_fw-la docentis_fw-la ergo_fw-la they_o teach_v not_o that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n send_v his_o minister_n to_o teach_v or_o that_o can_v be_v resolve_v into_o god_n infallible_a veracity_n reveal_v truth_n yet_o most_o certain_o some_o christian_a pastor_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n mission_n teach_v his_o infallible_a doctrine_n infallible_o and_o these_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n who_o only_o lie_v claim_v to_o infallibility_n and_o prove_v it_o also_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v by_o the_o antecedent_n evidence_n of_o those_o motive_n which_o the_o church_n show_v and_o manife_v to_o the_o world_n as_o be_v now_o declare_v i_o challenge_v mr._n poole_n direct_o and_o catagorical_o to_o answer_v this_o my_o reason_n without_o talk_v any_o more_o of_o clubbs_n or_o run_v into_o generality_n and_o in_o as_o few_o clear_a word_n as_o i_o deliver_v it_o 16._o now_o to_o prove_v the_o other_o part_n of_o my_o assertion_n viz._n sectary_n by_o their_o own_o principle_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o probable_a evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n infallibility_n without_o church_n authority_n here_o be_v my_o principle_n the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n which_o contain_v many_o difficulty_n tell_v we_o strange_a story_n and_o seem_o often_o speak_v contradiction_n be_v not_o by_o itself_o or_o own_o light_n so_o evident_o credible_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o reader_n as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n be_v evident_a by_o miracle_n and_o conversion_n to_o the_o primitive_a christian_n who_o believe_v it_o infallible_o at_o least_o s._n austin_n judge_v it_o
not_o so_o evident_o credible_a when_o he_o say_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v he_o to_o believe_v it_o the_o infallibility_n of_o it_o therefore_o must_v by_o prove_v by_o some_o good_a principle_n extrinsic_a to_o scripture_n but_o the_o sectary_n have_v not_o one_o sound_a principle_n distinct_a from_o the_o tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o this_o infallibility_n be_v prove_v therefore_o scripture_n in_o order_n to_o he_o be_v not_o so_o infallible_a as_o the_o church_n be_v to_o the_o catholic_n if_o any_o deny_v my_o principle_n and_o make_v the_o scripture_n infallibility_n discernible_a by_o its_o own_o light_n by_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n purity_n of_o its_o doctrine_n or_o efficacy_n it_o work_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o those_o who_o read_v it_o etc._n etc._n i_o think_v there_o be_v evident_a demonstration_n against_o the_o paradox_n for_o as_o i_o note_v disc_n 1._o c._n 2._o 12._o n._n 4._o two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o scripture_n first_o the_o exterior_a syntax_n or_o connexion_n of_o the_o word_n and_o so_o much_o precise_o be_v not_o the_o scripture_n total_a infallibility_n which_o say_v more_o beside_o that_o exterior_a language_n and_o necessary_o imply_v a_o divine_a act_n a_o volition_n or_o decree_n of_o god_n whereby_o the_o hagiographer_n that_o write_v the_o word_n be_v infallible_o assist_v and_o determine_v to_o record_v truth_n and_o nothing_o but_o truth_n now_o this_o divine_a volition_n or_o decree_n because_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o god_n and_o therefore_o no_o other_o but_o god_n himself_o can_v be_v no_o object_n of_o our_o sense_n when_o we_o hear_v or_o read_v scripture_n consequent_o it_o be_v to_o be_v discover_v by_o a_o discourse_n ground_v on_o principle_n distinct_a from_o the_o outward_a letter_n of_o scripture_n whereby_o we_o may_v come_v to_o a_o sure_a evidence_n of_o its_o infallibility_n not_o at_o all_o yet_o within_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o sense_n and_o this_o no_o sectary_n can_v do_v as_o i_o shall_v present_o make_v evident_a 17._o i_o say_v therefore_o if_o the_o motive_n now_o allege_v for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n as_o conversion_n miracle_n universality_n etc._n etc._n induce_v not_o immediate_o to_o believe_v that_o church_n they_o demonstrate_v to_o be_v infallible_a much_o less_o can_v the_o exterior_a word_n or_o sintax_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o fit_a medium_fw-la to_o convince_v any_o of_o its_o infallibility_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o beside_o what_o be_v often_o note_v in_o the_o treatise_n chief_o disc_n 1._o c._n 8._o n._n 7._o ill_o here_o only_o propose_v two_o question_n the_o first_o whether_o if_o st._n john_n who_o be_v infallible_o assist_v have_v not_o record_v that_o short_a sentence_n in_o his_o gospel_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n but_o some_o other_o not_o infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v write_v the_o very_a same_o verity_n as_o it_o be_v by_o chance_n my_o question_n i_o say_v be_v whether_o the_o sectary_n that_o now_o read_v this_o sentence_n in_o s._n john_n gospel_n can_v more_o discover_v a_o infallibility_n in_o it_o by_o force_n of_o the_o outward_a word_n then_o if_o they_o have_v be_v casual_o write_v by_o one_o without_o infallible_a assistance_n i_o think_v he_o will_v not_o dare_v to_o say_v yes_o or_o if_o he_o do_v i_o will_v urge_v he_o to_o prove_v it_o by_o principle_n when_o the_o outward_a word_n be_v the_o very_o same_o in_o both_o case_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n clear_a to_o all_o that_o read_v they_o my_o second_o demand_n may_v yet_o perhaps_o better_a evidence_n what_o i_o aim_v at_o and_o be_v thus_o suppose_v that_o our_o sectary_n shall_v put_v the_o book_n of_o eclesiastes_n which_o they_o hold_v canonical_a into_o the_o hand_n of_o twelve_o learned_a gentile_a philosopher_n and_o with_o it_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n or_o eclesiasticus_n also_o not_o hold_v canonical_a by_o they_o suppose_v again_o they_o desire_v these_o learned_a and_o disinterress_v man_n serious_o to_o read_v these_o three_o book_n and_o after_o the_o read_v sincere_o to_o tell_v they_o which_o of_o they_o have_v god_n spirit_n in_o it_o or_o contain_v his_o infallible_a verity_n for_o this_o may_v be_v easy_o gather_v by_o the_o very_a natural_a evidence_n of_o what_o they_o read_v by_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n efficacy_n of_o speak_v which_o appear_v clear_o enough_o in_o the_o outward_a letter_n thus_o much_o do_v separate_v these_o philosopher_n by_o four_o and_o four_o into_o three_o company_n put_v they_o into_o three_o different_a cell_n much_o after_o that_o manner_n as_o some_o say_v the_o sevent_o interpreter_n be_v separate_v let_v they_o with_o all_o sincerity_n read_v examine_v and_o peruse_v these_o book_n and_o if_o when_o the_o work_n be_v end_v they_o unanimous_o accord_v that_o a_o great_a divinity_n a_o strong_a infallibility_n appear_v in_o the_o song_n of_o solomon_n then_o in_o the_o other_o two_o book_n we_o will_v say_v something_o be_v prove_v and_o hold_v it_o as_o strange_a a_o miracle_n as_o that_o which_o s._n austin_n recount_v of_o the_o 70._o interpreter_n now_o if_o any_o tell_v we_o this_o light_n of_o scripture_n though_o sufficient_a in_o itself_o be_v not_o evident_a to_o every_o one_o that_o look_v on_o it_o because_o the_o blindness_n or_o perverseness_n of_o man_n mind_n may_v keep_v they_o from_o the_o discovery_n of_o it_o the_o reply_n have_v no_o place_n here_o for_o we_o suppose_v first_o these_o philosopher_n to_o be_v disinterress_v learned_a upright_a and_o sincere_a as_o well_o in_o their_o read_n as_o in_o the_o judgement_n they_o give_v of_o it_o and_o second_o we_o will_v suppose_v that_o all_o those_o be_v not_o blind_a who_o sectary_n make_v blind_a nor_o only_o those_o quick_a sight_v i_o mean_v themselves_o who_o they_o will_v have_v so_o 18._o to_o these_o question_n i_o add_v one_o more_o it_o may_v pass_v for_o a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o sectary_n who_o hold_v all_o the_o definition_n of_o our_o church_n even_o when_o they_o be_v true_a to_o be_v yet_o fallible_a i_o ask_v whether_o these_o quick_a sight_a man_n be_v able_a to_o discern_v the_o fallibility_n of_o these_o definition_n by_o force_n of_o the_o outward_a word_n thereof_o only_o as_o they_o discover_v the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o majesty_n of_o the_o style_n and_o outward_a sintax_n and_o mack_o where_o the_o force_n of_o the_o difficulty_n lie_v as_o infallibility_n necessary_o imply_v divine_a assistance_n in_o order_n to_o the_o truth_n deliver_v in_o holy_a scripture_n so_o the_o suppose_a fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n imply_v a_o want_n of_o that_o assistance_n in_o order_n to_o those_o definition_n i_o ask_v therefore_o whether_o as_o the_o first_o be_v discernible_a and_o visible_a enough_o to_o their_o eye_n by_o the_o very_a context_n of_o the_o outward_a letter_n they_o will_v consequent_o grant_v that_o the_o other_o also_o be_v as_o clear_o visible_a and_o discernible_a by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o definition_n if_o they_o answer_v yes_o first_o they_o need_v not_o hereafter_o to_o impugn_v the_o church_n definition_n by_o any_o other_o medium_fw-la but_o this_o that_o they_o be_v without_o further_a proof_n by_o themselves_o evident_o fallible_a so_o much_o be_v say_v by_o they_o and_o it_o proof_n enough_o 2._o they_o may_v as_o well_o say_v they_o know_v when_o a_o man_n tell_v we_o a_o lie_v and_o this_o by_o force_n of_o his_o very_a speak_n as_o that_o they_o know_v the_o suppose_a fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n by_o her_o speak_n for_o if_o their_o eye_n can_v discern_v the_o want_n of_o divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o one_o case_n which_o real_o be_v not_o want_v they_o may_v more_o easy_o discern_v the_o want_n of_o truth_n in_o the_o other_o which_o real_o be_v want_v and_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o paradox_n there_o be_v never_o any_o in_o the_o world_n now_o contrariwise_o if_o they_o can_v discover_v the_o church_n suppose_a fallibility_n in_o her_o definition_n mere_o by_o her_o exterior_a word_n because_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n invisible_a i_o will_v glad_o learn_v how_o they_o come_v to_o know_v the_o infallibility_n of_o scripture_n by_o the_o word_n thereof_o for_o that_o be_v as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o invisible_a and_o as_o far_o remove_v from_o our_o eye_n and_o sense_n 19_o some_o who_o pitiful_o suppose_v scripture_n to_o be_v prove_v divine_a and_o infallible_a by_o the_o very_a light_n which_o be_v in_o they_o object_n first_o when_o we_o see_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o vast_a extent_n of_o the_o light_n it_o have_v we_o may_v well_o infer_v it_o come_v from_o that_o luminous_a body_n and_o may_v we_o not_o say_v these_o proportionable_o infer_v from_o the_o
clearness_n greatness_n majesty_n and_o coherency_n of_o those_o truth_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n that_o they_o must_v certain_o come_v from_o none_o but_o god_n answ_n what_o will_v not_o man_n say_v at_o last_o who_o dare_v propose_v such_o evident_a improbability_n why_o the_o whole_a world_n agree_v in_o this_o that_o the_o light_n come_v from_o the_o sun_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o our_o sense_n but_o do_v all_o unanimous_o agree_v about_o the_o very_a canon_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o clearness_n of_o those_o book_n all_o admit_v of_o which_o be_v evident_o obscure_a in_o a_o hundred_o passage_n and_o so_o seem_o incoherent_a in_o many_o other_o place_n that_o it_o be_v mighty_a difficile_fw-la to_o reconcile_v they_o again_o what_o more_o greatness_n or_o exterior_a majesty_n can_v any_o discover_v in_o salomon_n proverb_n then_o in_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la or_o in_o those_o two_o pious_a hymn_n te_fw-la deum_fw-la and_o gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la such_o argument_n therefore_o be_v not_o only_o slight_a but_o improbable_a 20._o they_o object_n 2._o the_o work_n of_o creation_n evidence_n god_n wisdom_n power_n and_o greatness_n ergo_fw-la god_n can_v give_v as_o great_a evidence_n of_o a_o revelation_n answ_n i_o grant_v he_o can_v do_v so_o but_o what_o then_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v do_v it_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la by_o the_o word_n internal_a to_o scripture_n which_o be_v here_o only_o to_o the_o purpose_n without_o the_o light_n of_o orhe_a motive_n as_o miracle_n conversion_n and_o the_o like_a which_o as_o i_o now_o say_v immediate_o manifest_v the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n 21._o they_o object_n 3_o no_o other_o way_n be_v conceivable_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v evident_a that_o a_o doctrine_n come_v from_o god_n and_o consequent_o be_v infallible_a but_o that_o it_o contain_v thing_n high_o suitable_a to_o the_o divine_a nature_n thing_n above_o the_o find_v out_o of_o human_a reason_n thing_n only_o tend_v to_o advance_v holiness_n and_o goodness_n in_o the_o world_n and_o this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v deliver_v by_o person_n who_o wrought_v vnparralleled_a miracle_n and_o they_o ask_v whether_o all_o these_o be_v not_o in_o the_o most_o evident_a manner_n imaginable_a contain_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n and_o in_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n i_o answer_v first_o the_o opponent_n be_v far_o from_o conceive_v any_o thing_n like_o a_o probability_n in_o this_o objection_n for_o if_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o a_o doctrine_n come_v from_o god_n and_o therefore_o be_v infallible_a because_o it_o contain_v thing_n suitable_a to_o the_o divine_a nature_n the_o very_a gentile_n without_o other_o motive_n shall_v as_o well_o see_v this_o evidence_n as_o we_o see_v the_o light_n of_o the_o sun_n now_o if_o you_o say_v its_o a_o evidence_n but_o not_o perceptible_a by_o all_o you_o run_v into_o darkness_n destroy_v the_o nature_n of_o evidence_n and_o make_v it_o now_o evident_a now_o unevident_a when_o and_o to_o who_o you_o please_v if_o again_o you_o say_v its_o a_o evidence_n sufficient_a to_o breed_v faith_n you_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o speak_v improbable_o for_o nothing_o can_v beget_v faith_n but_o what_o be_v own_v for_o god_n infallible_a word_n upon_o prudent_a motive_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o infallible_a oracle_n to_o confirm_v what_o be_v here_o say_v i_o ask_v whether_o if_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v appear_v in_o the_o world_n and_o only_o preach_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o a_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n original_a sin_n with_o other_o doctrine_n now_o register_v in_o scripture_n that_o advance_v holiness_n of_o life_n etc._n etc._n but_o all_o this_o without_o do_v one_o miracle_n convert_v one_o nation_n or_o show_v any_o the_o least_o wonder_n that_o they_o be_v send_v from_o god_n to_o teach_v as_o they_o do_v my_o question_n i_o say_v be_v whether_o upon_o this_o supposition_n either_o jew_n or_o gentile_n will_v then_o have_v believe_v they_o or_o can_v have_v discover_v a_o infallibility_n in_o a_o doctrine_n thus_o oral_o deliver_v or_o write_v in_o patchment_n mere_o by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n if_o sectary_n say_v yes_o they_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v a_o paradox_n which_o not_o christian_a ever_o utter_v and_o make_v our_o saviour_n argument_n against_o the_o jew_n simo_n opera_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v work_n among_o they_o which_o no_o other_o do_v they_o will_v not_o have_v sin_n null_a and_o inefficacious_a but_o moreover_o be_v convince_v by_o this_o clear_a proof_n suppose_v and_o it_o imply_v no_o impossibility_n that_o god_n who_o have_v yet_o within_o the_o vast_a reach_n of_o his_o omnisciency_n a_o thousand_o other_o verity_n unknown_a to_o the_o world_n and_o not_o at_o all_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n or_o deliver_v by_o the_o church_n for_o certain_o he_o have_v not_o reveal_v all_o he_o know_v shall_v now_o both_o inspire_v and_o assist_v twelve_o poor_a fisherman_n to_o preach_v infallible_o these_o truth_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o yet_o so_o that_o they_o teach_v only_o but_o do_v no_o miracle_n work_v no_o conversion_n show_v no_o wonder_n and_o give_v no_o other_o testimony_n of_o their_o be_v send_v from_o god_n but_o by_o their_o own_o bare_a word_n will_v any_o man_n in_o the_o world_n think_v you_o prudent_o believe_v they_o mere_o for_o their_o preach_n or_o will_v sectary_n as_o well_o discover_v the_o infallibility_n of_o these_o verity_n teach_v by_o their_o preach_n as_o they_o now_o discern_v the_o scripture_n infallibility_n no_o the_o whole_a world_n will_v prudent_o set_v light_n by_o such_o doctrine_n though_o in_o itself_o both_o divine_a and_o infallible_a for_o want_v of_o prudent_a motive_n to_o make_v it_o evident_o credible_a and_o so_o all_o will_v have_v do_v have_v the_o apostle_n only_o preach_v the_o divine_a truth_n already_o register_v in_o scripture_n without_o further_a motive_n therefore_o more_o be_v require_v to_o prove_v that_o a_o doctrine_n come_v from_o god_n then_o thus_o much_o only_o that_o it_o contain_v in_o itself_o thing_n high_o suitable_a to_o the_o divine_a nature_n thing_n above_o the_o find_v out_o of_o humane_a reason_n and_o conduce_v to_o piety_n i_o say_v in_o itself_o for_o if_o we_o go_v to_o a_o strict_a analysis_n of_o the_o scripture_n verity_n we_o be_v not_o to_o suppose_v as_o the_o opponent_n do_v but_o to_o prove_v that_o all_o these_o verity_n be_v suitable_a to_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n do_v deny_v and_o therefore_o must_v be_v further_o prove_v 22._o now_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o grant_v and_o most_o true_o that_o none_o will_v have_v discover_v any_o infallibility_n in_o apostolical_a doctrine_n without_o further_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n of_o sign_n and_o wonder_n we_o have_v our_o intent_n for_o it_o follow_v inevitable_o that_o scripture_n can_v be_v discover_v to_o be_v divine_a by_o itself_o nor_o infallble_a by_o virtue_n of_o any_o light_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n or_o sintax_v thereof_o it_o follow_v 2._o that_o mr._n stillingfleet_n be_v more_o than_o a_o little_a out_o in_o his_o seven_o interrogatory_n part_v 1._o chap._n 7._o p._n 230._o fine_a where_o he_o ask_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o the_o high_a disparagement_n of_o this_o divine_a doctrine_n to_o make_v it_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o any_o that_o call_v themselves_o the_o catholic_n church_n good_a sir_n reflect_v these_o motive_n of_o credibility_n manifest_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n their_o miracle_n conversion_n sanctity_n etc._n etc._n take_v pure_o as_o motive_n previous_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o those_o who_o believe_v be_v either_o fallible_a or_o infallible_a take_v whether_o side_n you_o will_v if_o infallible_a you_o evident_o see_v that_o most_o certain_a doctrine_n stand_v without_o disparagement_n so_o far_o in_o need_n of_o those_o inducement_n that_o it_o will_v never_o have_v be_v believe_v without_o they_o as_o be_v already_o prove_v though_o most_o infallible_a in_o itself_o if_o you_o hold_v those_o previous_a inducement_n to_o be_v only_o fallible_a you_o must_v yet_o grant_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o that_o apostolical_a doctrine_n stand_v still_o in_o need_n of_o they_o without_o any_o disparagement_n therefore_o much_o less_o do_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o infallible_a church_n evidence_v by_o the_o like_a motive_n disparage_v it_o i_o say_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n evidence_v by_o clear_a motive_n for_o as_o the_o learned_a snare_n observe_v 3._o par._n tom._n 2._o disp_n 31._o sect._n 2._o n._n dico●primo_fw-la the_o very_a miracle_n of_o christ_n precise_o and_o sole_o consider_v or_o separate_v from_o all_o other_o certain_a principle_n will_v not_o have_v prove_v he_o to_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n because_o
disciplina_fw-la quâ_fw-la fiunt_fw-la christiani_n vbi_fw-la enim_fw-la apparuerit_fw-la esse_fw-la veritatem_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la &_o fidei_fw-la christianae_n illic_fw-la erit_fw-la veritas_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la &_o expositionum_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la traditionum_fw-la christianorum_fw-la the_o sense_n of_o this_o whole_a sentence_n be_v this_o we_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o appeal_v to_o scripture_n nor_o be_v our_o debate_n to_o be_v determine_v here_o wherein_o there_o be_v no_o victory_n or_o a_o very_a uncertain_a one_o for_o although_o there_o be_v no_o collation_n or_o compare_v of_o place_n together_o that_o may_v stay_v the_o two_o advers._fw-la part_n yet_o the_o order_n of_o thing_n require_v this_o to_o be_v first_o propose_v which_o be_v now_o only_o to_o be_v dispute_v viz._n to_o who_o the_o faith_n appertain_v whereof_o the_o scripture_n be_v from_o who_o and_o by_o who_o when_o and_o by_o what_o person_n that_o discipline_n be_v whereby_o they_o be_v make_v christian_n for_o where_o there_o appear_v the_o truth_n of_o discipline_n that_o be_v as_o macereus_n and_o pamelius_n interpret_v the_o rule_n and_o of_o christian_a faith_n there_o you_o shall_v have_v the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n the_o interpretation_n of_o it_o likewise_o and_o of_o all_o christian_a tradition_n observe_v well_o the_o whole_a context_n of_o these_o word_n say_v first_o that_o debate_n can_v never_o be_v end_v by_o scripture_n only_o 2._o that_o before_o we_o dispute_v by_o scripture_n we_o ought_v to_o know_v and_o by_o other_o reason_n who_o those_o be_v to_o who_o scripture_n belong_v 3._o that_o where_o the_o discipline_n or_o rule_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v previous_o know_v by_o other_o ground_n distinct_a from_o scripture_n there_o you_o have_v the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o all_o christian_a tradition_n after_o a_o full_a ponderation_n of_o these_o word_n i_o leave_v any_o man_n to_o judge_n that_o love_v truth_n whether_o that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o here_o most_o remarkable_o express_v which_o be_v teach_v and_o mantain_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n 26._o mr._n poole_n from_o his_o 12._o page_n to_o his_o 37._o have_v no_o work_n for_o i_o for_o his_o whole_a strain_n be_v to_o run_v on_o in_o cavil_n and_o find_v fault_n with_o such_o argument_n of_o catholic_n as_o he_o forsooth_o judge_n inefficacious_a to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n whereas_o god_n know_v have_v he_o have_v where_o withal_o to_o do_v it_o he_o shall_v have_v go_v a_o contrary_a way_n and_o prove_v positive_o by_o scripture_n father_n and_o tradition_n the_o church_n fallibility_n but_o herein_o he_o be_v silent_a because_o in_o real_a truth_n he_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n which_o mr._n poole_n never_o touch_v on_o be_v brief_o hint_v at_o above_o n._n 15._o and_o further_o lay_v forth_o disc_n 1._o c._n 1._o and_o 2._o and_o i_o desire_v a_o express_a answer_n to_o it_o now_o and_o then_o he_o have_v something_o against_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o with_o he_o be_v fallible_a because_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o the_o good_a man_n never_o reflect_n that_o he_o and_o his_o little_a book_n be_v far_o more_o fallible_a i_o wave_v such_o trifle_n 27._o page_n 37._o he_o begin_v with_o his_o distinction_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o rule_v of_o faith_n and_o say_v first_o the_o supreme_a and_o true_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n be_v god_n and_o christ._n very_o good_a but_o nothing_o be_v yet_o do_v unless_o you_o fallible_a man_n can_v say_v in_o all_o the_o difference_n between_o we_o what_o god_n and_o christ_n speak_v what_o be_v judge_v for_o you_o and_o against_o we_o which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o truth_n prove_v that_o in_o every_o controversy_n it_o be_v the_o very_a thing_n in_o question_n and_o mere_o suppose_v by_o you_o without_o either_o proof_n or_o principle_n you_o say_v again_o the_o external_n and_o political_a judge_n to_o wit_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o supreme_a judge_n answ_n very_o true_a but_o what_o then_o marry_o this_o follow_v that_o if_o they_o real_o contradict_v the_o supreme_a judge_n sentence_n they_o must_v give_v their_o subject_n leave_v to_o argue_v whether_o it_o be_v right_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n hold_v sir_n a_o little_a if_o you_o rational_o contradict_v they_o you_o must_v first_o prove_v yourself_o wise_a than_o these_o subordinate_a judge_n be_v and_o evidence_n their_o error_n by_o undoubted_a principle_n which_o be_v impossible_a for_o either_o these_o judge_n be_v infallible_a or_o fallible_a if_o you_o grant_v the_o first_o you_o can_v rational_o contradict_v they_o and_o if_o they_o be_v fallible_a how_o dare_v you_o a_o private_a fallible_a man_n speak_v contrary_a when_o your_o very_a contradiction_n be_v no_o better_a than_o their_o opposite_a assertion_n be_v i_o mean_v pure_o and_o poor_o fallible_a in_o a_o word_n without_o any_o certain_a principle_n to_o rely_v on_o which_o you_o shall_v never_o have_v you_o too_o bold_o take_v leave_v to_o oppose_v your_o judge_n and_o make_v yourself_o a_o rebel_n by_o it_o you_o say_v 3._o there_o be_v in_o every_o particular_a person_n a_o secret_a judge_n which_o be_v call_v reason_n or_o conscience_n i_o must_v ask_v once_o more_o what_o then_o have_v not_o arian_n pelagian_o quaquer_n and_o all_o other_o sectary_n reason_n as_o well_o as_o you_o what_o therefore_o this_o instrument_n of_o reason_n can_v apprehend_v judge_n and_o work_v in_o you_o after_o your_o fashion_n it_o do_v the_o like_a in_o these_o other_o after_o their_o fashion_n do_v you_o not_o therefore_o see_v how_o little_o you_o advance_v your_o cause_n by_o talk_v of_o your_o reason_n which_o unless_o it_o be_v evidence_v by_o sure_a principle_n to_o be_v better_a than_o that_o of_o your_o adversary_n prove_v just_o nothing_o and_o add_v what_o private_a spirit_n you_o plea_n to_o help_v your_o reason_n out_o they_o will_v talk_v as_o much_o of_o their_o contrary_a spirit_n to_o help_v they_o these_o two_o point_n be_v so_o large_o declare_v and_o prove_v disc_n 2._o c._n 5._o that_o i_o believe_v your_o answer_n to_o they_o will_v prove_v unreasonable_a 28._o page_n 40._o you_o go_v first_o very_o wary_o to_o work_v for_o no_o man_n know_v what_o you_o will_v say_v then_o you_o be_v manly_a resolute_a in_o your_o decision_n we_o willing_o acknowledge_v say_v you_o and_o reverent_o esteem_v the_o true_a and_o rightful_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n orderly_o assemble_v and_o proceed_v regular_o in_o counsel_n who_o decision_n be_v to_o be_v high_o value_v etc._n etc._n here_o be_v no_o man_n know_v what_o pray_v you_o speak_v out_o and_o name_n more_o clear_o the_o church_n you_o reverent_o esteem_v of_o tell_v we_o who_o these_o true_a and_o rightful_a governor_n of_o it_o be_v and_o do_v not_o put_v we_o of_o with_o a_o old_a piece_n of_o a_o long_a since_o reject_v doctrine_n they_o be_v those_o who_o hold_v close_o to_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n for_o we_o must_v know_v who_o these_o be_v final_o say_v when_o counsel_n be_v regular_o assemble_v not_o according_a to_o your_o fancy_n but_o which_o will_v be_v a_o long_a work_n for_o you_o let_v we_o have_v law_n prescribe_v whereby_o we_o may_v know_v by_o sure_a principle_n more_o particular_o without_o this_o general_a talk_n when_o counsel_n be_v orderly_o assemble_v or_o unorderly_o a_o word_n now_o to_o your_o resolute_a definition_n you_o say_v first_o this_o judge_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a but_o subject_a to_o error_n answer_n and_o so_o be_v you_o sir_n also_o fallible_a when_o you_o oppose_v yourself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v your_o own_o english_a church_n or_o the_o roman_n catholic_n if_o therefore_o the_o judgement_n of_o both_o church_n be_v suppose_v fallible_a as_o the_o one_o be_v not_o your_o singular_a judgement_n be_v no_o more_o but_o fallible_a also_o and_o what_o gain_v you_o by_o that_o thus_o much_o only_o you_o contradict_v the_o church_n fallible_o and_o the_o church_n again_o contradict_v you_o fallible_o and_o thus_o you_o may_v remain_v contradict_v one_o another_o to_o the_o world_n end_n without_o the_o decision_n of_o one_o controversy_n unless_o you_o make_v it_o evident_a by_o undoubted_a principle_n that_o you_o be_v to_o judge_v the_o church_n when_o you_o please_v and_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o you_o or_o your_o judgement_n you_o say_v 2._o this_o judge_n of_o the_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o high_a authority_n and_o tie_v to_o a_o high_a rule_n if_o its_o decision_n be_v manifest_o repugnant_a to_o that_o superior_a rule_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v obey_v answ_n you_o pure_o suppose_v what_o shall_v be_v prove_v viz._n that_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o
christ_n but_o hold_v that_o he_o be_v man_n only_o the_o monothelit_v believe_v faith_n that_o which_o all_o christian_n agree_v in_o though_o true_a be_v not_o enough_o for_o save_v faith_n in_o christ_n but_o deny_v his_o two_o nature_n his_o two_o will_n humane_a and_o divine_a the_o apollinarian_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o hold_v that_o the_o word_n assume_v true_a flesh_n but_o without_o a_o create_a soul_n tell_v i_o now_o can_v you_o abstract_v a_o belief_n from_o these_o err_v christian_n common_a to_o all_o other_o that_o be_v safe_a sufficient_a and_o enough_o to_o constitute_v save_v and_o catholich_n faith_n be_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v i_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n without_o descend_v with_o my_o faith_n to_o a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o his_o divinity_n also_o have_v one_o that_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o christ_n but_o i_o will_v abstract_n from_o a_o belief_n of_o his_o two_o nature_n from_o his_o have_v a_o rational_a soul_n from_o his_o be_v god_n and_o man_n and_o because_o other_o have_v positive_o disbelieved_a these_o article_n i_o will_v only_o prescind_v from_o the_o verity_n of_o they_o to_o prescind_n be_v les_fw-fr then_o express_o to_o deny_v they_o have_v such_o a_o one_o i_o say_v save_v faith_n enough_o to_o make_v he_o a_o doctrine_n plain_a haresy_n follow_v from_o these_o sectary_n doctrine_n member_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n no._n for_o if_o so_o he_o need_v not_o to_o believe_v at_o all_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o two_o nature_n after_o scripture_n be_v red_a and_o propose_v unto_o he_o which_o oblige_v he_o if_o he_o own_v it_o for_o god_n word_n not_o to_o abstract_n from_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o article_n but_o positive_o to_o yield_v a_o assent_n to_o they_o with_o true_a faith_n as_o most_o fundamental_a verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n you_o see_v therefore_o how_o impossible_a it_o be_v to_o draw_v one_o true_a vniform_a universal_a doctrine_n from_o all_o err_a christian_n and_o to_o hold_v that_o on_o the_o one_o side_n sufficient_a for_o catholic_n faith_n and_o on_o the_o other_o to_o comply_v with_o that_o strict_a obligation_n which_o express_a scripture_n clear_o propose_v force_v we_o to_o believe_v 4._o this_o point_n i_o insist_v on_o because_o i_o know_v protestant_n can_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o name_v any_o thing_n like_o a_o holy_a unite_a catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n unless_o they_o first_o answer_v as_o some_o of_o they_o seem_v to_o do_v by_o the_o abstract_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n now_o evidence_v no_o faith_n and_o say_v that_o particular_a error_n do_v vncatholick_a none_n or_o second_o run_v to_o a_o invisible_a church_n not_o at_o all_o designable_a or_o three_o as_o they_o etc._n protestant_n ought_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n as_o true_a etc._n etc._n ought_v to_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v then_o and_o now_o be_v not_o only_o a_o church_n but_o the_o sole_a holy_a and_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o this_o catholic_n society_n i_o can_v show_v be_v it_o not_o ample_o do_v by_o other_o how_o all_o who_o age_n after_o age_n merit_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n have_v join_v in_o faith_n and_o all_o who_o part_v from_o it_o have_v be_v brand_v with_o the_o ignominious_a note_n of_o none_o or_o can_v find_v none_o heretic_n if_o i_o speak_v not_o truth_n name_v any_o society_n of_o christian_n before_o luther_n that_o ever_o gain_v the_o faith_n none_o ever_o have_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n but_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a faith_n repute_n of_o catholic_n but_o such_o only_a as_o be_v unite_v in_o faith_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n name_v any_o one_o society_n that_o divorce_v itself_o from_o this_o church_n which_o forthwith_o lose_v not_o that_o ancient_a title_n of_o catholic_n or_o be_v not_o upon_o that_o separation_n style_v haeretical_a schismatical_a or_o both_o if_o you_o say_v first_o the_o roman_a church_n wrong_v they_o i_o ask._n quis_fw-la te_fw-la constituit_fw-la judicem_fw-la who_o make_v you_o judge_v in_o this_o case_n name_v the_o injure_a party_n be_v the_o arian_n pelagian_o nestorian_n donatist_n wrong_v when_o they_o leave_v communion_n with_o this_o church_n arian_n the_o grecians_n waldenses_n etc._n etc._n no_o more_o wrong_v than_o arian_n no._n but_o the_o waldenses_n the_o albigenses_n the_o hussit_n and_o most_o of_o all_o the_o late_a grecian_n have_v injury_n don_n they_o and_o why_o so_o more_o than_o pelagian_n be_v your_o bare_a assertion_n proof_n enough_o to_o declare_v those_o guilty_a and_o these_o innocent_a when_o you_o yourselves_o as_o much_o condemn_v they_o as_o catholic_n do_v for_o you_o utter_o disavow_v their_o doctrine_n be_v ever_o general_a council_n convene_v that_o do_v more_o patronize_v the_o error_n of_o these_o waldenses_n then_o those_o other_o of_o the_o arian_n or_o that_o blame_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n no._n why_o therefore_o do_v you_o plead_v ●o_o much_o for_o a_o bad_a cause_n when_o you_o have_v no_o more_o ●o_o defend_v it_o then_o your_o own_o proofle_n talk_v which_o have_v you_o spend_v in_o a_o apology_n for_o any_o old_a condemn_a haeretick_n will_v have_v help_v as_o much_o that_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o as_o now_o you_o advantage_n these_o late_a man_n and_o observe_v i_o beseech_v you_o how_o weak_o you_o go_v to_o work_v you_o say_v the_o hussit_n waldenses_n talk_n sectary_n plead_v for_o condemn_a heretic_n without_o any_o principle_n but_o their_o own_o talk_n and_o other_o be_v good_a catholic_n we_o deny_v it_o and_o demonstrate_v their_o vncatholick_a doctrine_n to_o what_o tribunal_n shall_v we_o appeal_v for_o a_o just_a sentence_n to_o your_o say_v i_o or_o to_o our_o no._n to_o none_o and_o thus_o you_o proceed_v with_o we_o in_o all_o your_o controversy_n we_o must_v either_o take_v your_o word_n for_o your_o assertion_n or_o dispute_v without_o end_n upon_o nothing_o that_o have_v the_o appearance_n endless_a and_o make_v controversy_n endless_a of_o a_o receive_a principle_n 5._o you_o say_v again_o the_o late_a grecian_n be_v catholic_n before_o they_o recant_v their_o error_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o by_o a_o glorious_a empty_a title_n a_o defence_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n by_o far_o fetch_v uncertain_a conjecture_n and_o mere_a negative_a argument_n which_o be_v so_o slight_a that_o if_o all_o be_v put_v together_o in_o a_o just_a balance_n they_o will_v not_o weigh_v one_o straw_n much_o ●es_n outweigh_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o most_o learned_a general_n council_n against_o the_o greek_n yet_o such_o talk_n and_o talk_v only_a lengthen_n these_o new_a book_n and_o make_v they_o so_o voluminous_a as_o they_o be_v and_o church_n they_o defend_v doctrine_n deny_v by_o the_o english_a church_n by_o the_o way_n note_v here_o a_o pretty_a humour_n the_o greek_n must_v be_v defend_v in_o that_o point_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n from_o the_o father_n only_o whilst_o the_o church_n of_o england_n anathematize_v the_o doctrine_n be_v not_o this_o right_n think_v you_o and_o well_o do_v by_o a_o protestant_n 6._o well_o you_o shall_v see_v my_o plain_a deal_v with_o church_n grecian_n hussit_n and_o waldenses_n can_v not_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n you_o i_o licence_n you_o to_o take_v these_o grecian_n those_o hussit_n those_o waldenses_n etc._n etc._n to_o make_v up_o a_o church_n before_o luther_n yet_o must_v tell_v you_o they_o do_v not_o the_o deed_n without_o more_o company_n which_o can_v be_v find_v that_o these_o we_o have_v name_v make_v not_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v evident_a for_o first_o they_o be_v never_o universal_a either_o in_o time_n or_o place_n their_o late_a beginning_n and_o little_a extent_n be_v know_v and_o upon_o record_n 2._o they_o be_v never_o unite_v in_o one_o doctrine_n but_o more_o at_o variance_n with_o one_o another_o than_o you_o and_o catholic_n be_v this_o they_o only_o agree_v in_o to_o oppose_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o if_o so_o much_o make_v they_o protestant_n or_o good_a catholic_n you_o may_v call_v in_o turk_n and_o jew_n to_o bear_v they_o company_n 3._o they_o be_v most_o contrary_a to_o protestant_a religion_n and_o not_o in_o trifle_n only_o why_o therefore_o have_v you_o recours_fw-fr to_o a_o people_n so_o blast_v scatter_v and_o almost_o now_o forget_v alas_o churchles_a protestant_n every_o way_n churchles_a the_o reason_n be_v clear_a because_o without_o they_o you_o have_v nothing_o to_o make_v a_o church_n of_o and_o yet_o with_o they_o you_o be_v churchles_a i_o say_v therefore_o no_o roman_a catholic_n church_n no_o church_n all_o no_o roman_a catholic_n church_n no_o church_n at_o all_o at_o all_o if_o no_o church_n at_o all_o there_o be_v then_o
no_o truth_n in_o that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n to_o evidence_n further_o what_o i_o now_o assert_v do_v no_o more_o but_o forget_v as_o it_o be_v or_o cast_v out_o of_o your_o mind_n all_o thought_n of_o roman_a catholic_n from_o luther_n upward_o to_o the_o four_o age._n then_o look_v about_o you_o and_o consider_v remain_v exclude_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n heretic_n only_o remain_v well_o the_o remainder_n of_o other_o christian_n for_o that_o vast_a interval_n of_o time_n you_o will_v find_v none_o but_o profess_a heretic_n schismatic_n or_o both_o as_o arian_n nestorian_n pelagian_n and_o such_o a_o like_a rabble_n of_o man_n again_o forget_v these_o as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v and_o only_o think_v of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n diffuse_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o continue_a age_n after_o age_n will_v you_o not_o have_v a_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n present_v church_n exclude_v heretic_n you_o yet_o have_v a_o glorious_a church_n to_o your_o thought_n yea_o most_o assure_o and_o a_o glorious_a church_n too_o it_o be_v therefore_o evident_a that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n society_n be_v not_o only_o necessary_a to_o make_v up_o the_o church_n but_o be_v moreover_o the_o sole_a and_o only_o essential_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v chap._n iii_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a if_o faith_n in_o christ_n only_o suffice_v for_o salvation_n a_o more_o explicit_fw-la faith_n be_v prove_v necessary_a 1._o i_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o word_n more_o with_o our_o adversary_n upon_o this_o subject_a and_o note_v that_o if_o a_o general_n belief_n in_o christ_n sacred_a person_n office_n and_o dignity_n be_v save_v faith_n enough_o for_o a_o christian_a which_o some_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v by_o that_o text_n of_o st._n john_n 20._o 31._o and_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n if_o such_o a_o general_n faith_n i_o say_v make_v we_o all_o as_o well_o catholic_n as_o christian_n without_o more_o our_o protestant_n need_v not_o to_o storm_v at_o we_o as_o they_o do_v for_o want_v of_o true_a faith_n for_o we_o catholic_n agree_v and_o believe_v in_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n as_o firm_o as_o they_o do_v and_o in_o this_o one_o article_n only_o may_n we_o credit_v they_o all_o necessary_a essential_o of_o christian_a faith_n be_v include_v it_o be_v true_a catholic_n say_v a_o more_o explicit_fw-la faith_n be_v require_v as_o i_o shall_v present_o declare_v but_o protestant_n who_o do_v not_o may_v rest_v essential_n protestant_n slight_v work_n about_o thing_n not_o essential_n content_v and_o withal_o confess_v that_o the_o great_a coyle_n they_o have_v keep_v in_o reform_v catholic_n doctrine_n come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o a_o slight_a piddle_a about_o non-essentials_a which_o for_o aught_o be_v yet_o know_v have_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a and_o make_v thing_n worse_a than_o they_o good_a may_v have_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a be_v before_o 2._o to_o drive_v the_o difficulty_n home_o i_o ask_v serious_o whether_o any_o one_o article_n peculiar_a to_o this_o religion_n as_o like_a if_o protestant_n hold_v their_o particular_a doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n other_o haretick_n will_v pretend_v the_o like_a protestancy_n that_o be_v beside_o the_o general_n belief_n in_o christ_n and_o own_v scripture_n etc._n etc._n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o yes_o then_o will_n arian_n pelagian_o donatist_n and_o other_o sectary_n say_v also_o what_o they_o hold_v particular_a be_v also_o necessary_a and_o therefore_o doctrine_n above_o or_o beyond_o the_o belief_n in_o christ_n or_o not_o universal_a be_v of_o like_a necessity_n if_o protestant_n answer_n no_o or_o assert_v that_o nothing_o particular_o hold_v by_o they_o because_o not_o universal_a catholic_n doctrine_n imply_v this_o follow_v and_o if_o not_o two_o strange_a s●qu●ls_n undeniable_o follow_v necessity_n but_o a_o belief_n in_o christ_n only_o two_o rhing_n follow_v the_o one_o be_v as_o i_o have_v now_o note_a that_o without_o fruit_n at_o all_o they_o have_v make_v a_o shameful_a stir_n with_o their_o schism_n in_o bluster_a all_o this_o while_n about_o non-essentials_a and_o petty_a difference_n which_o may_v be_v believe_v or_o not_o without_o danger_n of_o lose_v salvation_n 2._o it_o follow_v that_o as_o protestant_n here_o acknowledge_v a_o church_n so_o universal_a wherein_o all_o may_v be_v save_v that_o believe_v in_o christ_n in_o like_a manner_n any_o one_o and_o upon_o as_o good_a reason_n may_v make_v it_o wide_a and_o allow_v salvation_n protestant_n a_o large_a church_n must_v be_v allow_v of_o by_o protestant_n to_o all_o whither_o jew_n or_o turk_n that_o believe_v in_o god_n only_o without_o explicit_fw-la faith_n in_o christ_n vnus_fw-la deus_fw-la una_fw-la fides_n therefore_o in_o place_n of_o christ_n church_n we_o may_v have_v a_o god_n church_n more_o large_a and_o ample_a erect_v in_o the_o world_n 3._o you_o will_v say_v scripture_n be_v most_o evident_a for_o a_o belief_n in_o christ_n may_v a_o defender_n of_o the_o now_o large_a imagine_a church_n which_o afford_v salvation_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o god_n answer_v he_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o the_o explicit_fw-la belief_n in_o god_n imply_v some_o kind_n of_o implicit_a belief_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o be_v enough_o which_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o make_v good_a when_o you_o have_v prove_v your_o abstract_a faith_n in_o christ_n sacred_a person_n to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n a_o better_a answer_n be_v scripture_n most_o certain_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n explicit_o but_o do_v it_o leave_v of_o there_o and_o not_o joint_o oblige_v we_o to_o only_o more_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n then_o belief_n in_o christ_n only_o believe_v other_o article_n also_o explicit_o when_o they_o be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n and_o sufficient_o propose_v such_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n etc._n etc._n can_v we_o therefore_o after_o we_o own_o these_o truth_n deliver_v in_o god_n word_n hope_v for_o salvation_n without_o a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o they_o if_o so_o st._n john_n c._n 6._o 53._o say_v not_o true_a unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o sure_o we_o can_v do_v this_o like_a christian_n unless_o we_o believe_v it_o necessary_a the_o belief_n of_o sacrament_n necessary_a if_o no_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o sacrament_n constitute_v the_o essential_o of_o save_v faith_n and_o so_o do_v also_o the_o belief_n of_o much_o moral_a doctrine_n set_v down_o in_o scripture_n read_v what_o st._n paul_n write_v cor._n 1._o 6._o 9_o concern_v the_o unrighteous_a idolater_n and_o fornicator_n etc._n etc._n and_o tell_v i_o if_o you_o own_o god_n word_n whether_o the_o apostle_n do_v doctrine_n and_o of_o other_o moral_a doctrine_n not_o disinherit_v all_o unbeliever_n of_o his_o doctrine_n therefore_o something_o more_o be_v necessary_a for_o christian_n unite_v in_o one_o faith_n to_o assent_v to_o then_o only_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n 4._o the_o true_a fundamental_a ground_n of_o my_o assertion_n be_v this._n what_o ever_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n who_o never_o speak_v idle_a word_n whether_o the_o matter_n may_v seem_v to_o our_o weak_a capacity_n little_a or_o great_a be_v after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o the_o same_o weight_n and_o authority_n to_o believe_v rherfore_o in_o christ_n be_v a_o fundamental_a article_n and_o in_o one_o sense_n know_v to_o every_o one_o most_o fundamental_a but_o to_o reject_v or_o abstract_n from_o his_o other_o verity_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n or_o to_o make_v les_fw-fr reckon_a of_o they_o because_o they_o appear_v little_a to_o we_o be_v to_o affront_n god_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o we_o will_v believe_v he_o so_o far_o as_o we_o plea_n but_o no_o far_o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n he_o assure_v we_o that_o his_o word_n be_v equal_o engage_v in_o all_o he_o say_v and_o authority_n all_o truth_n in_o scripture_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n that_o his_o eternal_a truth_n whether_o little_a or_o great_a be_v not_o to_o be_v value_v of_o by_o what_o be_v speak_v but_o by_o the_o certain_a authority_n of_o he_o that_o speak_v they_o hence_o divins_n assert_v and_o most_o true_o that_o no_o man_n can_v believe_v so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n upon_o the_o motive_n of_o god_n reveal_v testimony_n unless_o he_o ready_o embrace_v all_o other_o alike_o as_o equal_o propose_v upon_o the_o same_o authority_n for_o where_o we_o have_v the_o same_o motive_n we_o must_v yield_v the_o same_o